Addted table of content and links
[gender-roles-text-analysis.git] / 1400-0.txt
1 GREAT EXPECTATIONS
2
3 [1867 Edition]
4
5 by Charles Dickens
6
7
8 [Project Gutenberg Editor’s Note: There is also another version of
9 this work etext98/grexp10.txt scanned from a different edition]
10
11
12
13
14 Chapter I
15
16 My father’s family name being Pirrip, and my Christian name Philip, my
17 infant tongue could make of both names nothing longer or more explicit
18 than Pip. So, I called myself Pip, and came to be called Pip.
19
20 I give Pirrip as my father’s family name, on the authority of his
21 tombstone and my sister,--Mrs. Joe Gargery, who married the blacksmith.
22 As I never saw my father or my mother, and never saw any likeness
23 of either of them (for their days were long before the days of
24 photographs), my first fancies regarding what they were like were
25 unreasonably derived from their tombstones. The shape of the letters on
26 my father’s, gave me an odd idea that he was a square, stout, dark man,
27 with curly black hair. From the character and turn of the inscription,
28 “Also Georgiana Wife of the Above,” I drew a childish conclusion that
29 my mother was freckled and sickly. To five little stone lozenges, each
30 about a foot and a half long, which were arranged in a neat row beside
31 their grave, and were sacred to the memory of five little brothers of
32 mine,--who gave up trying to get a living, exceedingly early in
33 that universal struggle,--I am indebted for a belief I religiously
34 entertained that they had all been born on their backs with their hands
35 in their trousers-pockets, and had never taken them out in this state of
36 existence.
37
38 Ours was the marsh country, down by the river, within, as the river
39 wound, twenty miles of the sea. My first most vivid and broad impression
40 of the identity of things seems to me to have been gained on a memorable
41 raw afternoon towards evening. At such a time I found out for certain
42 that this bleak place overgrown with nettles was the churchyard; and
43 that Philip Pirrip, late of this parish, and also Georgiana wife of the
44 above, were dead and buried; and that Alexander, Bartholomew, Abraham,
45 Tobias, and Roger, infant children of the aforesaid, were also dead
46 and buried; and that the dark flat wilderness beyond the churchyard,
47 intersected with dikes and mounds and gates, with scattered cattle
48 feeding on it, was the marshes; and that the low leaden line beyond
49 was the river; and that the distant savage lair from which the wind was
50 rushing was the sea; and that the small bundle of shivers growing afraid
51 of it all and beginning to cry, was Pip.
52
53 “Hold your noise!” cried a terrible voice, as a man started up from
54 among the graves at the side of the church porch. “Keep still, you
55 little devil, or I’ll cut your throat!”
56
57 A fearful man, all in coarse gray, with a great iron on his leg. A man
58 with no hat, and with broken shoes, and with an old rag tied round his
59 head. A man who had been soaked in water, and smothered in mud, and
60 lamed by stones, and cut by flints, and stung by nettles, and torn by
61 briars; who limped, and shivered, and glared, and growled; and whose
62 teeth chattered in his head as he seized me by the chin.
63
64 “Oh! Don’t cut my throat, sir,” I pleaded in terror. “Pray don’t do it,
65 sir.”
66
67 “Tell us your name!” said the man. “Quick!”
68
69 “Pip, sir.”
70
71 “Once more,” said the man, staring at me. “Give it mouth!”
72
73 “Pip. Pip, sir.”
74
75 “Show us where you live,” said the man. “Pint out the place!”
76
77 I pointed to where our village lay, on the flat in-shore among the
78 alder-trees and pollards, a mile or more from the church.
79
80 The man, after looking at me for a moment, turned me upside down, and
81 emptied my pockets. There was nothing in them but a piece of bread. When
82 the church came to itself,--for he was so sudden and strong that he
83 made it go head over heels before me, and I saw the steeple under my
84 feet,--when the church came to itself, I say, I was seated on a high
85 tombstone, trembling while he ate the bread ravenously.
86
87 “You young dog,” said the man, licking his lips, “what fat cheeks you
88 ha’ got.”
89
90 I believe they were fat, though I was at that time undersized for my
91 years, and not strong.
92
93 “Darn me if I couldn’t eat em,” said the man, with a threatening shake
94 of his head, “and if I han’t half a mind to’t!”
95
96 I earnestly expressed my hope that he wouldn’t, and held tighter to
97 the tombstone on which he had put me; partly, to keep myself upon it;
98 partly, to keep myself from crying.
99
100 “Now lookee here!” said the man. “Where’s your mother?”
101
102 “There, sir!” said I.
103
104 He started, made a short run, and stopped and looked over his shoulder.
105
106 “There, sir!” I timidly explained. “Also Georgiana. That’s my mother.”
107
108 “Oh!” said he, coming back. “And is that your father alonger your
109 mother?”
110
111 “Yes, sir,” said I; “him too; late of this parish.”
112
113 “Ha!” he muttered then, considering. “Who d’ye live with,--supposin’
114 you’re kindly let to live, which I han’t made up my mind about?”
115
116 “My sister, sir,--Mrs. Joe Gargery,--wife of Joe Gargery, the
117 blacksmith, sir.”
118
119 “Blacksmith, eh?” said he. And looked down at his leg.
120
121 After darkly looking at his leg and me several times, he came closer
122 to my tombstone, took me by both arms, and tilted me back as far as he
123 could hold me; so that his eyes looked most powerfully down into mine,
124 and mine looked most helplessly up into his.
125
126 “Now lookee here,” he said, “the question being whether you’re to be let
127 to live. You know what a file is?”
128
129 “Yes, sir.”
130
131 “And you know what wittles is?”
132
133 “Yes, sir.”
134
135 After each question he tilted me over a little more, so as to give me a
136 greater sense of helplessness and danger.
137
138 “You get me a file.” He tilted me again. “And you get me wittles.” He
139 tilted me again. “You bring ‘em both to me.” He tilted me again. “Or
140 I’ll have your heart and liver out.” He tilted me again.
141
142 I was dreadfully frightened, and so giddy that I clung to him with both
143 hands, and said, “If you would kindly please to let me keep upright,
144 sir, perhaps I shouldn’t be sick, and perhaps I could attend more.”
145
146 He gave me a most tremendous dip and roll, so that the church jumped
147 over its own weathercock. Then, he held me by the arms, in an upright
148 position on the top of the stone, and went on in these fearful terms:--
149
150 “You bring me, to-morrow morning early, that file and them wittles. You
151 bring the lot to me, at that old Battery over yonder. You do it, and you
152 never dare to say a word or dare to make a sign concerning your having
153 seen such a person as me, or any person sumever, and you shall be let to
154 live. You fail, or you go from my words in any partickler, no matter how
155 small it is, and your heart and your liver shall be tore out, roasted,
156 and ate. Now, I ain’t alone, as you may think I am. There’s a young man
157 hid with me, in comparison with which young man I am a Angel. That young
158 man hears the words I speak. That young man has a secret way pecooliar
159 to himself, of getting at a boy, and at his heart, and at his liver. It
160 is in wain for a boy to attempt to hide himself from that young man. A
161 boy may lock his door, may be warm in bed, may tuck himself up, may draw
162 the clothes over his head, may think himself comfortable and safe, but
163 that young man will softly creep and creep his way to him and tear him
164 open. I am a keeping that young man from harming of you at the present
165 moment, with great difficulty. I find it wery hard to hold that young
166 man off of your inside. Now, what do you say?”
167
168 I said that I would get him the file, and I would get him what broken
169 bits of food I could, and I would come to him at the Battery, early in
170 the morning.
171
172 “Say Lord strike you dead if you don’t!” said the man.
173
174 I said so, and he took me down.
175
176 “Now,” he pursued, “you remember what you’ve undertook, and you remember
177 that young man, and you get home!”
178
179 “Goo-good night, sir,” I faltered.
180
181 “Much of that!” said he, glancing about him over the cold wet flat. “I
182 wish I was a frog. Or a eel!”
183
184 At the same time, he hugged his shuddering body in both his
185 arms,--clasping himself, as if to hold himself together,--and limped
186 towards the low church wall. As I saw him go, picking his way among the
187 nettles, and among the brambles that bound the green mounds, he looked
188 in my young eyes as if he were eluding the hands of the dead people,
189 stretching up cautiously out of their graves, to get a twist upon his
190 ankle and pull him in.
191
192 When he came to the low church wall, he got over it, like a man whose
193 legs were numbed and stiff, and then turned round to look for me. When I
194 saw him turning, I set my face towards home, and made the best use of
195 my legs. But presently I looked over my shoulder, and saw him going on
196 again towards the river, still hugging himself in both arms, and picking
197 his way with his sore feet among the great stones dropped into the
198 marshes here and there, for stepping-places when the rains were heavy or
199 the tide was in.
200
201 The marshes were just a long black horizontal line then, as I stopped
202 to look after him; and the river was just another horizontal line, not
203 nearly so broad nor yet so black; and the sky was just a row of long
204 angry red lines and dense black lines intermixed. On the edge of the
205 river I could faintly make out the only two black things in all the
206 prospect that seemed to be standing upright; one of these was the beacon
207 by which the sailors steered,--like an unhooped cask upon a pole,--an
208 ugly thing when you were near it; the other, a gibbet, with some chains
209 hanging to it which had once held a pirate. The man was limping on
210 towards this latter, as if he were the pirate come to life, and come
211 down, and going back to hook himself up again. It gave me a terrible
212 turn when I thought so; and as I saw the cattle lifting their heads to
213 gaze after him, I wondered whether they thought so too. I looked all
214 round for the horrible young man, and could see no signs of him. But now
215 I was frightened again, and ran home without stopping.
216
217
218
219
220 Chapter II
221
222 My sister, Mrs. Joe Gargery, was more than twenty years older than I,
223 and had established a great reputation with herself and the neighbors
224 because she had brought me up “by hand.” Having at that time to find out
225 for myself what the expression meant, and knowing her to have a hard and
226 heavy hand, and to be much in the habit of laying it upon her husband as
227 well as upon me, I supposed that Joe Gargery and I were both brought up
228 by hand.
229
230 She was not a good-looking woman, my sister; and I had a general
231 impression that she must have made Joe Gargery marry her by hand. Joe
232 was a fair man, with curls of flaxen hair on each side of his smooth
233 face, and with eyes of such a very undecided blue that they seemed
234 to have somehow got mixed with their own whites. He was a mild,
235 good-natured, sweet-tempered, easy-going, foolish, dear fellow,--a sort
236 of Hercules in strength, and also in weakness.
237
238 My sister, Mrs. Joe, with black hair and eyes, had such a prevailing
239 redness of skin that I sometimes used to wonder whether it was possible
240 she washed herself with a nutmeg-grater instead of soap. She was tall
241 and bony, and almost always wore a coarse apron, fastened over her
242 figure behind with two loops, and having a square impregnable bib in
243 front, that was stuck full of pins and needles. She made it a powerful
244 merit in herself, and a strong reproach against Joe, that she wore this
245 apron so much. Though I really see no reason why she should have worn it
246 at all; or why, if she did wear it at all, she should not have taken it
247 off, every day of her life.
248
249 Joe’s forge adjoined our house, which was a wooden house, as many of the
250 dwellings in our country were,--most of them, at that time. When I ran
251 home from the churchyard, the forge was shut up, and Joe was sitting
252 alone in the kitchen. Joe and I being fellow-sufferers, and having
253 confidences as such, Joe imparted a confidence to me, the moment I
254 raised the latch of the door and peeped in at him opposite to it,
255 sitting in the chimney corner.
256
257 “Mrs. Joe has been out a dozen times, looking for you, Pip. And she’s
258 out now, making it a baker’s dozen.”
259
260 “Is she?”
261
262 “Yes, Pip,” said Joe; “and what’s worse, she’s got Tickler with her.”
263
264 At this dismal intelligence, I twisted the only button on my waistcoat
265 round and round, and looked in great depression at the fire. Tickler
266 was a wax-ended piece of cane, worn smooth by collision with my tickled
267 frame.
268
269 “She sot down,” said Joe, “and she got up, and she made a grab at
270 Tickler, and she Ram-paged out. That’s what she did,” said Joe, slowly
271 clearing the fire between the lower bars with the poker, and looking at
272 it; “she Ram-paged out, Pip.”
273
274 “Has she been gone long, Joe?” I always treated him as a larger species
275 of child, and as no more than my equal.
276
277 “Well,” said Joe, glancing up at the Dutch clock, “she’s been on the
278 Ram-page, this last spell, about five minutes, Pip. She’s a coming! Get
279 behind the door, old chap, and have the jack-towel betwixt you.”
280
281 I took the advice. My sister, Mrs. Joe, throwing the door wide open,
282 and finding an obstruction behind it, immediately divined the cause, and
283 applied Tickler to its further investigation. She concluded by throwing
284 me--I often served as a connubial missile--at Joe, who, glad to get hold
285 of me on any terms, passed me on into the chimney and quietly fenced me
286 up there with his great leg.
287
288 “Where have you been, you young monkey?” said Mrs. Joe, stamping her
289 foot. “Tell me directly what you’ve been doing to wear me away with fret
290 and fright and worrit, or I’d have you out of that corner if you was
291 fifty Pips, and he was five hundred Gargerys.”
292
293 “I have only been to the churchyard,” said I, from my stool, crying and
294 rubbing myself.
295
296 “Churchyard!” repeated my sister. “If it warn’t for me you’d have been
297 to the churchyard long ago, and stayed there. Who brought you up by
298 hand?”
299
300 “You did,” said I.
301
302 “And why did I do it, I should like to know?” exclaimed my sister.
303
304 I whimpered, “I don’t know.”
305
306 “I don’t!” said my sister. “I’d never do it again! I know that. I may
307 truly say I’ve never had this apron of mine off since born you were.
308 It’s bad enough to be a blacksmith’s wife (and him a Gargery) without
309 being your mother.”
310
311 My thoughts strayed from that question as I looked disconsolately at
312 the fire. For the fugitive out on the marshes with the ironed leg, the
313 mysterious young man, the file, the food, and the dreadful pledge I was
314 under to commit a larceny on those sheltering premises, rose before me
315 in the avenging coals.
316
317 “Hah!” said Mrs. Joe, restoring Tickler to his station. “Churchyard,
318 indeed! You may well say churchyard, you two.” One of us, by the by, had
319 not said it at all. “You’ll drive me to the churchyard betwixt you, one
320 of these days, and O, a pr-r-recious pair you’d be without me!”
321
322 As she applied herself to set the tea-things, Joe peeped down at me
323 over his leg, as if he were mentally casting me and himself up, and
324 calculating what kind of pair we practically should make, under the
325 grievous circumstances foreshadowed. After that, he sat feeling his
326 right-side flaxen curls and whisker, and following Mrs. Joe about with
327 his blue eyes, as his manner always was at squally times.
328
329 My sister had a trenchant way of cutting our bread and butter for us,
330 that never varied. First, with her left hand she jammed the loaf hard
331 and fast against her bib,--where it sometimes got a pin into it, and
332 sometimes a needle, which we afterwards got into our mouths. Then she
333 took some butter (not too much) on a knife and spread it on the loaf, in
334 an apothecary kind of way, as if she were making a plaster,--using both
335 sides of the knife with a slapping dexterity, and trimming and moulding
336 the butter off round the crust. Then, she gave the knife a final smart
337 wipe on the edge of the plaster, and then sawed a very thick round off
338 the loaf: which she finally, before separating from the loaf, hewed into
339 two halves, of which Joe got one, and I the other.
340
341 On the present occasion, though I was hungry, I dared not eat my
342 slice. I felt that I must have something in reserve for my dreadful
343 acquaintance, and his ally the still more dreadful young man. I knew
344 Mrs. Joe’s housekeeping to be of the strictest kind, and that my
345 larcenous researches might find nothing available in the safe. Therefore
346 I resolved to put my hunk of bread and butter down the leg of my
347 trousers.
348
349 The effort of resolution necessary to the achievement of this purpose I
350 found to be quite awful. It was as if I had to make up my mind to leap
351 from the top of a high house, or plunge into a great depth of water.
352 And it was made the more difficult by the unconscious Joe. In
353 our already-mentioned freemasonry as fellow-sufferers, and in his
354 good-natured companionship with me, it was our evening habit to compare
355 the way we bit through our slices, by silently holding them up to each
356 other’s admiration now and then,--which stimulated us to new exertions.
357 To-night, Joe several times invited me, by the display of his fast
358 diminishing slice, to enter upon our usual friendly competition; but
359 he found me, each time, with my yellow mug of tea on one knee, and
360 my untouched bread and butter on the other. At last, I desperately
361 considered that the thing I contemplated must be done, and that it
362 had best be done in the least improbable manner consistent with the
363 circumstances. I took advantage of a moment when Joe had just looked at
364 me, and got my bread and butter down my leg.
365
366 Joe was evidently made uncomfortable by what he supposed to be my loss
367 of appetite, and took a thoughtful bite out of his slice, which he
368 didn’t seem to enjoy. He turned it about in his mouth much longer than
369 usual, pondering over it a good deal, and after all gulped it down like
370 a pill. He was about to take another bite, and had just got his head on
371 one side for a good purchase on it, when his eye fell on me, and he saw
372 that my bread and butter was gone.
373
374 The wonder and consternation with which Joe stopped on the threshold
375 of his bite and stared at me, were too evident to escape my sister’s
376 observation.
377
378 “What’s the matter now?” said she, smartly, as she put down her cup.
379
380 “I say, you know!” muttered Joe, shaking his head at me in very serious
381 remonstrance. “Pip, old chap! You’ll do yourself a mischief. It’ll stick
382 somewhere. You can’t have chawed it, Pip.”
383
384 “What’s the matter now?” repeated my sister, more sharply than before.
385
386 “If you can cough any trifle on it up, Pip, I’d recommend you to do it,”
387 said Joe, all aghast. “Manners is manners, but still your elth’s your
388 elth.”
389
390 By this time, my sister was quite desperate, so she pounced on Joe,
391 and, taking him by the two whiskers, knocked his head for a little while
392 against the wall behind him, while I sat in the corner, looking guiltily
393 on.
394
395 “Now, perhaps you’ll mention what’s the matter,” said my sister, out of
396 breath, “you staring great stuck pig.”
397
398 Joe looked at her in a helpless way, then took a helpless bite, and
399 looked at me again.
400
401 “You know, Pip,” said Joe, solemnly, with his last bite in his cheek,
402 and speaking in a confidential voice, as if we two were quite alone,
403 “you and me is always friends, and I’d be the last to tell upon you,
404 any time. But such a--” he moved his chair and looked about the floor
405 between us, and then again at me--“such a most oncommon Bolt as that!”
406
407 “Been bolting his food, has he?” cried my sister.
408
409 “You know, old chap,” said Joe, looking at me, and not at Mrs. Joe,
410 with his bite still in his cheek, “I Bolted, myself, when I was your
411 age--frequent--and as a boy I’ve been among a many Bolters; but I never
412 see your Bolting equal yet, Pip, and it’s a mercy you ain’t Bolted
413 dead.”
414
415 My sister made a dive at me, and fished me up by the hair, saying
416 nothing more than the awful words, “You come along and be dosed.”
417
418 Some medical beast had revived Tar-water in those days as a fine
419 medicine, and Mrs. Joe always kept a supply of it in the cupboard;
420 having a belief in its virtues correspondent to its nastiness. At the
421 best of times, so much of this elixir was administered to me as a choice
422 restorative, that I was conscious of going about, smelling like a new
423 fence. On this particular evening the urgency of my case demanded a
424 pint of this mixture, which was poured down my throat, for my greater
425 comfort, while Mrs. Joe held my head under her arm, as a boot would
426 be held in a bootjack. Joe got off with half a pint; but was made to
427 swallow that (much to his disturbance, as he sat slowly munching and
428 meditating before the fire), “because he had had a turn.” Judging from
429 myself, I should say he certainly had a turn afterwards, if he had had
430 none before.
431
432 Conscience is a dreadful thing when it accuses man or boy; but when, in
433 the case of a boy, that secret burden co-operates with another secret
434 burden down the leg of his trousers, it is (as I can testify) a great
435 punishment. The guilty knowledge that I was going to rob Mrs. Joe--I
436 never thought I was going to rob Joe, for I never thought of any of the
437 housekeeping property as his--united to the necessity of always keeping
438 one hand on my bread and butter as I sat, or when I was ordered about
439 the kitchen on any small errand, almost drove me out of my mind. Then,
440 as the marsh winds made the fire glow and flare, I thought I heard the
441 voice outside, of the man with the iron on his leg who had sworn me to
442 secrecy, declaring that he couldn’t and wouldn’t starve until to-morrow,
443 but must be fed now. At other times, I thought, What if the young man
444 who was with so much difficulty restrained from imbruing his hands in me
445 should yield to a constitutional impatience, or should mistake the time,
446 and should think himself accredited to my heart and liver to-night,
447 instead of to-morrow! If ever anybody’s hair stood on end with terror,
448 mine must have done so then. But, perhaps, nobody’s ever did?
449
450 It was Christmas Eve, and I had to stir the pudding for next day, with
451 a copper-stick, from seven to eight by the Dutch clock. I tried it with
452 the load upon my leg (and that made me think afresh of the man with the
453 load on HIS leg), and found the tendency of exercise to bring the bread
454 and butter out at my ankle, quite unmanageable. Happily I slipped away,
455 and deposited that part of my conscience in my garret bedroom.
456
457 “Hark!” said I, when I had done my stirring, and was taking a final warm
458 in the chimney corner before being sent up to bed; “was that great guns,
459 Joe?”
460
461 “Ah!” said Joe. “There’s another conwict off.”
462
463 “What does that mean, Joe?” said I.
464
465 Mrs. Joe, who always took explanations upon herself, said, snappishly,
466 “Escaped. Escaped.” Administering the definition like Tar-water.
467
468 While Mrs. Joe sat with her head bending over her needlework, I put my
469 mouth into the forms of saying to Joe, “What’s a convict?” Joe put his
470 mouth into the forms of returning such a highly elaborate answer, that I
471 could make out nothing of it but the single word “Pip.”
472
473 “There was a conwict off last night,” said Joe, aloud, “after
474 sunset-gun. And they fired warning of him. And now it appears they’re
475 firing warning of another.”
476
477 “Who’s firing?” said I.
478
479 “Drat that boy,” interposed my sister, frowning at me over her work,
480 “what a questioner he is. Ask no questions, and you’ll be told no lies.”
481
482 It was not very polite to herself, I thought, to imply that I should be
483 told lies by her even if I did ask questions. But she never was polite
484 unless there was company.
485
486 At this point Joe greatly augmented my curiosity by taking the utmost
487 pains to open his mouth very wide, and to put it into the form of a word
488 that looked to me like “sulks.” Therefore, I naturally pointed to Mrs.
489 Joe, and put my mouth into the form of saying, “her?” But Joe wouldn’t
490 hear of that, at all, and again opened his mouth very wide, and shook
491 the form of a most emphatic word out of it. But I could make nothing of
492 the word.
493
494 “Mrs. Joe,” said I, as a last resort, “I should like to know--if you
495 wouldn’t much mind--where the firing comes from?”
496
497 “Lord bless the boy!” exclaimed my sister, as if she didn’t quite mean
498 that but rather the contrary. “From the Hulks!”
499
500 “Oh-h!” said I, looking at Joe. “Hulks!”
501
502 Joe gave a reproachful cough, as much as to say, “Well, I told you so.”
503
504 “And please, what’s Hulks?” said I.
505
506 “That’s the way with this boy!” exclaimed my sister, pointing me out
507 with her needle and thread, and shaking her head at me. “Answer him one
508 question, and he’ll ask you a dozen directly. Hulks are prison-ships,
509 right ‘cross th’ meshes.” We always used that name for marshes, in our
510 country.
511
512 “I wonder who’s put into prison-ships, and why they’re put there?” said
513 I, in a general way, and with quiet desperation.
514
515 It was too much for Mrs. Joe, who immediately rose. “I tell you what,
516 young fellow,” said she, “I didn’t bring you up by hand to badger
517 people’s lives out. It would be blame to me and not praise, if I had.
518 People are put in the Hulks because they murder, and because they rob,
519 and forge, and do all sorts of bad; and they always begin by asking
520 questions. Now, you get along to bed!”
521
522 I was never allowed a candle to light me to bed, and, as I went upstairs
523 in the dark, with my head tingling,--from Mrs. Joe’s thimble
524 having played the tambourine upon it, to accompany her last words,--I
525 felt fearfully sensible of the great convenience that the hulks were
526 handy for me. I was clearly on my way there. I had begun by asking
527 questions, and I was going to rob Mrs. Joe.
528
529 Since that time, which is far enough away now, I have often thought
530 that few people know what secrecy there is in the young under terror.
531 No matter how unreasonable the terror, so that it be terror. I was in
532 mortal terror of the young man who wanted my heart and liver; I was
533 in mortal terror of my interlocutor with the iron leg; I was in mortal
534 terror of myself, from whom an awful promise had been extracted; I had
535 no hope of deliverance through my all-powerful sister, who repulsed
536 me at every turn; I am afraid to think of what I might have done on
537 requirement, in the secrecy of my terror.
538
539 If I slept at all that night, it was only to imagine myself drifting
540 down the river on a strong spring-tide, to the Hulks; a ghostly
541 pirate calling out to me through a speaking-trumpet, as I passed the
542 gibbet-station, that I had better come ashore and be hanged there at
543 once, and not put it off. I was afraid to sleep, even if I had been
544 inclined, for I knew that at the first faint dawn of morning I must rob
545 the pantry. There was no doing it in the night, for there was no getting
546 a light by easy friction then; to have got one I must have struck it out
547 of flint and steel, and have made a noise like the very pirate himself
548 rattling his chains.
549
550 As soon as the great black velvet pall outside my little window was shot
551 with gray, I got up and went downstairs; every board upon the way, and
552 every crack in every board calling after me, “Stop thief!” and “Get up,
553 Mrs. Joe!” In the pantry, which was far more abundantly supplied than
554 usual, owing to the season, I was very much alarmed by a hare hanging
555 up by the heels, whom I rather thought I caught, when my back was half
556 turned, winking. I had no time for verification, no time for selection,
557 no time for anything, for I had no time to spare. I stole some bread,
558 some rind of cheese, about half a jar of mincemeat (which I tied up in
559 my pocket-handkerchief with my last night’s slice), some brandy from a
560 stone bottle (which I decanted into a glass bottle I had secretly used
561 for making that intoxicating fluid, Spanish-liquorice-water, up in my
562 room: diluting the stone bottle from a jug in the kitchen cupboard),
563 a meat bone with very little on it, and a beautiful round compact pork
564 pie. I was nearly going away without the pie, but I was tempted to mount
565 upon a shelf, to look what it was that was put away so carefully in a
566 covered earthenware dish in a corner, and I found it was the pie, and
567 I took it in the hope that it was not intended for early use, and would
568 not be missed for some time.
569
570 There was a door in the kitchen, communicating with the forge; I
571 unlocked and unbolted that door, and got a file from among Joe’s tools.
572 Then I put the fastenings as I had found them, opened the door at which
573 I had entered when I ran home last night, shut it, and ran for the misty
574 marshes.
575
576
577
578
579 Chapter III
580
581 It was a rimy morning, and very damp. I had seen the damp lying on the
582 outside of my little window, as if some goblin had been crying there all
583 night, and using the window for a pocket-handkerchief. Now, I saw the
584 damp lying on the bare hedges and spare grass, like a coarser sort of
585 spiders’ webs; hanging itself from twig to twig and blade to blade. On
586 every rail and gate, wet lay clammy, and the marsh mist was so thick,
587 that the wooden finger on the post directing people to our village--a
588 direction which they never accepted, for they never came there--was
589 invisible to me until I was quite close under it. Then, as I looked up
590 at it, while it dripped, it seemed to my oppressed conscience like a
591 phantom devoting me to the Hulks.
592
593 The mist was heavier yet when I got out upon the marshes, so that
594 instead of my running at everything, everything seemed to run at me.
595 This was very disagreeable to a guilty mind. The gates and dikes and
596 banks came bursting at me through the mist, as if they cried as plainly
597 as could be, “A boy with somebody else’s pork pie! Stop him!” The
598 cattle came upon me with like suddenness, staring out of their eyes,
599 and steaming out of their nostrils, “Halloa, young thief!” One black
600 ox, with a white cravat on,--who even had to my awakened conscience
601 something of a clerical air,--fixed me so obstinately with his eyes,
602 and moved his blunt head round in such an accusatory manner as I moved
603 round, that I blubbered out to him, “I couldn’t help it, sir! It wasn’t
604 for myself I took it!” Upon which he put down his head, blew a cloud of
605 smoke out of his nose, and vanished with a kick-up of his hind-legs and
606 a flourish of his tail.
607
608 All this time, I was getting on towards the river; but however fast I
609 went, I couldn’t warm my feet, to which the damp cold seemed riveted, as
610 the iron was riveted to the leg of the man I was running to meet. I knew
611 my way to the Battery, pretty straight, for I had been down there on a
612 Sunday with Joe, and Joe, sitting on an old gun, had told me that when
613 I was ‘prentice to him, regularly bound, we would have such Larks there!
614 However, in the confusion of the mist, I found myself at last too far to
615 the right, and consequently had to try back along the river-side, on the
616 bank of loose stones above the mud and the stakes that staked the tide
617 out. Making my way along here with all despatch, I had just crossed a
618 ditch which I knew to be very near the Battery, and had just scrambled
619 up the mound beyond the ditch, when I saw the man sitting before me.
620 His back was towards me, and he had his arms folded, and was nodding
621 forward, heavy with sleep.
622
623 I thought he would be more glad if I came upon him with his breakfast,
624 in that unexpected manner, so I went forward softly and touched him on
625 the shoulder. He instantly jumped up, and it was not the same man, but
626 another man!
627
628 And yet this man was dressed in coarse gray, too, and had a great iron
629 on his leg, and was lame, and hoarse, and cold, and was everything that
630 the other man was; except that he had not the same face, and had a flat
631 broad-brimmed low-crowned felt hat on. All this I saw in a moment, for
632 I had only a moment to see it in: he swore an oath at me, made a hit at
633 me,--it was a round weak blow that missed me and almost knocked himself
634 down, for it made him stumble,--and then he ran into the mist, stumbling
635 twice as he went, and I lost him.
636
637 “It’s the young man!” I thought, feeling my heart shoot as I identified
638 him. I dare say I should have felt a pain in my liver, too, if I had
639 known where it was.
640
641 I was soon at the Battery after that, and there was the right
642 man,--hugging himself and limping to and fro, as if he had never all
643 night left off hugging and limping,--waiting for me. He was awfully
644 cold, to be sure. I half expected to see him drop down before my face
645 and die of deadly cold. His eyes looked so awfully hungry too, that when
646 I handed him the file and he laid it down on the grass, it occurred to
647 me he would have tried to eat it, if he had not seen my bundle. He did
648 not turn me upside down this time to get at what I had, but left me
649 right side upwards while I opened the bundle and emptied my pockets.
650
651 “What’s in the bottle, boy?” said he.
652
653 “Brandy,” said I.
654
655 He was already handing mincemeat down his throat in the most curious
656 manner,--more like a man who was putting it away somewhere in a violent
657 hurry, than a man who was eating it,--but he left off to take some of
658 the liquor. He shivered all the while so violently, that it was quite
659 as much as he could do to keep the neck of the bottle between his teeth,
660 without biting it off.
661
662 “I think you have got the ague,” said I.
663
664 “I’m much of your opinion, boy,” said he.
665
666 “It’s bad about here,” I told him. “You’ve been lying out on the meshes,
667 and they’re dreadful aguish. Rheumatic too.”
668
669 “I’ll eat my breakfast afore they’re the death of me,” said he. “I’d do
670 that, if I was going to be strung up to that there gallows as there is
671 over there, directly afterwards. I’ll beat the shivers so far, I’ll bet
672 you.”
673
674 He was gobbling mincemeat, meatbone, bread, cheese, and pork pie, all
675 at once: staring distrustfully while he did so at the mist all round
676 us, and often stopping--even stopping his jaws--to listen. Some real or
677 fancied sound, some clink upon the river or breathing of beast upon the
678 marsh, now gave him a start, and he said, suddenly,--
679
680 “You’re not a deceiving imp? You brought no one with you?”
681
682 “No, sir! No!”
683
684 “Nor giv’ no one the office to follow you?”
685
686 “No!”
687
688 “Well,” said he, “I believe you. You’d be but a fierce young hound
689 indeed, if at your time of life you could help to hunt a wretched
690 warmint hunted as near death and dunghill as this poor wretched warmint
691 is!”
692
693 Something clicked in his throat as if he had works in him like a clock,
694 and was going to strike. And he smeared his ragged rough sleeve over his
695 eyes.
696
697 Pitying his desolation, and watching him as he gradually settled down
698 upon the pie, I made bold to say, “I am glad you enjoy it.”
699
700 “Did you speak?”
701
702 “I said I was glad you enjoyed it.”
703
704 “Thankee, my boy. I do.”
705
706 I had often watched a large dog of ours eating his food; and I now
707 noticed a decided similarity between the dog’s way of eating, and the
708 man’s. The man took strong sharp sudden bites, just like the dog. He
709 swallowed, or rather snapped up, every mouthful, too soon and too fast;
710 and he looked sideways here and there while he ate, as if he thought
711 there was danger in every direction of somebody’s coming to take the pie
712 away. He was altogether too unsettled in his mind over it, to appreciate
713 it comfortably I thought, or to have anybody to dine with him, without
714 making a chop with his jaws at the visitor. In all of which particulars
715 he was very like the dog.
716
717 “I am afraid you won’t leave any of it for him,” said I, timidly; after
718 a silence during which I had hesitated as to the politeness of making
719 the remark. “There’s no more to be got where that came from.” It was the
720 certainty of this fact that impelled me to offer the hint.
721
722 “Leave any for him? Who’s him?” said my friend, stopping in his
723 crunching of pie-crust.
724
725 “The young man. That you spoke of. That was hid with you.”
726
727 “Oh ah!” he returned, with something like a gruff laugh. “Him? Yes, yes!
728 He don’t want no wittles.”
729
730 “I thought he looked as if he did,” said I.
731
732 The man stopped eating, and regarded me with the keenest scrutiny and
733 the greatest surprise.
734
735 “Looked? When?”
736
737 “Just now.”
738
739 “Where?”
740
741 “Yonder,” said I, pointing; “over there, where I found him nodding
742 asleep, and thought it was you.”
743
744 He held me by the collar and stared at me so, that I began to think his
745 first idea about cutting my throat had revived.
746
747 “Dressed like you, you know, only with a hat,” I explained, trembling;
748 “and--and”--I was very anxious to put this delicately--“and with--the
749 same reason for wanting to borrow a file. Didn’t you hear the cannon
750 last night?”
751
752 “Then there was firing!” he said to himself.
753
754 “I wonder you shouldn’t have been sure of that,” I returned, “for
755 we heard it up at home, and that’s farther away, and we were shut in
756 besides.”
757
758 “Why, see now!” said he. “When a man’s alone on these flats, with a
759 light head and a light stomach, perishing of cold and want, he hears
760 nothin’ all night, but guns firing, and voices calling. Hears? He sees
761 the soldiers, with their red coats lighted up by the torches carried
762 afore, closing in round him. Hears his number called, hears himself
763 challenged, hears the rattle of the muskets, hears the orders ‘Make
764 ready! Present! Cover him steady, men!’ and is laid hands on--and
765 there’s nothin’! Why, if I see one pursuing party last night--coming up
766 in order, Damn ‘em, with their tramp, tramp--I see a hundred. And as to
767 firing! Why, I see the mist shake with the cannon, arter it was broad
768 day,--But this man”; he had said all the rest, as if he had forgotten my
769 being there; “did you notice anything in him?”
770
771 “He had a badly bruised face,” said I, recalling what I hardly knew I
772 knew.
773
774 “Not here?” exclaimed the man, striking his left cheek mercilessly, with
775 the flat of his hand.
776
777 “Yes, there!”
778
779 “Where is he?” He crammed what little food was left, into the breast of
780 his gray jacket. “Show me the way he went. I’ll pull him down, like a
781 bloodhound. Curse this iron on my sore leg! Give us hold of the file,
782 boy.”
783
784 I indicated in what direction the mist had shrouded the other man,
785 and he looked up at it for an instant. But he was down on the rank wet
786 grass, filing at his iron like a madman, and not minding me or minding
787 his own leg, which had an old chafe upon it and was bloody, but which he
788 handled as roughly as if it had no more feeling in it than the file. I
789 was very much afraid of him again, now that he had worked himself into
790 this fierce hurry, and I was likewise very much afraid of keeping away
791 from home any longer. I told him I must go, but he took no notice, so
792 I thought the best thing I could do was to slip off. The last I saw
793 of him, his head was bent over his knee and he was working hard at his
794 fetter, muttering impatient imprecations at it and at his leg. The last
795 I heard of him, I stopped in the mist to listen, and the file was still
796 going.
797
798
799
800
801 Chapter IV
802
803 I fully expected to find a Constable in the kitchen, waiting to take me
804 up. But not only was there no Constable there, but no discovery had yet
805 been made of the robbery. Mrs. Joe was prodigiously busy in getting the
806 house ready for the festivities of the day, and Joe had been put upon
807 the kitchen doorstep to keep him out of the dust-pan,--an article into
808 which his destiny always led him, sooner or later, when my sister was
809 vigorously reaping the floors of her establishment.
810
811 “And where the deuce ha’ you been?” was Mrs. Joe’s Christmas salutation,
812 when I and my conscience showed ourselves.
813
814 I said I had been down to hear the Carols. “Ah! well!” observed Mrs.
815 Joe. “You might ha’ done worse.” Not a doubt of that I thought.
816
817 “Perhaps if I warn’t a blacksmith’s wife, and (what’s the same thing) a
818 slave with her apron never off, I should have been to hear the Carols,”
819 said Mrs. Joe. “I’m rather partial to Carols, myself, and that’s the
820 best of reasons for my never hearing any.”
821
822 Joe, who had ventured into the kitchen after me as the dustpan had
823 retired before us, drew the back of his hand across his nose with a
824 conciliatory air, when Mrs. Joe darted a look at him, and, when her eyes
825 were withdrawn, secretly crossed his two forefingers, and exhibited them
826 to me, as our token that Mrs. Joe was in a cross temper. This was so
827 much her normal state, that Joe and I would often, for weeks together,
828 be, as to our fingers, like monumental Crusaders as to their legs.
829
830 We were to have a superb dinner, consisting of a leg of pickled pork and
831 greens, and a pair of roast stuffed fowls. A handsome mince-pie had
832 been made yesterday morning (which accounted for the mincemeat not
833 being missed), and the pudding was already on the boil. These extensive
834 arrangements occasioned us to be cut off unceremoniously in respect of
835 breakfast; “for I ain’t,” said Mrs. Joe,--“I ain’t a going to have
836 no formal cramming and busting and washing up now, with what I’ve got
837 before me, I promise you!”
838
839 So, we had our slices served out, as if we were two thousand troops on a
840 forced march instead of a man and boy at home; and we took gulps of milk
841 and water, with apologetic countenances, from a jug on the dresser. In
842 the meantime, Mrs. Joe put clean white curtains up, and tacked a new
843 flowered flounce across the wide chimney to replace the old one, and
844 uncovered the little state parlor across the passage, which was never
845 uncovered at any other time, but passed the rest of the year in a cool
846 haze of silver paper, which even extended to the four little white
847 crockery poodles on the mantel-shelf, each with a black nose and a
848 basket of flowers in his mouth, and each the counterpart of the other.
849 Mrs. Joe was a very clean housekeeper, but had an exquisite art of
850 making her cleanliness more uncomfortable and unacceptable than dirt
851 itself. Cleanliness is next to Godliness, and some people do the same by
852 their religion.
853
854 My sister, having so much to do, was going to church vicariously, that
855 is to say, Joe and I were going. In his working-clothes, Joe was a
856 well-knit characteristic-looking blacksmith; in his holiday clothes,
857 he was more like a scarecrow in good circumstances, than anything else.
858 Nothing that he wore then fitted him or seemed to belong to him; and
859 everything that he wore then grazed him. On the present festive occasion
860 he emerged from his room, when the blithe bells were going, the picture
861 of misery, in a full suit of Sunday penitentials. As to me, I think my
862 sister must have had some general idea that I was a young offender whom
863 an Accoucheur Policeman had taken up (on my birthday) and delivered over
864 to her, to be dealt with according to the outraged majesty of the law.
865 I was always treated as if I had insisted on being born in opposition
866 to the dictates of reason, religion, and morality, and against the
867 dissuading arguments of my best friends. Even when I was taken to have
868 a new suit of clothes, the tailor had orders to make them like a kind of
869 Reformatory, and on no account to let me have the free use of my limbs.
870
871 Joe and I going to church, therefore, must have been a moving spectacle
872 for compassionate minds. Yet, what I suffered outside was nothing to
873 what I underwent within. The terrors that had assailed me whenever
874 Mrs. Joe had gone near the pantry, or out of the room, were only to be
875 equalled by the remorse with which my mind dwelt on what my hands had
876 done. Under the weight of my wicked secret, I pondered whether the
877 Church would be powerful enough to shield me from the vengeance of the
878 terrible young man, if I divulged to that establishment. I conceived the
879 idea that the time when the banns were read and when the clergyman said,
880 “Ye are now to declare it!” would be the time for me to rise and propose
881 a private conference in the vestry. I am far from being sure that I
882 might not have astonished our small congregation by resorting to this
883 extreme measure, but for its being Christmas Day and no Sunday.
884
885 Mr. Wopsle, the clerk at church, was to dine with us; and Mr. Hubble
886 the wheelwright and Mrs. Hubble; and Uncle Pumblechook (Joe’s uncle,
887 but Mrs. Joe appropriated him), who was a well-to-do cornchandler in
888 the nearest town, and drove his own chaise-cart. The dinner hour was
889 half-past one. When Joe and I got home, we found the table laid, and
890 Mrs. Joe dressed, and the dinner dressing, and the front door unlocked
891 (it never was at any other time) for the company to enter by, and
892 everything most splendid. And still, not a word of the robbery.
893
894 The time came, without bringing with it any relief to my feelings, and
895 the company came. Mr. Wopsle, united to a Roman nose and a large shining
896 bald forehead, had a deep voice which he was uncommonly proud of; indeed
897 it was understood among his acquaintance that if you could only give him
898 his head, he would read the clergyman into fits; he himself confessed
899 that if the Church was “thrown open,” meaning to competition, he would
900 not despair of making his mark in it. The Church not being “thrown
901 open,” he was, as I have said, our clerk. But he punished the Amens
902 tremendously; and when he gave out the psalm,--always giving the whole
903 verse,--he looked all round the congregation first, as much as to say,
904 “You have heard my friend overhead; oblige me with your opinion of this
905 style!”
906
907 I opened the door to the company,--making believe that it was a habit
908 of ours to open that door,--and I opened it first to Mr. Wopsle, next
909 to Mr. and Mrs. Hubble, and last of all to Uncle Pumblechook. N.B. I was
910 not allowed to call him uncle, under the severest penalties.
911
912 “Mrs. Joe,” said Uncle Pumblechook, a large hard-breathing middle-aged
913 slow man, with a mouth like a fish, dull staring eyes, and sandy hair
914 standing upright on his head, so that he looked as if he had just been
915 all but choked, and had that moment come to, “I have brought you as the
916 compliments of the season--I have brought you, Mum, a bottle of sherry
917 wine--and I have brought you, Mum, a bottle of port wine.”
918
919 Every Christmas Day he presented himself, as a profound novelty, with
920 exactly the same words, and carrying the two bottles like dumb-bells.
921 Every Christmas Day, Mrs. Joe replied, as she now replied, “O, Un--cle
922 Pum-ble--chook! This is kind!” Every Christmas Day, he retorted, as
923 he now retorted, “It’s no more than your merits. And now are you all
924 bobbish, and how’s Sixpennorth of halfpence?” meaning me.
925
926 We dined on these occasions in the kitchen, and adjourned, for the nuts
927 and oranges and apples to the parlor; which was a change very like
928 Joe’s change from his working-clothes to his Sunday dress. My sister was
929 uncommonly lively on the present occasion, and indeed was generally more
930 gracious in the society of Mrs. Hubble than in other company. I remember
931 Mrs. Hubble as a little curly sharp-edged person in sky-blue, who held a
932 conventionally juvenile position, because she had married Mr. Hubble,--I
933 don’t know at what remote period,--when she was much younger than he. I
934 remember Mr Hubble as a tough, high-shouldered, stooping old man, of a
935 sawdusty fragrance, with his legs extraordinarily wide apart: so that in
936 my short days I always saw some miles of open country between them when
937 I met him coming up the lane.
938
939 Among this good company I should have felt myself, even if I hadn’t
940 robbed the pantry, in a false position. Not because I was squeezed in
941 at an acute angle of the tablecloth, with the table in my chest, and the
942 Pumblechookian elbow in my eye, nor because I was not allowed to speak
943 (I didn’t want to speak), nor because I was regaled with the scaly tips
944 of the drumsticks of the fowls, and with those obscure corners of pork
945 of which the pig, when living, had had the least reason to be vain. No;
946 I should not have minded that, if they would only have left me alone.
947 But they wouldn’t leave me alone. They seemed to think the opportunity
948 lost, if they failed to point the conversation at me, every now and
949 then, and stick the point into me. I might have been an unfortunate
950 little bull in a Spanish arena, I got so smartingly touched up by these
951 moral goads.
952
953 It began the moment we sat down to dinner. Mr. Wopsle said grace with
954 theatrical declamation,--as it now appears to me, something like a
955 religious cross of the Ghost in Hamlet with Richard the Third,--and
956 ended with the very proper aspiration that we might be truly grateful.
957 Upon which my sister fixed me with her eye, and said, in a low
958 reproachful voice, “Do you hear that? Be grateful.”
959
960 “Especially,” said Mr. Pumblechook, “be grateful, boy, to them which
961 brought you up by hand.”
962
963 Mrs. Hubble shook her head, and contemplating me with a mournful
964 presentiment that I should come to no good, asked, “Why is it that the
965 young are never grateful?” This moral mystery seemed too much for
966 the company until Mr. Hubble tersely solved it by saying, “Naterally
967 wicious.” Everybody then murmured “True!” and looked at me in a
968 particularly unpleasant and personal manner.
969
970 Joe’s station and influence were something feebler (if possible) when
971 there was company than when there was none. But he always aided and
972 comforted me when he could, in some way of his own, and he always did so
973 at dinner-time by giving me gravy, if there were any. There being plenty
974 of gravy to-day, Joe spooned into my plate, at this point, about half a
975 pint.
976
977 A little later on in the dinner, Mr. Wopsle reviewed the sermon with
978 some severity, and intimated--in the usual hypothetical case of the
979 Church being “thrown open”--what kind of sermon he would have given
980 them. After favoring them with some heads of that discourse, he remarked
981 that he considered the subject of the day’s homily, ill chosen; which
982 was the less excusable, he added, when there were so many subjects
983 “going about.”
984
985 “True again,” said Uncle Pumblechook. “You’ve hit it, sir! Plenty of
986 subjects going about, for them that know how to put salt upon their
987 tails. That’s what’s wanted. A man needn’t go far to find a subject,
988 if he’s ready with his salt-box.” Mr. Pumblechook added, after a short
989 interval of reflection, “Look at Pork alone. There’s a subject! If you
990 want a subject, look at Pork!”
991
992 “True, sir. Many a moral for the young,” returned Mr. Wopsle,--and I
993 knew he was going to lug me in, before he said it; “might be deduced
994 from that text.”
995
996 (“You listen to this,” said my sister to me, in a severe parenthesis.)
997
998 Joe gave me some more gravy.
999
1000 “Swine,” pursued Mr. Wopsle, in his deepest voice, and pointing his fork
1001 at my blushes, as if he were mentioning my Christian name,--“swine were
1002 the companions of the prodigal. The gluttony of Swine is put before us,
1003 as an example to the young.” (I thought this pretty well in him who
1004 had been praising up the pork for being so plump and juicy.) “What is
1005 detestable in a pig is more detestable in a boy.”
1006
1007 “Or girl,” suggested Mr. Hubble.
1008
1009 “Of course, or girl, Mr. Hubble,” assented Mr. Wopsle, rather irritably,
1010 “but there is no girl present.”
1011
1012 “Besides,” said Mr. Pumblechook, turning sharp on me, “think what you’ve
1013 got to be grateful for. If you’d been born a Squeaker--”
1014
1015 “He was, if ever a child was,” said my sister, most emphatically.
1016
1017 Joe gave me some more gravy.
1018
1019 “Well, but I mean a four-footed Squeaker,” said Mr. Pumblechook. “If you
1020 had been born such, would you have been here now? Not you--”
1021
1022 “Unless in that form,” said Mr. Wopsle, nodding towards the dish.
1023
1024 “But I don’t mean in that form, sir,” returned Mr. Pumblechook, who had
1025 an objection to being interrupted; “I mean, enjoying himself with his
1026 elders and betters, and improving himself with their conversation, and
1027 rolling in the lap of luxury. Would he have been doing that? No, he
1028 wouldn’t. And what would have been your destination?” turning on me
1029 again. “You would have been disposed of for so many shillings according
1030 to the market price of the article, and Dunstable the butcher would have
1031 come up to you as you lay in your straw, and he would have whipped you
1032 under his left arm, and with his right he would have tucked up his frock
1033 to get a penknife from out of his waistcoat-pocket, and he would have
1034 shed your blood and had your life. No bringing up by hand then. Not a
1035 bit of it!”
1036
1037 Joe offered me more gravy, which I was afraid to take.
1038
1039 “He was a world of trouble to you, ma’am,” said Mrs. Hubble,
1040 commiserating my sister.
1041
1042 “Trouble?” echoed my sister; “trouble?” and then entered on a fearful
1043 catalogue of all the illnesses I had been guilty of, and all the acts
1044 of sleeplessness I had committed, and all the high places I had tumbled
1045 from, and all the low places I had tumbled into, and all the injuries I
1046 had done myself, and all the times she had wished me in my grave, and I
1047 had contumaciously refused to go there.
1048
1049 I think the Romans must have aggravated one another very much, with
1050 their noses. Perhaps, they became the restless people they were, in
1051 consequence. Anyhow, Mr. Wopsle’s Roman nose so aggravated me, during
1052 the recital of my misdemeanours, that I should have liked to pull it
1053 until he howled. But, all I had endured up to this time was nothing in
1054 comparison with the awful feelings that took possession of me when the
1055 pause was broken which ensued upon my sister’s recital, and in which
1056 pause everybody had looked at me (as I felt painfully conscious) with
1057 indignation and abhorrence.
1058
1059 “Yet,” said Mr. Pumblechook, leading the company gently back to the
1060 theme from which they had strayed, “Pork--regarded as biled--is rich,
1061 too; ain’t it?”
1062
1063 “Have a little brandy, uncle,” said my sister.
1064
1065 O Heavens, it had come at last! He would find it was weak, he would say
1066 it was weak, and I was lost! I held tight to the leg of the table under
1067 the cloth, with both hands, and awaited my fate.
1068
1069 My sister went for the stone bottle, came back with the stone bottle,
1070 and poured his brandy out: no one else taking any. The wretched man
1071 trifled with his glass,--took it up, looked at it through the light,
1072 put it down,--prolonged my misery. All this time Mrs. Joe and Joe were
1073 briskly clearing the table for the pie and pudding.
1074
1075 I couldn’t keep my eyes off him. Always holding tight by the leg of the
1076 table with my hands and feet, I saw the miserable creature finger his
1077 glass playfully, take it up, smile, throw his head back, and drink
1078 the brandy off. Instantly afterwards, the company were seized with
1079 unspeakable consternation, owing to his springing to his feet, turning
1080 round several times in an appalling spasmodic whooping-cough dance,
1081 and rushing out at the door; he then became visible through the window,
1082 violently plunging and expectorating, making the most hideous faces, and
1083 apparently out of his mind.
1084
1085 I held on tight, while Mrs. Joe and Joe ran to him. I didn’t know how
1086 I had done it, but I had no doubt I had murdered him somehow. In my
1087 dreadful situation, it was a relief when he was brought back, and
1088 surveying the company all round as if they had disagreed with him, sank
1089 down into his chair with the one significant gasp, “Tar!”
1090
1091 I had filled up the bottle from the tar-water jug. I knew he would be
1092 worse by and by. I moved the table, like a Medium of the present day, by
1093 the vigor of my unseen hold upon it.
1094
1095 “Tar!” cried my sister, in amazement. “Why, how ever could Tar come
1096 there?”
1097
1098 But, Uncle Pumblechook, who was omnipotent in that kitchen, wouldn’t
1099 hear the word, wouldn’t hear of the subject, imperiously waved it all
1100 away with his hand, and asked for hot gin and water. My sister, who had
1101 begun to be alarmingly meditative, had to employ herself actively in
1102 getting the gin, the hot water, the sugar, and the lemon-peel, and mixing
1103 them. For the time being at least, I was saved. I still held on to the
1104 leg of the table, but clutched it now with the fervor of gratitude.
1105
1106 By degrees, I became calm enough to release my grasp and partake of
1107 pudding. Mr. Pumblechook partook of pudding. All partook of pudding.
1108 The course terminated, and Mr. Pumblechook had begun to beam under the
1109 genial influence of gin and water. I began to think I should get over
1110 the day, when my sister said to Joe, “Clean plates,--cold.”
1111
1112 I clutched the leg of the table again immediately, and pressed it to my
1113 bosom as if it had been the companion of my youth and friend of my soul.
1114 I foresaw what was coming, and I felt that this time I really was gone.
1115
1116 “You must taste,” said my sister, addressing the guests with her best
1117 grace--“you must taste, to finish with, such a delightful and delicious
1118 present of Uncle Pumblechook’s!”
1119
1120 Must they! Let them not hope to taste it!
1121
1122 “You must know,” said my sister, rising, “it’s a pie; a savory pork
1123 pie.”
1124
1125 The company murmured their compliments. Uncle Pumblechook, sensible of
1126 having deserved well of his fellow-creatures, said,--quite vivaciously,
1127 all things considered,--“Well, Mrs. Joe, we’ll do our best endeavors;
1128 let us have a cut at this same pie.”
1129
1130 My sister went out to get it. I heard her steps proceed to the pantry. I
1131 saw Mr. Pumblechook balance his knife. I saw reawakening appetite in the
1132 Roman nostrils of Mr. Wopsle. I heard Mr. Hubble remark that “a bit of
1133 savory pork pie would lay atop of anything you could mention, and do
1134 no harm,” and I heard Joe say, “You shall have some, Pip.” I have never
1135 been absolutely certain whether I uttered a shrill yell of terror,
1136 merely in spirit, or in the bodily hearing of the company. I felt that I
1137 could bear no more, and that I must run away. I released the leg of the
1138 table, and ran for my life.
1139
1140 But I ran no farther than the house door, for there I ran head-foremost
1141 into a party of soldiers with their muskets, one of whom held out a pair
1142 of handcuffs to me, saying, “Here you are, look sharp, come on!”
1143
1144
1145
1146
1147 Chapter V
1148
1149 The apparition of a file of soldiers ringing down the but-ends of their
1150 loaded muskets on our door-step, caused the dinner-party to rise
1151 from table in confusion, and caused Mrs. Joe re-entering the kitchen
1152 empty-handed, to stop short and stare, in her wondering lament of
1153 “Gracious goodness gracious me, what’s gone--with the--pie!”
1154
1155 The sergeant and I were in the kitchen when Mrs. Joe stood staring;
1156 at which crisis I partially recovered the use of my senses. It was
1157 the sergeant who had spoken to me, and he was now looking round at the
1158 company, with his handcuffs invitingly extended towards them in his
1159 right hand, and his left on my shoulder.
1160
1161 “Excuse me, ladies and gentleman,” said the sergeant, “but as I have
1162 mentioned at the door to this smart young shaver,” (which he hadn’t), “I
1163 am on a chase in the name of the king, and I want the blacksmith.”
1164
1165 “And pray what might you want with him?” retorted my sister, quick to
1166 resent his being wanted at all.
1167
1168 “Missis,” returned the gallant sergeant, “speaking for myself, I should
1169 reply, the honor and pleasure of his fine wife’s acquaintance; speaking
1170 for the king, I answer, a little job done.”
1171
1172 This was received as rather neat in the sergeant; insomuch that Mr.
1173 Pumblechook cried audibly, “Good again!”
1174
1175 “You see, blacksmith,” said the sergeant, who had by this time picked
1176 out Joe with his eye, “we have had an accident with these, and I find
1177 the lock of one of ‘em goes wrong, and the coupling don’t act pretty.
1178 As they are wanted for immediate service, will you throw your eye over
1179 them?”
1180
1181 Joe threw his eye over them, and pronounced that the job would
1182 necessitate the lighting of his forge fire, and would take nearer
1183 two hours than one. “Will it? Then will you set about it at once,
1184 blacksmith?” said the off-hand sergeant, “as it’s on his Majesty’s
1185 service. And if my men can bear a hand anywhere, they’ll make themselves
1186 useful.” With that, he called to his men, who came trooping into the
1187 kitchen one after another, and piled their arms in a corner. And then
1188 they stood about, as soldiers do; now, with their hands loosely clasped
1189 before them; now, resting a knee or a shoulder; now, easing a belt or a
1190 pouch; now, opening the door to spit stiffly over their high stocks, out
1191 into the yard.
1192
1193 All these things I saw without then knowing that I saw them, for I
1194 was in an agony of apprehension. But beginning to perceive that the
1195 handcuffs were not for me, and that the military had so far got the
1196 better of the pie as to put it in the background, I collected a little
1197 more of my scattered wits.
1198
1199 “Would you give me the time?” said the sergeant, addressing himself to
1200 Mr. Pumblechook, as to a man whose appreciative powers justified the
1201 inference that he was equal to the time.
1202
1203 “It’s just gone half past two.”
1204
1205 “That’s not so bad,” said the sergeant, reflecting; “even if I was
1206 forced to halt here nigh two hours, that’ll do. How far might you call
1207 yourselves from the marshes, hereabouts? Not above a mile, I reckon?”
1208
1209 “Just a mile,” said Mrs. Joe.
1210
1211 “That’ll do. We begin to close in upon ‘em about dusk. A little before
1212 dusk, my orders are. That’ll do.”
1213
1214 “Convicts, sergeant?” asked Mr. Wopsle, in a matter-of-course way.
1215
1216 “Ay!” returned the sergeant, “two. They’re pretty well known to be out
1217 on the marshes still, and they won’t try to get clear of ‘em before
1218 dusk. Anybody here seen anything of any such game?”
1219
1220 Everybody, myself excepted, said no, with confidence. Nobody thought of
1221 me.
1222
1223 “Well!” said the sergeant, “they’ll find themselves trapped in a circle,
1224 I expect, sooner than they count on. Now, blacksmith! If you’re ready,
1225 his Majesty the King is.”
1226
1227 Joe had got his coat and waistcoat and cravat off, and his leather apron
1228 on, and passed into the forge. One of the soldiers opened its wooden
1229 windows, another lighted the fire, another turned to at the bellows, the
1230 rest stood round the blaze, which was soon roaring. Then Joe began to
1231 hammer and clink, hammer and clink, and we all looked on.
1232
1233 The interest of the impending pursuit not only absorbed the general
1234 attention, but even made my sister liberal. She drew a pitcher of beer
1235 from the cask for the soldiers, and invited the sergeant to take a glass
1236 of brandy. But Mr. Pumblechook said, sharply, “Give him wine, Mum. I’ll
1237 engage there’s no tar in that:” so, the sergeant thanked him and said
1238 that as he preferred his drink without tar, he would take wine, if it
1239 was equally convenient. When it was given him, he drank his Majesty’s
1240 health and compliments of the season, and took it all at a mouthful and
1241 smacked his lips.
1242
1243 “Good stuff, eh, sergeant?” said Mr. Pumblechook.
1244
1245 “I’ll tell you something,” returned the sergeant; “I suspect that
1246 stuff’s of your providing.”
1247
1248 Mr. Pumblechook, with a fat sort of laugh, said, “Ay, ay? Why?”
1249
1250 “Because,” returned the sergeant, clapping him on the shoulder, “you’re
1251 a man that knows what’s what.”
1252
1253 “D’ye think so?” said Mr. Pumblechook, with his former laugh. “Have
1254 another glass!”
1255
1256 “With you. Hob and nob,” returned the sergeant. “The top of mine to the
1257 foot of yours,--the foot of yours to the top of mine,--Ring once, ring
1258 twice,--the best tune on the Musical Glasses! Your health. May you live
1259 a thousand years, and never be a worse judge of the right sort than you
1260 are at the present moment of your life!”
1261
1262 The sergeant tossed off his glass again and seemed quite ready for
1263 another glass. I noticed that Mr. Pumblechook in his hospitality
1264 appeared to forget that he had made a present of the wine, but took the
1265 bottle from Mrs. Joe and had all the credit of handing it about in a
1266 gush of joviality. Even I got some. And he was so very free of the wine
1267 that he even called for the other bottle, and handed that about with the
1268 same liberality, when the first was gone.
1269
1270 As I watched them while they all stood clustering about the forge,
1271 enjoying themselves so much, I thought what terrible good sauce for
1272 a dinner my fugitive friend on the marshes was. They had not enjoyed
1273 themselves a quarter so much, before the entertainment was brightened
1274 with the excitement he furnished. And now, when they were all in lively
1275 anticipation of “the two villains” being taken, and when the bellows
1276 seemed to roar for the fugitives, the fire to flare for them, the smoke
1277 to hurry away in pursuit of them, Joe to hammer and clink for them,
1278 and all the murky shadows on the wall to shake at them in menace as the
1279 blaze rose and sank, and the red-hot sparks dropped and died, the pale
1280 afternoon outside almost seemed in my pitying young fancy to have turned
1281 pale on their account, poor wretches.
1282
1283 At last, Joe’s job was done, and the ringing and roaring stopped. As Joe
1284 got on his coat, he mustered courage to propose that some of us should
1285 go down with the soldiers and see what came of the hunt. Mr. Pumblechook
1286 and Mr. Hubble declined, on the plea of a pipe and ladies’ society; but
1287 Mr. Wopsle said he would go, if Joe would. Joe said he was agreeable,
1288 and would take me, if Mrs. Joe approved. We never should have got leave
1289 to go, I am sure, but for Mrs. Joe’s curiosity to know all about it and
1290 how it ended. As it was, she merely stipulated, “If you bring the boy
1291 back with his head blown to bits by a musket, don’t look to me to put it
1292 together again.”
1293
1294 The sergeant took a polite leave of the ladies, and parted from Mr.
1295 Pumblechook as from a comrade; though I doubt if he were quite as fully
1296 sensible of that gentleman’s merits under arid conditions, as when
1297 something moist was going. His men resumed their muskets and fell in.
1298 Mr. Wopsle, Joe, and I, received strict charge to keep in the rear, and
1299 to speak no word after we reached the marshes. When we were all out in
1300 the raw air and were steadily moving towards our business, I treasonably
1301 whispered to Joe, “I hope, Joe, we shan’t find them.” and Joe whispered
1302 to me, “I’d give a shilling if they had cut and run, Pip.”
1303
1304 We were joined by no stragglers from the village, for the weather was
1305 cold and threatening, the way dreary, the footing bad, darkness coming
1306 on, and the people had good fires in-doors and were keeping the day. A
1307 few faces hurried to glowing windows and looked after us, but none came
1308 out. We passed the finger-post, and held straight on to the churchyard.
1309 There we were stopped a few minutes by a signal from the sergeant’s
1310 hand, while two or three of his men dispersed themselves among the
1311 graves, and also examined the porch. They came in again without finding
1312 anything, and then we struck out on the open marshes, through the gate
1313 at the side of the churchyard. A bitter sleet came rattling against us
1314 here on the east wind, and Joe took me on his back.
1315
1316 Now that we were out upon the dismal wilderness where they little
1317 thought I had been within eight or nine hours and had seen both men
1318 hiding, I considered for the first time, with great dread, if we should
1319 come upon them, would my particular convict suppose that it was I who
1320 had brought the soldiers there? He had asked me if I was a deceiving
1321 imp, and he had said I should be a fierce young hound if I joined the
1322 hunt against him. Would he believe that I was both imp and hound in
1323 treacherous earnest, and had betrayed him?
1324
1325 It was of no use asking myself this question now. There I was, on Joe’s
1326 back, and there was Joe beneath me, charging at the ditches like a
1327 hunter, and stimulating Mr. Wopsle not to tumble on his Roman nose, and
1328 to keep up with us. The soldiers were in front of us, extending into a
1329 pretty wide line with an interval between man and man. We were taking
1330 the course I had begun with, and from which I had diverged in the mist.
1331 Either the mist was not out again yet, or the wind had dispelled it.
1332 Under the low red glare of sunset, the beacon, and the gibbet, and the
1333 mound of the Battery, and the opposite shore of the river, were plain,
1334 though all of a watery lead color.
1335
1336 With my heart thumping like a blacksmith at Joe’s broad shoulder, I
1337 looked all about for any sign of the convicts. I could see none, I could
1338 hear none. Mr. Wopsle had greatly alarmed me more than once, by his
1339 blowing and hard breathing; but I knew the sounds by this time, and
1340 could dissociate them from the object of pursuit. I got a dreadful
1341 start, when I thought I heard the file still going; but it was only a
1342 sheep-bell. The sheep stopped in their eating and looked timidly at
1343 us; and the cattle, their heads turned from the wind and sleet, stared
1344 angrily as if they held us responsible for both annoyances; but, except
1345 these things, and the shudder of the dying day in every blade of grass,
1346 there was no break in the bleak stillness of the marshes.
1347
1348 The soldiers were moving on in the direction of the old Battery, and we
1349 were moving on a little way behind them, when, all of a sudden, we all
1350 stopped. For there had reached us on the wings of the wind and rain, a
1351 long shout. It was repeated. It was at a distance towards the east, but
1352 it was long and loud. Nay, there seemed to be two or more shouts raised
1353 together,--if one might judge from a confusion in the sound.
1354
1355 To this effect the sergeant and the nearest men were speaking under
1356 their breath, when Joe and I came up. After another moment’s listening,
1357 Joe (who was a good judge) agreed, and Mr. Wopsle (who was a bad judge)
1358 agreed. The sergeant, a decisive man, ordered that the sound should not
1359 be answered, but that the course should be changed, and that his men
1360 should make towards it “at the double.” So we slanted to the right
1361 (where the East was), and Joe pounded away so wonderfully, that I had to
1362 hold on tight to keep my seat.
1363
1364 It was a run indeed now, and what Joe called, in the only two words he
1365 spoke all the time, “a Winder.” Down banks and up banks, and over gates,
1366 and splashing into dikes, and breaking among coarse rushes: no man cared
1367 where he went. As we came nearer to the shouting, it became more and
1368 more apparent that it was made by more than one voice. Sometimes, it
1369 seemed to stop altogether, and then the soldiers stopped. When it broke
1370 out again, the soldiers made for it at a greater rate than ever, and we
1371 after them. After a while, we had so run it down, that we could hear one
1372 voice calling “Murder!” and another voice, “Convicts! Runaways! Guard!
1373 This way for the runaway convicts!” Then both voices would seem to be
1374 stifled in a struggle, and then would break out again. And when it had
1375 come to this, the soldiers ran like deer, and Joe too.
1376
1377 The sergeant ran in first, when we had run the noise quite down, and two
1378 of his men ran in close upon him. Their pieces were cocked and levelled
1379 when we all ran in.
1380
1381 “Here are both men!” panted the sergeant, struggling at the bottom of a
1382 ditch. “Surrender, you two! and confound you for two wild beasts! Come
1383 asunder!”
1384
1385 Water was splashing, and mud was flying, and oaths were being sworn, and
1386 blows were being struck, when some more men went down into the ditch to
1387 help the sergeant, and dragged out, separately, my convict and the other
1388 one. Both were bleeding and panting and execrating and struggling; but
1389 of course I knew them both directly.
1390
1391 “Mind!” said my convict, wiping blood from his face with his ragged
1392 sleeves, and shaking torn hair from his fingers: “I took him! I give him
1393 up to you! Mind that!”
1394
1395 “It’s not much to be particular about,” said the sergeant; “it’ll do you
1396 small good, my man, being in the same plight yourself. Handcuffs there!”
1397
1398 “I don’t expect it to do me any good. I don’t want it to do me more good
1399 than it does now,” said my convict, with a greedy laugh. “I took him. He
1400 knows it. That’s enough for me.”
1401
1402 The other convict was livid to look at, and, in addition to the old
1403 bruised left side of his face, seemed to be bruised and torn all over.
1404 He could not so much as get his breath to speak, until they were both
1405 separately handcuffed, but leaned upon a soldier to keep himself from
1406 falling.
1407
1408 “Take notice, guard,--he tried to murder me,” were his first words.
1409
1410 “Tried to murder him?” said my convict, disdainfully. “Try, and not
1411 do it? I took him, and giv’ him up; that’s what I done. I not only
1412 prevented him getting off the marshes, but I dragged him here,--dragged
1413 him this far on his way back. He’s a gentleman, if you please, this
1414 villain. Now, the Hulks has got its gentleman again, through me. Murder
1415 him? Worth my while, too, to murder him, when I could do worse and drag
1416 him back!”
1417
1418 The other one still gasped, “He tried--he tried-to--murder me.
1419 Bear--bear witness.”
1420
1421 “Lookee here!” said my convict to the sergeant. “Single-handed I got
1422 clear of the prison-ship; I made a dash and I done it. I could ha’ got
1423 clear of these death-cold flats likewise--look at my leg: you won’t find
1424 much iron on it--if I hadn’t made the discovery that he was here. Let
1425 him go free? Let him profit by the means as I found out? Let him make a
1426 tool of me afresh and again? Once more? No, no, no. If I had died at
1427 the bottom there,” and he made an emphatic swing at the ditch with his
1428 manacled hands, “I’d have held to him with that grip, that you should
1429 have been safe to find him in my hold.”
1430
1431 The other fugitive, who was evidently in extreme horror of his
1432 companion, repeated, “He tried to murder me. I should have been a dead
1433 man if you had not come up.”
1434
1435 “He lies!” said my convict, with fierce energy. “He’s a liar born, and
1436 he’ll die a liar. Look at his face; ain’t it written there? Let him turn
1437 those eyes of his on me. I defy him to do it.”
1438
1439 The other, with an effort at a scornful smile, which could not, however,
1440 collect the nervous working of his mouth into any set expression, looked
1441 at the soldiers, and looked about at the marshes and at the sky, but
1442 certainly did not look at the speaker.
1443
1444 “Do you see him?” pursued my convict. “Do you see what a villain he is?
1445 Do you see those grovelling and wandering eyes? That’s how he looked
1446 when we were tried together. He never looked at me.”
1447
1448 The other, always working and working his dry lips and turning his eyes
1449 restlessly about him far and near, did at last turn them for a moment on
1450 the speaker, with the words, “You are not much to look at,” and with
1451 a half-taunting glance at the bound hands. At that point, my convict
1452 became so frantically exasperated, that he would have rushed upon him
1453 but for the interposition of the soldiers. “Didn’t I tell you,” said the
1454 other convict then, “that he would murder me, if he could?” And any one
1455 could see that he shook with fear, and that there broke out upon his
1456 lips curious white flakes, like thin snow.
1457
1458 “Enough of this parley,” said the sergeant. “Light those torches.”
1459
1460 As one of the soldiers, who carried a basket in lieu of a gun, went down
1461 on his knee to open it, my convict looked round him for the first time,
1462 and saw me. I had alighted from Joe’s back on the brink of the ditch
1463 when we came up, and had not moved since. I looked at him eagerly when
1464 he looked at me, and slightly moved my hands and shook my head. I had
1465 been waiting for him to see me that I might try to assure him of my
1466 innocence. It was not at all expressed to me that he even comprehended
1467 my intention, for he gave me a look that I did not understand, and it
1468 all passed in a moment. But if he had looked at me for an hour or for
1469 a day, I could not have remembered his face ever afterwards, as having
1470 been more attentive.
1471
1472 The soldier with the basket soon got a light, and lighted three or four
1473 torches, and took one himself and distributed the others. It had been
1474 almost dark before, but now it seemed quite dark, and soon afterwards
1475 very dark. Before we departed from that spot, four soldiers standing in
1476 a ring, fired twice into the air. Presently we saw other torches kindled
1477 at some distance behind us, and others on the marshes on the opposite
1478 bank of the river. “All right,” said the sergeant. “March.”
1479
1480 We had not gone far when three cannon were fired ahead of us with a
1481 sound that seemed to burst something inside my ear. “You are expected
1482 on board,” said the sergeant to my convict; “they know you are coming.
1483 Don’t straggle, my man. Close up here.”
1484
1485 The two were kept apart, and each walked surrounded by a separate guard.
1486 I had hold of Joe’s hand now, and Joe carried one of the torches. Mr.
1487 Wopsle had been for going back, but Joe was resolved to see it out, so
1488 we went on with the party. There was a reasonably good path now, mostly
1489 on the edge of the river, with a divergence here and there where a dike
1490 came, with a miniature windmill on it and a muddy sluice-gate. When
1491 I looked round, I could see the other lights coming in after us. The
1492 torches we carried dropped great blotches of fire upon the track, and
1493 I could see those, too, lying smoking and flaring. I could see nothing
1494 else but black darkness. Our lights warmed the air about us with their
1495 pitchy blaze, and the two prisoners seemed rather to like that, as they
1496 limped along in the midst of the muskets. We could not go fast, because
1497 of their lameness; and they were so spent, that two or three times we
1498 had to halt while they rested.
1499
1500 After an hour or so of this travelling, we came to a rough wooden hut
1501 and a landing-place. There was a guard in the hut, and they challenged,
1502 and the sergeant answered. Then, we went into the hut, where there was
1503 a smell of tobacco and whitewash, and a bright fire, and a lamp, and
1504 a stand of muskets, and a drum, and a low wooden bedstead, like an
1505 overgrown mangle without the machinery, capable of holding about a dozen
1506 soldiers all at once. Three or four soldiers who lay upon it in their
1507 great-coats were not much interested in us, but just lifted their heads
1508 and took a sleepy stare, and then lay down again. The sergeant made some
1509 kind of report, and some entry in a book, and then the convict whom I
1510 call the other convict was drafted off with his guard, to go on board
1511 first.
1512
1513 My convict never looked at me, except that once. While we stood in the
1514 hut, he stood before the fire looking thoughtfully at it, or putting up
1515 his feet by turns upon the hob, and looking thoughtfully at them as if
1516 he pitied them for their recent adventures. Suddenly, he turned to the
1517 sergeant, and remarked,--
1518
1519 “I wish to say something respecting this escape. It may prevent some
1520 persons laying under suspicion alonger me.”
1521
1522 “You can say what you like,” returned the sergeant, standing coolly
1523 looking at him with his arms folded, “but you have no call to say it
1524 here. You’ll have opportunity enough to say about it, and hear about it,
1525 before it’s done with, you know.”
1526
1527 “I know, but this is another pint, a separate matter. A man can’t
1528 starve; at least I can’t. I took some wittles, up at the willage over
1529 yonder,--where the church stands a’most out on the marshes.”
1530
1531 “You mean stole,” said the sergeant.
1532
1533 “And I’ll tell you where from. From the blacksmith’s.”
1534
1535 “Halloa!” said the sergeant, staring at Joe.
1536
1537 “Halloa, Pip!” said Joe, staring at me.
1538
1539 “It was some broken wittles--that’s what it was--and a dram of liquor,
1540 and a pie.”
1541
1542 “Have you happened to miss such an article as a pie, blacksmith?” asked
1543 the sergeant, confidentially.
1544
1545 “My wife did, at the very moment when you came in. Don’t you know, Pip?”
1546
1547 “So,” said my convict, turning his eyes on Joe in a moody manner, and
1548 without the least glance at me,--“so you’re the blacksmith, are you?
1549 Than I’m sorry to say, I’ve eat your pie.”
1550
1551 “God knows you’re welcome to it,--so far as it was ever mine,” returned
1552 Joe, with a saving remembrance of Mrs. Joe. “We don’t know what you have
1553 done, but we wouldn’t have you starved to death for it, poor miserable
1554 fellow-creatur.--Would us, Pip?”
1555
1556 The something that I had noticed before, clicked in the man’s throat
1557 again, and he turned his back. The boat had returned, and his guard were
1558 ready, so we followed him to the landing-place made of rough stakes
1559 and stones, and saw him put into the boat, which was rowed by a crew of
1560 convicts like himself. No one seemed surprised to see him, or interested
1561 in seeing him, or glad to see him, or sorry to see him, or spoke a word,
1562 except that somebody in the boat growled as if to dogs, “Give way,
1563 you!” which was the signal for the dip of the oars. By the light of the
1564 torches, we saw the black Hulk lying out a little way from the mud of
1565 the shore, like a wicked Noah’s ark. Cribbed and barred and moored by
1566 massive rusty chains, the prison-ship seemed in my young eyes to be
1567 ironed like the prisoners. We saw the boat go alongside, and we saw
1568 him taken up the side and disappear. Then, the ends of the torches were
1569 flung hissing into the water, and went out, as if it were all over with
1570 him.
1571
1572
1573
1574
1575 Chapter VI
1576
1577 My state of mind regarding the pilfering from which I had been so
1578 unexpectedly exonerated did not impel me to frank disclosure; but I hope
1579 it had some dregs of good at the bottom of it.
1580
1581 I do not recall that I felt any tenderness of conscience in reference
1582 to Mrs. Joe, when the fear of being found out was lifted off me. But
1583 I loved Joe,--perhaps for no better reason in those early days than
1584 because the dear fellow let me love him,--and, as to him, my inner self
1585 was not so easily composed. It was much upon my mind (particularly when
1586 I first saw him looking about for his file) that I ought to tell Joe the
1587 whole truth. Yet I did not, and for the reason that I mistrusted that
1588 if I did, he would think me worse than I was. The fear of losing Joe’s
1589 confidence, and of thenceforth sitting in the chimney corner at night
1590 staring drearily at my forever lost companion and friend, tied up my
1591 tongue. I morbidly represented to myself that if Joe knew it, I never
1592 afterwards could see him at the fireside feeling his fair whisker,
1593 without thinking that he was meditating on it. That, if Joe knew it, I
1594 never afterwards could see him glance, however casually, at yesterday’s
1595 meat or pudding when it came on to-day’s table, without thinking that he
1596 was debating whether I had been in the pantry. That, if Joe knew it, and
1597 at any subsequent period of our joint domestic life remarked that his
1598 beer was flat or thick, the conviction that he suspected tar in it,
1599 would bring a rush of blood to my face. In a word, I was too cowardly
1600 to do what I knew to be right, as I had been too cowardly to avoid doing
1601 what I knew to be wrong. I had had no intercourse with the world at
1602 that time, and I imitated none of its many inhabitants who act in this
1603 manner. Quite an untaught genius, I made the discovery of the line of
1604 action for myself.
1605
1606 As I was sleepy before we were far away from the prison-ship, Joe took
1607 me on his back again and carried me home. He must have had a tiresome
1608 journey of it, for Mr. Wopsle, being knocked up, was in such a very bad
1609 temper that if the Church had been thrown open, he would probably have
1610 excommunicated the whole expedition, beginning with Joe and myself. In
1611 his lay capacity, he persisted in sitting down in the damp to such
1612 an insane extent, that when his coat was taken off to be dried at the
1613 kitchen fire, the circumstantial evidence on his trousers would have
1614 hanged him, if it had been a capital offence.
1615
1616 By that time, I was staggering on the kitchen floor like a little
1617 drunkard, through having been newly set upon my feet, and through having
1618 been fast asleep, and through waking in the heat and lights and noise of
1619 tongues. As I came to myself (with the aid of a heavy thump between the
1620 shoulders, and the restorative exclamation “Yah! Was there ever such
1621 a boy as this!” from my sister,) I found Joe telling them about the
1622 convict’s confession, and all the visitors suggesting different ways
1623 by which he had got into the pantry. Mr. Pumblechook made out, after
1624 carefully surveying the premises, that he had first got upon the roof of
1625 the forge, and had then got upon the roof of the house, and had then let
1626 himself down the kitchen chimney by a rope made of his bedding cut
1627 into strips; and as Mr. Pumblechook was very positive and drove his
1628 own chaise-cart--over everybody--it was agreed that it must be so. Mr.
1629 Wopsle, indeed, wildly cried out, “No!” with the feeble malice of a
1630 tired man; but, as he had no theory, and no coat on, he was unanimously
1631 set at naught,--not to mention his smoking hard behind, as he stood
1632 with his back to the kitchen fire to draw the damp out: which was not
1633 calculated to inspire confidence.
1634
1635 This was all I heard that night before my sister clutched me, as a
1636 slumberous offence to the company’s eyesight, and assisted me up to bed
1637 with such a strong hand that I seemed to have fifty boots on, and to be
1638 dangling them all against the edges of the stairs. My state of mind, as
1639 I have described it, began before I was up in the morning, and lasted
1640 long after the subject had died out, and had ceased to be mentioned
1641 saving on exceptional occasions.
1642
1643
1644
1645
1646 Chapter VII
1647
1648 At the time when I stood in the churchyard reading the family
1649 tombstones, I had just enough learning to be able to spell them out. My
1650 construction even of their simple meaning was not very correct, for I
1651 read “wife of the Above” as a complimentary reference to my father’s
1652 exaltation to a better world; and if any one of my deceased relations
1653 had been referred to as “Below,” I have no doubt I should have formed
1654 the worst opinions of that member of the family. Neither were my notions
1655 of the theological positions to which my Catechism bound me, at
1656 all accurate; for, I have a lively remembrance that I supposed my
1657 declaration that I was to “walk in the same all the days of my life,”
1658 laid me under an obligation always to go through the village from our
1659 house in one particular direction, and never to vary it by turning down
1660 by the wheelwright’s or up by the mill.
1661
1662 When I was old enough, I was to be apprenticed to Joe, and until I could
1663 assume that dignity I was not to be what Mrs. Joe called “Pompeyed,” or
1664 (as I render it) pampered. Therefore, I was not only odd-boy about the
1665 forge, but if any neighbor happened to want an extra boy to frighten
1666 birds, or pick up stones, or do any such job, I was favored with the
1667 employment. In order, however, that our superior position might not be
1668 compromised thereby, a money-box was kept on the kitchen mantel-shelf,
1669 into which it was publicly made known that all my earnings were
1670 dropped. I have an impression that they were to be contributed
1671 eventually towards the liquidation of the National Debt, but I know I
1672 had no hope of any personal participation in the treasure.
1673
1674 Mr. Wopsle’s great-aunt kept an evening school in the village; that is
1675 to say, she was a ridiculous old woman of limited means and unlimited
1676 infirmity, who used to go to sleep from six to seven every evening, in
1677 the society of youth who paid two pence per week each, for the improving
1678 opportunity of seeing her do it. She rented a small cottage, and Mr.
1679 Wopsle had the room upstairs, where we students used to overhear him
1680 reading aloud in a most dignified and terrific manner, and occasionally
1681 bumping on the ceiling. There was a fiction that Mr. Wopsle “examined”
1682 the scholars once a quarter. What he did on those occasions was to turn
1683 up his cuffs, stick up his hair, and give us Mark Antony’s oration over
1684 the body of Caesar. This was always followed by Collins’s Ode on
1685 the Passions, wherein I particularly venerated Mr. Wopsle as Revenge
1686 throwing his blood-stained sword in thunder down, and taking the
1687 War-denouncing trumpet with a withering look. It was not with me then,
1688 as it was in later life, when I fell into the society of the Passions,
1689 and compared them with Collins and Wopsle, rather to the disadvantage of
1690 both gentlemen.
1691
1692 Mr. Wopsle’s great-aunt, besides keeping this Educational Institution,
1693 kept in the same room--a little general shop. She had no idea what stock
1694 she had, or what the price of anything in it was; but there was a little
1695 greasy memorandum-book kept in a drawer, which served as a Catalogue
1696 of Prices, and by this oracle Biddy arranged all the shop transactions.
1697 Biddy was Mr. Wopsle’s great-aunt’s granddaughter; I confess myself
1698 quite unequal to the working out of the problem, what relation she was
1699 to Mr. Wopsle. She was an orphan like myself; like me, too, had been
1700 brought up by hand. She was most noticeable, I thought, in respect of
1701 her extremities; for, her hair always wanted brushing, her hands always
1702 wanted washing, and her shoes always wanted mending and pulling up at
1703 heel. This description must be received with a week-day limitation. On
1704 Sundays, she went to church elaborated.
1705
1706 Much of my unassisted self, and more by the help of Biddy than of Mr.
1707 Wopsle’s great-aunt, I struggled through the alphabet as if it had been
1708 a bramble-bush; getting considerably worried and scratched by every
1709 letter. After that I fell among those thieves, the nine figures, who
1710 seemed every evening to do something new to disguise themselves and
1711 baffle recognition. But, at last I began, in a purblind groping way, to
1712 read, write, and cipher, on the very smallest scale.
1713
1714 One night I was sitting in the chimney corner with my slate, expending
1715 great efforts on the production of a letter to Joe. I think it must have
1716 been a full year after our hunt upon the marshes, for it was a long
1717 time after, and it was winter and a hard frost. With an alphabet on the
1718 hearth at my feet for reference, I contrived in an hour or two to print
1719 and smear this epistle:--
1720
1721 “MI DEER JO i OPE U R KRWITE WELL i OPE i SHAL SON B HABELL 4 2 TEEDGE
1722 U JO AN THEN WE SHORL B SO GLODD AN WEN i M PRENGTD 2 U JO WOT LARX AN
1723 BLEVE ME INF XN PIP.”
1724
1725 There was no indispensable necessity for my communicating with Joe by
1726 letter, inasmuch as he sat beside me and we were alone. But I delivered
1727 this written communication (slate and all) with my own hand, and Joe
1728 received it as a miracle of erudition.
1729
1730 “I say, Pip, old chap!” cried Joe, opening his blue eyes wide, “what a
1731 scholar you are! An’t you?”
1732
1733 “I should like to be,” said I, glancing at the slate as he held it; with
1734 a misgiving that the writing was rather hilly.
1735
1736 “Why, here’s a J,” said Joe, “and a O equal to anythink! Here’s a J and
1737 a O, Pip, and a J-O, Joe.”
1738
1739 I had never heard Joe read aloud to any greater extent than this
1740 monosyllable, and I had observed at church last Sunday, when I
1741 accidentally held our Prayer-Book upside down, that it seemed to suit
1742 his convenience quite as well as if it had been all right. Wishing to
1743 embrace the present occasion of finding out whether in teaching Joe, I
1744 should have to begin quite at the beginning, I said, “Ah! But read the
1745 rest, Jo.”
1746
1747 “The rest, eh, Pip?” said Joe, looking at it with a slow, searching eye,
1748 “One, two, three. Why, here’s three Js, and three Os, and three J-O,
1749 Joes in it, Pip!”
1750
1751 I leaned over Joe, and, with the aid of my forefinger read him the whole
1752 letter.
1753
1754 “Astonishing!” said Joe, when I had finished. “You ARE a scholar.”
1755
1756 “How do you spell Gargery, Joe?” I asked him, with a modest patronage.
1757
1758 “I don’t spell it at all,” said Joe.
1759
1760 “But supposing you did?”
1761
1762 “It can’t be supposed,” said Joe. “Tho’ I’m uncommon fond of reading,
1763 too.”
1764
1765 “Are you, Joe?”
1766
1767 “On-common. Give me,” said Joe, “a good book, or a good newspaper, and
1768 sit me down afore a good fire, and I ask no better. Lord!” he continued,
1769 after rubbing his knees a little, “when you do come to a J and a O, and
1770 says you, ‘Here, at last, is a J-O, Joe,’ how interesting reading is!”
1771
1772 I derived from this, that Joe’s education, like Steam, was yet in its
1773 infancy. Pursuing the subject, I inquired,--
1774
1775 “Didn’t you ever go to school, Joe, when you were as little as me?”
1776
1777 “No, Pip.”
1778
1779 “Why didn’t you ever go to school, Joe, when you were as little as me?”
1780
1781 “Well, Pip,” said Joe, taking up the poker, and settling himself to
1782 his usual occupation when he was thoughtful, of slowly raking the fire
1783 between the lower bars; “I’ll tell you. My father, Pip, he were given
1784 to drink, and when he were overtook with drink, he hammered away at
1785 my mother, most onmerciful. It were a’most the only hammering he did,
1786 indeed, ‘xcepting at myself. And he hammered at me with a wigor only
1787 to be equalled by the wigor with which he didn’t hammer at his
1788 anwil.--You’re a listening and understanding, Pip?”
1789
1790 “Yes, Joe.”
1791
1792 “‘Consequence, my mother and me we ran away from my father several
1793 times; and then my mother she’d go out to work, and she’d say, “Joe,”
1794 she’d say, “now, please God, you shall have some schooling, child,” and
1795 she’d put me to school. But my father were that good in his hart that
1796 he couldn’t abear to be without us. So, he’d come with a most tremenjous
1797 crowd and make such a row at the doors of the houses where we was, that
1798 they used to be obligated to have no more to do with us and to give us
1799 up to him. And then he took us home and hammered us. Which, you see,
1800 Pip,” said Joe, pausing in his meditative raking of the fire, and
1801 looking at me, “were a drawback on my learning.”
1802
1803 “Certainly, poor Joe!”
1804
1805 “Though mind you, Pip,” said Joe, with a judicial touch or two of the
1806 poker on the top bar, “rendering unto all their doo, and maintaining
1807 equal justice betwixt man and man, my father were that good in his hart,
1808 don’t you see?”
1809
1810 I didn’t see; but I didn’t say so.
1811
1812 “Well!” Joe pursued, “somebody must keep the pot a biling, Pip, or the
1813 pot won’t bile, don’t you know?”
1814
1815 I saw that, and said so.
1816
1817 “‘Consequence, my father didn’t make objections to my going to work; so
1818 I went to work at my present calling, which were his too, if he
1819 would have followed it, and I worked tolerable hard, I assure you, Pip.
1820 In time I were able to keep him, and I kep him till he went off in a
1821 purple leptic fit. And it were my intentions to have had put upon his
1822 tombstone that, Whatsume’er the failings on his part, Remember reader he
1823 were that good in his heart.”
1824
1825 Joe recited this couplet with such manifest pride and careful
1826 perspicuity, that I asked him if he had made it himself.
1827
1828 “I made it,” said Joe, “my own self. I made it in a moment. It was like
1829 striking out a horseshoe complete, in a single blow. I never was so much
1830 surprised in all my life,--couldn’t credit my own ed,--to tell you the
1831 truth, hardly believed it were my own ed. As I was saying, Pip, it were
1832 my intentions to have had it cut over him; but poetry costs money, cut
1833 it how you will, small or large, and it were not done. Not to mention
1834 bearers, all the money that could be spared were wanted for my mother.
1835 She were in poor elth, and quite broke. She weren’t long of following,
1836 poor soul, and her share of peace come round at last.”
1837
1838 Joe’s blue eyes turned a little watery; he rubbed first one of them, and
1839 then the other, in a most uncongenial and uncomfortable manner, with the
1840 round knob on the top of the poker.
1841
1842 “It were but lonesome then,” said Joe, “living here alone, and I got
1843 acquainted with your sister. Now, Pip,”--Joe looked firmly at me as
1844 if he knew I was not going to agree with him;--“your sister is a fine
1845 figure of a woman.”
1846
1847 I could not help looking at the fire, in an obvious state of doubt.
1848
1849 “Whatever family opinions, or whatever the world’s opinions, on that
1850 subject may be, Pip, your sister is,” Joe tapped the top bar with the
1851 poker after every word following, “a-fine-figure--of--a--woman!”
1852
1853 I could think of nothing better to say than “I am glad you think so,
1854 Joe.”
1855
1856 “So am I,” returned Joe, catching me up. “I am glad I think so, Pip. A
1857 little redness or a little matter of Bone, here or there, what does it
1858 signify to Me?”
1859
1860 I sagaciously observed, if it didn’t signify to him, to whom did it
1861 signify?
1862
1863 “Certainly!” assented Joe. “That’s it. You’re right, old chap! When I
1864 got acquainted with your sister, it were the talk how she was bringing
1865 you up by hand. Very kind of her too, all the folks said, and I said,
1866 along with all the folks. As to you,” Joe pursued with a countenance
1867 expressive of seeing something very nasty indeed, “if you could have
1868 been aware how small and flabby and mean you was, dear me, you’d have
1869 formed the most contemptible opinion of yourself!”
1870
1871 Not exactly relishing this, I said, “Never mind me, Joe.”
1872
1873 “But I did mind you, Pip,” he returned with tender simplicity. “When
1874 I offered to your sister to keep company, and to be asked in church at
1875 such times as she was willing and ready to come to the forge, I said to
1876 her, ‘And bring the poor little child. God bless the poor little child,’
1877 I said to your sister, ‘there’s room for him at the forge!’”
1878
1879 I broke out crying and begging pardon, and hugged Joe round the neck:
1880 who dropped the poker to hug me, and to say, “Ever the best of friends;
1881 an’t us, Pip? Don’t cry, old chap!”
1882
1883 When this little interruption was over, Joe resumed:--
1884
1885 “Well, you see, Pip, and here we are! That’s about where it lights; here
1886 we are! Now, when you take me in hand in my learning, Pip (and I tell
1887 you beforehand I am awful dull, most awful dull), Mrs. Joe mustn’t see
1888 too much of what we’re up to. It must be done, as I may say, on the sly.
1889 And why on the sly? I’ll tell you why, Pip.”
1890
1891 He had taken up the poker again; without which, I doubt if he could have
1892 proceeded in his demonstration.
1893
1894 “Your sister is given to government.”
1895
1896 “Given to government, Joe?” I was startled, for I had some shadowy idea
1897 (and I am afraid I must add, hope) that Joe had divorced her in a favor
1898 of the Lords of the Admiralty, or Treasury.
1899
1900 “Given to government,” said Joe. “Which I meantersay the government of
1901 you and myself.”
1902
1903 “Oh!”
1904
1905 “And she an’t over partial to having scholars on the premises,” Joe
1906 continued, “and in partickler would not be over partial to my being a
1907 scholar, for fear as I might rise. Like a sort of rebel, don’t you see?”
1908
1909 I was going to retort with an inquiry, and had got as far as “Why--”
1910 when Joe stopped me.
1911
1912 “Stay a bit. I know what you’re a going to say, Pip; stay a bit! I don’t
1913 deny that your sister comes the Mo-gul over us, now and again. I don’t
1914 deny that she do throw us back-falls, and that she do drop down upon us
1915 heavy. At such times as when your sister is on the Ram-page, Pip,” Joe
1916 sank his voice to a whisper and glanced at the door, “candor compels fur
1917 to admit that she is a Buster.”
1918
1919 Joe pronounced this word, as if it began with at least twelve capital
1920 Bs.
1921
1922 “Why don’t I rise? That were your observation when I broke it off, Pip?”
1923
1924 “Yes, Joe.”
1925
1926 “Well,” said Joe, passing the poker in to his left hand, that he might
1927 feel his whisker; and I had no hope of him whenever he took to that
1928 placid occupation; “your sister’s a master-mind. A master-mind.”
1929
1930 “What’s that?” I asked, in some hope of bringing him to a stand. But
1931 Joe was readier with his definition than I had expected, and completely
1932 stopped me by arguing circularly, and answering with a fixed look,
1933 “Her.”
1934
1935 “And I ain’t a master-mind,” Joe resumed, when he had unfixed his look,
1936 and got back to his whisker. “And last of all, Pip,--and this I want to
1937 say very serious to you, old chap,--I see so much in my poor mother,
1938 of a woman drudging and slaving and breaking her honest hart and never
1939 getting no peace in her mortal days, that I’m dead afeerd of going wrong
1940 in the way of not doing what’s right by a woman, and I’d fur rather
1941 of the two go wrong the t’other way, and be a little ill-conwenienced
1942 myself. I wish it was only me that got put out, Pip; I wish there warn’t
1943 no Tickler for you, old chap; I wish I could take it all on myself;
1944 but this is the up-and-down-and-straight on it, Pip, and I hope you’ll
1945 overlook shortcomings.”
1946
1947 Young as I was, I believe that I dated a new admiration of Joe from that
1948 night. We were equals afterwards, as we had been before; but, afterwards
1949 at quiet times when I sat looking at Joe and thinking about him, I had
1950 a new sensation of feeling conscious that I was looking up to Joe in my
1951 heart.
1952
1953 “However,” said Joe, rising to replenish the fire; “here’s the
1954 Dutch-clock a working himself up to being equal to strike Eight of ‘em,
1955 and she’s not come home yet! I hope Uncle Pumblechook’s mare mayn’t have
1956 set a forefoot on a piece o’ ice, and gone down.”
1957
1958 Mrs. Joe made occasional trips with Uncle Pumblechook on market-days,
1959 to assist him in buying such household stuffs and goods as required a
1960 woman’s judgment; Uncle Pumblechook being a bachelor and reposing no
1961 confidences in his domestic servant. This was market-day, and Mrs. Joe
1962 was out on one of these expeditions.
1963
1964 Joe made the fire and swept the hearth, and then we went to the door to
1965 listen for the chaise-cart. It was a dry cold night, and the wind blew
1966 keenly, and the frost was white and hard. A man would die to-night of
1967 lying out on the marshes, I thought. And then I looked at the stars, and
1968 considered how awful it would be for a man to turn his face up to them
1969 as he froze to death, and see no help or pity in all the glittering
1970 multitude.
1971
1972 “Here comes the mare,” said Joe, “ringing like a peal of bells!”
1973
1974 The sound of her iron shoes upon the hard road was quite musical, as she
1975 came along at a much brisker trot than usual. We got a chair out, ready
1976 for Mrs. Joe’s alighting, and stirred up the fire that they might see a
1977 bright window, and took a final survey of the kitchen that nothing might
1978 be out of its place. When we had completed these preparations, they
1979 drove up, wrapped to the eyes. Mrs. Joe was soon landed, and Uncle
1980 Pumblechook was soon down too, covering the mare with a cloth, and we
1981 were soon all in the kitchen, carrying so much cold air in with us that
1982 it seemed to drive all the heat out of the fire.
1983
1984 “Now,” said Mrs. Joe, unwrapping herself with haste and excitement, and
1985 throwing her bonnet back on her shoulders where it hung by the strings,
1986 “if this boy ain’t grateful this night, he never will be!”
1987
1988 I looked as grateful as any boy possibly could, who was wholly
1989 uninformed why he ought to assume that expression.
1990
1991 “It’s only to be hoped,” said my sister, “that he won’t be Pompeyed. But
1992 I have my fears.”
1993
1994 “She ain’t in that line, Mum,” said Mr. Pumblechook. “She knows better.”
1995
1996 She? I looked at Joe, making the motion with my lips and eyebrows,
1997 “She?” Joe looked at me, making the motion with his lips and eyebrows,
1998 “She?” My sister catching him in the act, he drew the back of his hand
1999 across his nose with his usual conciliatory air on such occasions, and
2000 looked at her.
2001
2002 “Well?” said my sister, in her snappish way. “What are you staring at?
2003 Is the house afire?”
2004
2005 “--Which some individual,” Joe politely hinted, “mentioned--she.”
2006
2007 “And she is a she, I suppose?” said my sister. “Unless you call Miss
2008 Havisham a he. And I doubt if even you’ll go so far as that.”
2009
2010 “Miss Havisham, up town?” said Joe.
2011
2012 “Is there any Miss Havisham down town?” returned my sister.
2013
2014 “She wants this boy to go and play there. And of course he’s going. And
2015 he had better play there,” said my sister, shaking her head at me as an
2016 encouragement to be extremely light and sportive, “or I’ll work him.”
2017
2018 I had heard of Miss Havisham up town,--everybody for miles round had
2019 heard of Miss Havisham up town,--as an immensely rich and grim lady who
2020 lived in a large and dismal house barricaded against robbers, and who
2021 led a life of seclusion.
2022
2023 “Well to be sure!” said Joe, astounded. “I wonder how she come to know
2024 Pip!”
2025
2026 “Noodle!” cried my sister. “Who said she knew him?”
2027
2028 “--Which some individual,” Joe again politely hinted, “mentioned that
2029 she wanted him to go and play there.”
2030
2031 “And couldn’t she ask Uncle Pumblechook if he knew of a boy to go and
2032 play there? Isn’t it just barely possible that Uncle Pumblechook may be
2033 a tenant of hers, and that he may sometimes--we won’t say quarterly
2034 or half-yearly, for that would be requiring too much of you--but
2035 sometimes--go there to pay his rent? And couldn’t she then ask Uncle
2036 Pumblechook if he knew of a boy to go and play there? And couldn’t Uncle
2037 Pumblechook, being always considerate and thoughtful for us--though you
2038 may not think it, Joseph,” in a tone of the deepest reproach, as if
2039 he were the most callous of nephews, “then mention this boy, standing
2040 Prancing here”--which I solemnly declare I was not doing--“that I have
2041 for ever been a willing slave to?”
2042
2043 “Good again!” cried Uncle Pumblechook. “Well put! Prettily pointed! Good
2044 indeed! Now Joseph, you know the case.”
2045
2046 “No, Joseph,” said my sister, still in a reproachful manner, while Joe
2047 apologetically drew the back of his hand across and across his nose,
2048 “you do not yet--though you may not think it--know the case. You may
2049 consider that you do, but you do not, Joseph. For you do not know that
2050 Uncle Pumblechook, being sensible that for anything we can tell, this
2051 boy’s fortune may be made by his going to Miss Havisham’s, has offered
2052 to take him into town to-night in his own chaise-cart, and to keep
2053 him to-night, and to take him with his own hands to Miss Havisham’s
2054 to-morrow morning. And Lor-a-mussy me!” cried my sister, casting off her
2055 bonnet in sudden desperation, “here I stand talking to mere Mooncalfs,
2056 with Uncle Pumblechook waiting, and the mare catching cold at the door,
2057 and the boy grimed with crock and dirt from the hair of his head to the
2058 sole of his foot!”
2059
2060 With that, she pounced upon me, like an eagle on a lamb, and my face was
2061 squeezed into wooden bowls in sinks, and my head was put under taps of
2062 water-butts, and I was soaped, and kneaded, and towelled, and thumped,
2063 and harrowed, and rasped, until I really was quite beside myself. (I
2064 may here remark that I suppose myself to be better acquainted than
2065 any living authority, with the ridgy effect of a wedding-ring, passing
2066 unsympathetically over the human countenance.)
2067
2068 When my ablutions were completed, I was put into clean linen of the
2069 stiffest character, like a young penitent into sackcloth, and was
2070 trussed up in my tightest and fearfullest suit. I was then delivered
2071 over to Mr. Pumblechook, who formally received me as if he were the
2072 Sheriff, and who let off upon me the speech that I knew he had been
2073 dying to make all along: “Boy, be forever grateful to all friends, but
2074 especially unto them which brought you up by hand!”
2075
2076 “Good-bye, Joe!”
2077
2078 “God bless you, Pip, old chap!”
2079
2080 I had never parted from him before, and what with my feelings and what
2081 with soapsuds, I could at first see no stars from the chaise-cart.
2082 But they twinkled out one by one, without throwing any light on the
2083 questions why on earth I was going to play at Miss Havisham’s, and what
2084 on earth I was expected to play at.
2085
2086
2087
2088
2089 Chapter VIII
2090
2091 Mr. Pumblechook’s premises in the High Street of the market town,
2092 were of a peppercorny and farinaceous character, as the premises of a
2093 cornchandler and seedsman should be. It appeared to me that he must be a
2094 very happy man indeed, to have so many little drawers in his shop; and
2095 I wondered when I peeped into one or two on the lower tiers, and saw the
2096 tied-up brown paper packets inside, whether the flower-seeds and bulbs
2097 ever wanted of a fine day to break out of those jails, and bloom.
2098
2099 It was in the early morning after my arrival that I entertained this
2100 speculation. On the previous night, I had been sent straight to bed in
2101 an attic with a sloping roof, which was so low in the corner where the
2102 bedstead was, that I calculated the tiles as being within a foot of my
2103 eyebrows. In the same early morning, I discovered a singular affinity
2104 between seeds and corduroys. Mr. Pumblechook wore corduroys, and so did
2105 his shopman; and somehow, there was a general air and flavor about the
2106 corduroys, so much in the nature of seeds, and a general air and flavor
2107 about the seeds, so much in the nature of corduroys, that I hardly knew
2108 which was which. The same opportunity served me for noticing that Mr.
2109 Pumblechook appeared to conduct his business by looking across the
2110 street at the saddler, who appeared to transact his business by keeping
2111 his eye on the coachmaker, who appeared to get on in life by putting his
2112 hands in his pockets and contemplating the baker, who in his turn folded
2113 his arms and stared at the grocer, who stood at his door and yawned at
2114 the chemist. The watchmaker, always poring over a little desk with
2115 a magnifying-glass at his eye, and always inspected by a group of
2116 smock-frocks poring over him through the glass of his shop-window,
2117 seemed to be about the only person in the High Street whose trade
2118 engaged his attention.
2119
2120 Mr. Pumblechook and I breakfasted at eight o’clock in the parlor behind
2121 the shop, while the shopman took his mug of tea and hunch of bread
2122 and butter on a sack of peas in the front premises. I considered Mr.
2123 Pumblechook wretched company. Besides being possessed by my sister’s
2124 idea that a mortifying and penitential character ought to be imparted
2125 to my diet,--besides giving me as much crumb as possible in combination
2126 with as little butter, and putting such a quantity of warm water into
2127 my milk that it would have been more candid to have left the milk out
2128 altogether,--his conversation consisted of nothing but arithmetic. On
2129 my politely bidding him Good morning, he said, pompously, “Seven times
2130 nine, boy?” And how should I be able to answer, dodged in that way, in
2131 a strange place, on an empty stomach! I was hungry, but before I had
2132 swallowed a morsel, he began a running sum that lasted all through the
2133 breakfast. “Seven?” “And four?” “And eight?” “And six?” “And two?” “And
2134 ten?” And so on. And after each figure was disposed of, it was as much
2135 as I could do to get a bite or a sup, before the next came; while he sat
2136 at his ease guessing nothing, and eating bacon and hot roll, in (if I
2137 may be allowed the expression) a gorging and gormandizing manner.
2138
2139 For such reasons, I was very glad when ten o’clock came and we started
2140 for Miss Havisham’s; though I was not at all at my ease regarding the
2141 manner in which I should acquit myself under that lady’s roof. Within
2142 a quarter of an hour we came to Miss Havisham’s house, which was of old
2143 brick, and dismal, and had a great many iron bars to it. Some of the
2144 windows had been walled up; of those that remained, all the lower were
2145 rustily barred. There was a courtyard in front, and that was barred; so
2146 we had to wait, after ringing the bell, until some one should come
2147 to open it. While we waited at the gate, I peeped in (even then Mr.
2148 Pumblechook said, “And fourteen?” but I pretended not to hear him), and
2149 saw that at the side of the house there was a large brewery. No brewing
2150 was going on in it, and none seemed to have gone on for a long long
2151 time.
2152
2153 A window was raised, and a clear voice demanded “What name?” To which my
2154 conductor replied, “Pumblechook.” The voice returned, “Quite right,” and
2155 the window was shut again, and a young lady came across the court-yard,
2156 with keys in her hand.
2157
2158 “This,” said Mr. Pumblechook, “is Pip.”
2159
2160 “This is Pip, is it?” returned the young lady, who was very pretty and
2161 seemed very proud; “come in, Pip.”
2162
2163 Mr. Pumblechook was coming in also, when she stopped him with the gate.
2164
2165 “Oh!” she said. “Did you wish to see Miss Havisham?”
2166
2167 “If Miss Havisham wished to see me,” returned Mr. Pumblechook,
2168 discomfited.
2169
2170 “Ah!” said the girl; “but you see she don’t.”
2171
2172 She said it so finally, and in such an undiscussible way, that Mr.
2173 Pumblechook, though in a condition of ruffled dignity, could not
2174 protest. But he eyed me severely,--as if I had done anything to
2175 him!--and departed with the words reproachfully delivered: “Boy! Let
2176 your behavior here be a credit unto them which brought you up by hand!”
2177 I was not free from apprehension that he would come back to propound
2178 through the gate, “And sixteen?” But he didn’t.
2179
2180 My young conductress locked the gate, and we went across the courtyard.
2181 It was paved and clean, but grass was growing in every crevice. The
2182 brewery buildings had a little lane of communication with it, and the
2183 wooden gates of that lane stood open, and all the brewery beyond stood
2184 open, away to the high enclosing wall; and all was empty and disused.
2185 The cold wind seemed to blow colder there than outside the gate; and
2186 it made a shrill noise in howling in and out at the open sides of the
2187 brewery, like the noise of wind in the rigging of a ship at sea.
2188
2189 She saw me looking at it, and she said, “You could drink without hurt
2190 all the strong beer that’s brewed there now, boy.”
2191
2192 “I should think I could, miss,” said I, in a shy way.
2193
2194 “Better not try to brew beer there now, or it would turn out sour, boy;
2195 don’t you think so?”
2196
2197 “It looks like it, miss.”
2198
2199 “Not that anybody means to try,” she added, “for that’s all done with,
2200 and the place will stand as idle as it is till it falls. As to strong
2201 beer, there’s enough of it in the cellars already, to drown the Manor
2202 House.”
2203
2204 “Is that the name of this house, miss?”
2205
2206 “One of its names, boy.”
2207
2208 “It has more than one, then, miss?”
2209
2210 “One more. Its other name was Satis; which is Greek, or Latin, or
2211 Hebrew, or all three--or all one to me--for enough.”
2212
2213 “Enough House,” said I; “that’s a curious name, miss.”
2214
2215 “Yes,” she replied; “but it meant more than it said. It meant, when it
2216 was given, that whoever had this house could want nothing else. They
2217 must have been easily satisfied in those days, I should think. But don’t
2218 loiter, boy.”
2219
2220 Though she called me “boy” so often, and with a carelessness that was
2221 far from complimentary, she was of about my own age. She seemed much
2222 older than I, of course, being a girl, and beautiful and self-possessed;
2223 and she was as scornful of me as if she had been one-and-twenty, and a
2224 queen.
2225
2226 We went into the house by a side door, the great front entrance had two
2227 chains across it outside,--and the first thing I noticed was, that the
2228 passages were all dark, and that she had left a candle burning there.
2229 She took it up, and we went through more passages and up a staircase,
2230 and still it was all dark, and only the candle lighted us.
2231
2232 At last we came to the door of a room, and she said, “Go in.”
2233
2234 I answered, more in shyness than politeness, “After you, miss.”
2235
2236 To this she returned: “Don’t be ridiculous, boy; I am not going in.” And
2237 scornfully walked away, and--what was worse--took the candle with her.
2238
2239 This was very uncomfortable, and I was half afraid. However, the only
2240 thing to be done being to knock at the door, I knocked, and was told
2241 from within to enter. I entered, therefore, and found myself in a pretty
2242 large room, well lighted with wax candles. No glimpse of daylight was to
2243 be seen in it. It was a dressing-room, as I supposed from the furniture,
2244 though much of it was of forms and uses then quite unknown to me. But
2245 prominent in it was a draped table with a gilded looking-glass, and that
2246 I made out at first sight to be a fine lady’s dressing-table.
2247
2248 Whether I should have made out this object so soon if there had been no
2249 fine lady sitting at it, I cannot say. In an arm-chair, with an
2250 elbow resting on the table and her head leaning on that hand, sat the
2251 strangest lady I have ever seen, or shall ever see.
2252
2253 She was dressed in rich materials,--satins, and lace, and silks,--all
2254 of white. Her shoes were white. And she had a long white veil dependent
2255 from her hair, and she had bridal flowers in her hair, but her hair was
2256 white. Some bright jewels sparkled on her neck and on her hands, and
2257 some other jewels lay sparkling on the table. Dresses, less splendid
2258 than the dress she wore, and half-packed trunks, were scattered about.
2259 She had not quite finished dressing, for she had but one shoe on,--the
2260 other was on the table near her hand,--her veil was but half arranged,
2261 her watch and chain were not put on, and some lace for her bosom lay
2262 with those trinkets, and with her handkerchief, and gloves, and
2263 some flowers, and a Prayer-Book all confusedly heaped about the
2264 looking-glass.
2265
2266 It was not in the first few moments that I saw all these things, though
2267 I saw more of them in the first moments than might be supposed. But I
2268 saw that everything within my view which ought to be white, had been
2269 white long ago, and had lost its lustre and was faded and yellow. I saw
2270 that the bride within the bridal dress had withered like the dress, and
2271 like the flowers, and had no brightness left but the brightness of her
2272 sunken eyes. I saw that the dress had been put upon the rounded figure
2273 of a young woman, and that the figure upon which it now hung loose had
2274 shrunk to skin and bone. Once, I had been taken to see some ghastly
2275 waxwork at the Fair, representing I know not what impossible personage
2276 lying in state. Once, I had been taken to one of our old marsh churches
2277 to see a skeleton in the ashes of a rich dress that had been dug out of
2278 a vault under the church pavement. Now, waxwork and skeleton seemed to
2279 have dark eyes that moved and looked at me. I should have cried out, if
2280 I could.
2281
2282 “Who is it?” said the lady at the table.
2283
2284 “Pip, ma’am.”
2285
2286 “Pip?”
2287
2288 “Mr. Pumblechook’s boy, ma’am. Come--to play.”
2289
2290 “Come nearer; let me look at you. Come close.”
2291
2292 It was when I stood before her, avoiding her eyes, that I took note of
2293 the surrounding objects in detail, and saw that her watch had stopped
2294 at twenty minutes to nine, and that a clock in the room had stopped at
2295 twenty minutes to nine.
2296
2297 “Look at me,” said Miss Havisham. “You are not afraid of a woman who has
2298 never seen the sun since you were born?”
2299
2300 I regret to state that I was not afraid of telling the enormous lie
2301 comprehended in the answer “No.”
2302
2303 “Do you know what I touch here?” she said, laying her hands, one upon
2304 the other, on her left side.
2305
2306 “Yes, ma’am.” (It made me think of the young man.)
2307
2308 “What do I touch?”
2309
2310 “Your heart.”
2311
2312 “Broken!”
2313
2314 She uttered the word with an eager look, and with strong emphasis, and
2315 with a weird smile that had a kind of boast in it. Afterwards she kept
2316 her hands there for a little while, and slowly took them away as if they
2317 were heavy.
2318
2319 “I am tired,” said Miss Havisham. “I want diversion, and I have done
2320 with men and women. Play.”
2321
2322 I think it will be conceded by my most disputatious reader, that she
2323 could hardly have directed an unfortunate boy to do anything in the wide
2324 world more difficult to be done under the circumstances.
2325
2326 “I sometimes have sick fancies,” she went on, “and I have a sick fancy
2327 that I want to see some play. There, there!” with an impatient movement
2328 of the fingers of her right hand; “play, play, play!”
2329
2330 For a moment, with the fear of my sister’s working me before my eyes, I
2331 had a desperate idea of starting round the room in the assumed character
2332 of Mr. Pumblechook’s chaise-cart. But I felt myself so unequal to the
2333 performance that I gave it up, and stood looking at Miss Havisham in
2334 what I suppose she took for a dogged manner, inasmuch as she said, when
2335 we had taken a good look at each other,--
2336
2337 “Are you sullen and obstinate?”
2338
2339 “No, ma’am, I am very sorry for you, and very sorry I can’t play just
2340 now. If you complain of me I shall get into trouble with my sister, so
2341 I would do it if I could; but it’s so new here, and so strange, and so
2342 fine,--and melancholy--.” I stopped, fearing I might say too much, or
2343 had already said it, and we took another look at each other.
2344
2345 Before she spoke again, she turned her eyes from me, and looked at the
2346 dress she wore, and at the dressing-table, and finally at herself in the
2347 looking-glass.
2348
2349 “So new to him,” she muttered, “so old to me; so strange to him, so
2350 familiar to me; so melancholy to both of us! Call Estella.”
2351
2352 As she was still looking at the reflection of herself, I thought she was
2353 still talking to herself, and kept quiet.
2354
2355 “Call Estella,” she repeated, flashing a look at me. “You can do that.
2356 Call Estella. At the door.”
2357
2358 To stand in the dark in a mysterious passage of an unknown house,
2359 bawling Estella to a scornful young lady neither visible nor responsive,
2360 and feeling it a dreadful liberty so to roar out her name, was almost
2361 as bad as playing to order. But she answered at last, and her light came
2362 along the dark passage like a star.
2363
2364 Miss Havisham beckoned her to come close, and took up a jewel from the
2365 table, and tried its effect upon her fair young bosom and against her
2366 pretty brown hair. “Your own, one day, my dear, and you will use it
2367 well. Let me see you play cards with this boy.”
2368
2369 “With this boy? Why, he is a common laboring boy!”
2370
2371 I thought I overheard Miss Havisham answer,--only it seemed so
2372 unlikely,--“Well? You can break his heart.”
2373
2374 “What do you play, boy?” asked Estella of myself, with the greatest
2375 disdain.
2376
2377 “Nothing but beggar my neighbor, miss.”
2378
2379 “Beggar him,” said Miss Havisham to Estella. So we sat down to cards.
2380
2381 It was then I began to understand that everything in the room had
2382 stopped, like the watch and the clock, a long time ago. I noticed that
2383 Miss Havisham put down the jewel exactly on the spot from which she had
2384 taken it up. As Estella dealt the cards, I glanced at the dressing-table
2385 again, and saw that the shoe upon it, once white, now yellow, had never
2386 been worn. I glanced down at the foot from which the shoe was absent,
2387 and saw that the silk stocking on it, once white, now yellow, had been
2388 trodden ragged. Without this arrest of everything, this standing still
2389 of all the pale decayed objects, not even the withered bridal dress on
2390 the collapsed form could have looked so like grave-clothes, or the long
2391 veil so like a shroud.
2392
2393 So she sat, corpse-like, as we played at cards; the frillings and
2394 trimmings on her bridal dress, looking like earthy paper. I knew nothing
2395 then of the discoveries that are occasionally made of bodies buried in
2396 ancient times, which fall to powder in the moment of being distinctly
2397 seen; but, I have often thought since, that she must have looked as if
2398 the admission of the natural light of day would have struck her to dust.
2399
2400 “He calls the knaves Jacks, this boy!” said Estella with disdain, before
2401 our first game was out. “And what coarse hands he has! And what thick
2402 boots!”
2403
2404 I had never thought of being ashamed of my hands before; but I began
2405 to consider them a very indifferent pair. Her contempt for me was so
2406 strong, that it became infectious, and I caught it.
2407
2408 She won the game, and I dealt. I misdealt, as was only natural, when I
2409 knew she was lying in wait for me to do wrong; and she denounced me for
2410 a stupid, clumsy laboring-boy.
2411
2412 “You say nothing of her,” remarked Miss Havisham to me, as she looked
2413 on. “She says many hard things of you, but you say nothing of her. What
2414 do you think of her?”
2415
2416 “I don’t like to say,” I stammered.
2417
2418 “Tell me in my ear,” said Miss Havisham, bending down.
2419
2420 “I think she is very proud,” I replied, in a whisper.
2421
2422 “Anything else?”
2423
2424 “I think she is very pretty.”
2425
2426 “Anything else?”
2427
2428 “I think she is very insulting.” (She was looking at me then with a look
2429 of supreme aversion.)
2430
2431 “Anything else?”
2432
2433 “I think I should like to go home.”
2434
2435 “And never see her again, though she is so pretty?”
2436
2437 “I am not sure that I shouldn’t like to see her again, but I should like
2438 to go home now.”
2439
2440 “You shall go soon,” said Miss Havisham, aloud. “Play the game out.”
2441
2442 Saving for the one weird smile at first, I should have felt almost
2443 sure that Miss Havisham’s face could not smile. It had dropped into a
2444 watchful and brooding expression,--most likely when all the things about
2445 her had become transfixed,--and it looked as if nothing could ever lift
2446 it up again. Her chest had dropped, so that she stooped; and her voice
2447 had dropped, so that she spoke low, and with a dead lull upon her;
2448 altogether, she had the appearance of having dropped body and soul,
2449 within and without, under the weight of a crushing blow.
2450
2451 I played the game to an end with Estella, and she beggared me. She
2452 threw the cards down on the table when she had won them all, as if she
2453 despised them for having been won of me.
2454
2455 “When shall I have you here again?” said Miss Havisham. “Let me think.”
2456
2457 I was beginning to remind her that to-day was Wednesday, when she
2458 checked me with her former impatient movement of the fingers of her
2459 right hand.
2460
2461 “There, there! I know nothing of days of the week; I know nothing of
2462 weeks of the year. Come again after six days. You hear?”
2463
2464 “Yes, ma’am.”
2465
2466 “Estella, take him down. Let him have something to eat, and let him roam
2467 and look about him while he eats. Go, Pip.”
2468
2469 I followed the candle down, as I had followed the candle up, and she
2470 stood it in the place where we had found it. Until she opened the
2471 side entrance, I had fancied, without thinking about it, that it must
2472 necessarily be night-time. The rush of the daylight quite confounded me,
2473 and made me feel as if I had been in the candlelight of the strange room
2474 many hours.
2475
2476 “You are to wait here, you boy,” said Estella; and disappeared and
2477 closed the door.
2478
2479 I took the opportunity of being alone in the courtyard to look at my
2480 coarse hands and my common boots. My opinion of those accessories was
2481 not favorable. They had never troubled me before, but they troubled
2482 me now, as vulgar appendages. I determined to ask Joe why he had ever
2483 taught me to call those picture-cards Jacks, which ought to be called
2484 knaves. I wished Joe had been rather more genteelly brought up, and then
2485 I should have been so too.
2486
2487 She came back, with some bread and meat and a little mug of beer. She
2488 put the mug down on the stones of the yard, and gave me the bread
2489 and meat without looking at me, as insolently as if I were a dog in
2490 disgrace. I was so humiliated, hurt, spurned, offended, angry, sorry,--I
2491 cannot hit upon the right name for the smart--God knows what its name
2492 was,--that tears started to my eyes. The moment they sprang there, the
2493 girl looked at me with a quick delight in having been the cause of them.
2494 This gave me power to keep them back and to look at her: so, she gave a
2495 contemptuous toss--but with a sense, I thought, of having made too sure
2496 that I was so wounded--and left me.
2497
2498 But when she was gone, I looked about me for a place to hide my face
2499 in, and got behind one of the gates in the brewery-lane, and leaned my
2500 sleeve against the wall there, and leaned my forehead on it and cried.
2501 As I cried, I kicked the wall, and took a hard twist at my hair; so
2502 bitter were my feelings, and so sharp was the smart without a name, that
2503 needed counteraction.
2504
2505 My sister’s bringing up had made me sensitive. In the little world in
2506 which children have their existence whosoever brings them up, there is
2507 nothing so finely perceived and so finely felt as injustice. It may be
2508 only small injustice that the child can be exposed to; but the child
2509 is small, and its world is small, and its rocking-horse stands as many
2510 hands high, according to scale, as a big-boned Irish hunter. Within
2511 myself, I had sustained, from my babyhood, a perpetual conflict with
2512 injustice. I had known, from the time when I could speak, that my
2513 sister, in her capricious and violent coercion, was unjust to me. I had
2514 cherished a profound conviction that her bringing me up by hand gave her
2515 no right to bring me up by jerks. Through all my punishments, disgraces,
2516 fasts, and vigils, and other penitential performances, I had nursed
2517 this assurance; and to my communing so much with it, in a solitary and
2518 unprotected way, I in great part refer the fact that I was morally timid
2519 and very sensitive.
2520
2521 I got rid of my injured feelings for the time by kicking them into the
2522 brewery wall, and twisting them out of my hair, and then I smoothed my
2523 face with my sleeve, and came from behind the gate. The bread and meat
2524 were acceptable, and the beer was warming and tingling, and I was soon
2525 in spirits to look about me.
2526
2527 To be sure, it was a deserted place, down to the pigeon-house in the
2528 brewery-yard, which had been blown crooked on its pole by some high
2529 wind, and would have made the pigeons think themselves at sea, if there
2530 had been any pigeons there to be rocked by it. But there were no pigeons
2531 in the dove-cot, no horses in the stable, no pigs in the sty, no malt in
2532 the storehouse, no smells of grains and beer in the copper or the vat.
2533 All the uses and scents of the brewery might have evaporated with its
2534 last reek of smoke. In a by-yard, there was a wilderness of empty casks,
2535 which had a certain sour remembrance of better days lingering about
2536 them; but it was too sour to be accepted as a sample of the beer that
2537 was gone,--and in this respect I remember those recluses as being like
2538 most others.
2539
2540 Behind the furthest end of the brewery, was a rank garden with an old
2541 wall; not so high but that I could struggle up and hold on long enough
2542 to look over it, and see that the rank garden was the garden of the
2543 house, and that it was overgrown with tangled weeds, but that there was
2544 a track upon the green and yellow paths, as if some one sometimes walked
2545 there, and that Estella was walking away from me even then. But she
2546 seemed to be everywhere. For when I yielded to the temptation presented
2547 by the casks, and began to walk on them, I saw her walking on them at
2548 the end of the yard of casks. She had her back towards me, and held her
2549 pretty brown hair spread out in her two hands, and never looked round,
2550 and passed out of my view directly. So, in the brewery itself,--by which
2551 I mean the large paved lofty place in which they used to make the beer,
2552 and where the brewing utensils still were. When I first went into it,
2553 and, rather oppressed by its gloom, stood near the door looking about
2554 me, I saw her pass among the extinguished fires, and ascend some light
2555 iron stairs, and go out by a gallery high overhead, as if she were going
2556 out into the sky.
2557
2558 It was in this place, and at this moment, that a strange thing happened
2559 to my fancy. I thought it a strange thing then, and I thought it a
2560 stranger thing long afterwards. I turned my eyes--a little dimmed by
2561 looking up at the frosty light--towards a great wooden beam in a low
2562 nook of the building near me on my right hand, and I saw a figure
2563 hanging there by the neck. A figure all in yellow white, with but
2564 one shoe to the feet; and it hung so, that I could see that the faded
2565 trimmings of the dress were like earthy paper, and that the face was
2566 Miss Havisham’s, with a movement going over the whole countenance as if
2567 she were trying to call to me. In the terror of seeing the figure,
2568 and in the terror of being certain that it had not been there a moment
2569 before, I at first ran from it, and then ran towards it. And my terror
2570 was greatest of all when I found no figure there.
2571
2572 Nothing less than the frosty light of the cheerful sky, the sight of
2573 people passing beyond the bars of the court-yard gate, and the reviving
2574 influence of the rest of the bread and meat and beer, would have brought
2575 me round. Even with those aids, I might not have come to myself as soon
2576 as I did, but that I saw Estella approaching with the keys, to let
2577 me out. She would have some fair reason for looking down upon me, I
2578 thought, if she saw me frightened; and she would have no fair reason.
2579
2580 She gave me a triumphant glance in passing me, as if she rejoiced that
2581 my hands were so coarse and my boots were so thick, and she opened the
2582 gate, and stood holding it. I was passing out without looking at her,
2583 when she touched me with a taunting hand.
2584
2585 “Why don’t you cry?”
2586
2587 “Because I don’t want to.”
2588
2589 “You do,” said she. “You have been crying till you are half blind, and
2590 you are near crying again now.”
2591
2592 She laughed contemptuously, pushed me out, and locked the gate upon me.
2593 I went straight to Mr. Pumblechook’s, and was immensely relieved to find
2594 him not at home. So, leaving word with the shopman on what day I was
2595 wanted at Miss Havisham’s again, I set off on the four-mile walk to
2596 our forge; pondering, as I went along, on all I had seen, and deeply
2597 revolving that I was a common laboring-boy; that my hands were coarse;
2598 that my boots were thick; that I had fallen into a despicable habit
2599 of calling knaves Jacks; that I was much more ignorant than I had
2600 considered myself last night, and generally that I was in a low-lived
2601 bad way.
2602
2603
2604
2605
2606 Chapter IX
2607
2608 When I reached home, my sister was very curious to know all about Miss
2609 Havisham’s, and asked a number of questions. And I soon found myself
2610 getting heavily bumped from behind in the nape of the neck and the small
2611 of the back, and having my face ignominiously shoved against the kitchen
2612 wall, because I did not answer those questions at sufficient length.
2613
2614 If a dread of not being understood be hidden in the breasts of other
2615 young people to anything like the extent to which it used to be hidden
2616 in mine,--which I consider probable, as I have no particular reason
2617 to suspect myself of having been a monstrosity,--it is the key to many
2618 reservations. I felt convinced that if I described Miss Havisham’s as my
2619 eyes had seen it, I should not be understood. Not only that, but I felt
2620 convinced that Miss Havisham too would not be understood; and although
2621 she was perfectly incomprehensible to me, I entertained an impression
2622 that there would be something coarse and treacherous in my dragging
2623 her as she really was (to say nothing of Miss Estella) before the
2624 contemplation of Mrs. Joe. Consequently, I said as little as I could,
2625 and had my face shoved against the kitchen wall.
2626
2627 The worst of it was that that bullying old Pumblechook, preyed upon by
2628 a devouring curiosity to be informed of all I had seen and heard, came
2629 gaping over in his chaise-cart at tea-time, to have the details divulged
2630 to him. And the mere sight of the torment, with his fishy eyes and mouth
2631 open, his sandy hair inquisitively on end, and his waistcoat heaving
2632 with windy arithmetic, made me vicious in my reticence.
2633
2634 “Well, boy,” Uncle Pumblechook began, as soon as he was seated in the
2635 chair of honor by the fire. “How did you get on up town?”
2636
2637 I answered, “Pretty well, sir,” and my sister shook her fist at me.
2638
2639 “Pretty well?” Mr. Pumblechook repeated. “Pretty well is no answer. Tell
2640 us what you mean by pretty well, boy?”
2641
2642 Whitewash on the forehead hardens the brain into a state of obstinacy
2643 perhaps. Anyhow, with whitewash from the wall on my forehead, my
2644 obstinacy was adamantine. I reflected for some time, and then answered
2645 as if I had discovered a new idea, “I mean pretty well.”
2646
2647 My sister with an exclamation of impatience was going to fly at me,--I
2648 had no shadow of defence, for Joe was busy in the forge,--when Mr.
2649 Pumblechook interposed with “No! Don’t lose your temper. Leave this
2650 lad to me, ma’am; leave this lad to me.” Mr. Pumblechook then turned me
2651 towards him, as if he were going to cut my hair, and said,--
2652
2653 “First (to get our thoughts in order): Forty-three pence?”
2654
2655 I calculated the consequences of replying “Four Hundred Pound,” and
2656 finding them against me, went as near the answer as I could--which was
2657 somewhere about eightpence off. Mr. Pumblechook then put me through my
2658 pence-table from “twelve pence make one shilling,” up to “forty pence
2659 make three and fourpence,” and then triumphantly demanded, as if he had
2660 done for me, “Now! How much is forty-three pence?” To which I replied,
2661 after a long interval of reflection, “I don’t know.” And I was so
2662 aggravated that I almost doubt if I did know.
2663
2664 Mr. Pumblechook worked his head like a screw to screw it out of me,
2665 and said, “Is forty-three pence seven and sixpence three fardens, for
2666 instance?”
2667
2668 “Yes!” said I. And although my sister instantly boxed my ears, it was
2669 highly gratifying to me to see that the answer spoilt his joke, and
2670 brought him to a dead stop.
2671
2672 “Boy! What like is Miss Havisham?” Mr. Pumblechook began again when
2673 he had recovered; folding his arms tight on his chest and applying the
2674 screw.
2675
2676 “Very tall and dark,” I told him.
2677
2678 “Is she, uncle?” asked my sister.
2679
2680 Mr. Pumblechook winked assent; from which I at once inferred that he had
2681 never seen Miss Havisham, for she was nothing of the kind.
2682
2683 “Good!” said Mr. Pumblechook conceitedly. (“This is the way to have him!
2684 We are beginning to hold our own, I think, Mum?”)
2685
2686 “I am sure, uncle,” returned Mrs. Joe, “I wish you had him always; you
2687 know so well how to deal with him.”
2688
2689 “Now, boy! What was she a doing of, when you went in today?” asked Mr.
2690 Pumblechook.
2691
2692 “She was sitting,” I answered, “in a black velvet coach.”
2693
2694 Mr. Pumblechook and Mrs. Joe stared at one another--as they well
2695 might--and both repeated, “In a black velvet coach?”
2696
2697 “Yes,” said I. “And Miss Estella--that’s her niece, I think--handed her
2698 in cake and wine at the coach-window, on a gold plate. And we all had
2699 cake and wine on gold plates. And I got up behind the coach to eat mine,
2700 because she told me to.”
2701
2702 “Was anybody else there?” asked Mr. Pumblechook.
2703
2704 “Four dogs,” said I.
2705
2706 “Large or small?”
2707
2708 “Immense,” said I. “And they fought for veal-cutlets out of a silver
2709 basket.”
2710
2711 Mr. Pumblechook and Mrs. Joe stared at one another again, in utter
2712 amazement. I was perfectly frantic,--a reckless witness under the
2713 torture,--and would have told them anything.
2714
2715 “Where was this coach, in the name of gracious?” asked my sister.
2716
2717 “In Miss Havisham’s room.” They stared again. “But there weren’t any
2718 horses to it.” I added this saving clause, in the moment of rejecting
2719 four richly caparisoned coursers which I had had wild thoughts of
2720 harnessing.
2721
2722 “Can this be possible, uncle?” asked Mrs. Joe. “What can the boy mean?”
2723
2724 “I’ll tell you, Mum,” said Mr. Pumblechook. “My opinion is, it’s a
2725 sedan-chair. She’s flighty, you know,--very flighty,--quite flighty
2726 enough to pass her days in a sedan-chair.”
2727
2728 “Did you ever see her in it, uncle?” asked Mrs. Joe.
2729
2730 “How could I,” he returned, forced to the admission, “when I never see
2731 her in my life? Never clapped eyes upon her!”
2732
2733 “Goodness, uncle! And yet you have spoken to her?”
2734
2735 “Why, don’t you know,” said Mr. Pumblechook, testily, “that when I have
2736 been there, I have been took up to the outside of her door, and the door
2737 has stood ajar, and she has spoke to me that way. Don’t say you don’t
2738 know that, Mum. Howsever, the boy went there to play. What did you play
2739 at, boy?”
2740
2741 “We played with flags,” I said. (I beg to observe that I think of myself
2742 with amazement, when I recall the lies I told on this occasion.)
2743
2744 “Flags!” echoed my sister.
2745
2746 “Yes,” said I. “Estella waved a blue flag, and I waved a red one, and
2747 Miss Havisham waved one sprinkled all over with little gold stars, out
2748 at the coach-window. And then we all waved our swords and hurrahed.”
2749
2750 “Swords!” repeated my sister. “Where did you get swords from?”
2751
2752 “Out of a cupboard,” said I. “And I saw pistols in it,--and jam,--and
2753 pills. And there was no daylight in the room, but it was all lighted up
2754 with candles.”
2755
2756 “That’s true, Mum,” said Mr. Pumblechook, with a grave nod. “That’s the
2757 state of the case, for that much I’ve seen myself.” And then they
2758 both stared at me, and I, with an obtrusive show of artlessness on my
2759 countenance, stared at them, and plaited the right leg of my trousers
2760 with my right hand.
2761
2762 If they had asked me any more questions, I should undoubtedly have
2763 betrayed myself, for I was even then on the point of mentioning that
2764 there was a balloon in the yard, and should have hazarded the statement
2765 but for my invention being divided between that phenomenon and a bear
2766 in the brewery. They were so much occupied, however, in discussing the
2767 marvels I had already presented for their consideration, that I escaped.
2768 The subject still held them when Joe came in from his work to have a cup
2769 of tea. To whom my sister, more for the relief of her own mind than for
2770 the gratification of his, related my pretended experiences.
2771
2772 Now, when I saw Joe open his blue eyes and roll them all round the
2773 kitchen in helpless amazement, I was overtaken by penitence; but only as
2774 regarded him,--not in the least as regarded the other two. Towards
2775 Joe, and Joe only, I considered myself a young monster, while they sat
2776 debating what results would come to me from Miss Havisham’s acquaintance
2777 and favor. They had no doubt that Miss Havisham would “do something”
2778 for me; their doubts related to the form that something would take.
2779 My sister stood out for “property.” Mr. Pumblechook was in favor of a
2780 handsome premium for binding me apprentice to some genteel trade,--say,
2781 the corn and seed trade, for instance. Joe fell into the deepest
2782 disgrace with both, for offering the bright suggestion that I might only
2783 be presented with one of the dogs who had fought for the veal-cutlets.
2784 “If a fool’s head can’t express better opinions than that,” said my
2785 sister, “and you have got any work to do, you had better go and do it.”
2786 So he went.
2787
2788 After Mr. Pumblechook had driven off, and when my sister was washing up,
2789 I stole into the forge to Joe, and remained by him until he had done for
2790 the night. Then I said, “Before the fire goes out, Joe, I should like to
2791 tell you something.”
2792
2793 “Should you, Pip?” said Joe, drawing his shoeing-stool near the forge.
2794 “Then tell us. What is it, Pip?”
2795
2796 “Joe,” said I, taking hold of his rolled-up shirt sleeve, and twisting
2797 it between my finger and thumb, “you remember all that about Miss
2798 Havisham’s?”
2799
2800 “Remember?” said Joe. “I believe you! Wonderful!”
2801
2802 “It’s a terrible thing, Joe; it ain’t true.”
2803
2804 “What are you telling of, Pip?” cried Joe, falling back in the greatest
2805 amazement. “You don’t mean to say it’s--”
2806
2807 “Yes I do; it’s lies, Joe.”
2808
2809 “But not all of it? Why sure you don’t mean to say, Pip, that there was
2810 no black welwet co--eh?” For, I stood shaking my head. “But at least
2811 there was dogs, Pip? Come, Pip,” said Joe, persuasively, “if there
2812 warn’t no weal-cutlets, at least there was dogs?”
2813
2814 “No, Joe.”
2815
2816 “A dog?” said Joe. “A puppy? Come?”
2817
2818 “No, Joe, there was nothing at all of the kind.”
2819
2820 As I fixed my eyes hopelessly on Joe, Joe contemplated me in dismay.
2821 “Pip, old chap! This won’t do, old fellow! I say! Where do you expect to
2822 go to?”
2823
2824 “It’s terrible, Joe; ain’t it?”
2825
2826 “Terrible?” cried Joe. “Awful! What possessed you?”
2827
2828 “I don’t know what possessed me, Joe,” I replied, letting his shirt
2829 sleeve go, and sitting down in the ashes at his feet, hanging my head;
2830 “but I wish you hadn’t taught me to call Knaves at cards Jacks; and I
2831 wish my boots weren’t so thick nor my hands so coarse.”
2832
2833 And then I told Joe that I felt very miserable, and that I hadn’t been
2834 able to explain myself to Mrs. Joe and Pumblechook, who were so rude to
2835 me, and that there had been a beautiful young lady at Miss Havisham’s
2836 who was dreadfully proud, and that she had said I was common, and that I
2837 knew I was common, and that I wished I was not common, and that the lies
2838 had come of it somehow, though I didn’t know how.
2839
2840 This was a case of metaphysics, at least as difficult for Joe to deal
2841 with as for me. But Joe took the case altogether out of the region of
2842 metaphysics, and by that means vanquished it.
2843
2844 “There’s one thing you may be sure of, Pip,” said Joe, after some
2845 rumination, “namely, that lies is lies. Howsever they come, they didn’t
2846 ought to come, and they come from the father of lies, and work round to
2847 the same. Don’t you tell no more of ‘em, Pip. That ain’t the way to get
2848 out of being common, old chap. And as to being common, I don’t make
2849 it out at all clear. You are oncommon in some things. You’re oncommon
2850 small. Likewise you’re a oncommon scholar.”
2851
2852 “No, I am ignorant and backward, Joe.”
2853
2854 “Why, see what a letter you wrote last night! Wrote in print even! I’ve
2855 seen letters--Ah! and from gentlefolks!--that I’ll swear weren’t wrote
2856 in print,” said Joe.
2857
2858 “I have learnt next to nothing, Joe. You think much of me. It’s only
2859 that.”
2860
2861 “Well, Pip,” said Joe, “be it so or be it son’t, you must be a common
2862 scholar afore you can be a oncommon one, I should hope! The king upon
2863 his throne, with his crown upon his ed, can’t sit and write his acts
2864 of Parliament in print, without having begun, when he were a unpromoted
2865 Prince, with the alphabet.--Ah!” added Joe, with a shake of the head
2866 that was full of meaning, “and begun at A too, and worked his way to Z.
2867 And I know what that is to do, though I can’t say I’ve exactly done it.”
2868
2869 There was some hope in this piece of wisdom, and it rather encouraged
2870 me.
2871
2872 “Whether common ones as to callings and earnings,” pursued Joe,
2873 reflectively, “mightn’t be the better of continuing for to keep
2874 company with common ones, instead of going out to play with oncommon
2875 ones,--which reminds me to hope that there were a flag, perhaps?”
2876
2877 “No, Joe.”
2878
2879 “(I’m sorry there weren’t a flag, Pip). Whether that might be or
2880 mightn’t be, is a thing as can’t be looked into now, without putting
2881 your sister on the Rampage; and that’s a thing not to be thought of as
2882 being done intentional. Lookee here, Pip, at what is said to you by a
2883 true friend. Which this to you the true friend say. If you can’t get to
2884 be oncommon through going straight, you’ll never get to do it through
2885 going crooked. So don’t tell no more on ‘em, Pip, and live well and die
2886 happy.”
2887
2888 “You are not angry with me, Joe?”
2889
2890 “No, old chap. But bearing in mind that them were which I meantersay
2891 of a stunning and outdacious sort,--alluding to them which bordered on
2892 weal-cutlets and dog-fighting,--a sincere well-wisher would adwise, Pip,
2893 their being dropped into your meditations, when you go upstairs to bed.
2894 That’s all, old chap, and don’t never do it no more.”
2895
2896 When I got up to my little room and said my prayers, I did not forget
2897 Joe’s recommendation, and yet my young mind was in that disturbed and
2898 unthankful state, that I thought long after I laid me down, how common
2899 Estella would consider Joe, a mere blacksmith; how thick his boots, and
2900 how coarse his hands. I thought how Joe and my sister were then sitting
2901 in the kitchen, and how I had come up to bed from the kitchen, and how
2902 Miss Havisham and Estella never sat in a kitchen, but were far above the
2903 level of such common doings. I fell asleep recalling what I “used to
2904 do” when I was at Miss Havisham’s; as though I had been there weeks or
2905 months, instead of hours; and as though it were quite an old subject of
2906 remembrance, instead of one that had arisen only that day.
2907
2908 That was a memorable day to me, for it made great changes in me. But it
2909 is the same with any life. Imagine one selected day struck out of it,
2910 and think how different its course would have been. Pause you who read
2911 this, and think for a moment of the long chain of iron or gold,
2912 of thorns or flowers, that would never have bound you, but for the
2913 formation of the first link on one memorable day.
2914
2915
2916
2917
2918 Chapter X
2919
2920 The felicitous idea occurred to me a morning or two later when I woke,
2921 that the best step I could take towards making myself uncommon was to
2922 get out of Biddy everything she knew. In pursuance of this luminous
2923 conception I mentioned to Biddy when I went to Mr. Wopsle’s great-aunt’s
2924 at night, that I had a particular reason for wishing to get on in life,
2925 and that I should feel very much obliged to her if she would impart
2926 all her learning to me. Biddy, who was the most obliging of girls,
2927 immediately said she would, and indeed began to carry out her promise
2928 within five minutes.
2929
2930 The Educational scheme or Course established by Mr. Wopsle’s great-aunt
2931 may be resolved into the following synopsis. The pupils ate apples
2932 and put straws down one another’s backs, until Mr. Wopsle’s great-aunt
2933 collected her energies, and made an indiscriminate totter at them with
2934 a birch-rod. After receiving the charge with every mark of derision, the
2935 pupils formed in line and buzzingly passed a ragged book from hand to
2936 hand. The book had an alphabet in it, some figures and tables, and
2937 a little spelling,--that is to say, it had had once. As soon as this
2938 volume began to circulate, Mr. Wopsle’s great-aunt fell into a state of
2939 coma, arising either from sleep or a rheumatic paroxysm. The pupils then
2940 entered among themselves upon a competitive examination on the subject
2941 of Boots, with the view of ascertaining who could tread the hardest upon
2942 whose toes. This mental exercise lasted until Biddy made a rush at
2943 them and distributed three defaced Bibles (shaped as if they had been
2944 unskilfully cut off the chump end of something), more illegibly printed
2945 at the best than any curiosities of literature I have since met with,
2946 speckled all over with ironmould, and having various specimens of the
2947 insect world smashed between their leaves. This part of the Course was
2948 usually lightened by several single combats between Biddy and refractory
2949 students. When the fights were over, Biddy gave out the number of a
2950 page, and then we all read aloud what we could,--or what we couldn’t--in
2951 a frightful chorus; Biddy leading with a high, shrill, monotonous voice,
2952 and none of us having the least notion of, or reverence for, what we
2953 were reading about. When this horrible din had lasted a certain time,
2954 it mechanically awoke Mr. Wopsle’s great-aunt, who staggered at a boy
2955 fortuitously, and pulled his ears. This was understood to terminate
2956 the Course for the evening, and we emerged into the air with shrieks of
2957 intellectual victory. It is fair to remark that there was no prohibition
2958 against any pupil’s entertaining himself with a slate or even with the
2959 ink (when there was any), but that it was not easy to pursue that branch
2960 of study in the winter season, on account of the little general shop
2961 in which the classes were holden--and which was also Mr. Wopsle’s
2962 great-aunt’s sitting-room and bedchamber--being but faintly illuminated
2963 through the agency of one low-spirited dip-candle and no snuffers.
2964
2965 It appeared to me that it would take time to become uncommon, under
2966 these circumstances: nevertheless, I resolved to try it, and that
2967 very evening Biddy entered on our special agreement, by imparting some
2968 information from her little catalogue of Prices, under the head of moist
2969 sugar, and lending me, to copy at home, a large old English D which she
2970 had imitated from the heading of some newspaper, and which I supposed,
2971 until she told me what it was, to be a design for a buckle.
2972
2973 Of course there was a public-house in the village, and of course Joe
2974 liked sometimes to smoke his pipe there. I had received strict orders
2975 from my sister to call for him at the Three Jolly Bargemen, that
2976 evening, on my way from school, and bring him home at my peril. To the
2977 Three Jolly Bargemen, therefore, I directed my steps.
2978
2979 There was a bar at the Jolly Bargemen, with some alarmingly long chalk
2980 scores in it on the wall at the side of the door, which seemed to me to
2981 be never paid off. They had been there ever since I could remember, and
2982 had grown more than I had. But there was a quantity of chalk about our
2983 country, and perhaps the people neglected no opportunity of turning it
2984 to account.
2985
2986 It being Saturday night, I found the landlord looking rather grimly
2987 at these records; but as my business was with Joe and not with him, I
2988 merely wished him good evening, and passed into the common room at the
2989 end of the passage, where there was a bright large kitchen fire,
2990 and where Joe was smoking his pipe in company with Mr. Wopsle and a
2991 stranger. Joe greeted me as usual with “Halloa, Pip, old chap!” and the
2992 moment he said that, the stranger turned his head and looked at me.
2993
2994 He was a secret-looking man whom I had never seen before. His head was
2995 all on one side, and one of his eyes was half shut up, as if he were
2996 taking aim at something with an invisible gun. He had a pipe in his
2997 mouth, and he took it out, and, after slowly blowing all his smoke away
2998 and looking hard at me all the time, nodded. So, I nodded, and then he
2999 nodded again, and made room on the settle beside him that I might sit
3000 down there.
3001
3002 But as I was used to sit beside Joe whenever I entered that place of
3003 resort, I said “No, thank you, sir,” and fell into the space Joe made
3004 for me on the opposite settle. The strange man, after glancing at Joe,
3005 and seeing that his attention was otherwise engaged, nodded to me again
3006 when I had taken my seat, and then rubbed his leg--in a very odd way, as
3007 it struck me.
3008
3009 “You was saying,” said the strange man, turning to Joe, “that you was a
3010 blacksmith.”
3011
3012 “Yes. I said it, you know,” said Joe.
3013
3014 “What’ll you drink, Mr.--? You didn’t mention your name, by the bye.”
3015
3016 Joe mentioned it now, and the strange man called him by it. “What’ll you
3017 drink, Mr. Gargery? At my expense? To top up with?”
3018
3019 “Well,” said Joe, “to tell you the truth, I ain’t much in the habit of
3020 drinking at anybody’s expense but my own.”
3021
3022 “Habit? No,” returned the stranger, “but once and away, and on a
3023 Saturday night too. Come! Put a name to it, Mr. Gargery.”
3024
3025 “I wouldn’t wish to be stiff company,” said Joe. “Rum.”
3026
3027 “Rum,” repeated the stranger. “And will the other gentleman originate a
3028 sentiment.”
3029
3030 “Rum,” said Mr. Wopsle.
3031
3032 “Three Rums!” cried the stranger, calling to the landlord. “Glasses
3033 round!”
3034
3035 “This other gentleman,” observed Joe, by way of introducing Mr. Wopsle,
3036 “is a gentleman that you would like to hear give it out. Our clerk at
3037 church.”
3038
3039 “Aha!” said the stranger, quickly, and cocking his eye at me. “The
3040 lonely church, right out on the marshes, with graves round it!”
3041
3042 “That’s it,” said Joe.
3043
3044 The stranger, with a comfortable kind of grunt over his pipe, put
3045 his legs up on the settle that he had to himself. He wore a flapping
3046 broad-brimmed traveller’s hat, and under it a handkerchief tied over his
3047 head in the manner of a cap: so that he showed no hair. As he looked
3048 at the fire, I thought I saw a cunning expression, followed by a
3049 half-laugh, come into his face.
3050
3051 “I am not acquainted with this country, gentlemen, but it seems a
3052 solitary country towards the river.”
3053
3054 “Most marshes is solitary,” said Joe.
3055
3056 “No doubt, no doubt. Do you find any gypsies, now, or tramps, or
3057 vagrants of any sort, out there?”
3058
3059 “No,” said Joe; “none but a runaway convict now and then. And we don’t
3060 find them, easy. Eh, Mr. Wopsle?”
3061
3062 Mr. Wopsle, with a majestic remembrance of old discomfiture, assented;
3063 but not warmly.
3064
3065 “Seems you have been out after such?” asked the stranger.
3066
3067 “Once,” returned Joe. “Not that we wanted to take them, you understand;
3068 we went out as lookers on; me, and Mr. Wopsle, and Pip. Didn’t us, Pip?”
3069
3070 “Yes, Joe.”
3071
3072 The stranger looked at me again,--still cocking his eye, as if he were
3073 expressly taking aim at me with his invisible gun,--and said, “He’s a
3074 likely young parcel of bones that. What is it you call him?”
3075
3076 “Pip,” said Joe.
3077
3078 “Christened Pip?”
3079
3080 “No, not christened Pip.”
3081
3082 “Surname Pip?”
3083
3084 “No,” said Joe, “it’s a kind of family name what he gave himself when a
3085 infant, and is called by.”
3086
3087 “Son of yours?”
3088
3089 “Well,” said Joe, meditatively, not, of course, that it could be in
3090 anywise necessary to consider about it, but because it was the way at
3091 the Jolly Bargemen to seem to consider deeply about everything that was
3092 discussed over pipes,--“well--no. No, he ain’t.”
3093
3094 “Nevvy?” said the strange man.
3095
3096 “Well,” said Joe, with the same appearance of profound cogitation, “he
3097 is not--no, not to deceive you, he is not--my nevvy.”
3098
3099 “What the Blue Blazes is he?” asked the stranger. Which appeared to me
3100 to be an inquiry of unnecessary strength.
3101
3102 Mr. Wopsle struck in upon that; as one who knew all about relationships,
3103 having professional occasion to bear in mind what female relations a man
3104 might not marry; and expounded the ties between me and Joe. Having
3105 his hand in, Mr. Wopsle finished off with a most terrifically snarling
3106 passage from Richard the Third, and seemed to think he had done quite
3107 enough to account for it when he added, “--as the poet says.”
3108
3109 And here I may remark that when Mr. Wopsle referred to me, he considered
3110 it a necessary part of such reference to rumple my hair and poke it into
3111 my eyes. I cannot conceive why everybody of his standing who visited
3112 at our house should always have put me through the same inflammatory
3113 process under similar circumstances. Yet I do not call to mind that I
3114 was ever in my earlier youth the subject of remark in our social family
3115 circle, but some large-handed person took some such ophthalmic steps to
3116 patronize me.
3117
3118 All this while, the strange man looked at nobody but me, and looked at
3119 me as if he were determined to have a shot at me at last, and bring me
3120 down. But he said nothing after offering his Blue Blazes observation,
3121 until the glasses of rum and water were brought; and then he made his
3122 shot, and a most extraordinary shot it was.
3123
3124 It was not a verbal remark, but a proceeding in dumb-show, and was
3125 pointedly addressed to me. He stirred his rum and water pointedly at me,
3126 and he tasted his rum and water pointedly at me. And he stirred it and
3127 he tasted it; not with a spoon that was brought to him, but with a file.
3128
3129 He did this so that nobody but I saw the file; and when he had done it
3130 he wiped the file and put it in a breast-pocket. I knew it to be
3131 Joe’s file, and I knew that he knew my convict, the moment I saw the
3132 instrument. I sat gazing at him, spell-bound. But he now reclined on his
3133 settle, taking very little notice of me, and talking principally about
3134 turnips.
3135
3136 There was a delicious sense of cleaning-up and making a quiet pause
3137 before going on in life afresh, in our village on Saturday nights, which
3138 stimulated Joe to dare to stay out half an hour longer on Saturdays
3139 than at other times. The half-hour and the rum and water running out
3140 together, Joe got up to go, and took me by the hand.
3141
3142 “Stop half a moment, Mr. Gargery,” said the strange man. “I think I’ve
3143 got a bright new shilling somewhere in my pocket, and if I have, the boy
3144 shall have it.”
3145
3146 He looked it out from a handful of small change, folded it in some
3147 crumpled paper, and gave it to me. “Yours!” said he. “Mind! Your own.”
3148
3149 I thanked him, staring at him far beyond the bounds of good manners,
3150 and holding tight to Joe. He gave Joe good-night, and he gave Mr. Wopsle
3151 good-night (who went out with us), and he gave me only a look with his
3152 aiming eye,--no, not a look, for he shut it up, but wonders may be done
3153 with an eye by hiding it.
3154
3155 On the way home, if I had been in a humor for talking, the talk must
3156 have been all on my side, for Mr. Wopsle parted from us at the door of
3157 the Jolly Bargemen, and Joe went all the way home with his mouth wide
3158 open, to rinse the rum out with as much air as possible. But I was in
3159 a manner stupefied by this turning up of my old misdeed and old
3160 acquaintance, and could think of nothing else.
3161
3162 My sister was not in a very bad temper when we presented ourselves in
3163 the kitchen, and Joe was encouraged by that unusual circumstance to tell
3164 her about the bright shilling. “A bad un, I’ll be bound,” said Mrs. Joe
3165 triumphantly, “or he wouldn’t have given it to the boy! Let’s look at
3166 it.”
3167
3168 I took it out of the paper, and it proved to be a good one. “But what’s
3169 this?” said Mrs. Joe, throwing down the shilling and catching up the
3170 paper. “Two One-Pound notes?”
3171
3172 Nothing less than two fat sweltering one-pound notes that seemed to have
3173 been on terms of the warmest intimacy with all the cattle-markets in
3174 the county. Joe caught up his hat again, and ran with them to the Jolly
3175 Bargemen to restore them to their owner. While he was gone, I sat down
3176 on my usual stool and looked vacantly at my sister, feeling pretty sure
3177 that the man would not be there.
3178
3179 Presently, Joe came back, saying that the man was gone, but that he,
3180 Joe, had left word at the Three Jolly Bargemen concerning the notes.
3181 Then my sister sealed them up in a piece of paper, and put them under
3182 some dried rose-leaves in an ornamental teapot on the top of a press in
3183 the state parlor. There they remained, a nightmare to me, many and many
3184 a night and day.
3185
3186 I had sadly broken sleep when I got to bed, through thinking of the
3187 strange man taking aim at me with his invisible gun, and of the guiltily
3188 coarse and common thing it was, to be on secret terms of conspiracy with
3189 convicts,--a feature in my low career that I had previously forgotten.
3190 I was haunted by the file too. A dread possessed me that when I least
3191 expected it, the file would reappear. I coaxed myself to sleep by
3192 thinking of Miss Havisham’s, next Wednesday; and in my sleep I saw
3193 the file coming at me out of a door, without seeing who held it, and I
3194 screamed myself awake.
3195
3196
3197
3198
3199 Chapter XI
3200
3201 At the appointed time I returned to Miss Havisham’s, and my hesitating
3202 ring at the gate brought out Estella. She locked it after admitting
3203 me, as she had done before, and again preceded me into the dark passage
3204 where her candle stood. She took no notice of me until she had the
3205 candle in her hand, when she looked over her shoulder, superciliously
3206 saying, “You are to come this way to-day,” and took me to quite another
3207 part of the house.
3208
3209 The passage was a long one, and seemed to pervade the whole square
3210 basement of the Manor House. We traversed but one side of the square,
3211 however, and at the end of it she stopped, and put her candle down and
3212 opened a door. Here, the daylight reappeared, and I found myself in
3213 a small paved courtyard, the opposite side of which was formed by a
3214 detached dwelling-house, that looked as if it had once belonged to the
3215 manager or head clerk of the extinct brewery. There was a clock in the
3216 outer wall of this house. Like the clock in Miss Havisham’s room, and
3217 like Miss Havisham’s watch, it had stopped at twenty minutes to nine.
3218
3219 We went in at the door, which stood open, and into a gloomy room with a
3220 low ceiling, on the ground-floor at the back. There was some company in
3221 the room, and Estella said to me as she joined it, “You are to go and
3222 stand there boy, till you are wanted.” “There”, being the window, I
3223 crossed to it, and stood “there,” in a very uncomfortable state of mind,
3224 looking out.
3225
3226 It opened to the ground, and looked into a most miserable corner of the
3227 neglected garden, upon a rank ruin of cabbage-stalks, and one box-tree
3228 that had been clipped round long ago, like a pudding, and had a new
3229 growth at the top of it, out of shape and of a different color, as if
3230 that part of the pudding had stuck to the saucepan and got burnt. This
3231 was my homely thought, as I contemplated the box-tree. There had been
3232 some light snow, overnight, and it lay nowhere else to my knowledge;
3233 but, it had not quite melted from the cold shadow of this bit of garden,
3234 and the wind caught it up in little eddies and threw it at the window,
3235 as if it pelted me for coming there.
3236
3237 I divined that my coming had stopped conversation in the room, and that
3238 its other occupants were looking at me. I could see nothing of the room
3239 except the shining of the fire in the window-glass, but I stiffened in
3240 all my joints with the consciousness that I was under close inspection.
3241
3242 There were three ladies in the room and one gentleman. Before I had been
3243 standing at the window five minutes, they somehow conveyed to me that
3244 they were all toadies and humbugs, but that each of them pretended not
3245 to know that the others were toadies and humbugs: because the admission
3246 that he or she did know it, would have made him or her out to be a toady
3247 and humbug.
3248
3249 They all had a listless and dreary air of waiting somebody’s pleasure,
3250 and the most talkative of the ladies had to speak quite rigidly to
3251 repress a yawn. This lady, whose name was Camilla, very much reminded
3252 me of my sister, with the difference that she was older, and (as I found
3253 when I caught sight of her) of a blunter cast of features. Indeed, when
3254 I knew her better I began to think it was a Mercy she had any features
3255 at all, so very blank and high was the dead wall of her face.
3256
3257 “Poor dear soul!” said this lady, with an abruptness of manner quite my
3258 sister’s. “Nobody’s enemy but his own!”
3259
3260 “It would be much more commendable to be somebody else’s enemy,” said
3261 the gentleman; “far more natural.”
3262
3263 “Cousin Raymond,” observed another lady, “we are to love our neighbor.”
3264
3265 “Sarah Pocket,” returned Cousin Raymond, “if a man is not his own
3266 neighbor, who is?”
3267
3268 Miss Pocket laughed, and Camilla laughed and said (checking a yawn),
3269 “The idea!” But I thought they seemed to think it rather a good
3270 idea too. The other lady, who had not spoken yet, said gravely and
3271 emphatically, “Very true!”
3272
3273 “Poor soul!” Camilla presently went on (I knew they had all been looking
3274 at me in the mean time), “he is so very strange! Would anyone believe
3275 that when Tom’s wife died, he actually could not be induced to see the
3276 importance of the children’s having the deepest of trimmings to their
3277 mourning? ‘Good Lord!’ says he, ‘Camilla, what can it signify so long
3278 as the poor bereaved little things are in black?’ So like Matthew! The
3279 idea!”
3280
3281 “Good points in him, good points in him,” said Cousin Raymond; “Heaven
3282 forbid I should deny good points in him; but he never had, and he never
3283 will have, any sense of the proprieties.”
3284
3285 “You know I was obliged,” said Camilla,--“I was obliged to be firm. I
3286 said, ‘It WILL NOT DO, for the credit of the family.’ I told him that,
3287 without deep trimmings, the family was disgraced. I cried about it from
3288 breakfast till dinner. I injured my digestion. And at last he flung out
3289 in his violent way, and said, with a D, ‘Then do as you like.’ Thank
3290 Goodness it will always be a consolation to me to know that I instantly
3291 went out in a pouring rain and bought the things.”
3292
3293 “He paid for them, did he not?” asked Estella.
3294
3295 “It’s not the question, my dear child, who paid for them,” returned
3296 Camilla. “I bought them. And I shall often think of that with peace,
3297 when I wake up in the night.”
3298
3299 The ringing of a distant bell, combined with the echoing of some cry or
3300 call along the passage by which I had come, interrupted the conversation
3301 and caused Estella to say to me, “Now, boy!” On my turning round, they
3302 all looked at me with the utmost contempt, and, as I went out, I heard
3303 Sarah Pocket say, “Well I am sure! What next!” and Camilla add, with
3304 indignation, “Was there ever such a fancy! The i-de-a!”
3305
3306 As we were going with our candle along the dark passage, Estella stopped
3307 all of a sudden, and, facing round, said in her taunting manner, with
3308 her face quite close to mine,--
3309
3310 “Well?”
3311
3312 “Well, miss?” I answered, almost falling over her and checking myself.
3313
3314 She stood looking at me, and, of course, I stood looking at her.
3315
3316 “Am I pretty?”
3317
3318 “Yes; I think you are very pretty.”
3319
3320 “Am I insulting?”
3321
3322 “Not so much so as you were last time,” said I.
3323
3324 “Not so much so?”
3325
3326 “No.”
3327
3328 She fired when she asked the last question, and she slapped my face with
3329 such force as she had, when I answered it.
3330
3331 “Now?” said she. “You little coarse monster, what do you think of me
3332 now?”
3333
3334 “I shall not tell you.”
3335
3336 “Because you are going to tell upstairs. Is that it?”
3337
3338 “No,” said I, “that’s not it.”
3339
3340 “Why don’t you cry again, you little wretch?”
3341
3342 “Because I’ll never cry for you again,” said I. Which was, I suppose, as
3343 false a declaration as ever was made; for I was inwardly crying for her
3344 then, and I know what I know of the pain she cost me afterwards.
3345
3346 We went on our way upstairs after this episode; and, as we were going
3347 up, we met a gentleman groping his way down.
3348
3349 “Whom have we here?” asked the gentleman, stopping and looking at me.
3350
3351 “A boy,” said Estella.
3352
3353 He was a burly man of an exceedingly dark complexion, with an
3354 exceedingly large head, and a corresponding large hand. He took my chin
3355 in his large hand and turned up my face to have a look at me by the
3356 light of the candle. He was prematurely bald on the top of his head, and
3357 had bushy black eyebrows that wouldn’t lie down but stood up bristling.
3358 His eyes were set very deep in his head, and were disagreeably sharp and
3359 suspicious. He had a large watch-chain, and strong black dots where his
3360 beard and whiskers would have been if he had let them. He was nothing
3361 to me, and I could have had no foresight then, that he ever would be
3362 anything to me, but it happened that I had this opportunity of observing
3363 him well.
3364
3365 “Boy of the neighborhood? Hey?” said he.
3366
3367 “Yes, sir,” said I.
3368
3369 “How do you come here?”
3370
3371 “Miss Havisham sent for me, sir,” I explained.
3372
3373 “Well! Behave yourself. I have a pretty large experience of boys, and
3374 you’re a bad set of fellows. Now mind!” said he, biting the side of his
3375 great forefinger as he frowned at me, “you behave yourself!”
3376
3377 With those words, he released me--which I was glad of, for his hand
3378 smelt of scented soap--and went his way downstairs. I wondered whether
3379 he could be a doctor; but no, I thought; he couldn’t be a doctor, or he
3380 would have a quieter and more persuasive manner. There was not much time
3381 to consider the subject, for we were soon in Miss Havisham’s room, where
3382 she and everything else were just as I had left them. Estella left me
3383 standing near the door, and I stood there until Miss Havisham cast her
3384 eyes upon me from the dressing-table.
3385
3386 “So!” she said, without being startled or surprised: “the days have worn
3387 away, have they?”
3388
3389 “Yes, ma’am. To-day is--”
3390
3391 “There, there, there!” with the impatient movement of her fingers. “I
3392 don’t want to know. Are you ready to play?”
3393
3394 I was obliged to answer in some confusion, “I don’t think I am, ma’am.”
3395
3396 “Not at cards again?” she demanded, with a searching look.
3397
3398 “Yes, ma’am; I could do that, if I was wanted.”
3399
3400 “Since this house strikes you old and grave, boy,” said Miss Havisham,
3401 impatiently, “and you are unwilling to play, are you willing to work?”
3402
3403 I could answer this inquiry with a better heart than I had been able to
3404 find for the other question, and I said I was quite willing.
3405
3406 “Then go into that opposite room,” said she, pointing at the door behind
3407 me with her withered hand, “and wait there till I come.”
3408
3409 I crossed the staircase landing, and entered the room she indicated.
3410 From that room, too, the daylight was completely excluded, and it had an
3411 airless smell that was oppressive. A fire had been lately kindled in
3412 the damp old-fashioned grate, and it was more disposed to go out than
3413 to burn up, and the reluctant smoke which hung in the room seemed colder
3414 than the clearer air,--like our own marsh mist. Certain wintry branches
3415 of candles on the high chimney-piece faintly lighted the chamber; or it
3416 would be more expressive to say, faintly troubled its darkness. It was
3417 spacious, and I dare say had once been handsome, but every discernible
3418 thing in it was covered with dust and mould, and dropping to pieces. The
3419 most prominent object was a long table with a tablecloth spread on it,
3420 as if a feast had been in preparation when the house and the clocks all
3421 stopped together. An epergne or centre-piece of some kind was in the
3422 middle of this cloth; it was so heavily overhung with cobwebs that its
3423 form was quite undistinguishable; and, as I looked along the yellow
3424 expanse out of which I remember its seeming to grow, like a black
3425 fungus, I saw speckle-legged spiders with blotchy bodies running home
3426 to it, and running out from it, as if some circumstances of the greatest
3427 public importance had just transpired in the spider community.
3428
3429 I heard the mice too, rattling behind the panels, as if the same
3430 occurrence were important to their interests. But the black beetles took
3431 no notice of the agitation, and groped about the hearth in a ponderous
3432 elderly way, as if they were short-sighted and hard of hearing, and not
3433 on terms with one another.
3434
3435 These crawling things had fascinated my attention, and I was watching
3436 them from a distance, when Miss Havisham laid a hand upon my shoulder.
3437 In her other hand she had a crutch-headed stick on which she leaned, and
3438 she looked like the Witch of the place.
3439
3440 “This,” said she, pointing to the long table with her stick, “is where I
3441 will be laid when I am dead. They shall come and look at me here.”
3442
3443 With some vague misgiving that she might get upon the table then and
3444 there and die at once, the complete realization of the ghastly waxwork
3445 at the Fair, I shrank under her touch.
3446
3447 “What do you think that is?” she asked me, again pointing with her
3448 stick; “that, where those cobwebs are?”
3449
3450 “I can’t guess what it is, ma’am.”
3451
3452 “It’s a great cake. A bride-cake. Mine!”
3453
3454 She looked all round the room in a glaring manner, and then said,
3455 leaning on me while her hand twitched my shoulder, “Come, come, come!
3456 Walk me, walk me!”
3457
3458 I made out from this, that the work I had to do, was to walk Miss
3459 Havisham round and round the room. Accordingly, I started at once, and
3460 she leaned upon my shoulder, and we went away at a pace that might have
3461 been an imitation (founded on my first impulse under that roof) of Mr.
3462 Pumblechook’s chaise-cart.
3463
3464 She was not physically strong, and after a little time said, “Slower!”
3465 Still, we went at an impatient fitful speed, and as we went, she
3466 twitched the hand upon my shoulder, and worked her mouth, and led me to
3467 believe that we were going fast because her thoughts went fast. After a
3468 while she said, “Call Estella!” so I went out on the landing and
3469 roared that name as I had done on the previous occasion. When her light
3470 appeared, I returned to Miss Havisham, and we started away again round
3471 and round the room.
3472
3473 If only Estella had come to be a spectator of our proceedings, I should
3474 have felt sufficiently discontented; but as she brought with her the
3475 three ladies and the gentleman whom I had seen below, I didn’t know
3476 what to do. In my politeness, I would have stopped; but Miss
3477 Havisham twitched my shoulder, and we posted on,--with a shame-faced
3478 consciousness on my part that they would think it was all my doing.
3479
3480 “Dear Miss Havisham,” said Miss Sarah Pocket. “How well you look!”
3481
3482 “I do not,” returned Miss Havisham. “I am yellow skin and bone.”
3483
3484 Camilla brightened when Miss Pocket met with this rebuff; and she
3485 murmured, as she plaintively contemplated Miss Havisham, “Poor dear
3486 soul! Certainly not to be expected to look well, poor thing. The idea!”
3487
3488 “And how are you?” said Miss Havisham to Camilla. As we were close to
3489 Camilla then, I would have stopped as a matter of course, only Miss
3490 Havisham wouldn’t stop. We swept on, and I felt that I was highly
3491 obnoxious to Camilla.
3492
3493 “Thank you, Miss Havisham,” she returned, “I am as well as can be
3494 expected.”
3495
3496 “Why, what’s the matter with you?” asked Miss Havisham, with exceeding
3497 sharpness.
3498
3499 “Nothing worth mentioning,” replied Camilla. “I don’t wish to make a
3500 display of my feelings, but I have habitually thought of you more in the
3501 night than I am quite equal to.”
3502
3503 “Then don’t think of me,” retorted Miss Havisham.
3504
3505 “Very easily said!” remarked Camilla, amiably repressing a sob, while a
3506 hitch came into her upper lip, and her tears overflowed. “Raymond is a
3507 witness what ginger and sal volatile I am obliged to take in the night.
3508 Raymond is a witness what nervous jerkings I have in my legs. Chokings
3509 and nervous jerkings, however, are nothing new to me when I think with
3510 anxiety of those I love. If I could be less affectionate and sensitive,
3511 I should have a better digestion and an iron set of nerves. I am sure
3512 I wish it could be so. But as to not thinking of you in the night--The
3513 idea!” Here, a burst of tears.
3514
3515 The Raymond referred to, I understood to be the gentleman present, and
3516 him I understood to be Mr. Camilla. He came to the rescue at this point,
3517 and said in a consolatory and complimentary voice, “Camilla, my dear, it
3518 is well known that your family feelings are gradually undermining you to
3519 the extent of making one of your legs shorter than the other.”
3520
3521 “I am not aware,” observed the grave lady whose voice I had heard but
3522 once, “that to think of any person is to make a great claim upon that
3523 person, my dear.”
3524
3525 Miss Sarah Pocket, whom I now saw to be a little dry, brown, corrugated
3526 old woman, with a small face that might have been made of walnut-shells,
3527 and a large mouth like a cat’s without the whiskers, supported this
3528 position by saying, “No, indeed, my dear. Hem!”
3529
3530 “Thinking is easy enough,” said the grave lady.
3531
3532 “What is easier, you know?” assented Miss Sarah Pocket.
3533
3534 “Oh, yes, yes!” cried Camilla, whose fermenting feelings appeared to
3535 rise from her legs to her bosom. “It’s all very true! It’s a weakness
3536 to be so affectionate, but I can’t help it. No doubt my health would be
3537 much better if it was otherwise, still I wouldn’t change my disposition
3538 if I could. It’s the cause of much suffering, but it’s a consolation to
3539 know I posses it, when I wake up in the night.” Here another burst of
3540 feeling.
3541
3542 Miss Havisham and I had never stopped all this time, but kept going
3543 round and round the room; now brushing against the skirts of the
3544 visitors, now giving them the whole length of the dismal chamber.
3545
3546 “There’s Matthew!” said Camilla. “Never mixing with any natural ties,
3547 never coming here to see how Miss Havisham is! I have taken to the sofa
3548 with my staylace cut, and have lain there hours insensible, with my head
3549 over the side, and my hair all down, and my feet I don’t know where--”
3550
3551 (“Much higher than your head, my love,” said Mr. Camilla.)
3552
3553 “I have gone off into that state, hours and hours, on account of
3554 Matthew’s strange and inexplicable conduct, and nobody has thanked me.”
3555
3556 “Really I must say I should think not!” interposed the grave lady.
3557
3558 “You see, my dear,” added Miss Sarah Pocket (a blandly vicious
3559 personage), “the question to put to yourself is, who did you expect to
3560 thank you, my love?”
3561
3562 “Without expecting any thanks, or anything of the sort,” resumed
3563 Camilla, “I have remained in that state, hours and hours, and Raymond
3564 is a witness of the extent to which I have choked, and what the total
3565 inefficacy of ginger has been, and I have been heard at the piano-forte
3566 tuner’s across the street, where the poor mistaken children have even
3567 supposed it to be pigeons cooing at a distance,--and now to be told--”
3568 Here Camilla put her hand to her throat, and began to be quite chemical
3569 as to the formation of new combinations there.
3570
3571 When this same Matthew was mentioned, Miss Havisham stopped me and
3572 herself, and stood looking at the speaker. This change had a great
3573 influence in bringing Camilla’s chemistry to a sudden end.
3574
3575 “Matthew will come and see me at last,” said Miss Havisham, sternly,
3576 “when I am laid on that table. That will be his place,--there,” striking
3577 the table with her stick, “at my head! And yours will be there! And your
3578 husband’s there! And Sarah Pocket’s there! And Georgiana’s there! Now
3579 you all know where to take your stations when you come to feast upon me.
3580 And now go!”
3581
3582 At the mention of each name, she had struck the table with her stick in
3583 a new place. She now said, “Walk me, walk me!” and we went on again.
3584
3585 “I suppose there’s nothing to be done,” exclaimed Camilla, “but comply
3586 and depart. It’s something to have seen the object of one’s love and
3587 duty for even so short a time. I shall think of it with a melancholy
3588 satisfaction when I wake up in the night. I wish Matthew could have
3589 that comfort, but he sets it at defiance. I am determined not to make a
3590 display of my feelings, but it’s very hard to be told one wants to feast
3591 on one’s relations,--as if one was a Giant,--and to be told to go. The
3592 bare idea!”
3593
3594 Mr. Camilla interposing, as Mrs. Camilla laid her hand upon her heaving
3595 bosom, that lady assumed an unnatural fortitude of manner which I
3596 supposed to be expressive of an intention to drop and choke when out of
3597 view, and kissing her hand to Miss Havisham, was escorted forth. Sarah
3598 Pocket and Georgiana contended who should remain last; but Sarah was
3599 too knowing to be outdone, and ambled round Georgiana with that artful
3600 slipperiness that the latter was obliged to take precedence. Sarah
3601 Pocket then made her separate effect of departing with, “Bless you, Miss
3602 Havisham dear!” and with a smile of forgiving pity on her walnut-shell
3603 countenance for the weaknesses of the rest.
3604
3605 While Estella was away lighting them down, Miss Havisham still walked
3606 with her hand on my shoulder, but more and more slowly. At last she
3607 stopped before the fire, and said, after muttering and looking at it
3608 some seconds,--
3609
3610 “This is my birthday, Pip.”
3611
3612 I was going to wish her many happy returns, when she lifted her stick.
3613
3614 “I don’t suffer it to be spoken of. I don’t suffer those who were here
3615 just now, or any one to speak of it. They come here on the day, but they
3616 dare not refer to it.”
3617
3618 Of course I made no further effort to refer to it.
3619
3620 “On this day of the year, long before you were born, this heap of
3621 decay,” stabbing with her crutched stick at the pile of cobwebs on the
3622 table, but not touching it, “was brought here. It and I have worn away
3623 together. The mice have gnawed at it, and sharper teeth than teeth of
3624 mice have gnawed at me.”
3625
3626 She held the head of her stick against her heart as she stood looking
3627 at the table; she in her once white dress, all yellow and withered; the
3628 once white cloth all yellow and withered; everything around in a state
3629 to crumble under a touch.
3630
3631 “When the ruin is complete,” said she, with a ghastly look, “and when
3632 they lay me dead, in my bride’s dress on the bride’s table,--which shall
3633 be done, and which will be the finished curse upon him,--so much the
3634 better if it is done on this day!”
3635
3636 She stood looking at the table as if she stood looking at her own figure
3637 lying there. I remained quiet. Estella returned, and she too remained
3638 quiet. It seemed to me that we continued thus for a long time. In
3639 the heavy air of the room, and the heavy darkness that brooded in its
3640 remoter corners, I even had an alarming fancy that Estella and I might
3641 presently begin to decay.
3642
3643 At length, not coming out of her distraught state by degrees, but in an
3644 instant, Miss Havisham said, “Let me see you two play cards; why have
3645 you not begun?” With that, we returned to her room, and sat down as
3646 before; I was beggared, as before; and again, as before, Miss Havisham
3647 watched us all the time, directed my attention to Estella’s beauty, and
3648 made me notice it the more by trying her jewels on Estella’s breast and
3649 hair.
3650
3651 Estella, for her part, likewise treated me as before, except that she
3652 did not condescend to speak. When we had played some half-dozen games,
3653 a day was appointed for my return, and I was taken down into the yard
3654 to be fed in the former dog-like manner. There, too, I was again left to
3655 wander about as I liked.
3656
3657 It is not much to the purpose whether a gate in that garden wall which
3658 I had scrambled up to peep over on the last occasion was, on that last
3659 occasion, open or shut. Enough that I saw no gate then, and that I
3660 saw one now. As it stood open, and as I knew that Estella had let
3661 the visitors out,--for she had returned with the keys in her hand,--I
3662 strolled into the garden, and strolled all over it. It was quite a
3663 wilderness, and there were old melon-frames and cucumber-frames in it,
3664 which seemed in their decline to have produced a spontaneous growth of
3665 weak attempts at pieces of old hats and boots, with now and then a weedy
3666 offshoot into the likeness of a battered saucepan.
3667
3668 When I had exhausted the garden and a greenhouse with nothing in it but
3669 a fallen-down grape-vine and some bottles, I found myself in the dismal
3670 corner upon which I had looked out of the window. Never questioning for
3671 a moment that the house was now empty, I looked in at another window,
3672 and found myself, to my great surprise, exchanging a broad stare with a
3673 pale young gentleman with red eyelids and light hair.
3674
3675 This pale young gentleman quickly disappeared, and reappeared beside me.
3676 He had been at his books when I had found myself staring at him, and I
3677 now saw that he was inky.
3678
3679 “Halloa!” said he, “young fellow!”
3680
3681 Halloa being a general observation which I had usually observed to
3682 be best answered by itself, I said, “Halloa!” politely omitting young
3683 fellow.
3684
3685 “Who let you in?” said he.
3686
3687 “Miss Estella.”
3688
3689 “Who gave you leave to prowl about?”
3690
3691 “Miss Estella.”
3692
3693 “Come and fight,” said the pale young gentleman.
3694
3695 What could I do but follow him? I have often asked myself the question
3696 since; but what else could I do? His manner was so final, and I was
3697 so astonished, that I followed where he led, as if I had been under a
3698 spell.
3699
3700 “Stop a minute, though,” he said, wheeling round before we had gone many
3701 paces. “I ought to give you a reason for fighting, too. There it is!”
3702 In a most irritating manner he instantly slapped his hands against one
3703 another, daintily flung one of his legs up behind him, pulled my hair,
3704 slapped his hands again, dipped his head, and butted it into my stomach.
3705
3706 The bull-like proceeding last mentioned, besides that it was
3707 unquestionably to be regarded in the light of a liberty, was
3708 particularly disagreeable just after bread and meat. I therefore hit out
3709 at him and was going to hit out again, when he said, “Aha! Would you?”
3710 and began dancing backwards and forwards in a manner quite unparalleled
3711 within my limited experience.
3712
3713 “Laws of the game!” said he. Here, he skipped from his left leg on to
3714 his right. “Regular rules!” Here, he skipped from his right leg on to
3715 his left. “Come to the ground, and go through the preliminaries!” Here,
3716 he dodged backwards and forwards, and did all sorts of things while I
3717 looked helplessly at him.
3718
3719 I was secretly afraid of him when I saw him so dexterous; but I felt
3720 morally and physically convinced that his light head of hair could have
3721 had no business in the pit of my stomach, and that I had a right to
3722 consider it irrelevant when so obtruded on my attention. Therefore, I
3723 followed him without a word, to a retired nook of the garden, formed by
3724 the junction of two walls and screened by some rubbish. On his asking me
3725 if I was satisfied with the ground, and on my replying Yes, he begged my
3726 leave to absent himself for a moment, and quickly returned with a bottle
3727 of water and a sponge dipped in vinegar. “Available for both,” he said,
3728 placing these against the wall. And then fell to pulling off, not
3729 only his jacket and waistcoat, but his shirt too, in a manner at once
3730 light-hearted, business-like, and bloodthirsty.
3731
3732 Although he did not look very healthy,--having pimples on his face, and
3733 a breaking out at his mouth,--these dreadful preparations quite appalled
3734 me. I judged him to be about my own age, but he was much taller, and he
3735 had a way of spinning himself about that was full of appearance. For
3736 the rest, he was a young gentleman in a gray suit (when not denuded
3737 for battle), with his elbows, knees, wrists, and heels considerably in
3738 advance of the rest of him as to development.
3739
3740 My heart failed me when I saw him squaring at me with every
3741 demonstration of mechanical nicety, and eyeing my anatomy as if he were
3742 minutely choosing his bone. I never have been so surprised in my life,
3743 as I was when I let out the first blow, and saw him lying on his
3744 back, looking up at me with a bloody nose and his face exceedingly
3745 fore-shortened.
3746
3747 But, he was on his feet directly, and after sponging himself with
3748 a great show of dexterity began squaring again. The second greatest
3749 surprise I have ever had in my life was seeing him on his back again,
3750 looking up at me out of a black eye.
3751
3752 His spirit inspired me with great respect. He seemed to have no
3753 strength, and he never once hit me hard, and he was always knocked down;
3754 but he would be up again in a moment, sponging himself or drinking out
3755 of the water-bottle, with the greatest satisfaction in seconding himself
3756 according to form, and then came at me with an air and a show that made
3757 me believe he really was going to do for me at last. He got heavily
3758 bruised, for I am sorry to record that the more I hit him, the harder I
3759 hit him; but he came up again and again and again, until at last he got
3760 a bad fall with the back of his head against the wall. Even after that
3761 crisis in our affairs, he got up and turned round and round confusedly a
3762 few times, not knowing where I was; but finally went on his knees to his
3763 sponge and threw it up: at the same time panting out, “That means you
3764 have won.”
3765
3766 He seemed so brave and innocent, that although I had not proposed the
3767 contest, I felt but a gloomy satisfaction in my victory. Indeed, I go
3768 so far as to hope that I regarded myself while dressing as a species of
3769 savage young wolf or other wild beast. However, I got dressed, darkly
3770 wiping my sanguinary face at intervals, and I said, “Can I help you?”
3771 and he said “No thankee,” and I said “Good afternoon,” and he said “Same
3772 to you.”
3773
3774 When I got into the courtyard, I found Estella waiting with the keys.
3775 But she neither asked me where I had been, nor why I had kept her
3776 waiting; and there was a bright flush upon her face, as though something
3777 had happened to delight her. Instead of going straight to the gate, too,
3778 she stepped back into the passage, and beckoned me.
3779
3780 “Come here! You may kiss me, if you like.”
3781
3782 I kissed her cheek as she turned it to me. I think I would have gone
3783 through a great deal to kiss her cheek. But I felt that the kiss was
3784 given to the coarse common boy as a piece of money might have been, and
3785 that it was worth nothing.
3786
3787 What with the birthday visitors, and what with the cards, and what with
3788 the fight, my stay had lasted so long, that when I neared home the light
3789 on the spit of sand off the point on the marshes was gleaming against
3790 a black night-sky, and Joe’s furnace was flinging a path of fire across
3791 the road.
3792
3793
3794
3795
3796 Chapter XII
3797
3798 My mind grew very uneasy on the subject of the pale young gentleman. The
3799 more I thought of the fight, and recalled the pale young gentleman on
3800 his back in various stages of puffy and incrimsoned countenance, the
3801 more certain it appeared that something would be done to me. I felt that
3802 the pale young gentleman’s blood was on my head, and that the Law would
3803 avenge it. Without having any definite idea of the penalties I had
3804 incurred, it was clear to me that village boys could not go stalking
3805 about the country, ravaging the houses of gentlefolks and pitching into
3806 the studious youth of England, without laying themselves open to severe
3807 punishment. For some days, I even kept close at home, and looked out at
3808 the kitchen door with the greatest caution and trepidation before going
3809 on an errand, lest the officers of the County Jail should pounce upon
3810 me. The pale young gentleman’s nose had stained my trousers, and I tried
3811 to wash out that evidence of my guilt in the dead of night. I had cut
3812 my knuckles against the pale young gentleman’s teeth, and I twisted my
3813 imagination into a thousand tangles, as I devised incredible ways of
3814 accounting for that damnatory circumstance when I should be haled before
3815 the Judges.
3816
3817 When the day came round for my return to the scene of the deed of
3818 violence, my terrors reached their height. Whether myrmidons of Justice,
3819 specially sent down from London, would be lying in ambush behind the
3820 gate;--whether Miss Havisham, preferring to take personal vengeance for
3821 an outrage done to her house, might rise in those grave-clothes of hers,
3822 draw a pistol, and shoot me dead:--whether suborned boys--a numerous
3823 band of mercenaries--might be engaged to fall upon me in the brewery,
3824 and cuff me until I was no more;--it was high testimony to my confidence
3825 in the spirit of the pale young gentleman, that I never imagined him
3826 accessory to these retaliations; they always came into my mind as the
3827 acts of injudicious relatives of his, goaded on by the state of his
3828 visage and an indignant sympathy with the family features.
3829
3830 However, go to Miss Havisham’s I must, and go I did. And behold! nothing
3831 came of the late struggle. It was not alluded to in any way, and no pale
3832 young gentleman was to be discovered on the premises. I found the same
3833 gate open, and I explored the garden, and even looked in at the windows
3834 of the detached house; but my view was suddenly stopped by the closed
3835 shutters within, and all was lifeless. Only in the corner where
3836 the combat had taken place could I detect any evidence of the young
3837 gentleman’s existence. There were traces of his gore in that spot, and I
3838 covered them with garden-mould from the eye of man.
3839
3840 On the broad landing between Miss Havisham’s own room and that other
3841 room in which the long table was laid out, I saw a garden-chair,--a
3842 light chair on wheels, that you pushed from behind. It had been placed
3843 there since my last visit, and I entered, that same day, on a regular
3844 occupation of pushing Miss Havisham in this chair (when she was tired of
3845 walking with her hand upon my shoulder) round her own room, and across
3846 the landing, and round the other room. Over and over and over again,
3847 we would make these journeys, and sometimes they would last as long as
3848 three hours at a stretch. I insensibly fall into a general mention of
3849 these journeys as numerous, because it was at once settled that I should
3850 return every alternate day at noon for these purposes, and because I am
3851 now going to sum up a period of at least eight or ten months.
3852
3853 As we began to be more used to one another, Miss Havisham talked more
3854 to me, and asked me such questions as what had I learnt and what was
3855 I going to be? I told her I was going to be apprenticed to Joe, I
3856 believed; and I enlarged upon my knowing nothing and wanting to know
3857 everything, in the hope that she might offer some help towards that
3858 desirable end. But she did not; on the contrary, she seemed to prefer my
3859 being ignorant. Neither did she ever give me any money,--or anything
3860 but my daily dinner,--nor ever stipulate that I should be paid for my
3861 services.
3862
3863 Estella was always about, and always let me in and out, but never told
3864 me I might kiss her again. Sometimes, she would coldly tolerate me;
3865 sometimes, she would condescend to me; sometimes, she would be quite
3866 familiar with me; sometimes, she would tell me energetically that she
3867 hated me. Miss Havisham would often ask me in a whisper, or when we were
3868 alone, “Does she grow prettier and prettier, Pip?” And when I said yes
3869 (for indeed she did), would seem to enjoy it greedily. Also, when we
3870 played at cards Miss Havisham would look on, with a miserly relish of
3871 Estella’s moods, whatever they were. And sometimes, when her moods were
3872 so many and so contradictory of one another that I was puzzled what
3873 to say or do, Miss Havisham would embrace her with lavish fondness,
3874 murmuring something in her ear that sounded like “Break their hearts my
3875 pride and hope, break their hearts and have no mercy!”
3876
3877 There was a song Joe used to hum fragments of at the forge, of which the
3878 burden was Old Clem. This was not a very ceremonious way of rendering
3879 homage to a patron saint, but I believe Old Clem stood in that relation
3880 towards smiths. It was a song that imitated the measure of beating upon
3881 iron, and was a mere lyrical excuse for the introduction of Old Clem’s
3882 respected name. Thus, you were to hammer boys round--Old Clem! With a
3883 thump and a sound--Old Clem! Beat it out, beat it out--Old Clem! With a
3884 clink for the stout--Old Clem! Blow the fire, blow the fire--Old
3885 Clem! Roaring dryer, soaring higher--Old Clem! One day soon after the
3886 appearance of the chair, Miss Havisham suddenly saying to me, with the
3887 impatient movement of her fingers, “There, there, there! Sing!” I was
3888 surprised into crooning this ditty as I pushed her over the floor. It
3889 happened so to catch her fancy that she took it up in a low brooding
3890 voice as if she were singing in her sleep. After that, it became
3891 customary with us to have it as we moved about, and Estella would often
3892 join in; though the whole strain was so subdued, even when there were
3893 three of us, that it made less noise in the grim old house than the
3894 lightest breath of wind.
3895
3896 What could I become with these surroundings? How could my character fail
3897 to be influenced by them? Is it to be wondered at if my thoughts were
3898 dazed, as my eyes were, when I came out into the natural light from the
3899 misty yellow rooms?
3900
3901 Perhaps I might have told Joe about the pale young gentleman, if I had
3902 not previously been betrayed into those enormous inventions to which
3903 I had confessed. Under the circumstances, I felt that Joe could hardly
3904 fail to discern in the pale young gentleman, an appropriate passenger
3905 to be put into the black velvet coach; therefore, I said nothing of him.
3906 Besides, that shrinking from having Miss Havisham and Estella discussed,
3907 which had come upon me in the beginning, grew much more potent as time
3908 went on. I reposed complete confidence in no one but Biddy; but I told
3909 poor Biddy everything. Why it came natural to me to do so, and why Biddy
3910 had a deep concern in everything I told her, I did not know then, though
3911 I think I know now.
3912
3913 Meanwhile, councils went on in the kitchen at home, fraught with
3914 almost insupportable aggravation to my exasperated spirit. That ass,
3915 Pumblechook, used often to come over of a night for the purpose of
3916 discussing my prospects with my sister; and I really do believe (to
3917 this hour with less penitence than I ought to feel), that if these hands
3918 could have taken a linchpin out of his chaise-cart, they would have done
3919 it. The miserable man was a man of that confined stolidity of mind, that
3920 he could not discuss my prospects without having me before him,--as it
3921 were, to operate upon,--and he would drag me up from my stool (usually
3922 by the collar) where I was quiet in a corner, and, putting me before the
3923 fire as if I were going to be cooked, would begin by saying, “Now, Mum,
3924 here is this boy! Here is this boy which you brought up by hand. Hold up
3925 your head, boy, and be forever grateful unto them which so did do. Now,
3926 Mum, with respections to this boy!” And then he would rumple my hair
3927 the wrong way,--which from my earliest remembrance, as already hinted,
3928 I have in my soul denied the right of any fellow-creature to do,--and
3929 would hold me before him by the sleeve,--a spectacle of imbecility only
3930 to be equalled by himself.
3931
3932 Then, he and my sister would pair off in such nonsensical speculations
3933 about Miss Havisham, and about what she would do with me and for me,
3934 that I used to want--quite painfully--to burst into spiteful tears, fly
3935 at Pumblechook, and pummel him all over. In these dialogues, my sister
3936 spoke to me as if she were morally wrenching one of my teeth out at
3937 every reference; while Pumblechook himself, self-constituted my patron,
3938 would sit supervising me with a depreciatory eye, like the architect of
3939 my fortunes who thought himself engaged on a very unremunerative job.
3940
3941 In these discussions, Joe bore no part. But he was often talked at,
3942 while they were in progress, by reason of Mrs. Joe’s perceiving that
3943 he was not favorable to my being taken from the forge. I was fully old
3944 enough now to be apprenticed to Joe; and when Joe sat with the poker on
3945 his knees thoughtfully raking out the ashes between the lower bars, my
3946 sister would so distinctly construe that innocent action into opposition
3947 on his part, that she would dive at him, take the poker out of his
3948 hands, shake him, and put it away. There was a most irritating end to
3949 every one of these debates. All in a moment, with nothing to lead up to
3950 it, my sister would stop herself in a yawn, and catching sight of me as
3951 it were incidentally, would swoop upon me with, “Come! there’s enough of
3952 you! You get along to bed; you’ve given trouble enough for one night, I
3953 hope!” As if I had besought them as a favor to bother my life out.
3954
3955 We went on in this way for a long time, and it seemed likely that we
3956 should continue to go on in this way for a long time, when one day Miss
3957 Havisham stopped short as she and I were walking, she leaning on my
3958 shoulder; and said with some displeasure,--
3959
3960 “You are growing tall, Pip!”
3961
3962 I thought it best to hint, through the medium of a meditative look, that
3963 this might be occasioned by circumstances over which I had no control.
3964
3965 She said no more at the time; but she presently stopped and looked at me
3966 again; and presently again; and after that, looked frowning and moody.
3967 On the next day of my attendance, when our usual exercise was over, and
3968 I had landed her at her dressing-table, she stayed me with a movement of
3969 her impatient fingers:--
3970
3971 “Tell me the name again of that blacksmith of yours.”
3972
3973 “Joe Gargery, ma’am.”
3974
3975 “Meaning the master you were to be apprenticed to?”
3976
3977 “Yes, Miss Havisham.”
3978
3979 “You had better be apprenticed at once. Would Gargery come here with
3980 you, and bring your indentures, do you think?”
3981
3982 I signified that I had no doubt he would take it as an honor to be
3983 asked.
3984
3985 “Then let him come.”
3986
3987 “At any particular time, Miss Havisham?”
3988
3989 “There, there! I know nothing about times. Let him come soon, and come
3990 along with you.”
3991
3992 When I got home at night, and delivered this message for Joe, my sister
3993 “went on the Rampage,” in a more alarming degree than at any previous
3994 period. She asked me and Joe whether we supposed she was door-mats under
3995 our feet, and how we dared to use her so, and what company we graciously
3996 thought she was fit for? When she had exhausted a torrent of such
3997 inquiries, she threw a candlestick at Joe, burst into a loud sobbing,
3998 got out the dustpan,--which was always a very bad sign,--put on her
3999 coarse apron, and began cleaning up to a terrible extent. Not satisfied
4000 with a dry cleaning, she took to a pail and scrubbing-brush, and cleaned
4001 us out of house and home, so that we stood shivering in the back-yard.
4002 It was ten o’clock at night before we ventured to creep in again, and
4003 then she asked Joe why he hadn’t married a Negress Slave at once?
4004 Joe offered no answer, poor fellow, but stood feeling his whisker and
4005 looking dejectedly at me, as if he thought it really might have been a
4006 better speculation.
4007
4008
4009
4010
4011 Chapter XIII
4012
4013 It was a trial to my feelings, on the next day but one, to see
4014 Joe arraying himself in his Sunday clothes to accompany me to Miss
4015 Havisham’s. However, as he thought his court-suit necessary to the
4016 occasion, it was not for me to tell him that he looked far better in his
4017 working-dress; the rather, because I knew he made himself so dreadfully
4018 uncomfortable, entirely on my account, and that it was for me he pulled
4019 up his shirt-collar so very high behind, that it made the hair on the
4020 crown of his head stand up like a tuft of feathers.
4021
4022 At breakfast-time my sister declared her intention of going to town with
4023 us, and being left at Uncle Pumblechook’s and called for “when we had
4024 done with our fine ladies”--a way of putting the case, from which Joe
4025 appeared inclined to augur the worst. The forge was shut up for the day,
4026 and Joe inscribed in chalk upon the door (as it was his custom to do on
4027 the very rare occasions when he was not at work) the monosyllable
4028 HOUT, accompanied by a sketch of an arrow supposed to be flying in the
4029 direction he had taken.
4030
4031 We walked to town, my sister leading the way in a very large beaver
4032 bonnet, and carrying a basket like the Great Seal of England in plaited
4033 Straw, a pair of pattens, a spare shawl, and an umbrella, though it
4034 was a fine bright day. I am not quite clear whether these articles were
4035 carried penitentially or ostentatiously; but I rather think they were
4036 displayed as articles of property,--much as Cleopatra or any other
4037 sovereign lady on the Rampage might exhibit her wealth in a pageant or
4038 procession.
4039
4040 When we came to Pumblechook’s, my sister bounced in and left us. As it
4041 was almost noon, Joe and I held straight on to Miss Havisham’s house.
4042 Estella opened the gate as usual, and, the moment she appeared, Joe took
4043 his hat off and stood weighing it by the brim in both his hands; as if
4044 he had some urgent reason in his mind for being particular to half a
4045 quarter of an ounce.
4046
4047 Estella took no notice of either of us, but led us the way that I knew
4048 so well. I followed next to her, and Joe came last. When I looked back
4049 at Joe in the long passage, he was still weighing his hat with the
4050 greatest care, and was coming after us in long strides on the tips of
4051 his toes.
4052
4053 Estella told me we were both to go in, so I took Joe by the coat-cuff
4054 and conducted him into Miss Havisham’s presence. She was seated at her
4055 dressing-table, and looked round at us immediately.
4056
4057 “Oh!” said she to Joe. “You are the husband of the sister of this boy?”
4058
4059 I could hardly have imagined dear old Joe looking so unlike himself or
4060 so like some extraordinary bird; standing as he did speechless, with his
4061 tuft of feathers ruffled, and his mouth open as if he wanted a worm.
4062
4063 “You are the husband,” repeated Miss Havisham, “of the sister of this
4064 boy?”
4065
4066 It was very aggravating; but, throughout the interview, Joe persisted in
4067 addressing Me instead of Miss Havisham.
4068
4069 “Which I meantersay, Pip,” Joe now observed in a manner that was at
4070 once expressive of forcible argumentation, strict confidence, and great
4071 politeness, “as I hup and married your sister, and I were at the time
4072 what you might call (if you was anyways inclined) a single man.”
4073
4074 “Well!” said Miss Havisham. “And you have reared the boy, with the
4075 intention of taking him for your apprentice; is that so, Mr. Gargery?”
4076
4077 “You know, Pip,” replied Joe, “as you and me were ever friends, and it
4078 were looked for’ard to betwixt us, as being calc’lated to lead to
4079 larks. Not but what, Pip, if you had ever made objections to the
4080 business,--such as its being open to black and sut, or such-like,--not
4081 but what they would have been attended to, don’t you see?”
4082
4083 “Has the boy,” said Miss Havisham, “ever made any objection? Does he
4084 like the trade?”
4085
4086 “Which it is well beknown to yourself, Pip,” returned Joe, strengthening
4087 his former mixture of argumentation, confidence, and politeness, “that
4088 it were the wish of your own hart.” (I saw the idea suddenly break upon
4089 him that he would adapt his epitaph to the occasion, before he went on
4090 to say) “And there weren’t no objection on your part, and Pip it were
4091 the great wish of your hart!”
4092
4093 It was quite in vain for me to endeavor to make him sensible that he
4094 ought to speak to Miss Havisham. The more I made faces and gestures
4095 to him to do it, the more confidential, argumentative, and polite, he
4096 persisted in being to Me.
4097
4098 “Have you brought his indentures with you?” asked Miss Havisham.
4099
4100 “Well, Pip, you know,” replied Joe, as if that were a little
4101 unreasonable, “you yourself see me put ‘em in my ‘at, and therefore you
4102 know as they are here.” With which he took them out, and gave them, not
4103 to Miss Havisham, but to me. I am afraid I was ashamed of the dear good
4104 fellow,--I know I was ashamed of him,--when I saw that Estella stood
4105 at the back of Miss Havisham’s chair, and that her eyes laughed
4106 mischievously. I took the indentures out of his hand and gave them to
4107 Miss Havisham.
4108
4109 “You expected,” said Miss Havisham, as she looked them over, “no premium
4110 with the boy?”
4111
4112 “Joe!” I remonstrated, for he made no reply at all. “Why don’t you
4113 answer--”
4114
4115 “Pip,” returned Joe, cutting me short as if he were hurt, “which I
4116 meantersay that were not a question requiring a answer betwixt yourself
4117 and me, and which you know the answer to be full well No. You know it to
4118 be No, Pip, and wherefore should I say it?”
4119
4120 Miss Havisham glanced at him as if she understood what he really was
4121 better than I had thought possible, seeing what he was there; and took
4122 up a little bag from the table beside her.
4123
4124 “Pip has earned a premium here,” she said, “and here it is. There are
4125 five-and-twenty guineas in this bag. Give it to your master, Pip.”
4126
4127 As if he were absolutely out of his mind with the wonder awakened in
4128 him by her strange figure and the strange room, Joe, even at this pass,
4129 persisted in addressing me.
4130
4131 “This is wery liberal on your part, Pip,” said Joe, “and it is as such
4132 received and grateful welcome, though never looked for, far nor near,
4133 nor nowheres. And now, old chap,” said Joe, conveying to me a sensation,
4134 first of burning and then of freezing, for I felt as if that familiar
4135 expression were applied to Miss Havisham,--“and now, old chap, may we
4136 do our duty! May you and me do our duty, both on us, by one and another,
4137 and by them which your liberal present--have-conweyed--to be--for the
4138 satisfaction of mind-of--them as never--” here Joe showed that he felt
4139 he had fallen into frightful difficulties, until he triumphantly rescued
4140 himself with the words, “and from myself far be it!” These words had
4141 such a round and convincing sound for him that he said them twice.
4142
4143 “Good-bye, Pip!” said Miss Havisham. “Let them out, Estella.”
4144
4145 “Am I to come again, Miss Havisham?” I asked.
4146
4147 “No. Gargery is your master now. Gargery! One word!”
4148
4149 Thus calling him back as I went out of the door, I heard her say to Joe
4150 in a distinct emphatic voice, “The boy has been a good boy here, and
4151 that is his reward. Of course, as an honest man, you will expect no
4152 other and no more.”
4153
4154 How Joe got out of the room, I have never been able to determine; but
4155 I know that when he did get out he was steadily proceeding upstairs
4156 instead of coming down, and was deaf to all remonstrances until I went
4157 after him and laid hold of him. In another minute we were outside the
4158 gate, and it was locked, and Estella was gone. When we stood in the
4159 daylight alone again, Joe backed up against a wall, and said to me,
4160 “Astonishing!” And there he remained so long saying, “Astonishing” at
4161 intervals, so often, that I began to think his senses were never coming
4162 back. At length he prolonged his remark into “Pip, I do assure you this
4163 is as-TON-ishing!” and so, by degrees, became conversational and able to
4164 walk away.
4165
4166 I have reason to think that Joe’s intellects were brightened by the
4167 encounter they had passed through, and that on our way to Pumblechook’s
4168 he invented a subtle and deep design. My reason is to be found in
4169 what took place in Mr. Pumblechook’s parlor: where, on our presenting
4170 ourselves, my sister sat in conference with that detested seedsman.
4171
4172 “Well?” cried my sister, addressing us both at once. “And what’s
4173 happened to you? I wonder you condescend to come back to such poor
4174 society as this, I am sure I do!”
4175
4176 “Miss Havisham,” said Joe, with a fixed look at me, like an effort of
4177 remembrance, “made it wery partick’ler that we should give her--were it
4178 compliments or respects, Pip?”
4179
4180 “Compliments,” I said.
4181
4182 “Which that were my own belief,” answered Joe; “her compliments to Mrs.
4183 J. Gargery--”
4184
4185 “Much good they’ll do me!” observed my sister; but rather gratified too.
4186
4187 “And wishing,” pursued Joe, with another fixed look at me, like another
4188 effort of remembrance, “that the state of Miss Havisham’s elth were
4189 sitch as would have--allowed, were it, Pip?”
4190
4191 “Of her having the pleasure,” I added.
4192
4193 “Of ladies’ company,” said Joe. And drew a long breath.
4194
4195 “Well!” cried my sister, with a mollified glance at Mr. Pumblechook.
4196 “She might have had the politeness to send that message at first, but
4197 it’s better late than never. And what did she give young Rantipole
4198 here?”
4199
4200 “She giv’ him,” said Joe, “nothing.”
4201
4202 Mrs. Joe was going to break out, but Joe went on.
4203
4204 “What she giv’,” said Joe, “she giv’ to his friends. ‘And by his
4205 friends,’ were her explanation, ‘I mean into the hands of his sister
4206 Mrs. J. Gargery.’ Them were her words; ‘Mrs. J. Gargery.’ She mayn’t
4207 have know’d,” added Joe, with an appearance of reflection, “whether it
4208 were Joe, or Jorge.”
4209
4210 My sister looked at Pumblechook: who smoothed the elbows of his wooden
4211 arm-chair, and nodded at her and at the fire, as if he had known all
4212 about it beforehand.
4213
4214 “And how much have you got?” asked my sister, laughing. Positively
4215 laughing!
4216
4217 “What would present company say to ten pound?” demanded Joe.
4218
4219 “They’d say,” returned my sister, curtly, “pretty well. Not too much,
4220 but pretty well.”
4221
4222 “It’s more than that, then,” said Joe.
4223
4224 That fearful Impostor, Pumblechook, immediately nodded, and said, as he
4225 rubbed the arms of his chair, “It’s more than that, Mum.”
4226
4227 “Why, you don’t mean to say--” began my sister.
4228
4229 “Yes I do, Mum,” said Pumblechook; “but wait a bit. Go on, Joseph. Good
4230 in you! Go on!”
4231
4232 “What would present company say,” proceeded Joe, “to twenty pound?”
4233
4234 “Handsome would be the word,” returned my sister.
4235
4236 “Well, then,” said Joe, “It’s more than twenty pound.”
4237
4238 That abject hypocrite, Pumblechook, nodded again, and said, with a
4239 patronizing laugh, “It’s more than that, Mum. Good again! Follow her up,
4240 Joseph!”
4241
4242 “Then to make an end of it,” said Joe, delightedly handing the bag to my
4243 sister; “it’s five-and-twenty pound.”
4244
4245 “It’s five-and-twenty pound, Mum,” echoed that basest of swindlers,
4246 Pumblechook, rising to shake hands with her; “and it’s no more than your
4247 merits (as I said when my opinion was asked), and I wish you joy of the
4248 money!”
4249
4250 If the villain had stopped here, his case would have been sufficiently
4251 awful, but he blackened his guilt by proceeding to take me into custody,
4252 with a right of patronage that left all his former criminality far
4253 behind.
4254
4255 “Now you see, Joseph and wife,” said Pumblechook, as he took me by the
4256 arm above the elbow, “I am one of them that always go right through with
4257 what they’ve begun. This boy must be bound, out of hand. That’s my way.
4258 Bound out of hand.”
4259
4260 “Goodness knows, Uncle Pumblechook,” said my sister (grasping the
4261 money), “we’re deeply beholden to you.”
4262
4263 “Never mind me, Mum,” returned that diabolical cornchandler. “A
4264 pleasure’s a pleasure all the world over. But this boy, you know; we
4265 must have him bound. I said I’d see to it--to tell you the truth.”
4266
4267 The Justices were sitting in the Town Hall near at hand, and we at
4268 once went over to have me bound apprentice to Joe in the Magisterial
4269 presence. I say we went over, but I was pushed over by Pumblechook,
4270 exactly as if I had that moment picked a pocket or fired a rick; indeed,
4271 it was the general impression in Court that I had been taken red-handed;
4272 for, as Pumblechook shoved me before him through the crowd, I heard some
4273 people say, “What’s he done?” and others, “He’s a young ‘un, too, but
4274 looks bad, don’t he?” One person of mild and benevolent aspect even gave
4275 me a tract ornamented with a woodcut of a malevolent young man fitted
4276 up with a perfect sausage-shop of fetters, and entitled TO BE READ IN MY
4277 CELL.
4278
4279 The Hall was a queer place, I thought, with higher pews in it than a
4280 church,--and with people hanging over the pews looking on,--and with
4281 mighty Justices (one with a powdered head) leaning back in chairs, with
4282 folded arms, or taking snuff, or going to sleep, or writing, or reading
4283 the newspapers,--and with some shining black portraits on the walls,
4284 which my unartistic eye regarded as a composition of hardbake and
4285 sticking-plaster. Here, in a corner my indentures were duly signed and
4286 attested, and I was “bound”; Mr. Pumblechook holding me all the while
4287 as if we had looked in on our way to the scaffold, to have those little
4288 preliminaries disposed of.
4289
4290 When we had come out again, and had got rid of the boys who had been put
4291 into great spirits by the expectation of seeing me publicly tortured,
4292 and who were much disappointed to find that my friends were merely
4293 rallying round me, we went back to Pumblechook’s. And there my sister
4294 became so excited by the twenty-five guineas, that nothing would serve
4295 her but we must have a dinner out of that windfall at the Blue Boar, and
4296 that Pumblechook must go over in his chaise-cart, and bring the Hubbles
4297 and Mr. Wopsle.
4298
4299 It was agreed to be done; and a most melancholy day I passed. For,
4300 it inscrutably appeared to stand to reason, in the minds of the whole
4301 company, that I was an excrescence on the entertainment. And to make it
4302 worse, they all asked me from time to time,--in short, whenever they
4303 had nothing else to do,--why I didn’t enjoy myself? And what could I
4304 possibly do then, but say I was enjoying myself,--when I wasn’t!
4305
4306 However, they were grown up and had their own way, and they made the
4307 most of it. That swindling Pumblechook, exalted into the beneficent
4308 contriver of the whole occasion, actually took the top of the table;
4309 and, when he addressed them on the subject of my being bound, and had
4310 fiendishly congratulated them on my being liable to imprisonment if I
4311 played at cards, drank strong liquors, kept late hours or bad company,
4312 or indulged in other vagaries which the form of my indentures appeared
4313 to contemplate as next to inevitable, he placed me standing on a chair
4314 beside him to illustrate his remarks.
4315
4316 My only other remembrances of the great festival are, That they wouldn’t
4317 let me go to sleep, but whenever they saw me dropping off, woke me up
4318 and told me to enjoy myself. That, rather late in the evening Mr. Wopsle
4319 gave us Collins’s ode, and threw his bloodstained sword in thunder
4320 down, with such effect, that a waiter came in and said, “The Commercials
4321 underneath sent up their compliments, and it wasn’t the Tumblers’ Arms.”
4322 That, they were all in excellent spirits on the road home, and sang, O
4323 Lady Fair! Mr. Wopsle taking the bass, and asserting with a tremendously
4324 strong voice (in reply to the inquisitive bore who leads that piece
4325 of music in a most impertinent manner, by wanting to know all about
4326 everybody’s private affairs) that he was the man with his white locks
4327 flowing, and that he was upon the whole the weakest pilgrim going.
4328
4329 Finally, I remember that when I got into my little bedroom, I was truly
4330 wretched, and had a strong conviction on me that I should never like
4331 Joe’s trade. I had liked it once, but once was not now.
4332
4333
4334
4335
4336 Chapter XIV
4337
4338 It is a most miserable thing to feel ashamed of home. There may be black
4339 ingratitude in the thing, and the punishment may be retributive and well
4340 deserved; but that it is a miserable thing, I can testify.
4341
4342 Home had never been a very pleasant place to me, because of my sister’s
4343 temper. But, Joe had sanctified it, and I had believed in it. I had
4344 believed in the best parlor as a most elegant saloon; I had believed
4345 in the front door, as a mysterious portal of the Temple of State whose
4346 solemn opening was attended with a sacrifice of roast fowls; I had
4347 believed in the kitchen as a chaste though not magnificent apartment;
4348 I had believed in the forge as the glowing road to manhood and
4349 independence. Within a single year all this was changed. Now it was all
4350 coarse and common, and I would not have had Miss Havisham and Estella
4351 see it on any account.
4352
4353 How much of my ungracious condition of mind may have been my own fault,
4354 how much Miss Havisham’s, how much my sister’s, is now of no moment to
4355 me or to any one. The change was made in me; the thing was done. Well or
4356 ill done, excusably or inexcusably, it was done.
4357
4358 Once, it had seemed to me that when I should at last roll up my
4359 shirt-sleeves and go into the forge, Joe’s ‘prentice, I should be
4360 distinguished and happy. Now the reality was in my hold, I only felt
4361 that I was dusty with the dust of small-coal, and that I had a weight
4362 upon my daily remembrance to which the anvil was a feather. There have
4363 been occasions in my later life (I suppose as in most lives) when I have
4364 felt for a time as if a thick curtain had fallen on all its interest
4365 and romance, to shut me out from anything save dull endurance any more.
4366 Never has that curtain dropped so heavy and blank, as when my way in
4367 life lay stretched out straight before me through the newly entered road
4368 of apprenticeship to Joe.
4369
4370 I remember that at a later period of my “time,” I used to stand about
4371 the churchyard on Sunday evenings when night was falling, comparing my
4372 own perspective with the windy marsh view, and making out some likeness
4373 between them by thinking how flat and low both were, and how on both
4374 there came an unknown way and a dark mist and then the sea. I was quite
4375 as dejected on the first working-day of my apprenticeship as in that
4376 after-time; but I am glad to know that I never breathed a murmur to Joe
4377 while my indentures lasted. It is about the only thing I am glad to know
4378 of myself in that connection.
4379
4380 For, though it includes what I proceed to add, all the merit of what I
4381 proceed to add was Joe’s. It was not because I was faithful, but because
4382 Joe was faithful, that I never ran away and went for a soldier or
4383 a sailor. It was not because I had a strong sense of the virtue of
4384 industry, but because Joe had a strong sense of the virtue of industry,
4385 that I worked with tolerable zeal against the grain. It is not possible
4386 to know how far the influence of any amiable honest-hearted duty-doing
4387 man flies out into the world; but it is very possible to know how it has
4388 touched one’s self in going by, and I know right well that any good that
4389 intermixed itself with my apprenticeship came of plain contented Joe,
4390 and not of restlessly aspiring discontented me.
4391
4392 What I wanted, who can say? How can I say, when I never knew? What
4393 I dreaded was, that in some unlucky hour I, being at my grimiest and
4394 commonest, should lift up my eyes and see Estella looking in at one
4395 of the wooden windows of the forge. I was haunted by the fear that she
4396 would, sooner or later, find me out, with a black face and hands, doing
4397 the coarsest part of my work, and would exult over me and despise me.
4398 Often after dark, when I was pulling the bellows for Joe, and we were
4399 singing Old Clem, and when the thought how we used to sing it at Miss
4400 Havisham’s would seem to show me Estella’s face in the fire, with her
4401 pretty hair fluttering in the wind and her eyes scorning me,--often at
4402 such a time I would look towards those panels of black night in the wall
4403 which the wooden windows then were, and would fancy that I saw her just
4404 drawing her face away, and would believe that she had come at last.
4405
4406 After that, when we went into supper, the place and the meal would have
4407 a more homely look than ever, and I would feel more ashamed of home than
4408 ever, in my own ungracious breast.
4409
4410
4411
4412
4413 Chapter XV
4414
4415 As I was getting too big for Mr. Wopsle’s great-aunt’s room, my
4416 education under that preposterous female terminated. Not, however, until
4417 Biddy had imparted to me everything she knew, from the little catalogue
4418 of prices, to a comic song she had once bought for a half-penny.
4419 Although the only coherent part of the latter piece of literature were
4420 the opening lines.
4421
4422 When I went to Lunnon town sirs,
4423 Too rul loo rul
4424 Too rul loo rul
4425 Wasn’t I done very brown sirs?
4426 Too rul loo rul
4427 Too rul loo rul
4428
4429 --still, in my desire to be wiser, I got this composition by heart with the utmost gravity; nor do I recollect that I questioned its merit, except that I
4430 thought (as I still do) the amount of Too rul somewhat in excess of the
4431 poetry. In my hunger for information, I made proposals to Mr. Wopsle to
4432 bestow some intellectual crumbs upon me, with which he kindly complied.
4433 As it turned out, however, that he only wanted me for a dramatic
4434 lay-figure, to be contradicted and embraced and wept over and bullied
4435 and clutched and stabbed and knocked about in a variety of ways, I soon
4436 declined that course of instruction; though not until Mr. Wopsle in his
4437 poetic fury had severely mauled me.
4438
4439 Whatever I acquired, I tried to impart to Joe. This statement sounds so
4440 well, that I cannot in my conscience let it pass unexplained. I wanted
4441 to make Joe less ignorant and common, that he might be worthier of my
4442 society and less open to Estella’s reproach.
4443
4444 The old Battery out on the marshes was our place of study, and a broken
4445 slate and a short piece of slate-pencil were our educational implements:
4446 to which Joe always added a pipe of tobacco. I never knew Joe to
4447 remember anything from one Sunday to another, or to acquire, under my
4448 tuition, any piece of information whatever. Yet he would smoke his pipe
4449 at the Battery with a far more sagacious air than anywhere else,--even
4450 with a learned air,--as if he considered himself to be advancing
4451 immensely. Dear fellow, I hope he did.
4452
4453 It was pleasant and quiet, out there with the sails on the river passing
4454 beyond the earthwork, and sometimes, when the tide was low, looking
4455 as if they belonged to sunken ships that were still sailing on at the
4456 bottom of the water. Whenever I watched the vessels standing out to sea
4457 with their white sails spread, I somehow thought of Miss Havisham and
4458 Estella; and whenever the light struck aslant, afar off, upon a cloud
4459 or sail or green hillside or water-line, it was just the same.--Miss
4460 Havisham and Estella and the strange house and the strange life appeared
4461 to have something to do with everything that was picturesque.
4462
4463 One Sunday when Joe, greatly enjoying his pipe, had so plumed himself on
4464 being “most awful dull,” that I had given him up for the day, I lay on
4465 the earthwork for some time with my chin on my hand, descrying traces of
4466 Miss Havisham and Estella all over the prospect, in the sky and in the
4467 water, until at last I resolved to mention a thought concerning them
4468 that had been much in my head.
4469
4470 “Joe,” said I; “don’t you think I ought to make Miss Havisham a visit?”
4471
4472 “Well, Pip,” returned Joe, slowly considering. “What for?”
4473
4474 “What for, Joe? What is any visit made for?”
4475
4476 “There is some wisits p’r’aps,” said Joe, “as for ever remains open to
4477 the question, Pip. But in regard to wisiting Miss Havisham. She might
4478 think you wanted something,--expected something of her.”
4479
4480 “Don’t you think I might say that I did not, Joe?”
4481
4482 “You might, old chap,” said Joe. “And she might credit it. Similarly she
4483 mightn’t.”
4484
4485 Joe felt, as I did, that he had made a point there, and he pulled hard
4486 at his pipe to keep himself from weakening it by repetition.
4487
4488 “You see, Pip,” Joe pursued, as soon as he was past that danger, “Miss
4489 Havisham done the handsome thing by you. When Miss Havisham done the
4490 handsome thing by you, she called me back to say to me as that were
4491 all.”
4492
4493 “Yes, Joe. I heard her.”
4494
4495 “ALL,” Joe repeated, very emphatically.
4496
4497 “Yes, Joe. I tell you, I heard her.”
4498
4499 “Which I meantersay, Pip, it might be that her meaning were,--Make a
4500 end on it!--As you was!--Me to the North, and you to the South!--Keep in
4501 sunders!”
4502
4503 I had thought of that too, and it was very far from comforting to me
4504 to find that he had thought of it; for it seemed to render it more
4505 probable.
4506
4507 “But, Joe.”
4508
4509 “Yes, old chap.”
4510
4511 “Here am I, getting on in the first year of my time, and, since the day
4512 of my being bound, I have never thanked Miss Havisham, or asked after
4513 her, or shown that I remember her.”
4514
4515 “That’s true, Pip; and unless you was to turn her out a set of shoes
4516 all four round,--and which I meantersay as even a set of shoes all
4517 four round might not be acceptable as a present, in a total wacancy of
4518 hoofs--”
4519
4520 “I don’t mean that sort of remembrance, Joe; I don’t mean a present.”
4521
4522 But Joe had got the idea of a present in his head and must harp upon it.
4523 “Or even,” said he, “if you was helped to knocking her up a new chain
4524 for the front door,--or say a gross or two of shark-headed screws for
4525 general use,--or some light fancy article, such as a toasting-fork
4526 when she took her muffins,--or a gridiron when she took a sprat or such
4527 like--”
4528
4529 “I don’t mean any present at all, Joe,” I interposed.
4530
4531 “Well,” said Joe, still harping on it as though I had particularly
4532 pressed it, “if I was yourself, Pip, I wouldn’t. No, I would not. For
4533 what’s a door-chain when she’s got one always up? And shark-headers is
4534 open to misrepresentations. And if it was a toasting-fork, you’d go into
4535 brass and do yourself no credit. And the oncommonest workman can’t show
4536 himself oncommon in a gridiron,--for a gridiron IS a gridiron,” said
4537 Joe, steadfastly impressing it upon me, as if he were endeavouring to
4538 rouse me from a fixed delusion, “and you may haim at what you like, but
4539 a gridiron it will come out, either by your leave or again your leave,
4540 and you can’t help yourself--”
4541
4542 “My dear Joe,” I cried, in desperation, taking hold of his coat, “don’t
4543 go on in that way. I never thought of making Miss Havisham any present.”
4544
4545 “No, Pip,” Joe assented, as if he had been contending for that, all
4546 along; “and what I say to you is, you are right, Pip.”
4547
4548 “Yes, Joe; but what I wanted to say, was, that as we are rather slack
4549 just now, if you would give me a half-holiday to-morrow, I think I would
4550 go uptown and make a call on Miss Est--Havisham.”
4551
4552 “Which her name,” said Joe, gravely, “ain’t Estavisham, Pip, unless she
4553 have been rechris’ened.”
4554
4555 “I know, Joe, I know. It was a slip of mine. What do you think of it,
4556 Joe?”
4557
4558 In brief, Joe thought that if I thought well of it, he thought well of
4559 it. But, he was particular in stipulating that if I were not received
4560 with cordiality, or if I were not encouraged to repeat my visit as a
4561 visit which had no ulterior object but was simply one of gratitude for a
4562 favor received, then this experimental trip should have no successor. By
4563 these conditions I promised to abide.
4564
4565 Now, Joe kept a journeyman at weekly wages whose name was Orlick.
4566 He pretended that his Christian name was Dolge,--a clear
4567 Impossibility,--but he was a fellow of that obstinate disposition that I
4568 believe him to have been the prey of no delusion in this particular, but
4569 wilfully to have imposed that name upon the village as an affront to its
4570 understanding. He was a broadshouldered loose-limbed swarthy fellow of
4571 great strength, never in a hurry, and always slouching. He never even
4572 seemed to come to his work on purpose, but would slouch in as if by mere
4573 accident; and when he went to the Jolly Bargemen to eat his dinner, or
4574 went away at night, he would slouch out, like Cain or the Wandering Jew,
4575 as if he had no idea where he was going and no intention of ever
4576 coming back. He lodged at a sluice-keeper’s out on the marshes, and on
4577 working-days would come slouching from his hermitage, with his hands in
4578 his pockets and his dinner loosely tied in a bundle round his neck
4579 and dangling on his back. On Sundays he mostly lay all day on the
4580 sluice-gates, or stood against ricks and barns. He always slouched,
4581 locomotively, with his eyes on the ground; and, when accosted or
4582 otherwise required to raise them, he looked up in a half-resentful,
4583 half-puzzled way, as though the only thought he ever had was, that it
4584 was rather an odd and injurious fact that he should never be thinking.
4585
4586 This morose journeyman had no liking for me. When I was very small and
4587 timid, he gave me to understand that the Devil lived in a black corner
4588 of the forge, and that he knew the fiend very well: also that it was
4589 necessary to make up the fire, once in seven years, with a live boy, and
4590 that I might consider myself fuel. When I became Joe’s ‘prentice, Orlick
4591 was perhaps confirmed in some suspicion that I should displace him;
4592 howbeit, he liked me still less. Not that he ever said anything, or did
4593 anything, openly importing hostility; I only noticed that he always beat
4594 his sparks in my direction, and that whenever I sang Old Clem, he came
4595 in out of time.
4596
4597 Dolge Orlick was at work and present, next day, when I reminded Joe of
4598 my half-holiday. He said nothing at the moment, for he and Joe had just
4599 got a piece of hot iron between them, and I was at the bellows; but by
4600 and by he said, leaning on his hammer,--
4601
4602 “Now, master! Sure you’re not a going to favor only one of us. If Young
4603 Pip has a half-holiday, do as much for Old Orlick.” I suppose he was
4604 about five-and-twenty, but he usually spoke of himself as an ancient
4605 person.
4606
4607 “Why, what’ll you do with a half-holiday, if you get it?” said Joe.
4608
4609 “What’ll I do with it! What’ll he do with it? I’ll do as much with it as
4610 him,” said Orlick.
4611
4612 “As to Pip, he’s going up town,” said Joe.
4613
4614 “Well then, as to Old Orlick, he’s a going up town,” retorted that
4615 worthy. “Two can go up town. Tain’t only one wot can go up town.
4616
4617 “Don’t lose your temper,” said Joe.
4618
4619 “Shall if I like,” growled Orlick. “Some and their uptowning! Now,
4620 master! Come. No favoring in this shop. Be a man!”
4621
4622 The master refusing to entertain the subject until the journeyman was in
4623 a better temper, Orlick plunged at the furnace, drew out a red-hot
4624 bar, made at me with it as if he were going to run it through my body,
4625 whisked it round my head, laid it on the anvil, hammered it out,--as
4626 if it were I, I thought, and the sparks were my spirting blood,--and
4627 finally said, when he had hammered himself hot and the iron cold, and he
4628 again leaned on his hammer,--
4629
4630 “Now, master!”
4631
4632 “Are you all right now?” demanded Joe.
4633
4634 “Ah! I am all right,” said gruff Old Orlick.
4635
4636 “Then, as in general you stick to your work as well as most men,” said
4637 Joe, “let it be a half-holiday for all.”
4638
4639 My sister had been standing silent in the yard, within hearing,--she was
4640 a most unscrupulous spy and listener,--and she instantly looked in at
4641 one of the windows.
4642
4643 “Like you, you fool!” said she to Joe, “giving holidays to great idle
4644 hulkers like that. You are a rich man, upon my life, to waste wages in
4645 that way. I wish I was his master!”
4646
4647 “You’d be everybody’s master, if you durst,” retorted Orlick, with an
4648 ill-favored grin.
4649
4650 (“Let her alone,” said Joe.)
4651
4652 “I’d be a match for all noodles and all rogues,” returned my sister,
4653 beginning to work herself into a mighty rage. “And I couldn’t be a
4654 match for the noodles, without being a match for your master, who’s the
4655 dunder-headed king of the noodles. And I couldn’t be a match for the
4656 rogues, without being a match for you, who are the blackest-looking and
4657 the worst rogue between this and France. Now!”
4658
4659 “You’re a foul shrew, Mother Gargery,” growled the journeyman. “If that
4660 makes a judge of rogues, you ought to be a good’un.”
4661
4662 (“Let her alone, will you?” said Joe.)
4663
4664 “What did you say?” cried my sister, beginning to scream. “What did you
4665 say? What did that fellow Orlick say to me, Pip? What did he call me,
4666 with my husband standing by? Oh! oh! oh!” Each of these exclamations was
4667 a shriek; and I must remark of my sister, what is equally true of all
4668 the violent women I have ever seen, that passion was no excuse for
4669 her, because it is undeniable that instead of lapsing into passion, she
4670 consciously and deliberately took extraordinary pains to force herself
4671 into it, and became blindly furious by regular stages; “what was the
4672 name he gave me before the base man who swore to defend me? Oh! Hold me!
4673 Oh!”
4674
4675 “Ah-h-h!” growled the journeyman, between his teeth, “I’d hold you, if
4676 you was my wife. I’d hold you under the pump, and choke it out of you.”
4677
4678 (“I tell you, let her alone,” said Joe.)
4679
4680 “Oh! To hear him!” cried my sister, with a clap of her hands and a
4681 scream together,--which was her next stage. “To hear the names he’s
4682 giving me! That Orlick! In my own house! Me, a married woman! With my
4683 husband standing by! Oh! Oh!” Here my sister, after a fit of clappings
4684 and screamings, beat her hands upon her bosom and upon her knees, and
4685 threw her cap off, and pulled her hair down,--which were the last stages
4686 on her road to frenzy. Being by this time a perfect Fury and a complete
4687 success, she made a dash at the door which I had fortunately locked.
4688
4689 What could the wretched Joe do now, after his disregarded parenthetical
4690 interruptions, but stand up to his journeyman, and ask him what he meant
4691 by interfering betwixt himself and Mrs. Joe; and further whether he was
4692 man enough to come on? Old Orlick felt that the situation admitted of
4693 nothing less than coming on, and was on his defence straightway; so,
4694 without so much as pulling off their singed and burnt aprons, they went
4695 at one another, like two giants. But, if any man in that neighborhood
4696 could stand uplong against Joe, I never saw the man. Orlick, as if he
4697 had been of no more account than the pale young gentleman, was very
4698 soon among the coal-dust, and in no hurry to come out of it. Then Joe
4699 unlocked the door and picked up my sister, who had dropped insensible
4700 at the window (but who had seen the fight first, I think), and who was
4701 carried into the house and laid down, and who was recommended to revive,
4702 and would do nothing but struggle and clench her hands in Joe’s hair.
4703 Then, came that singular calm and silence which succeed all uproars; and
4704 then, with the vague sensation which I have always connected with such
4705 a lull,--namely, that it was Sunday, and somebody was dead,--I went upstairs
4706 to dress myself.
4707
4708 When I came down again, I found Joe and Orlick sweeping up, without any
4709 other traces of discomposure than a slit in one of Orlick’s nostrils,
4710 which was neither expressive nor ornamental. A pot of beer had appeared
4711 from the Jolly Bargemen, and they were sharing it by turns in a
4712 peaceable manner. The lull had a sedative and philosophical influence on
4713 Joe, who followed me out into the road to say, as a parting observation
4714 that might do me good, “On the Rampage, Pip, and off the Rampage,
4715 Pip:--such is Life!”
4716
4717 With what absurd emotions (for we think the feelings that are very
4718 serious in a man quite comical in a boy) I found myself again going to
4719 Miss Havisham’s, matters little here. Nor, how I passed and repassed
4720 the gate many times before I could make up my mind to ring. Nor, how
4721 I debated whether I should go away without ringing; nor, how I should
4722 undoubtedly have gone, if my time had been my own, to come back.
4723
4724 Miss Sarah Pocket came to the gate. No Estella.
4725
4726 “How, then? You here again?” said Miss Pocket. “What do you want?”
4727
4728 When I said that I only came to see how Miss Havisham was, Sarah
4729 evidently deliberated whether or no she should send me about my
4730 business. But unwilling to hazard the responsibility, she let me in, and
4731 presently brought the sharp message that I was to “come up.”
4732
4733 Everything was unchanged, and Miss Havisham was alone.
4734
4735 “Well?” said she, fixing her eyes upon me. “I hope you want nothing?
4736 You’ll get nothing.”
4737
4738 “No indeed, Miss Havisham. I only wanted you to know that I am doing
4739 very well in my apprenticeship, and am always much obliged to you.”
4740
4741 “There, there!” with the old restless fingers. “Come now and then; come
4742 on your birthday.--Ay!” she cried suddenly, turning herself and her
4743 chair towards me, “You are looking round for Estella? Hey?”
4744
4745 I had been looking round,--in fact, for Estella,--and I stammered that I
4746 hoped she was well.
4747
4748 “Abroad,” said Miss Havisham; “educating for a lady; far out of reach;
4749 prettier than ever; admired by all who see her. Do you feel that you
4750 have lost her?”
4751
4752 There was such a malignant enjoyment in her utterance of the last words,
4753 and she broke into such a disagreeable laugh, that I was at a loss what
4754 to say. She spared me the trouble of considering, by dismissing me. When
4755 the gate was closed upon me by Sarah of the walnut-shell countenance, I
4756 felt more than ever dissatisfied with my home and with my trade and with
4757 everything; and that was all I took by that motion.
4758
4759 As I was loitering along the High Street, looking in disconsolately at
4760 the shop windows, and thinking what I would buy if I were a gentleman,
4761 who should come out of the bookshop but Mr. Wopsle. Mr. Wopsle had in
4762 his hand the affecting tragedy of George Barnwell, in which he had that
4763 moment invested sixpence, with the view of heaping every word of it on
4764 the head of Pumblechook, with whom he was going to drink tea. No sooner
4765 did he see me, than he appeared to consider that a special Providence
4766 had put a ‘prentice in his way to be read at; and he laid hold of me,
4767 and insisted on my accompanying him to the Pumblechookian parlor. As I
4768 knew it would be miserable at home, and as the nights were dark and the
4769 way was dreary, and almost any companionship on the road was better
4770 than none, I made no great resistance; consequently, we turned into
4771 Pumblechook’s just as the street and the shops were lighting up.
4772
4773 As I never assisted at any other representation of George Barnwell, I
4774 don’t know how long it may usually take; but I know very well that it
4775 took until half-past nine o’ clock that night, and that when Mr. Wopsle
4776 got into Newgate, I thought he never would go to the scaffold, he became
4777 so much slower than at any former period of his disgraceful career. I
4778 thought it a little too much that he should complain of being cut short
4779 in his flower after all, as if he had not been running to seed, leaf
4780 after leaf, ever since his course began. This, however, was a
4781 mere question of length and wearisomeness. What stung me, was the
4782 identification of the whole affair with my unoffending self. When
4783 Barnwell began to go wrong, I declare that I felt positively apologetic,
4784 Pumblechook’s indignant stare so taxed me with it. Wopsle, too, took
4785 pains to present me in the worst light. At once ferocious and maudlin, I
4786 was made to murder my uncle with no extenuating circumstances whatever;
4787 Millwood put me down in argument, on every occasion; it became sheer
4788 monomania in my master’s daughter to care a button for me; and all I can
4789 say for my gasping and procrastinating conduct on the fatal morning, is,
4790 that it was worthy of the general feebleness of my character. Even after
4791 I was happily hanged and Wopsle had closed the book, Pumblechook sat
4792 staring at me, and shaking his head, and saying, “Take warning, boy,
4793 take warning!” as if it were a well-known fact that I contemplated
4794 murdering a near relation, provided I could only induce one to have the
4795 weakness to become my benefactor.
4796
4797 It was a very dark night when it was all over, and when I set out with
4798 Mr. Wopsle on the walk home. Beyond town, we found a heavy mist out, and
4799 it fell wet and thick. The turnpike lamp was a blur, quite out of the
4800 lamp’s usual place apparently, and its rays looked solid substance on
4801 the fog. We were noticing this, and saying how that the mist rose with a
4802 change of wind from a certain quarter of our marshes, when we came upon
4803 a man, slouching under the lee of the turnpike house.
4804
4805 “Halloa!” we said, stopping. “Orlick there?”
4806
4807 “Ah!” he answered, slouching out. “I was standing by a minute, on the
4808 chance of company.”
4809
4810 “You are late,” I remarked.
4811
4812 Orlick not unnaturally answered, “Well? And you’re late.”
4813
4814 “We have been,” said Mr. Wopsle, exalted with his late performance,--“we
4815 have been indulging, Mr. Orlick, in an intellectual evening.”
4816
4817 Old Orlick growled, as if he had nothing to say about that, and we all
4818 went on together. I asked him presently whether he had been spending his
4819 half-holiday up and down town?
4820
4821 “Yes,” said he, “all of it. I come in behind yourself. I didn’t see you,
4822 but I must have been pretty close behind you. By the by, the guns is
4823 going again.”
4824
4825 “At the Hulks?” said I.
4826
4827 “Ay! There’s some of the birds flown from the cages. The guns have been
4828 going since dark, about. You’ll hear one presently.”
4829
4830 In effect, we had not walked many yards further, when the
4831 well-remembered boom came towards us, deadened by the mist, and heavily
4832 rolled away along the low grounds by the river, as if it were pursuing
4833 and threatening the fugitives.
4834
4835 “A good night for cutting off in,” said Orlick. “We’d be puzzled how to
4836 bring down a jail-bird on the wing, to-night.”
4837
4838 The subject was a suggestive one to me, and I thought about it in
4839 silence. Mr. Wopsle, as the ill-requited uncle of the evening’s tragedy,
4840 fell to meditating aloud in his garden at Camberwell. Orlick, with his
4841 hands in his pockets, slouched heavily at my side. It was very dark,
4842 very wet, very muddy, and so we splashed along. Now and then, the sound
4843 of the signal cannon broke upon us again, and again rolled sulkily along
4844 the course of the river. I kept myself to myself and my thoughts. Mr.
4845 Wopsle died amiably at Camberwell, and exceedingly game on Bosworth
4846 Field, and in the greatest agonies at Glastonbury. Orlick sometimes
4847 growled, “Beat it out, beat it out,--Old Clem! With a clink for the
4848 stout,--Old Clem!” I thought he had been drinking, but he was not drunk.
4849
4850 Thus, we came to the village. The way by which we approached it took us
4851 past the Three Jolly Bargemen, which we were surprised to find--it being
4852 eleven o’clock--in a state of commotion, with the door wide open, and
4853 unwonted lights that had been hastily caught up and put down scattered
4854 about. Mr. Wopsle dropped into ask what was the matter (surmising that
4855 a convict had been taken), but came running out in a great hurry.
4856
4857 “There’s something wrong,” said he, without stopping, “up at your place,
4858 Pip. Run all!”
4859
4860 “What is it?” I asked, keeping up with him. So did Orlick, at my side.
4861
4862 “I can’t quite understand. The house seems to have been violently
4863 entered when Joe Gargery was out. Supposed by convicts. Somebody has
4864 been attacked and hurt.”
4865
4866 We were running too fast to admit of more being said, and we made no
4867 stop until we got into our kitchen. It was full of people; the whole
4868 village was there, or in the yard; and there was a surgeon, and there
4869 was Joe, and there were a group of women, all on the floor in the midst
4870 of the kitchen. The unemployed bystanders drew back when they saw me,
4871 and so I became aware of my sister,--lying without sense or movement on
4872 the bare boards where she had been knocked down by a tremendous blow
4873 on the back of the head, dealt by some unknown hand when her face was
4874 turned towards the fire,--destined never to be on the Rampage again,
4875 while she was the wife of Joe.
4876
4877
4878
4879
4880 Chapter XVI
4881
4882 With my head full of George Barnwell, I was at first disposed to believe
4883 that I must have had some hand in the attack upon my sister, or at
4884 all events that as her near relation, popularly known to be under
4885 obligations to her, I was a more legitimate object of suspicion than
4886 any one else. But when, in the clearer light of next morning, I began to
4887 reconsider the matter and to hear it discussed around me on all sides, I
4888 took another view of the case, which was more reasonable.
4889
4890 Joe had been at the Three Jolly Bargemen, smoking his pipe, from a
4891 quarter after eight o’clock to a quarter before ten. While he was there,
4892 my sister had been seen standing at the kitchen door, and had exchanged
4893 Good Night with a farm-laborer going home. The man could not be more
4894 particular as to the time at which he saw her (he got into dense
4895 confusion when he tried to be), than that it must have been before nine.
4896 When Joe went home at five minutes before ten, he found her struck down
4897 on the floor, and promptly called in assistance. The fire had not then
4898 burnt unusually low, nor was the snuff of the candle very long; the
4899 candle, however, had been blown out.
4900
4901 Nothing had been taken away from any part of the house. Neither, beyond
4902 the blowing out of the candle,--which stood on a table between the door
4903 and my sister, and was behind her when she stood facing the fire and was
4904 struck,--was there any disarrangement of the kitchen, excepting such
4905 as she herself had made, in falling and bleeding. But, there was one
4906 remarkable piece of evidence on the spot. She had been struck with
4907 something blunt and heavy, on the head and spine; after the blows were
4908 dealt, something heavy had been thrown down at her with considerable
4909 violence, as she lay on her face. And on the ground beside her, when Joe
4910 picked her up, was a convict’s leg-iron which had been filed asunder.
4911
4912 Now, Joe, examining this iron with a smith’s eye, declared it to have
4913 been filed asunder some time ago. The hue and cry going off to the
4914 Hulks, and people coming thence to examine the iron, Joe’s opinion
4915 was corroborated. They did not undertake to say when it had left the
4916 prison-ships to which it undoubtedly had once belonged; but they claimed
4917 to know for certain that that particular manacle had not been worn by
4918 either of the two convicts who had escaped last night. Further, one of
4919 those two was already retaken, and had not freed himself of his iron.
4920
4921 Knowing what I knew, I set up an inference of my own here. I believed
4922 the iron to be my convict’s iron,--the iron I had seen and heard him
4923 filing at, on the marshes,--but my mind did not accuse him of having put
4924 it to its latest use. For I believed one of two other persons to have
4925 become possessed of it, and to have turned it to this cruel account.
4926 Either Orlick, or the strange man who had shown me the file.
4927
4928 Now, as to Orlick; he had gone to town exactly as he told us when we
4929 picked him up at the turnpike, he had been seen about town all the
4930 evening, he had been in divers companies in several public-houses, and
4931 he had come back with myself and Mr. Wopsle. There was nothing against
4932 him, save the quarrel; and my sister had quarrelled with him, and with
4933 everybody else about her, ten thousand times. As to the strange man; if
4934 he had come back for his two bank-notes there could have been no dispute
4935 about them, because my sister was fully prepared to restore them.
4936 Besides, there had been no altercation; the assailant had come in so
4937 silently and suddenly, that she had been felled before she could look
4938 round.
4939
4940 It was horrible to think that I had provided the weapon, however
4941 undesignedly, but I could hardly think otherwise. I suffered unspeakable
4942 trouble while I considered and reconsidered whether I should at last
4943 dissolve that spell of my childhood and tell Joe all the story. For
4944 months afterwards, I every day settled the question finally in the
4945 negative, and reopened and reargued it next morning. The contention
4946 came, after all, to this;--the secret was such an old one now, had so
4947 grown into me and become a part of myself, that I could not tear it
4948 away. In addition to the dread that, having led up to so much mischief,
4949 it would be now more likely than ever to alienate Joe from me if he
4950 believed it, I had a further restraining dread that he would not believe
4951 it, but would assort it with the fabulous dogs and veal-cutlets as a
4952 monstrous invention. However, I temporized with myself, of course--for,
4953 was I not wavering between right and wrong, when the thing is always
4954 done?--and resolved to make a full disclosure if I should see any
4955 such new occasion as a new chance of helping in the discovery of the
4956 assailant.
4957
4958 The Constables and the Bow Street men from London--for, this happened in
4959 the days of the extinct red-waistcoated police--were about the house for
4960 a week or two, and did pretty much what I have heard and read of like
4961 authorities doing in other such cases. They took up several obviously
4962 wrong people, and they ran their heads very hard against wrong ideas,
4963 and persisted in trying to fit the circumstances to the ideas, instead
4964 of trying to extract ideas from the circumstances. Also, they stood
4965 about the door of the Jolly Bargemen, with knowing and reserved looks
4966 that filled the whole neighborhood with admiration; and they had a
4967 mysterious manner of taking their drink, that was almost as good as
4968 taking the culprit. But not quite, for they never did it.
4969
4970 Long after these constitutional powers had dispersed, my sister lay very
4971 ill in bed. Her sight was disturbed, so that she saw objects multiplied,
4972 and grasped at visionary teacups and wineglasses instead of the
4973 realities; her hearing was greatly impaired; her memory also; and her
4974 speech was unintelligible. When, at last, she came round so far as to
4975 be helped downstairs, it was still necessary to keep my slate always by
4976 her, that she might indicate in writing what she could not indicate in
4977 speech. As she was (very bad handwriting apart) a more than indifferent
4978 speller, and as Joe was a more than indifferent reader, extraordinary
4979 complications arose between them which I was always called in to solve.
4980 The administration of mutton instead of medicine, the substitution of
4981 Tea for Joe, and the baker for bacon, were among the mildest of my own
4982 mistakes.
4983
4984 However, her temper was greatly improved, and she was patient. A
4985 tremulous uncertainty of the action of all her limbs soon became a
4986 part of her regular state, and afterwards, at intervals of two or three
4987 months, she would often put her hands to her head, and would then remain
4988 for about a week at a time in some gloomy aberration of mind. We were
4989 at a loss to find a suitable attendant for her, until a circumstance
4990 happened conveniently to relieve us. Mr. Wopsle’s great-aunt conquered a
4991 confirmed habit of living into which she had fallen, and Biddy became a
4992 part of our establishment.
4993
4994 It may have been about a month after my sister’s reappearance in the
4995 kitchen, when Biddy came to us with a small speckled box containing the
4996 whole of her worldly effects, and became a blessing to the household.
4997 Above all, she was a blessing to Joe, for the dear old fellow was sadly
4998 cut up by the constant contemplation of the wreck of his wife, and had
4999 been accustomed, while attending on her of an evening, to turn to me
5000 every now and then and say, with his blue eyes moistened, “Such a fine
5001 figure of a woman as she once were, Pip!” Biddy instantly taking the
5002 cleverest charge of her as though she had studied her from infancy; Joe
5003 became able in some sort to appreciate the greater quiet of his life,
5004 and to get down to the Jolly Bargemen now and then for a change that did
5005 him good. It was characteristic of the police people that they had all
5006 more or less suspected poor Joe (though he never knew it), and that they
5007 had to a man concurred in regarding him as one of the deepest spirits
5008 they had ever encountered.
5009
5010 Biddy’s first triumph in her new office, was to solve a difficulty
5011 that had completely vanquished me. I had tried hard at it, but had made
5012 nothing of it. Thus it was:--
5013
5014 Again and again and again, my sister had traced upon the slate, a
5015 character that looked like a curious T, and then with the utmost
5016 eagerness had called our attention to it as something she particularly
5017 wanted. I had in vain tried everything producible that began with a T,
5018 from tar to toast and tub. At length it had come into my head that the
5019 sign looked like a hammer, and on my lustily calling that word in my
5020 sister’s ear, she had begun to hammer on the table and had expressed a
5021 qualified assent. Thereupon, I had brought in all our hammers, one after
5022 another, but without avail. Then I bethought me of a crutch, the shape
5023 being much the same, and I borrowed one in the village, and displayed
5024 it to my sister with considerable confidence. But she shook her head to
5025 that extent when she was shown it, that we were terrified lest in her
5026 weak and shattered state she should dislocate her neck.
5027
5028 When my sister found that Biddy was very quick to understand her, this
5029 mysterious sign reappeared on the slate. Biddy looked thoughtfully
5030 at it, heard my explanation, looked thoughtfully at my sister, looked
5031 thoughtfully at Joe (who was always represented on the slate by his
5032 initial letter), and ran into the forge, followed by Joe and me.
5033
5034 “Why, of course!” cried Biddy, with an exultant face. “Don’t you see?
5035 It’s him!”
5036
5037 Orlick, without a doubt! She had lost his name, and could only signify
5038 him by his hammer. We told him why we wanted him to come into the
5039 kitchen, and he slowly laid down his hammer, wiped his brow with his
5040 arm, took another wipe at it with his apron, and came slouching
5041 out, with a curious loose vagabond bend in the knees that strongly
5042 distinguished him.
5043
5044 I confess that I expected to see my sister denounce him, and that I
5045 was disappointed by the different result. She manifested the greatest
5046 anxiety to be on good terms with him, was evidently much pleased by his
5047 being at length produced, and motioned that she would have him
5048 given something to drink. She watched his countenance as if she were
5049 particularly wishful to be assured that he took kindly to his reception,
5050 she showed every possible desire to conciliate him, and there was an air
5051 of humble propitiation in all she did, such as I have seen pervade the
5052 bearing of a child towards a hard master. After that day, a day rarely
5053 passed without her drawing the hammer on her slate, and without Orlick’s
5054 slouching in and standing doggedly before her, as if he knew no more
5055 than I did what to make of it.
5056
5057
5058
5059
5060 Chapter XVII
5061
5062 I now fell into a regular routine of apprenticeship life, which was
5063 varied beyond the limits of the village and the marshes, by no more
5064 remarkable circumstance than the arrival of my birthday and my paying
5065 another visit to Miss Havisham. I found Miss Sarah Pocket still on duty
5066 at the gate; I found Miss Havisham just as I had left her, and she spoke
5067 of Estella in the very same way, if not in the very same words. The
5068 interview lasted but a few minutes, and she gave me a guinea when I was
5069 going, and told me to come again on my next birthday. I may mention at
5070 once that this became an annual custom. I tried to decline taking the
5071 guinea on the first occasion, but with no better effect than causing her
5072 to ask me very angrily, if I expected more? Then, and after that, I took
5073 it.
5074
5075 So unchanging was the dull old house, the yellow light in the darkened
5076 room, the faded spectre in the chair by the dressing-table glass, that
5077 I felt as if the stopping of the clocks had stopped Time in that
5078 mysterious place, and, while I and everything else outside it grew
5079 older, it stood still. Daylight never entered the house as to my
5080 thoughts and remembrances of it, any more than as to the actual fact. It
5081 bewildered me, and under its influence I continued at heart to hate my
5082 trade and to be ashamed of home.
5083
5084 Imperceptibly I became conscious of a change in Biddy, however. Her
5085 shoes came up at the heel, her hair grew bright and neat, her hands were
5086 always clean. She was not beautiful,--she was common, and could not be
5087 like Estella,--but she was pleasant and wholesome and sweet-tempered.
5088 She had not been with us more than a year (I remember her being newly
5089 out of mourning at the time it struck me), when I observed to myself one
5090 evening that she had curiously thoughtful and attentive eyes; eyes that
5091 were very pretty and very good.
5092
5093 It came of my lifting up my own eyes from a task I was poring
5094 at--writing some passages from a book, to improve myself in two ways at
5095 once by a sort of stratagem--and seeing Biddy observant of what I was
5096 about. I laid down my pen, and Biddy stopped in her needlework without
5097 laying it down.
5098
5099 “Biddy,” said I, “how do you manage it? Either I am very stupid, or you
5100 are very clever.”
5101
5102 “What is it that I manage? I don’t know,” returned Biddy, smiling.
5103
5104 She managed our whole domestic life, and wonderfully too; but I did not
5105 mean that, though that made what I did mean more surprising.
5106
5107 “How do you manage, Biddy,” said I, “to learn everything that I learn,
5108 and always to keep up with me?” I was beginning to be rather vain of
5109 my knowledge, for I spent my birthday guineas on it, and set aside the
5110 greater part of my pocket-money for similar investment; though I have no
5111 doubt, now, that the little I knew was extremely dear at the price.
5112
5113 “I might as well ask you,” said Biddy, “how you manage?”
5114
5115 “No; because when I come in from the forge of a night, any one can see
5116 me turning to at it. But you never turn to at it, Biddy.”
5117
5118 “I suppose I must catch it like a cough,” said Biddy, quietly; and went
5119 on with her sewing.
5120
5121 Pursuing my idea as I leaned back in my wooden chair, and looked at
5122 Biddy sewing away with her head on one side, I began to think her rather
5123 an extraordinary girl. For I called to mind now, that she was equally
5124 accomplished in the terms of our trade, and the names of our different
5125 sorts of work, and our various tools. In short, whatever I knew, Biddy
5126 knew. Theoretically, she was already as good a blacksmith as I, or
5127 better.
5128
5129 “You are one of those, Biddy,” said I, “who make the most of every
5130 chance. You never had a chance before you came here, and see how
5131 improved you are!”
5132
5133 Biddy looked at me for an instant, and went on with her sewing. “I was
5134 your first teacher though; wasn’t I?” said she, as she sewed.
5135
5136 “Biddy!” I exclaimed, in amazement. “Why, you are crying!”
5137
5138 “No I am not,” said Biddy, looking up and laughing. “What put that in
5139 your head?”
5140
5141 What could have put it in my head but the glistening of a tear as it
5142 dropped on her work? I sat silent, recalling what a drudge she had been
5143 until Mr. Wopsle’s great-aunt successfully overcame that bad habit of
5144 living, so highly desirable to be got rid of by some people. I recalled
5145 the hopeless circumstances by which she had been surrounded in the
5146 miserable little shop and the miserable little noisy evening school,
5147 with that miserable old bundle of incompetence always to be dragged and
5148 shouldered. I reflected that even in those untoward times there must
5149 have been latent in Biddy what was now developing, for, in my first
5150 uneasiness and discontent I had turned to her for help, as a matter of
5151 course. Biddy sat quietly sewing, shedding no more tears, and while I
5152 looked at her and thought about it all, it occurred to me that perhaps
5153 I had not been sufficiently grateful to Biddy. I might have been too
5154 reserved, and should have patronized her more (though I did not use that
5155 precise word in my meditations) with my confidence.
5156
5157 “Yes, Biddy,” I observed, when I had done turning it over, “you were my
5158 first teacher, and that at a time when we little thought of ever being
5159 together like this, in this kitchen.”
5160
5161 “Ah, poor thing!” replied Biddy. It was like her self-forgetfulness to
5162 transfer the remark to my sister, and to get up and be busy about her,
5163 making her more comfortable; “that’s sadly true!”
5164
5165 “Well!” said I, “we must talk together a little more, as we used to do.
5166 And I must consult you a little more, as I used to do. Let us have a
5167 quiet walk on the marshes next Sunday, Biddy, and a long chat.”
5168
5169 My sister was never left alone now; but Joe more than readily undertook
5170 the care of her on that Sunday afternoon, and Biddy and I went out
5171 together. It was summer-time, and lovely weather. When we had passed the
5172 village and the church and the churchyard, and were out on the marshes
5173 and began to see the sails of the ships as they sailed on, I began to
5174 combine Miss Havisham and Estella with the prospect, in my usual way.
5175 When we came to the river-side and sat down on the bank, with the water
5176 rippling at our feet, making it all more quiet than it would have been
5177 without that sound, I resolved that it was a good time and place for the
5178 admission of Biddy into my inner confidence.
5179
5180 “Biddy,” said I, after binding her to secrecy, “I want to be a
5181 gentleman.”
5182
5183 “O, I wouldn’t, if I was you!” she returned. “I don’t think it would
5184 answer.”
5185
5186 “Biddy,” said I, with some severity, “I have particular reasons for
5187 wanting to be a gentleman.”
5188
5189 “You know best, Pip; but don’t you think you are happier as you are?”
5190
5191 “Biddy,” I exclaimed, impatiently, “I am not at all happy as I am. I
5192 am disgusted with my calling and with my life. I have never taken to
5193 either, since I was bound. Don’t be absurd.”
5194
5195 “Was I absurd?” said Biddy, quietly raising her eyebrows; “I am sorry
5196 for that; I didn’t mean to be. I only want you to do well, and to be
5197 comfortable.”
5198
5199 “Well, then, understand once for all that I never shall or can be
5200 comfortable--or anything but miserable--there, Biddy!--unless I can lead
5201 a very different sort of life from the life I lead now.”
5202
5203 “That’s a pity!” said Biddy, shaking her head with a sorrowful air.
5204
5205 Now, I too had so often thought it a pity, that, in the singular kind of
5206 quarrel with myself which I was always carrying on, I was half inclined
5207 to shed tears of vexation and distress when Biddy gave utterance to her
5208 sentiment and my own. I told her she was right, and I knew it was much
5209 to be regretted, but still it was not to be helped.
5210
5211 “If I could have settled down,” I said to Biddy, plucking up the short
5212 grass within reach, much as I had once upon a time pulled my feelings
5213 out of my hair and kicked them into the brewery wall,--“if I could have
5214 settled down and been but half as fond of the forge as I was when I was
5215 little, I know it would have been much better for me. You and I and Joe
5216 would have wanted nothing then, and Joe and I would perhaps have gone
5217 partners when I was out of my time, and I might even have grown up to
5218 keep company with you, and we might have sat on this very bank on a fine
5219 Sunday, quite different people. I should have been good enough for you;
5220 shouldn’t I, Biddy?”
5221
5222 Biddy sighed as she looked at the ships sailing on, and returned for
5223 answer, “Yes; I am not over-particular.” It scarcely sounded flattering,
5224 but I knew she meant well.
5225
5226 “Instead of that,” said I, plucking up more grass and chewing a blade or
5227 two, “see how I am going on. Dissatisfied, and uncomfortable, and--what
5228 would it signify to me, being coarse and common, if nobody had told me
5229 so!”
5230
5231 Biddy turned her face suddenly towards mine, and looked far more
5232 attentively at me than she had looked at the sailing ships.
5233
5234 “It was neither a very true nor a very polite thing to say,” she
5235 remarked, directing her eyes to the ships again. “Who said it?”
5236
5237 I was disconcerted, for I had broken away without quite seeing where
5238 I was going to. It was not to be shuffled off now, however, and I
5239 answered, “The beautiful young lady at Miss Havisham’s, and she’s more
5240 beautiful than anybody ever was, and I admire her dreadfully, and I want
5241 to be a gentleman on her account.” Having made this lunatic confession,
5242 I began to throw my torn-up grass into the river, as if I had some
5243 thoughts of following it.
5244
5245 “Do you want to be a gentleman, to spite her or to gain her over?” Biddy
5246 quietly asked me, after a pause.
5247
5248 “I don’t know,” I moodily answered.
5249
5250 “Because, if it is to spite her,” Biddy pursued, “I should think--but
5251 you know best--that might be better and more independently done by
5252 caring nothing for her words. And if it is to gain her over, I should
5253 think--but you know best--she was not worth gaining over.”
5254
5255 Exactly what I myself had thought, many times. Exactly what was
5256 perfectly manifest to me at the moment. But how could I, a poor dazed
5257 village lad, avoid that wonderful inconsistency into which the best and
5258 wisest of men fall every day?
5259
5260 “It may be all quite true,” said I to Biddy, “but I admire her
5261 dreadfully.”
5262
5263 In short, I turned over on my face when I came to that, and got a good
5264 grasp on the hair on each side of my head, and wrenched it well. All the
5265 while knowing the madness of my heart to be so very mad and misplaced,
5266 that I was quite conscious it would have served my face right, if I
5267 had lifted it up by my hair, and knocked it against the pebbles as a
5268 punishment for belonging to such an idiot.
5269
5270 Biddy was the wisest of girls, and she tried to reason no more with me.
5271 She put her hand, which was a comfortable hand though roughened by work,
5272 upon my hands, one after another, and gently took them out of my hair.
5273 Then she softly patted my shoulder in a soothing way, while with my face
5274 upon my sleeve I cried a little,--exactly as I had done in the brewery
5275 yard,--and felt vaguely convinced that I was very much ill-used by
5276 somebody, or by everybody; I can’t say which.
5277
5278 “I am glad of one thing,” said Biddy, “and that is, that you have felt
5279 you could give me your confidence, Pip. And I am glad of another thing,
5280 and that is, that of course you know you may depend upon my keeping it
5281 and always so far deserving it. If your first teacher (dear! such a poor
5282 one, and so much in need of being taught herself!) had been your teacher
5283 at the present time, she thinks she knows what lesson she would set. But
5284 it would be a hard one to learn, and you have got beyond her, and it’s
5285 of no use now.” So, with a quiet sigh for me, Biddy rose from the bank,
5286 and said, with a fresh and pleasant change of voice, “Shall we walk a
5287 little farther, or go home?”
5288
5289 “Biddy,” I cried, getting up, putting my arm round her neck, and giving
5290 her a kiss, “I shall always tell you everything.”
5291
5292 “Till you’re a gentleman,” said Biddy.
5293
5294 “You know I never shall be, so that’s always. Not that I have any
5295 occasion to tell you anything, for you know everything I know,--as I
5296 told you at home the other night.”
5297
5298 “Ah!” said Biddy, quite in a whisper, as she looked away at the ships.
5299 And then repeated, with her former pleasant change, “shall we walk a
5300 little farther, or go home?”
5301
5302 I said to Biddy we would walk a little farther, and we did so, and the
5303 summer afternoon toned down into the summer evening, and it was very
5304 beautiful. I began to consider whether I was not more naturally and
5305 wholesomely situated, after all, in these circumstances, than playing
5306 beggar my neighbor by candle-light in the room with the stopped clocks,
5307 and being despised by Estella. I thought it would be very good for me if
5308 I could get her out of my head, with all the rest of those remembrances
5309 and fancies, and could go to work determined to relish what I had to do,
5310 and stick to it, and make the best of it. I asked myself the question
5311 whether I did not surely know that if Estella were beside me at that
5312 moment instead of Biddy, she would make me miserable? I was obliged to
5313 admit that I did know it for a certainty, and I said to myself, “Pip,
5314 what a fool you are!”
5315
5316 We talked a good deal as we walked, and all that Biddy said seemed
5317 right. Biddy was never insulting, or capricious, or Biddy to-day and
5318 somebody else to-morrow; she would have derived only pain, and no
5319 pleasure, from giving me pain; she would far rather have wounded her own
5320 breast than mine. How could it be, then, that I did not like her much
5321 the better of the two?
5322
5323 “Biddy,” said I, when we were walking homeward, “I wish you could put me
5324 right.”
5325
5326 “I wish I could!” said Biddy.
5327
5328 “If I could only get myself to fall in love with you,--you don’t mind my
5329 speaking so openly to such an old acquaintance?”
5330
5331 “Oh dear, not at all!” said Biddy. “Don’t mind me.”
5332
5333 “If I could only get myself to do it, that would be the thing for me.”
5334
5335 “But you never will, you see,” said Biddy.
5336
5337 It did not appear quite so unlikely to me that evening, as it would have
5338 done if we had discussed it a few hours before. I therefore observed
5339 I was not quite sure of that. But Biddy said she was, and she said it
5340 decisively. In my heart I believed her to be right; and yet I took it
5341 rather ill, too, that she should be so positive on the point.
5342
5343 When we came near the churchyard, we had to cross an embankment, and
5344 get over a stile near a sluice-gate. There started up, from the gate, or
5345 from the rushes, or from the ooze (which was quite in his stagnant way),
5346 Old Orlick.
5347
5348 “Halloa!” he growled, “where are you two going?”
5349
5350 “Where should we be going, but home?”
5351
5352 “Well, then,” said he, “I’m jiggered if I don’t see you home!”
5353
5354 This penalty of being jiggered was a favorite supposititious case of
5355 his. He attached no definite meaning to the word that I am aware of, but
5356 used it, like his own pretended Christian name, to affront mankind, and
5357 convey an idea of something savagely damaging. When I was younger, I
5358 had had a general belief that if he had jiggered me personally, he would
5359 have done it with a sharp and twisted hook.
5360
5361 Biddy was much against his going with us, and said to me in a whisper,
5362 “Don’t let him come; I don’t like him.” As I did not like him either,
5363 I took the liberty of saying that we thanked him, but we didn’t want
5364 seeing home. He received that piece of information with a yell of
5365 laughter, and dropped back, but came slouching after us at a little
5366 distance.
5367
5368 Curious to know whether Biddy suspected him of having had a hand in
5369 that murderous attack of which my sister had never been able to give any
5370 account, I asked her why she did not like him.
5371
5372 “Oh!” she replied, glancing over her shoulder as he slouched after us,
5373 “because I--I am afraid he likes me.”
5374
5375 “Did he ever tell you he liked you?” I asked indignantly.
5376
5377 “No,” said Biddy, glancing over her shoulder again, “he never told me
5378 so; but he dances at me, whenever he can catch my eye.”
5379
5380 However novel and peculiar this testimony of attachment, I did not
5381 doubt the accuracy of the interpretation. I was very hot indeed upon
5382 Old Orlick’s daring to admire her; as hot as if it were an outrage on
5383 myself.
5384
5385 “But it makes no difference to you, you know,” said Biddy, calmly.
5386
5387 “No, Biddy, it makes no difference to me; only I don’t like it; I don’t
5388 approve of it.”
5389
5390 “Nor I neither,” said Biddy. “Though that makes no difference to you.”
5391
5392 “Exactly,” said I; “but I must tell you I should have no opinion of you,
5393 Biddy, if he danced at you with your own consent.”
5394
5395 I kept an eye on Orlick after that night, and, whenever circumstances
5396 were favorable to his dancing at Biddy, got before him to obscure that
5397 demonstration. He had struck root in Joe’s establishment, by reason
5398 of my sister’s sudden fancy for him, or I should have tried to get him
5399 dismissed. He quite understood and reciprocated my good intentions, as I
5400 had reason to know thereafter.
5401
5402 And now, because my mind was not confused enough before, I complicated
5403 its confusion fifty thousand-fold, by having states and seasons when I
5404 was clear that Biddy was immeasurably better than Estella, and that the
5405 plain honest working life to which I was born had nothing in it to
5406 be ashamed of, but offered me sufficient means of self-respect
5407 and happiness. At those times, I would decide conclusively that my
5408 disaffection to dear old Joe and the forge was gone, and that I was
5409 growing up in a fair way to be partners with Joe and to keep company
5410 with Biddy,--when all in a moment some confounding remembrance of the
5411 Havisham days would fall upon me like a destructive missile, and scatter
5412 my wits again. Scattered wits take a long time picking up; and often
5413 before I had got them well together, they would be dispersed in all
5414 directions by one stray thought, that perhaps after all Miss Havisham
5415 was going to make my fortune when my time was out.
5416
5417 If my time had run out, it would have left me still at the height of my
5418 perplexities, I dare say. It never did run out, however, but was brought
5419 to a premature end, as I proceed to relate.
5420
5421
5422
5423
5424 Chapter XVIII
5425
5426 It was in the fourth year of my apprenticeship to Joe, and it was a
5427 Saturday night. There was a group assembled round the fire at the Three
5428 Jolly Bargemen, attentive to Mr. Wopsle as he read the newspaper aloud.
5429 Of that group I was one.
5430
5431 A highly popular murder had been committed, and Mr. Wopsle was imbrued
5432 in blood to the eyebrows. He gloated over every abhorrent adjective
5433 in the description, and identified himself with every witness at the
5434 Inquest. He faintly moaned, “I am done for,” as the victim, and he
5435 barbarously bellowed, “I’ll serve you out,” as the murderer. He gave the
5436 medical testimony, in pointed imitation of our local practitioner; and
5437 he piped and shook, as the aged turnpike-keeper who had heard blows, to
5438 an extent so very paralytic as to suggest a doubt regarding the mental
5439 competency of that witness. The coroner, in Mr. Wopsle’s hands, became
5440 Timon of Athens; the beadle, Coriolanus. He enjoyed himself thoroughly,
5441 and we all enjoyed ourselves, and were delightfully comfortable. In this
5442 cosey state of mind we came to the verdict Wilful Murder.
5443
5444 Then, and not sooner, I became aware of a strange gentleman leaning over
5445 the back of the settle opposite me, looking on. There was an expression
5446 of contempt on his face, and he bit the side of a great forefinger as he
5447 watched the group of faces.
5448
5449 “Well!” said the stranger to Mr. Wopsle, when the reading was done, “you
5450 have settled it all to your own satisfaction, I have no doubt?”
5451
5452 Everybody started and looked up, as if it were the murderer. He looked
5453 at everybody coldly and sarcastically.
5454
5455 “Guilty, of course?” said he. “Out with it. Come!”
5456
5457 “Sir,” returned Mr. Wopsle, “without having the honor of your
5458 acquaintance, I do say Guilty.” Upon this we all took courage to unite
5459 in a confirmatory murmur.
5460
5461 “I know you do,” said the stranger; “I knew you would. I told you so.
5462 But now I’ll ask you a question. Do you know, or do you not know,
5463 that the law of England supposes every man to be innocent, until he is
5464 proved--proved--to be guilty?”
5465
5466 “Sir,” Mr. Wopsle began to reply, “as an Englishman myself, I--”
5467
5468 “Come!” said the stranger, biting his forefinger at him. “Don’t evade
5469 the question. Either you know it, or you don’t know it. Which is it to
5470 be?”
5471
5472 He stood with his head on one side and himself on one side, in a
5473 bullying, interrogative manner, and he threw his forefinger at Mr.
5474 Wopsle,--as it were to mark him out--before biting it again.
5475
5476 “Now!” said he. “Do you know it, or don’t you know it?”
5477
5478 “Certainly I know it,” replied Mr. Wopsle.
5479
5480 “Certainly you know it. Then why didn’t you say so at first? Now, I’ll
5481 ask you another question,”--taking possession of Mr. Wopsle, as if he
5482 had a right to him,--“do you know that none of these witnesses have yet
5483 been cross-examined?”
5484
5485 Mr. Wopsle was beginning, “I can only say--” when the stranger stopped
5486 him.
5487
5488 “What? You won’t answer the question, yes or no? Now, I’ll try you
5489 again.” Throwing his finger at him again. “Attend to me. Are you
5490 aware, or are you not aware, that none of these witnesses have yet been
5491 cross-examined? Come, I only want one word from you. Yes, or no?”
5492
5493 Mr. Wopsle hesitated, and we all began to conceive rather a poor opinion
5494 of him.
5495
5496 “Come!” said the stranger, “I’ll help you. You don’t deserve help, but
5497 I’ll help you. Look at that paper you hold in your hand. What is it?”
5498
5499 “What is it?” repeated Mr. Wopsle, eyeing it, much at a loss.
5500
5501 “Is it,” pursued the stranger in his most sarcastic and suspicious
5502 manner, “the printed paper you have just been reading from?”
5503
5504 “Undoubtedly.”
5505
5506 “Undoubtedly. Now, turn to that paper, and tell me whether it distinctly
5507 states that the prisoner expressly said that his legal advisers
5508 instructed him altogether to reserve his defence?”
5509
5510 “I read that just now,” Mr. Wopsle pleaded.
5511
5512 “Never mind what you read just now, sir; I don’t ask you what you read
5513 just now. You may read the Lord’s Prayer backwards, if you like,--and,
5514 perhaps, have done it before to-day. Turn to the paper. No, no, no my
5515 friend; not to the top of the column; you know better than that; to
5516 the bottom, to the bottom.” (We all began to think Mr. Wopsle full of
5517 subterfuge.) “Well? Have you found it?”
5518
5519 “Here it is,” said Mr. Wopsle.
5520
5521 “Now, follow that passage with your eye, and tell me whether it
5522 distinctly states that the prisoner expressly said that he was
5523 instructed by his legal advisers wholly to reserve his defence? Come! Do
5524 you make that of it?”
5525
5526 Mr. Wopsle answered, “Those are not the exact words.”
5527
5528 “Not the exact words!” repeated the gentleman bitterly. “Is that the
5529 exact substance?”
5530
5531 “Yes,” said Mr. Wopsle.
5532
5533 “Yes,” repeated the stranger, looking round at the rest of the company
5534 with his right hand extended towards the witness, Wopsle. “And now I ask
5535 you what you say to the conscience of that man who, with that passage
5536 before his eyes, can lay his head upon his pillow after having
5537 pronounced a fellow-creature guilty, unheard?”
5538
5539 We all began to suspect that Mr. Wopsle was not the man we had thought
5540 him, and that he was beginning to be found out.
5541
5542 “And that same man, remember,” pursued the gentleman, throwing his
5543 finger at Mr. Wopsle heavily,--“that same man might be summoned as a
5544 juryman upon this very trial, and, having thus deeply committed himself,
5545 might return to the bosom of his family and lay his head upon his
5546 pillow, after deliberately swearing that he would well and truly try the
5547 issue joined between Our Sovereign Lord the King and the prisoner at the
5548 bar, and would a true verdict give according to the evidence, so help
5549 him God!”
5550
5551 We were all deeply persuaded that the unfortunate Wopsle had gone too
5552 far, and had better stop in his reckless career while there was yet
5553 time.
5554
5555 The strange gentleman, with an air of authority not to be disputed, and
5556 with a manner expressive of knowing something secret about every one of
5557 us that would effectually do for each individual if he chose to disclose
5558 it, left the back of the settle, and came into the space between the two
5559 settles, in front of the fire, where he remained standing, his left hand
5560 in his pocket, and he biting the forefinger of his right.
5561
5562 “From information I have received,” said he, looking round at us as we
5563 all quailed before him, “I have reason to believe there is a blacksmith
5564 among you, by name Joseph--or Joe--Gargery. Which is the man?”
5565
5566 “Here is the man,” said Joe.
5567
5568 The strange gentleman beckoned him out of his place, and Joe went.
5569
5570 “You have an apprentice,” pursued the stranger, “commonly known as Pip?
5571 Is he here?”
5572
5573 “I am here!” I cried.
5574
5575 The stranger did not recognize me, but I recognized him as the gentleman
5576 I had met on the stairs, on the occasion of my second visit to Miss
5577 Havisham. I had known him the moment I saw him looking over the settle,
5578 and now that I stood confronting him with his hand upon my shoulder,
5579 I checked off again in detail his large head, his dark complexion, his
5580 deep-set eyes, his bushy black eyebrows, his large watch-chain, his
5581 strong black dots of beard and whisker, and even the smell of scented
5582 soap on his great hand.
5583
5584 “I wish to have a private conference with you two,” said he, when he had
5585 surveyed me at his leisure. “It will take a little time. Perhaps we
5586 had better go to your place of residence. I prefer not to anticipate my
5587 communication here; you will impart as much or as little of it as you
5588 please to your friends afterwards; I have nothing to do with that.”
5589
5590 Amidst a wondering silence, we three walked out of the Jolly Bargemen,
5591 and in a wondering silence walked home. While going along, the strange
5592 gentleman occasionally looked at me, and occasionally bit the side of
5593 his finger. As we neared home, Joe vaguely acknowledging the occasion as
5594 an impressive and ceremonious one, went on ahead to open the front door.
5595 Our conference was held in the state parlor, which was feebly lighted by
5596 one candle.
5597
5598 It began with the strange gentleman’s sitting down at the table, drawing
5599 the candle to him, and looking over some entries in his pocket-book.
5600 He then put up the pocket-book and set the candle a little aside, after
5601 peering round it into the darkness at Joe and me, to ascertain which was
5602 which.
5603
5604 “My name,” he said, “is Jaggers, and I am a lawyer in London. I am
5605 pretty well known. I have unusual business to transact with you, and I
5606 commence by explaining that it is not of my originating. If my advice
5607 had been asked, I should not have been here. It was not asked, and you
5608 see me here. What I have to do as the confidential agent of another, I
5609 do. No less, no more.”
5610
5611 Finding that he could not see us very well from where he sat, he got
5612 up, and threw one leg over the back of a chair and leaned upon it; thus
5613 having one foot on the seat of the chair, and one foot on the ground.
5614
5615 “Now, Joseph Gargery, I am the bearer of an offer to relieve you of
5616 this young fellow your apprentice. You would not object to cancel his
5617 indentures at his request and for his good? You would want nothing for
5618 so doing?”
5619
5620 “Lord forbid that I should want anything for not standing in Pip’s way,”
5621 said Joe, staring.
5622
5623 “Lord forbidding is pious, but not to the purpose,” returned Mr.
5624 Jaggers. “The question is, Would you want anything? Do you want
5625 anything?”
5626
5627 “The answer is,” returned Joe, sternly, “No.”
5628
5629 I thought Mr. Jaggers glanced at Joe, as if he considered him a fool for
5630 his disinterestedness. But I was too much bewildered between breathless
5631 curiosity and surprise, to be sure of it.
5632
5633 “Very well,” said Mr. Jaggers. “Recollect the admission you have made,
5634 and don’t try to go from it presently.”
5635
5636 “Who’s a going to try?” retorted Joe.
5637
5638 “I don’t say anybody is. Do you keep a dog?”
5639
5640 “Yes, I do keep a dog.”
5641
5642 “Bear in mind then, that Brag is a good dog, but Holdfast is a better.
5643 Bear that in mind, will you?” repeated Mr. Jaggers, shutting his eyes
5644 and nodding his head at Joe, as if he were forgiving him something.
5645 “Now, I return to this young fellow. And the communication I have got to
5646 make is, that he has great expectations.”
5647
5648 Joe and I gasped, and looked at one another.
5649
5650 “I am instructed to communicate to him,” said Mr. Jaggers, throwing
5651 his finger at me sideways, “that he will come into a handsome property.
5652 Further, that it is the desire of the present possessor of that
5653 property, that he be immediately removed from his present sphere of life
5654 and from this place, and be brought up as a gentleman,--in a word, as a
5655 young fellow of great expectations.”
5656
5657 My dream was out; my wild fancy was surpassed by sober reality; Miss
5658 Havisham was going to make my fortune on a grand scale.
5659
5660 “Now, Mr. Pip,” pursued the lawyer, “I address the rest of what I have
5661 to say, to you. You are to understand, first, that it is the request
5662 of the person from whom I take my instructions that you always bear
5663 the name of Pip. You will have no objection, I dare say, to your great
5664 expectations being encumbered with that easy condition. But if you have
5665 any objection, this is the time to mention it.”
5666
5667 My heart was beating so fast, and there was such a singing in my ears,
5668 that I could scarcely stammer I had no objection.
5669
5670 “I should think not! Now you are to understand, secondly, Mr. Pip, that
5671 the name of the person who is your liberal benefactor remains a profound
5672 secret, until the person chooses to reveal it. I am empowered to mention
5673 that it is the intention of the person to reveal it at first hand by
5674 word of mouth to yourself. When or where that intention may be carried
5675 out, I cannot say; no one can say. It may be years hence. Now, you are
5676 distinctly to understand that you are most positively prohibited from
5677 making any inquiry on this head, or any allusion or reference, however
5678 distant, to any individual whomsoever as the individual, in all the
5679 communications you may have with me. If you have a suspicion in your own
5680 breast, keep that suspicion in your own breast. It is not the least to
5681 the purpose what the reasons of this prohibition are; they may be the
5682 strongest and gravest reasons, or they may be mere whim. This is not for
5683 you to inquire into. The condition is laid down. Your acceptance of it,
5684 and your observance of it as binding, is the only remaining condition
5685 that I am charged with, by the person from whom I take my instructions,
5686 and for whom I am not otherwise responsible. That person is the person
5687 from whom you derive your expectations, and the secret is solely held by
5688 that person and by me. Again, not a very difficult condition with which
5689 to encumber such a rise in fortune; but if you have any objection to it,
5690 this is the time to mention it. Speak out.”
5691
5692 Once more, I stammered with difficulty that I had no objection.
5693
5694 “I should think not! Now, Mr. Pip, I have done with stipulations.”
5695 Though he called me Mr. Pip, and began rather to make up to me, he still
5696 could not get rid of a certain air of bullying suspicion; and even now
5697 he occasionally shut his eyes and threw his finger at me while he
5698 spoke, as much as to express that he knew all kinds of things to my
5699 disparagement, if he only chose to mention them. “We come next, to mere
5700 details of arrangement. You must know that, although I have used
5701 the term ‘expectations’ more than once, you are not endowed with
5702 expectations only. There is already lodged in my hands a sum of money
5703 amply sufficient for your suitable education and maintenance. You will
5704 please consider me your guardian. Oh!” for I was going to thank him, “I
5705 tell you at once, I am paid for my services, or I shouldn’t render them.
5706 It is considered that you must be better educated, in accordance with
5707 your altered position, and that you will be alive to the importance and
5708 necessity of at once entering on that advantage.”
5709
5710 I said I had always longed for it.
5711
5712 “Never mind what you have always longed for, Mr. Pip,” he retorted;
5713 “keep to the record. If you long for it now, that’s enough. Am I
5714 answered that you are ready to be placed at once under some proper
5715 tutor? Is that it?”
5716
5717 I stammered yes, that was it.
5718
5719 “Good. Now, your inclinations are to be consulted. I don’t think that
5720 wise, mind, but it’s my trust. Have you ever heard of any tutor whom you
5721 would prefer to another?”
5722
5723 I had never heard of any tutor but Biddy and Mr. Wopsle’s great-aunt;
5724 so, I replied in the negative.
5725
5726 “There is a certain tutor, of whom I have some knowledge, who I think
5727 might suit the purpose,” said Mr. Jaggers. “I don’t recommend him,
5728 observe; because I never recommend anybody. The gentleman I speak of is
5729 one Mr. Matthew Pocket.”
5730
5731 Ah! I caught at the name directly. Miss Havisham’s relation. The Matthew
5732 whom Mr. and Mrs. Camilla had spoken of. The Matthew whose place was to
5733 be at Miss Havisham’s head, when she lay dead, in her bride’s dress on
5734 the bride’s table.
5735
5736 “You know the name?” said Mr. Jaggers, looking shrewdly at me, and then
5737 shutting up his eyes while he waited for my answer.
5738
5739 My answer was, that I had heard of the name.
5740
5741 “Oh!” said he. “You have heard of the name. But the question is, what do
5742 you say of it?”
5743
5744 I said, or tried to say, that I was much obliged to him for his
5745 recommendation--
5746
5747 “No, my young friend!” he interrupted, shaking his great head very
5748 slowly. “Recollect yourself!”
5749
5750 Not recollecting myself, I began again that I was much obliged to him
5751 for his recommendation--
5752
5753 “No, my young friend,” he interrupted, shaking his head and frowning and
5754 smiling both at once,--“no, no, no; it’s very well done, but it won’t
5755 do; you are too young to fix me with it. Recommendation is not the word,
5756 Mr. Pip. Try another.”
5757
5758 Correcting myself, I said that I was much obliged to him for his mention
5759 of Mr. Matthew Pocket--
5760
5761 “That’s more like it!” cried Mr. Jaggers.--And (I added), I would
5762 gladly try that gentleman.
5763
5764 “Good. You had better try him in his own house. The way shall be
5765 prepared for you, and you can see his son first, who is in London. When
5766 will you come to London?”
5767
5768 I said (glancing at Joe, who stood looking on, motionless), that I
5769 supposed I could come directly.
5770
5771 “First,” said Mr. Jaggers, “you should have some new clothes to come in,
5772 and they should not be working-clothes. Say this day week. You’ll want
5773 some money. Shall I leave you twenty guineas?”
5774
5775 He produced a long purse, with the greatest coolness, and counted them
5776 out on the table and pushed them over to me. This was the first time he
5777 had taken his leg from the chair. He sat astride of the chair when he
5778 had pushed the money over, and sat swinging his purse and eyeing Joe.
5779
5780 “Well, Joseph Gargery? You look dumbfoundered?”
5781
5782 “I am!” said Joe, in a very decided manner.
5783
5784 “It was understood that you wanted nothing for yourself, remember?”
5785
5786 “It were understood,” said Joe. “And it are understood. And it ever will
5787 be similar according.”
5788
5789 “But what,” said Mr. Jaggers, swinging his purse,--“what if it was in my
5790 instructions to make you a present, as compensation?”
5791
5792 “As compensation what for?” Joe demanded.
5793
5794 “For the loss of his services.”
5795
5796 Joe laid his hand upon my shoulder with the touch of a woman. I have
5797 often thought him since, like the steam-hammer that can crush a man or
5798 pat an egg-shell, in his combination of strength with gentleness. “Pip
5799 is that hearty welcome,” said Joe, “to go free with his services, to
5800 honor and fortun’, as no words can tell him. But if you think as Money
5801 can make compensation to me for the loss of the little child--what come
5802 to the forge--and ever the best of friends!--”
5803
5804 O dear good Joe, whom I was so ready to leave and so unthankful to, I
5805 see you again, with your muscular blacksmith’s arm before your eyes,
5806 and your broad chest heaving, and your voice dying away. O dear good
5807 faithful tender Joe, I feel the loving tremble of your hand upon my arm,
5808 as solemnly this day as if it had been the rustle of an angel’s wing!
5809
5810 But I encouraged Joe at the time. I was lost in the mazes of my future
5811 fortunes, and could not retrace the by-paths we had trodden together. I
5812 begged Joe to be comforted, for (as he said) we had ever been the best
5813 of friends, and (as I said) we ever would be so. Joe scooped his eyes
5814 with his disengaged wrist, as if he were bent on gouging himself, but
5815 said not another word.
5816
5817 Mr. Jaggers had looked on at this, as one who recognized in Joe the
5818 village idiot, and in me his keeper. When it was over, he said, weighing
5819 in his hand the purse he had ceased to swing:--
5820
5821 “Now, Joseph Gargery, I warn you this is your last chance. No half
5822 measures with me. If you mean to take a present that I have it in charge
5823 to make you, speak out, and you shall have it. If on the contrary you
5824 mean to say--” Here, to his great amazement, he was stopped by Joe’s
5825 suddenly working round him with every demonstration of a fell pugilistic
5826 purpose.
5827
5828 “Which I meantersay,” cried Joe, “that if you come into my place
5829 bull-baiting and badgering me, come out! Which I meantersay as sech if
5830 you’re a man, come on! Which I meantersay that what I say, I meantersay
5831 and stand or fall by!”
5832
5833 I drew Joe away, and he immediately became placable; merely stating to
5834 me, in an obliging manner and as a polite expostulatory notice to any
5835 one whom it might happen to concern, that he were not a going to be
5836 bull-baited and badgered in his own place. Mr. Jaggers had risen when
5837 Joe demonstrated, and had backed near the door. Without evincing
5838 any inclination to come in again, he there delivered his valedictory
5839 remarks. They were these.
5840
5841 “Well, Mr. Pip, I think the sooner you leave here--as you are to be a
5842 gentleman--the better. Let it stand for this day week, and you shall
5843 receive my printed address in the meantime. You can take a hackney-coach
5844 at the stage-coach office in London, and come straight to me.
5845 Understand, that I express no opinion, one way or other, on the trust
5846 I undertake. I am paid for undertaking it, and I do so. Now, understand
5847 that, finally. Understand that!”
5848
5849 He was throwing his finger at both of us, and I think would have gone
5850 on, but for his seeming to think Joe dangerous, and going off.
5851
5852 Something came into my head which induced me to run after him, as he was
5853 going down to the Jolly Bargemen, where he had left a hired carriage.
5854
5855 “I beg your pardon, Mr. Jaggers.”
5856
5857 “Halloa!” said he, facing round, “what’s the matter?”
5858
5859 “I wish to be quite right, Mr. Jaggers, and to keep to your directions;
5860 so I thought I had better ask. Would there be any objection to my taking
5861 leave of any one I know, about here, before I go away?”
5862
5863 “No,” said he, looking as if he hardly understood me.
5864
5865 “I don’t mean in the village only, but up town?”
5866
5867 “No,” said he. “No objection.”
5868
5869 I thanked him and ran home again, and there I found that Joe had already
5870 locked the front door and vacated the state parlor, and was seated
5871 by the kitchen fire with a hand on each knee, gazing intently at the
5872 burning coals. I too sat down before the fire and gazed at the coals,
5873 and nothing was said for a long time.
5874
5875 My sister was in her cushioned chair in her corner, and Biddy sat at her
5876 needle-work before the fire, and Joe sat next Biddy, and I sat next Joe
5877 in the corner opposite my sister. The more I looked into the glowing
5878 coals, the more incapable I became of looking at Joe; the longer the
5879 silence lasted, the more unable I felt to speak.
5880
5881 At length I got out, “Joe, have you told Biddy?”
5882
5883 “No, Pip,” returned Joe, still looking at the fire, and holding his
5884 knees tight, as if he had private information that they intended to make
5885 off somewhere, “which I left it to yourself, Pip.”
5886
5887 “I would rather you told, Joe.”
5888
5889 “Pip’s a gentleman of fortun’ then,” said Joe, “and God bless him in
5890 it!”
5891
5892 Biddy dropped her work, and looked at me. Joe held his knees and looked
5893 at me. I looked at both of them. After a pause, they both heartily
5894 congratulated me; but there was a certain touch of sadness in their
5895 congratulations that I rather resented.
5896
5897 I took it upon myself to impress Biddy (and through Biddy, Joe) with the
5898 grave obligation I considered my friends under, to know nothing and say
5899 nothing about the maker of my fortune. It would all come out in good
5900 time, I observed, and in the meanwhile nothing was to be said, save
5901 that I had come into great expectations from a mysterious patron. Biddy
5902 nodded her head thoughtfully at the fire as she took up her work again,
5903 and said she would be very particular; and Joe, still detaining his
5904 knees, said, “Ay, ay, I’ll be ekervally partickler, Pip;” and then they
5905 congratulated me again, and went on to express so much wonder at the
5906 notion of my being a gentleman that I didn’t half like it.
5907
5908 Infinite pains were then taken by Biddy to convey to my sister some idea
5909 of what had happened. To the best of my belief, those efforts entirely
5910 failed. She laughed and nodded her head a great many times, and even
5911 repeated after Biddy, the words “Pip” and “Property.” But I doubt if
5912 they had more meaning in them than an election cry, and I cannot suggest
5913 a darker picture of her state of mind.
5914
5915 I never could have believed it without experience, but as Joe and
5916 Biddy became more at their cheerful ease again, I became quite gloomy.
5917 Dissatisfied with my fortune, of course I could not be; but it is
5918 possible that I may have been, without quite knowing it, dissatisfied
5919 with myself.
5920
5921 Any how, I sat with my elbow on my knee and my face upon my hand,
5922 looking into the fire, as those two talked about my going away, and
5923 about what they should do without me, and all that. And whenever I
5924 caught one of them looking at me, though never so pleasantly (and they
5925 often looked at me,--particularly Biddy), I felt offended: as if they
5926 were expressing some mistrust of me. Though Heaven knows they never did
5927 by word or sign.
5928
5929 At those times I would get up and look out at the door; for our kitchen
5930 door opened at once upon the night, and stood open on summer evenings to
5931 air the room. The very stars to which I then raised my eyes, I am afraid
5932 I took to be but poor and humble stars for glittering on the rustic
5933 objects among which I had passed my life.
5934
5935 “Saturday night,” said I, when we sat at our supper of bread and cheese
5936 and beer. “Five more days, and then the day before the day! They’ll soon
5937 go.”
5938
5939 “Yes, Pip,” observed Joe, whose voice sounded hollow in his beer-mug.
5940 “They’ll soon go.”
5941
5942 “Soon, soon go,” said Biddy.
5943
5944 “I have been thinking, Joe, that when I go down town on Monday, and
5945 order my new clothes, I shall tell the tailor that I’ll come and put
5946 them on there, or that I’ll have them sent to Mr. Pumblechook’s. It
5947 would be very disagreeable to be stared at by all the people here.”
5948
5949 “Mr. and Mrs. Hubble might like to see you in your new gen-teel figure
5950 too, Pip,” said Joe, industriously cutting his bread, with his cheese on
5951 it, in the palm of his left hand, and glancing at my untasted supper
5952 as if he thought of the time when we used to compare slices. “So might
5953 Wopsle. And the Jolly Bargemen might take it as a compliment.”
5954
5955 “That’s just what I don’t want, Joe. They would make such a business of
5956 it,--such a coarse and common business,--that I couldn’t bear myself.”
5957
5958 “Ah, that indeed, Pip!” said Joe. “If you couldn’t abear yourself--”
5959
5960 Biddy asked me here, as she sat holding my sister’s plate, “Have you
5961 thought about when you’ll show yourself to Mr. Gargery, and your sister
5962 and me? You will show yourself to us; won’t you?”
5963
5964 “Biddy,” I returned with some resentment, “you are so exceedingly quick
5965 that it’s difficult to keep up with you.”
5966
5967 (“She always were quick,” observed Joe.)
5968
5969 “If you had waited another moment, Biddy, you would have heard me say
5970 that I shall bring my clothes here in a bundle one evening,--most likely
5971 on the evening before I go away.”
5972
5973 Biddy said no more. Handsomely forgiving her, I soon exchanged an
5974 affectionate good night with her and Joe, and went up to bed. When I got
5975 into my little room, I sat down and took a long look at it, as a mean
5976 little room that I should soon be parted from and raised above, for
5977 ever. It was furnished with fresh young remembrances too, and even at
5978 the same moment I fell into much the same confused division of mind
5979 between it and the better rooms to which I was going, as I had been in
5980 so often between the forge and Miss Havisham’s, and Biddy and Estella.
5981
5982 The sun had been shining brightly all day on the roof of my attic, and
5983 the room was warm. As I put the window open and stood looking out, I saw
5984 Joe come slowly forth at the dark door, below, and take a turn or two
5985 in the air; and then I saw Biddy come, and bring him a pipe and light
5986 it for him. He never smoked so late, and it seemed to hint to me that he
5987 wanted comforting, for some reason or other.
5988
5989 He presently stood at the door immediately beneath me, smoking his pipe,
5990 and Biddy stood there too, quietly talking to him, and I knew that they
5991 talked of me, for I heard my name mentioned in an endearing tone by both
5992 of them more than once. I would not have listened for more, if I could
5993 have heard more; so I drew away from the window, and sat down in my one
5994 chair by the bedside, feeling it very sorrowful and strange that this
5995 first night of my bright fortunes should be the loneliest I had ever
5996 known.
5997
5998 Looking towards the open window, I saw light wreaths from Joe’s pipe
5999 floating there, and I fancied it was like a blessing from Joe,--not
6000 obtruded on me or paraded before me, but pervading the air we shared
6001 together. I put my light out, and crept into bed; and it was an uneasy
6002 bed now, and I never slept the old sound sleep in it any more.
6003
6004
6005
6006
6007 Chapter XIX
6008
6009 Morning made a considerable difference in my general prospect of Life,
6010 and brightened it so much that it scarcely seemed the same. What lay
6011 heaviest on my mind was, the consideration that six days intervened
6012 between me and the day of departure; for I could not divest myself of
6013 a misgiving that something might happen to London in the meanwhile, and
6014 that, when I got there, it would be either greatly deteriorated or clean
6015 gone.
6016
6017 Joe and Biddy were very sympathetic and pleasant when I spoke of our
6018 approaching separation; but they only referred to it when I did. After
6019 breakfast, Joe brought out my indentures from the press in the best
6020 parlor, and we put them in the fire, and I felt that I was free. With
6021 all the novelty of my emancipation on me, I went to church with Joe, and
6022 thought perhaps the clergyman wouldn’t have read that about the rich man
6023 and the kingdom of Heaven, if he had known all.
6024
6025 After our early dinner, I strolled out alone, purposing to finish off
6026 the marshes at once, and get them done with. As I passed the church, I
6027 felt (as I had felt during service in the morning) a sublime compassion
6028 for the poor creatures who were destined to go there, Sunday after
6029 Sunday, all their lives through, and to lie obscurely at last among the
6030 low green mounds. I promised myself that I would do something for them
6031 one of these days, and formed a plan in outline for bestowing a
6032 dinner of roast-beef and plum-pudding, a pint of ale, and a gallon of
6033 condescension, upon everybody in the village.
6034
6035 If I had often thought before, with something allied to shame, of my
6036 companionship with the fugitive whom I had once seen limping among those
6037 graves, what were my thoughts on this Sunday, when the place recalled
6038 the wretch, ragged and shivering, with his felon iron and badge! My
6039 comfort was, that it happened a long time ago, and that he had doubtless
6040 been transported a long way off, and that he was dead to me, and might
6041 be veritably dead into the bargain.
6042
6043 No more low, wet grounds, no more dikes and sluices, no more of these
6044 grazing cattle,--though they seemed, in their dull manner, to wear a
6045 more respectful air now, and to face round, in order that they
6046 might stare as long as possible at the possessor of such great
6047 expectations,--farewell, monotonous acquaintances of my childhood,
6048 henceforth I was for London and greatness; not for smith’s work in
6049 general, and for you! I made my exultant way to the old Battery, and,
6050 lying down there to consider the question whether Miss Havisham intended
6051 me for Estella, fell asleep.
6052
6053 When I awoke, I was much surprised to find Joe sitting beside me,
6054 smoking his pipe. He greeted me with a cheerful smile on my opening my
6055 eyes, and said,--
6056
6057 “As being the last time, Pip, I thought I’d foller.”
6058
6059 “And Joe, I am very glad you did so.”
6060
6061 “Thankee, Pip.”
6062
6063 “You may be sure, dear Joe,” I went on, after we had shaken hands, “that
6064 I shall never forget you.”
6065
6066 “No, no, Pip!” said Joe, in a comfortable tone, “I’m sure of that. Ay,
6067 ay, old chap! Bless you, it were only necessary to get it well round in
6068 a man’s mind, to be certain on it. But it took a bit of time to get it
6069 well round, the change come so oncommon plump; didn’t it?”
6070
6071 Somehow, I was not best pleased with Joe’s being so mightily secure of
6072 me. I should have liked him to have betrayed emotion, or to have said,
6073 “It does you credit, Pip,” or something of that sort. Therefore, I made
6074 no remark on Joe’s first head; merely saying as to his second, that the
6075 tidings had indeed come suddenly, but that I had always wanted to be a
6076 gentleman, and had often and often speculated on what I would do, if I
6077 were one.
6078
6079 “Have you though?” said Joe. “Astonishing!”
6080
6081 “It’s a pity now, Joe,” said I, “that you did not get on a little more,
6082 when we had our lessons here; isn’t it?”
6083
6084 “Well, I don’t know,” returned Joe. “I’m so awful dull. I’m only master
6085 of my own trade. It were always a pity as I was so awful dull; but it’s
6086 no more of a pity now, than it was--this day twelvemonth--don’t you
6087 see?”
6088
6089 What I had meant was, that when I came into my property and was able to
6090 do something for Joe, it would have been much more agreeable if he
6091 had been better qualified for a rise in station. He was so perfectly
6092 innocent of my meaning, however, that I thought I would mention it to
6093 Biddy in preference.
6094
6095 So, when we had walked home and had had tea, I took Biddy into our
6096 little garden by the side of the lane, and, after throwing out in a
6097 general way for the elevation of her spirits, that I should never forget
6098 her, said I had a favor to ask of her.
6099
6100 “And it is, Biddy,” said I, “that you will not omit any opportunity of
6101 helping Joe on, a little.”
6102
6103 “How helping him on?” asked Biddy, with a steady sort of glance.
6104
6105 “Well! Joe is a dear good fellow,--in fact, I think he is the dearest
6106 fellow that ever lived,--but he is rather backward in some things. For
6107 instance, Biddy, in his learning and his manners.”
6108
6109 Although I was looking at Biddy as I spoke, and although she opened her
6110 eyes very wide when I had spoken, she did not look at me.
6111
6112 “O, his manners! won’t his manners do then?” asked Biddy, plucking a
6113 black-currant leaf.
6114
6115 “My dear Biddy, they do very well here--”
6116
6117 “O! they do very well here?” interrupted Biddy, looking closely at the
6118 leaf in her hand.
6119
6120 “Hear me out,--but if I were to remove Joe into a higher sphere, as I
6121 shall hope to remove him when I fully come into my property, they would
6122 hardly do him justice.”
6123
6124 “And don’t you think he knows that?” asked Biddy.
6125
6126 It was such a very provoking question (for it had never in the most
6127 distant manner occurred to me), that I said, snappishly,--
6128
6129 “Biddy, what do you mean?”
6130
6131 Biddy, having rubbed the leaf to pieces between her hands,--and the
6132 smell of a black-currant bush has ever since recalled to me that evening
6133 in the little garden by the side of the lane,--said, “Have you never
6134 considered that he may be proud?”
6135
6136 “Proud?” I repeated, with disdainful emphasis.
6137
6138 “O! there are many kinds of pride,” said Biddy, looking full at me and
6139 shaking her head; “pride is not all of one kind--”
6140
6141 “Well? What are you stopping for?” said I.
6142
6143 “Not all of one kind,” resumed Biddy. “He may be too proud to let any
6144 one take him out of a place that he is competent to fill, and fills well
6145 and with respect. To tell you the truth, I think he is; though it sounds
6146 bold in me to say so, for you must know him far better than I do.”
6147
6148 “Now, Biddy,” said I, “I am very sorry to see this in you. I did not
6149 expect to see this in you. You are envious, Biddy, and grudging. You
6150 are dissatisfied on account of my rise in fortune, and you can’t help
6151 showing it.”
6152
6153 “If you have the heart to think so,” returned Biddy, “say so. Say so
6154 over and over again, if you have the heart to think so.”
6155
6156 “If you have the heart to be so, you mean, Biddy,” said I, in a virtuous
6157 and superior tone; “don’t put it off upon me. I am very sorry to see it,
6158 and it’s a--it’s a bad side of human nature. I did intend to ask you
6159 to use any little opportunities you might have after I was gone, of
6160 improving dear Joe. But after this I ask you nothing. I am extremely
6161 sorry to see this in you, Biddy,” I repeated. “It’s a--it’s a bad side
6162 of human nature.”
6163
6164 “Whether you scold me or approve of me,” returned poor Biddy, “you may
6165 equally depend upon my trying to do all that lies in my power, here,
6166 at all times. And whatever opinion you take away of me, shall make
6167 no difference in my remembrance of you. Yet a gentleman should not be
6168 unjust neither,” said Biddy, turning away her head.
6169
6170 I again warmly repeated that it was a bad side of human nature (in which
6171 sentiment, waiving its application, I have since seen reason to think I
6172 was right), and I walked down the little path away from Biddy, and
6173 Biddy went into the house, and I went out at the garden gate and took a
6174 dejected stroll until supper-time; again feeling it very sorrowful and
6175 strange that this, the second night of my bright fortunes, should be as
6176 lonely and unsatisfactory as the first.
6177
6178 But, morning once more brightened my view, and I extended my clemency to
6179 Biddy, and we dropped the subject. Putting on the best clothes I had,
6180 I went into town as early as I could hope to find the shops open,
6181 and presented myself before Mr. Trabb, the tailor, who was having his
6182 breakfast in the parlor behind his shop, and who did not think it worth
6183 his while to come out to me, but called me into him.
6184
6185 “Well!” said Mr. Trabb, in a hail-fellow-well-met kind of way. “How are
6186 you, and what can I do for you?”
6187
6188 Mr. Trabb had sliced his hot roll into three feather-beds, and was
6189 slipping butter in between the blankets, and covering it up. He was a
6190 prosperous old bachelor, and his open window looked into a prosperous
6191 little garden and orchard, and there was a prosperous iron safe let into
6192 the wall at the side of his fireplace, and I did not doubt that heaps of
6193 his prosperity were put away in it in bags.
6194
6195 “Mr. Trabb,” said I, “it’s an unpleasant thing to have to mention,
6196 because it looks like boasting; but I have come into a handsome
6197 property.”
6198
6199 A change passed over Mr. Trabb. He forgot the butter in bed, got up from
6200 the bedside, and wiped his fingers on the tablecloth, exclaiming, “Lord
6201 bless my soul!”
6202
6203 “I am going up to my guardian in London,” said I, casually drawing some
6204 guineas out of my pocket and looking at them; “and I want a fashionable
6205 suit of clothes to go in. I wish to pay for them,” I added--otherwise I
6206 thought he might only pretend to make them, “with ready money.”
6207
6208 “My dear sir,” said Mr. Trabb, as he respectfully bent his body, opened
6209 his arms, and took the liberty of touching me on the outside of each
6210 elbow, “don’t hurt me by mentioning that. May I venture to congratulate
6211 you? Would you do me the favor of stepping into the shop?”
6212
6213 Mr. Trabb’s boy was the most audacious boy in all that country-side.
6214 When I had entered he was sweeping the shop, and he had sweetened his
6215 labors by sweeping over me. He was still sweeping when I came out into
6216 the shop with Mr. Trabb, and he knocked the broom against all possible
6217 corners and obstacles, to express (as I understood it) equality with any
6218 blacksmith, alive or dead.
6219
6220 “Hold that noise,” said Mr. Trabb, with the greatest sternness, “or I’ll
6221 knock your head off!--Do me the favor to be seated, sir. Now, this,”
6222 said Mr. Trabb, taking down a roll of cloth, and tiding it out in a
6223 flowing manner over the counter, preparatory to getting his hand under
6224 it to show the gloss, “is a very sweet article. I can recommend it for
6225 your purpose, sir, because it really is extra super. But you shall
6226 see some others. Give me Number Four, you!” (To the boy, and with a
6227 dreadfully severe stare; foreseeing the danger of that miscreant’s
6228 brushing me with it, or making some other sign of familiarity.)
6229
6230 Mr. Trabb never removed his stern eye from the boy until he had
6231 deposited number four on the counter and was at a safe distance again.
6232 Then he commanded him to bring number five, and number eight. “And let
6233 me have none of your tricks here,” said Mr. Trabb, “or you shall repent
6234 it, you young scoundrel, the longest day you have to live.”
6235
6236 Mr. Trabb then bent over number four, and in a sort of deferential
6237 confidence recommended it to me as a light article for summer wear, an
6238 article much in vogue among the nobility and gentry, an article that
6239 it would ever be an honor to him to reflect upon a distinguished
6240 fellow-townsman’s (if he might claim me for a fellow-townsman) having
6241 worn. “Are you bringing numbers five and eight, you vagabond,” said Mr.
6242 Trabb to the boy after that, “or shall I kick you out of the shop and
6243 bring them myself?”
6244
6245 I selected the materials for a suit, with the assistance of Mr. Trabb’s
6246 judgment, and re-entered the parlor to be measured. For although Mr.
6247 Trabb had my measure already, and had previously been quite contented
6248 with it, he said apologetically that it “wouldn’t do under existing
6249 circumstances, sir,--wouldn’t do at all.” So, Mr. Trabb measured and
6250 calculated me in the parlor, as if I were an estate and he the finest
6251 species of surveyor, and gave himself such a world of trouble that
6252 I felt that no suit of clothes could possibly remunerate him for his
6253 pains. When he had at last done and had appointed to send the articles
6254 to Mr. Pumblechook’s on the Thursday evening, he said, with his hand
6255 upon the parlor lock, “I know, sir, that London gentlemen cannot be
6256 expected to patronize local work, as a rule; but if you would give me a
6257 turn now and then in the quality of a townsman, I should greatly esteem
6258 it. Good morning, sir, much obliged.--Door!”
6259
6260 The last word was flung at the boy, who had not the least notion what
6261 it meant. But I saw him collapse as his master rubbed me out with his
6262 hands, and my first decided experience of the stupendous power of money
6263 was, that it had morally laid upon his back Trabb’s boy.
6264
6265 After this memorable event, I went to the hatter’s, and the bootmaker’s,
6266 and the hosier’s, and felt rather like Mother Hubbard’s dog whose outfit
6267 required the services of so many trades. I also went to the coach-office
6268 and took my place for seven o’clock on Saturday morning. It was
6269 not necessary to explain everywhere that I had come into a handsome
6270 property; but whenever I said anything to that effect, it followed that
6271 the officiating tradesman ceased to have his attention diverted through
6272 the window by the High Street, and concentrated his mind upon me. When
6273 I had ordered everything I wanted, I directed my steps towards
6274 Pumblechook’s, and, as I approached that gentleman’s place of business,
6275 I saw him standing at his door.
6276
6277 He was waiting for me with great impatience. He had been out early with
6278 the chaise-cart, and had called at the forge and heard the news. He had
6279 prepared a collation for me in the Barnwell parlor, and he too ordered
6280 his shopman to “come out of the gangway” as my sacred person passed.
6281
6282 “My dear friend,” said Mr. Pumblechook, taking me by both hands, when
6283 he and I and the collation were alone, “I give you joy of your good
6284 fortune. Well deserved, well deserved!”
6285
6286 This was coming to the point, and I thought it a sensible way of
6287 expressing himself.
6288
6289 “To think,” said Mr. Pumblechook, after snorting admiration at me for
6290 some moments, “that I should have been the humble instrument of leading
6291 up to this, is a proud reward.”
6292
6293 I begged Mr. Pumblechook to remember that nothing was to be ever said or
6294 hinted, on that point.
6295
6296 “My dear young friend,” said Mr. Pumblechook; “if you will allow me to
6297 call you so--”
6298
6299 I murmured “Certainly,” and Mr. Pumblechook took me by both hands again,
6300 and communicated a movement to his waistcoat, which had an emotional
6301 appearance, though it was rather low down, “My dear young friend, rely
6302 upon my doing my little all in your absence, by keeping the fact before
6303 the mind of Joseph.--Joseph!” said Mr. Pumblechook, in the way of a
6304 compassionate adjuration. “Joseph!! Joseph!!!” Thereupon he shook his
6305 head and tapped it, expressing his sense of deficiency in Joseph.
6306
6307 “But my dear young friend,” said Mr. Pumblechook, “you must be hungry,
6308 you must be exhausted. Be seated. Here is a chicken had round from the
6309 Boar, here is a tongue had round from the Boar, here’s one or two little
6310 things had round from the Boar, that I hope you may not despise. But do
6311 I,” said Mr. Pumblechook, getting up again the moment after he had sat
6312 down, “see afore me, him as I ever sported with in his times of happy
6313 infancy? And may I--may I--?”
6314
6315 This May I, meant might he shake hands? I consented, and he was fervent,
6316 and then sat down again.
6317
6318 “Here is wine,” said Mr. Pumblechook. “Let us drink, Thanks to Fortune,
6319 and may she ever pick out her favorites with equal judgment! And yet I
6320 cannot,” said Mr. Pumblechook, getting up again, “see afore me One--and
6321 likewise drink to One--without again expressing--May I--may I--?”
6322
6323 I said he might, and he shook hands with me again, and emptied his glass
6324 and turned it upside down. I did the same; and if I had turned myself
6325 upside down before drinking, the wine could not have gone more direct to
6326 my head.
6327
6328 Mr. Pumblechook helped me to the liver wing, and to the best slice of
6329 tongue (none of those out-of-the-way No Thoroughfares of Pork now), and
6330 took, comparatively speaking, no care of himself at all. “Ah! poultry,
6331 poultry! You little thought,” said Mr. Pumblechook, apostrophizing the
6332 fowl in the dish, “when you was a young fledgling, what was in store for
6333 you. You little thought you was to be refreshment beneath this humble
6334 roof for one as--Call it a weakness, if you will,” said Mr. Pumblechook,
6335 getting up again, “but may I? may I--?”
6336
6337 It began to be unnecessary to repeat the form of saying he might, so
6338 he did it at once. How he ever did it so often without wounding himself
6339 with my knife, I don’t know.
6340
6341 “And your sister,” he resumed, after a little steady eating, “which had
6342 the honor of bringing you up by hand! It’s a sad picter, to reflect that
6343 she’s no longer equal to fully understanding the honor. May--”
6344
6345 I saw he was about to come at me again, and I stopped him.
6346
6347 “We’ll drink her health,” said I.
6348
6349 “Ah!” cried Mr. Pumblechook, leaning back in his chair, quite flaccid
6350 with admiration, “that’s the way you know ‘em, sir!” (I don’t know
6351 who Sir was, but he certainly was not I, and there was no third person
6352 present); “that’s the way you know the noble-minded, sir! Ever forgiving
6353 and ever affable. It might,” said the servile Pumblechook, putting down
6354 his untasted glass in a hurry and getting up again, “to a common person,
6355 have the appearance of repeating--but may I--?”
6356
6357 When he had done it, he resumed his seat and drank to my sister. “Let us
6358 never be blind,” said Mr. Pumblechook, “to her faults of temper, but it
6359 is to be hoped she meant well.”
6360
6361 At about this time, I began to observe that he was getting flushed in
6362 the face; as to myself, I felt all face, steeped in wine and smarting.
6363
6364 I mentioned to Mr. Pumblechook that I wished to have my new clothes
6365 sent to his house, and he was ecstatic on my so distinguishing him. I
6366 mentioned my reason for desiring to avoid observation in the village,
6367 and he lauded it to the skies. There was nobody but himself, he
6368 intimated, worthy of my confidence, and--in short, might he? Then he
6369 asked me tenderly if I remembered our boyish games at sums, and how we
6370 had gone together to have me bound apprentice, and, in effect, how he
6371 had ever been my favorite fancy and my chosen friend? If I had taken
6372 ten times as many glasses of wine as I had, I should have known that he
6373 never had stood in that relation towards me, and should in my heart of
6374 hearts have repudiated the idea. Yet for all that, I remember feeling
6375 convinced that I had been much mistaken in him, and that he was a
6376 sensible, practical, good-hearted prime fellow.
6377
6378 By degrees he fell to reposing such great confidence in me, as to ask my
6379 advice in reference to his own affairs. He mentioned that there was an
6380 opportunity for a great amalgamation and monopoly of the corn and seed
6381 trade on those premises, if enlarged, such as had never occurred
6382 before in that or any other neighborhood. What alone was wanting to the
6383 realization of a vast fortune, he considered to be More Capital.
6384 Those were the two little words, more capital. Now it appeared to him
6385 (Pumblechook) that if that capital were got into the business, through a
6386 sleeping partner, sir,--which sleeping partner would have nothing to
6387 do but walk in, by self or deputy, whenever he pleased, and examine
6388 the books,--and walk in twice a year and take his profits away in his
6389 pocket, to the tune of fifty per cent,--it appeared to him that that
6390 might be an opening for a young gentleman of spirit combined with
6391 property, which would be worthy of his attention. But what did I think?
6392 He had great confidence in my opinion, and what did I think? I gave it
6393 as my opinion. “Wait a bit!” The united vastness and distinctness of
6394 this view so struck him, that he no longer asked if he might shake hands
6395 with me, but said he really must,--and did.
6396
6397 We drank all the wine, and Mr. Pumblechook pledged himself over and over
6398 again to keep Joseph up to the mark (I don’t know what mark), and to
6399 render me efficient and constant service (I don’t know what service). He
6400 also made known to me for the first time in my life, and certainly after
6401 having kept his secret wonderfully well, that he had always said of me,
6402 “That boy is no common boy, and mark me, his fortun’ will be no common
6403 fortun’.” He said with a tearful smile that it was a singular thing to
6404 think of now, and I said so too. Finally, I went out into the air, with
6405 a dim perception that there was something unwonted in the conduct of the
6406 sunshine, and found that I had slumberously got to the turnpike without
6407 having taken any account of the road.
6408
6409 There, I was roused by Mr. Pumblechook’s hailing me. He was a long way
6410 down the sunny street, and was making expressive gestures for me to
6411 stop. I stopped, and he came up breathless.
6412
6413 “No, my dear friend,” said he, when he had recovered wind for speech.
6414 “Not if I can help it. This occasion shall not entirely pass without
6415 that affability on your part.--May I, as an old friend and well-wisher?
6416 May I?”
6417
6418 We shook hands for the hundredth time at least, and he ordered a young
6419 carter out of my way with the greatest indignation. Then, he blessed
6420 me and stood waving his hand to me until I had passed the crook in the
6421 road; and then I turned into a field and had a long nap under a hedge
6422 before I pursued my way home.
6423
6424 I had scant luggage to take with me to London, for little of the little
6425 I possessed was adapted to my new station. But I began packing that same
6426 afternoon, and wildly packed up things that I knew I should want next
6427 morning, in a fiction that there was not a moment to be lost.
6428
6429 So, Tuesday, Wednesday, and Thursday, passed; and on Friday morning I
6430 went to Mr. Pumblechook’s, to put on my new clothes and pay my visit to
6431 Miss Havisham. Mr. Pumblechook’s own room was given up to me to dress
6432 in, and was decorated with clean towels expressly for the event. My
6433 clothes were rather a disappointment, of course. Probably every new
6434 and eagerly expected garment ever put on since clothes came in, fell
6435 a trifle short of the wearer’s expectation. But after I had had my
6436 new suit on some half an hour, and had gone through an immensity of
6437 posturing with Mr. Pumblechook’s very limited dressing-glass, in the
6438 futile endeavor to see my legs, it seemed to fit me better. It being
6439 market morning at a neighboring town some ten miles off, Mr. Pumblechook
6440 was not at home. I had not told him exactly when I meant to leave, and
6441 was not likely to shake hands with him again before departing. This was
6442 all as it should be, and I went out in my new array, fearfully ashamed
6443 of having to pass the shopman, and suspicious after all that I was at a
6444 personal disadvantage, something like Joe’s in his Sunday suit.
6445
6446 I went circuitously to Miss Havisham’s by all the back ways, and rang
6447 at the bell constrainedly, on account of the stiff long fingers of my
6448 gloves. Sarah Pocket came to the gate, and positively reeled back when
6449 she saw me so changed; her walnut-shell countenance likewise turned from
6450 brown to green and yellow.
6451
6452 “You?” said she. “You? Good gracious! What do you want?”
6453
6454 “I am going to London, Miss Pocket,” said I, “and want to say good-bye to
6455 Miss Havisham.”
6456
6457 I was not expected, for she left me locked in the yard, while she went
6458 to ask if I were to be admitted. After a very short delay, she returned
6459 and took me up, staring at me all the way.
6460
6461 Miss Havisham was taking exercise in the room with the long spread
6462 table, leaning on her crutch stick. The room was lighted as of yore, and
6463 at the sound of our entrance, she stopped and turned. She was then just
6464 abreast of the rotted bride-cake.
6465
6466 “Don’t go, Sarah,” she said. “Well, Pip?”
6467
6468 “I start for London, Miss Havisham, to-morrow,” I was exceedingly
6469 careful what I said, “and I thought you would kindly not mind my taking
6470 leave of you.”
6471
6472 “This is a gay figure, Pip,” said she, making her crutch stick play
6473 round me, as if she, the fairy godmother who had changed me, were
6474 bestowing the finishing gift.
6475
6476 “I have come into such good fortune since I saw you last, Miss
6477 Havisham,” I murmured. “And I am so grateful for it, Miss Havisham!”
6478
6479 “Ay, ay!” said she, looking at the discomfited and envious Sarah, with
6480 delight. “I have seen Mr. Jaggers. I have heard about it, Pip. So you go
6481 to-morrow?”
6482
6483 “Yes, Miss Havisham.”
6484
6485 “And you are adopted by a rich person?”
6486
6487 “Yes, Miss Havisham.”
6488
6489 “Not named?”
6490
6491 “No, Miss Havisham.”
6492
6493 “And Mr. Jaggers is made your guardian?”
6494
6495 “Yes, Miss Havisham.”
6496
6497 She quite gloated on these questions and answers, so keen was her
6498 enjoyment of Sarah Pocket’s jealous dismay. “Well!” she went on; “you
6499 have a promising career before you. Be good--deserve it--and abide by
6500 Mr. Jaggers’s instructions.” She looked at me, and looked at Sarah, and
6501 Sarah’s countenance wrung out of her watchful face a cruel smile. “Good-bye,
6502 Pip!--you will always keep the name of Pip, you know.”
6503
6504 “Yes, Miss Havisham.”
6505
6506 “Good-bye, Pip!”
6507
6508 She stretched out her hand, and I went down on my knee and put it to
6509 my lips. I had not considered how I should take leave of her; it came
6510 naturally to me at the moment to do this. She looked at Sarah Pocket
6511 with triumph in her weird eyes, and so I left my fairy godmother, with
6512 both her hands on her crutch stick, standing in the midst of the dimly
6513 lighted room beside the rotten bride-cake that was hidden in cobwebs.
6514
6515 Sarah Pocket conducted me down, as if I were a ghost who must be seen
6516 out. She could not get over my appearance, and was in the last degree
6517 confounded. I said “Good-bye, Miss Pocket;” but she merely stared, and
6518 did not seem collected enough to know that I had spoken. Clear of the
6519 house, I made the best of my way back to Pumblechook’s, took off my new
6520 clothes, made them into a bundle, and went back home in my older dress,
6521 carrying it--to speak the truth--much more at my ease too, though I had
6522 the bundle to carry.
6523
6524 And now, those six days which were to have run out so slowly, had
6525 run out fast and were gone, and to-morrow looked me in the face more
6526 steadily than I could look at it. As the six evenings had dwindled
6527 away, to five, to four, to three, to two, I had become more and more
6528 appreciative of the society of Joe and Biddy. On this last evening, I
6529 dressed my self out in my new clothes for their delight, and sat in my
6530 splendor until bedtime. We had a hot supper on the occasion, graced by
6531 the inevitable roast fowl, and we had some flip to finish with. We were
6532 all very low, and none the higher for pretending to be in spirits.
6533
6534 I was to leave our village at five in the morning, carrying my little
6535 hand-portmanteau, and I had told Joe that I wished to walk away all
6536 alone. I am afraid--sore afraid--that this purpose originated in my
6537 sense of the contrast there would be between me and Joe, if we went to
6538 the coach together. I had pretended with myself that there was nothing
6539 of this taint in the arrangement; but when I went up to my little room
6540 on this last night, I felt compelled to admit that it might be so, and
6541 had an impulse upon me to go down again and entreat Joe to walk with me
6542 in the morning. I did not.
6543
6544 All night there were coaches in my broken sleep, going to wrong places
6545 instead of to London, and having in the traces, now dogs, now cats, now
6546 pigs, now men,--never horses. Fantastic failures of journeys occupied
6547 me until the day dawned and the birds were singing. Then, I got up and
6548 partly dressed, and sat at the window to take a last look out, and in
6549 taking it fell asleep.
6550
6551 Biddy was astir so early to get my breakfast, that, although I did not
6552 sleep at the window an hour, I smelt the smoke of the kitchen fire when
6553 I started up with a terrible idea that it must be late in the afternoon.
6554 But long after that, and long after I had heard the clinking of the
6555 teacups and was quite ready, I wanted the resolution to go downstairs.
6556 After all, I remained up there, repeatedly unlocking and unstrapping
6557 my small portmanteau and locking and strapping it up again, until Biddy
6558 called to me that I was late.
6559
6560 It was a hurried breakfast with no taste in it. I got up from the meal,
6561 saying with a sort of briskness, as if it had only just occurred to me,
6562 “Well! I suppose I must be off!” and then I kissed my sister who was
6563 laughing and nodding and shaking in her usual chair, and kissed
6564 Biddy, and threw my arms around Joe’s neck. Then I took up my little
6565 portmanteau and walked out. The last I saw of them was, when I presently
6566 heard a scuffle behind me, and looking back, saw Joe throwing an old
6567 shoe after me and Biddy throwing another old shoe. I stopped then, to
6568 wave my hat, and dear old Joe waved his strong right arm above his head,
6569 crying huskily “Hooroar!” and Biddy put her apron to her face.
6570
6571 I walked away at a good pace, thinking it was easier to go than I had
6572 supposed it would be, and reflecting that it would never have done to
6573 have had an old shoe thrown after the coach, in sight of all the High
6574 Street. I whistled and made nothing of going. But the village was very
6575 peaceful and quiet, and the light mists were solemnly rising, as if to
6576 show me the world, and I had been so innocent and little there, and all
6577 beyond was so unknown and great, that in a moment with a strong heave
6578 and sob I broke into tears. It was by the finger-post at the end of the
6579 village, and I laid my hand upon it, and said, “Good-bye, O my dear, dear
6580 friend!”
6581
6582 Heaven knows we need never be ashamed of our tears, for they are rain
6583 upon the blinding dust of earth, overlying our hard hearts. I was
6584 better after I had cried than before,--more sorry, more aware of my own
6585 ingratitude, more gentle. If I had cried before, I should have had Joe
6586 with me then.
6587
6588 So subdued I was by those tears, and by their breaking out again in the
6589 course of the quiet walk, that when I was on the coach, and it was clear
6590 of the town, I deliberated with an aching heart whether I would not get
6591 down when we changed horses and walk back, and have another evening at
6592 home, and a better parting. We changed, and I had not made up my mind,
6593 and still reflected for my comfort that it would be quite practicable to
6594 get down and walk back, when we changed again. And while I was occupied
6595 with these deliberations, I would fancy an exact resemblance to Joe
6596 in some man coming along the road towards us, and my heart would beat
6597 high.--As if he could possibly be there!
6598
6599 We changed again, and yet again, and it was now too late and too far to
6600 go back, and I went on. And the mists had all solemnly risen now, and
6601 the world lay spread before me.
6602
6603 This is the end of the first stage of Pip’s expectations.
6604
6605 Chapter XX
6606
6607 The journey from our town to the metropolis was a journey of about five
6608 hours. It was a little past midday when the four-horse stage-coach by
6609 which I was a passenger, got into the ravel of traffic frayed out about
6610 the Cross Keys, Wood Street, Cheapside, London.
6611
6612 We Britons had at that time particularly settled that it was treasonable
6613 to doubt our having and our being the best of everything: otherwise,
6614 while I was scared by the immensity of London, I think I might have had
6615 some faint doubts whether it was not rather ugly, crooked, narrow, and
6616 dirty.
6617
6618 Mr. Jaggers had duly sent me his address; it was, Little Britain, and he
6619 had written after it on his card, “just out of Smithfield, and close by
6620 the coach-office.” Nevertheless, a hackney-coachman, who seemed to have
6621 as many capes to his greasy great-coat as he was years old, packed me
6622 up in his coach and hemmed me in with a folding and jingling barrier of
6623 steps, as if he were going to take me fifty miles. His getting on his
6624 box, which I remember to have been decorated with an old weather-stained
6625 pea-green hammercloth moth-eaten into rags, was quite a work of time.
6626 It was a wonderful equipage, with six great coronets outside, and ragged
6627 things behind for I don’t know how many footmen to hold on by, and
6628 a harrow below them, to prevent amateur footmen from yielding to the
6629 temptation.
6630
6631 I had scarcely had time to enjoy the coach and to think how like a
6632 straw-yard it was, and yet how like a rag-shop, and to wonder why
6633 the horses’ nose-bags were kept inside, when I observed the coachman
6634 beginning to get down, as if we were going to stop presently. And stop
6635 we presently did, in a gloomy street, at certain offices with an open
6636 door, whereon was painted MR. JAGGERS.
6637
6638 “How much?” I asked the coachman.
6639
6640 The coachman answered, “A shilling--unless you wish to make it more.”
6641
6642 I naturally said I had no wish to make it more.
6643
6644 “Then it must be a shilling,” observed the coachman. “I don’t want to
6645 get into trouble. I know him!” He darkly closed an eye at Mr. Jaggers’s
6646 name, and shook his head.
6647
6648 When he had got his shilling, and had in course of time completed the
6649 ascent to his box, and had got away (which appeared to relieve his
6650 mind), I went into the front office with my little portmanteau in my
6651 hand and asked, Was Mr. Jaggers at home?
6652
6653 “He is not,” returned the clerk. “He is in Court at present. Am I
6654 addressing Mr. Pip?”
6655
6656 I signified that he was addressing Mr. Pip.
6657
6658 “Mr. Jaggers left word, would you wait in his room. He couldn’t say how
6659 long he might be, having a case on. But it stands to reason, his time
6660 being valuable, that he won’t be longer than he can help.”
6661
6662 With those words, the clerk opened a door, and ushered me into an inner
6663 chamber at the back. Here, we found a gentleman with one eye, in a
6664 velveteen suit and knee-breeches, who wiped his nose with his sleeve on
6665 being interrupted in the perusal of the newspaper.
6666
6667 “Go and wait outside, Mike,” said the clerk.
6668
6669 I began to say that I hoped I was not interrupting, when the clerk
6670 shoved this gentleman out with as little ceremony as I ever saw used,
6671 and tossing his fur cap out after him, left me alone.
6672
6673 Mr. Jaggers’s room was lighted by a skylight only, and was a most dismal
6674 place; the skylight, eccentrically pitched like a broken head, and the
6675 distorted adjoining houses looking as if they had twisted themselves to
6676 peep down at me through it. There were not so many papers about, as I
6677 should have expected to see; and there were some odd objects about, that
6678 I should not have expected to see,--such as an old rusty pistol, a
6679 sword in a scabbard, several strange-looking boxes and packages, and
6680 two dreadful casts on a shelf, of faces peculiarly swollen, and twitchy
6681 about the nose. Mr. Jaggers’s own high-backed chair was of deadly black
6682 horsehair, with rows of brass nails round it, like a coffin; and I
6683 fancied I could see how he leaned back in it, and bit his forefinger at
6684 the clients. The room was but small, and the clients seemed to have had
6685 a habit of backing up against the wall; the wall, especially opposite to
6686 Mr. Jaggers’s chair, being greasy with shoulders. I recalled, too, that
6687 the one-eyed gentleman had shuffled forth against the wall when I was
6688 the innocent cause of his being turned out.
6689
6690 I sat down in the cliental chair placed over against Mr. Jaggers’s
6691 chair, and became fascinated by the dismal atmosphere of the place. I
6692 called to mind that the clerk had the same air of knowing something to
6693 everybody else’s disadvantage, as his master had. I wondered how many
6694 other clerks there were upstairs, and whether they all claimed to have
6695 the same detrimental mastery of their fellow-creatures. I wondered what
6696 was the history of all the odd litter about the room, and how it came
6697 there. I wondered whether the two swollen faces were of Mr. Jaggers’s
6698 family, and, if he were so unfortunate as to have had a pair of such
6699 ill-looking relations, why he stuck them on that dusty perch for the
6700 blacks and flies to settle on, instead of giving them a place at home.
6701 Of course I had no experience of a London summer day, and my spirits may
6702 have been oppressed by the hot exhausted air, and by the dust and grit
6703 that lay thick on everything. But I sat wondering and waiting in Mr.
6704 Jaggers’s close room, until I really could not bear the two casts on the
6705 shelf above Mr. Jaggers’s chair, and got up and went out.
6706
6707 When I told the clerk that I would take a turn in the air while I
6708 waited, he advised me to go round the corner and I should come into
6709 Smithfield. So I came into Smithfield; and the shameful place, being all
6710 asmear with filth and fat and blood and foam, seemed to stick to me. So,
6711 I rubbed it off with all possible speed by turning into a street where
6712 I saw the great black dome of Saint Paul’s bulging at me from behind a
6713 grim stone building which a bystander said was Newgate Prison. Following
6714 the wall of the jail, I found the roadway covered with straw to deaden
6715 the noise of passing vehicles; and from this, and from the quantity of
6716 people standing about smelling strongly of spirits and beer, I inferred
6717 that the trials were on.
6718
6719 While I looked about me here, an exceedingly dirty and partially drunk
6720 minister of justice asked me if I would like to step in and hear a
6721 trial or so: informing me that he could give me a front place for half a
6722 crown, whence I should command a full view of the Lord Chief Justice in
6723 his wig and robes,--mentioning that awful personage like waxwork, and
6724 presently offering him at the reduced price of eighteen-pence. As I
6725 declined the proposal on the plea of an appointment, he was so good as
6726 to take me into a yard and show me where the gallows was kept, and also
6727 where people were publicly whipped, and then he showed me the Debtors’
6728 Door, out of which culprits came to be hanged; heightening the interest
6729 of that dreadful portal by giving me to understand that “four on ‘em”
6730 would come out at that door the day after to-morrow at eight in the
6731 morning, to be killed in a row. This was horrible, and gave me a
6732 sickening idea of London; the more so as the Lord Chief Justice’s
6733 proprietor wore (from his hat down to his boots and up again to his
6734 pocket-handkerchief inclusive) mildewed clothes which had evidently
6735 not belonged to him originally, and which I took it into my head he had
6736 bought cheap of the executioner. Under these circumstances I thought
6737 myself well rid of him for a shilling.
6738
6739 I dropped into the office to ask if Mr. Jaggers had come in yet, and I
6740 found he had not, and I strolled out again. This time, I made the tour
6741 of Little Britain, and turned into Bartholomew Close; and now I became
6742 aware that other people were waiting about for Mr. Jaggers, as well
6743 as I. There were two men of secret appearance lounging in Bartholomew
6744 Close, and thoughtfully fitting their feet into the cracks of the
6745 pavement as they talked together, one of whom said to the other when
6746 they first passed me, that “Jaggers would do it if it was to be done.”
6747 There was a knot of three men and two women standing at a corner, and
6748 one of the women was crying on her dirty shawl, and the other comforted
6749 her by saying, as she pulled her own shawl over her shoulders, “Jaggers
6750 is for him, ‘Melia, and what more could you have?” There was a red-eyed
6751 little Jew who came into the Close while I was loitering there, in
6752 company with a second little Jew whom he sent upon an errand; and
6753 while the messenger was gone, I remarked this Jew, who was of a highly
6754 excitable temperament, performing a jig of anxiety under a lamp-post and
6755 accompanying himself, in a kind of frenzy, with the words, “O Jaggerth,
6756 Jaggerth, Jaggerth! all otherth ith Cag-Maggerth, give me Jaggerth!”
6757 These testimonies to the popularity of my guardian made a deep
6758 impression on me, and I admired and wondered more than ever.
6759
6760 At length, as I was looking out at the iron gate of Bartholomew Close
6761 into Little Britain, I saw Mr. Jaggers coming across the road towards
6762 me. All the others who were waiting saw him at the same time, and there
6763 was quite a rush at him. Mr. Jaggers, putting a hand on my shoulder
6764 and walking me on at his side without saying anything to me, addressed
6765 himself to his followers.
6766
6767 First, he took the two secret men.
6768
6769 “Now, I have nothing to say to you,” said Mr. Jaggers, throwing his
6770 finger at them. “I want to know no more than I know. As to the result,
6771 it’s a toss-up. I told you from the first it was a toss-up. Have you
6772 paid Wemmick?”
6773
6774 “We made the money up this morning, sir,” said one of the men,
6775 submissively, while the other perused Mr. Jaggers’s face.
6776
6777 “I don’t ask you when you made it up, or where, or whether you made it
6778 up at all. Has Wemmick got it?”
6779
6780 “Yes, sir,” said both the men together.
6781
6782 “Very well; then you may go. Now, I won’t have it!” said Mr Jaggers,
6783 waving his hand at them to put them behind him. “If you say a word to
6784 me, I’ll throw up the case.”
6785
6786 “We thought, Mr. Jaggers--” one of the men began, pulling off his hat.
6787
6788 “That’s what I told you not to do,” said Mr. Jaggers. “You thought! I
6789 think for you; that’s enough for you. If I want you, I know where to
6790 find you; I don’t want you to find me. Now I won’t have it. I won’t hear
6791 a word.”
6792
6793 The two men looked at one another as Mr. Jaggers waved them behind
6794 again, and humbly fell back and were heard no more.
6795
6796 “And now you!” said Mr. Jaggers, suddenly stopping, and turning on
6797 the two women with the shawls, from whom the three men had meekly
6798 separated,--“Oh! Amelia, is it?”
6799
6800 “Yes, Mr. Jaggers.”
6801
6802 “And do you remember,” retorted Mr. Jaggers, “that but for me you
6803 wouldn’t be here and couldn’t be here?”
6804
6805 “O yes, sir!” exclaimed both women together. “Lord bless you, sir, well
6806 we knows that!”
6807
6808 “Then why,” said Mr. Jaggers, “do you come here?”
6809
6810 “My Bill, sir!” the crying woman pleaded.
6811
6812 “Now, I tell you what!” said Mr. Jaggers. “Once for all. If you don’t
6813 know that your Bill’s in good hands, I know it. And if you come here
6814 bothering about your Bill, I’ll make an example of both your Bill and
6815 you, and let him slip through my fingers. Have you paid Wemmick?”
6816
6817 “O yes, sir! Every farden.”
6818
6819 “Very well. Then you have done all you have got to do. Say another
6820 word--one single word--and Wemmick shall give you your money back.”
6821
6822 This terrible threat caused the two women to fall off immediately.
6823 No one remained now but the excitable Jew, who had already raised the
6824 skirts of Mr. Jaggers’s coat to his lips several times.
6825
6826 “I don’t know this man!” said Mr. Jaggers, in the same devastating
6827 strain: “What does this fellow want?”
6828
6829 “Ma thear Mithter Jaggerth. Hown brother to Habraham Latharuth?”
6830
6831 “Who’s he?” said Mr. Jaggers. “Let go of my coat.”
6832
6833 The suitor, kissing the hem of the garment again before relinquishing
6834 it, replied, “Habraham Latharuth, on thuthpithion of plate.”
6835
6836 “You’re too late,” said Mr. Jaggers. “I am over the way.”
6837
6838 “Holy father, Mithter Jaggerth!” cried my excitable acquaintance,
6839 turning white, “don’t thay you’re again Habraham Latharuth!”
6840
6841 “I am,” said Mr. Jaggers, “and there’s an end of it. Get out of the
6842 way.”
6843
6844 “Mithter Jaggerth! Half a moment! My hown cuthen’th gone to Mithter
6845 Wemmick at thith prethent minute, to hoffer him hany termth. Mithter
6846 Jaggerth! Half a quarter of a moment! If you’d have the condethenthun to
6847 be bought off from the t’other thide--at hany thuperior prithe!--money
6848 no object!--Mithter Jaggerth--Mithter--!”
6849
6850 My guardian threw his supplicant off with supreme indifference, and
6851 left him dancing on the pavement as if it were red hot. Without further
6852 interruption, we reached the front office, where we found the clerk and
6853 the man in velveteen with the fur cap.
6854
6855 “Here’s Mike,” said the clerk, getting down from his stool, and
6856 approaching Mr. Jaggers confidentially.
6857
6858 “Oh!” said Mr. Jaggers, turning to the man, who was pulling a lock of
6859 hair in the middle of his forehead, like the Bull in Cock Robin pulling
6860 at the bell-rope; “your man comes on this afternoon. Well?”
6861
6862 “Well, Mas’r Jaggers,” returned Mike, in the voice of a sufferer from a
6863 constitutional cold; “arter a deal o’ trouble, I’ve found one, sir, as
6864 might do.”
6865
6866 “What is he prepared to swear?”
6867
6868 “Well, Mas’r Jaggers,” said Mike, wiping his nose on his fur cap this
6869 time; “in a general way, anythink.”
6870
6871 Mr. Jaggers suddenly became most irate. “Now, I warned you before,” said
6872 he, throwing his forefinger at the terrified client, “that if you ever
6873 presumed to talk in that way here, I’d make an example of you. You
6874 infernal scoundrel, how dare you tell ME that?”
6875
6876 The client looked scared, but bewildered too, as if he were unconscious
6877 what he had done.
6878
6879 “Spooney!” said the clerk, in a low voice, giving him a stir with his
6880 elbow. “Soft Head! Need you say it face to face?”
6881
6882 “Now, I ask you, you blundering booby,” said my guardian, very sternly,
6883 “once more and for the last time, what the man you have brought here is
6884 prepared to swear?”
6885
6886 Mike looked hard at my guardian, as if he were trying to learn a lesson
6887 from his face, and slowly replied, “Ayther to character, or to having
6888 been in his company and never left him all the night in question.”
6889
6890 “Now, be careful. In what station of life is this man?”
6891
6892 Mike looked at his cap, and looked at the floor, and looked at the
6893 ceiling, and looked at the clerk, and even looked at me, before
6894 beginning to reply in a nervous manner, “We’ve dressed him up like--”
6895 when my guardian blustered out,--
6896
6897 “What? You WILL, will you?”
6898
6899 (“Spooney!” added the clerk again, with another stir.)
6900
6901 After some helpless casting about, Mike brightened and began again:--
6902
6903 “He is dressed like a ‘spectable pieman. A sort of a pastry-cook.”
6904
6905 “Is he here?” asked my guardian.
6906
6907 “I left him,” said Mike, “a setting on some doorsteps round the corner.”
6908
6909 “Take him past that window, and let me see him.”
6910
6911 The window indicated was the office window. We all three went to
6912 it, behind the wire blind, and presently saw the client go by in an
6913 accidental manner, with a murderous-looking tall individual, in a short
6914 suit of white linen and a paper cap. This guileless confectioner was not
6915 by any means sober, and had a black eye in the green stage of recovery,
6916 which was painted over.
6917
6918 “Tell him to take his witness away directly,” said my guardian to the
6919 clerk, in extreme disgust, “and ask him what he means by bringing such a
6920 fellow as that.”
6921
6922 My guardian then took me into his own room, and while he lunched,
6923 standing, from a sandwich-box and a pocket-flask of sherry (he seemed to
6924 bully his very sandwich as he ate it), informed me what arrangements he
6925 had made for me. I was to go to “Barnard’s Inn,” to young Mr. Pocket’s
6926 rooms, where a bed had been sent in for my accommodation; I was to
6927 remain with young Mr. Pocket until Monday; on Monday I was to go with
6928 him to his father’s house on a visit, that I might try how I liked it.
6929 Also, I was told what my allowance was to be,--it was a very liberal
6930 one,--and had handed to me from one of my guardian’s drawers, the cards
6931 of certain tradesmen with whom I was to deal for all kinds of clothes,
6932 and such other things as I could in reason want. “You will find your
6933 credit good, Mr. Pip,” said my guardian, whose flask of sherry smelt
6934 like a whole caskful, as he hastily refreshed himself, “but I shall by
6935 this means be able to check your bills, and to pull you up if I find you
6936 outrunning the constable. Of course you’ll go wrong somehow, but that’s
6937 no fault of mine.”
6938
6939 After I had pondered a little over this encouraging sentiment, I asked
6940 Mr. Jaggers if I could send for a coach? He said it was not worth while,
6941 I was so near my destination; Wemmick should walk round with me, if I
6942 pleased.
6943
6944 I then found that Wemmick was the clerk in the next room. Another clerk
6945 was rung down from upstairs to take his place while he was out, and I
6946 accompanied him into the street, after shaking hands with my guardian.
6947 We found a new set of people lingering outside, but Wemmick made a way
6948 among them by saying coolly yet decisively, “I tell you it’s no use; he
6949 won’t have a word to say to one of you;” and we soon got clear of them,
6950 and went on side by side.
6951
6952
6953
6954
6955 Chapter XXI
6956
6957 Casting my eyes on Mr. Wemmick as we went along, to see what he was
6958 like in the light of day, I found him to be a dry man, rather short in
6959 stature, with a square wooden face, whose expression seemed to have been
6960 imperfectly chipped out with a dull-edged chisel. There were some marks
6961 in it that might have been dimples, if the material had been softer and
6962 the instrument finer, but which, as it was, were only dints. The chisel
6963 had made three or four of these attempts at embellishment over his nose,
6964 but had given them up without an effort to smooth them off. I judged him
6965 to be a bachelor from the frayed condition of his linen, and he appeared
6966 to have sustained a good many bereavements; for he wore at least four
6967 mourning rings, besides a brooch representing a lady and a weeping
6968 willow at a tomb with an urn on it. I noticed, too, that several rings
6969 and seals hung at his watch-chain, as if he were quite laden with
6970 remembrances of departed friends. He had glittering eyes,--small, keen,
6971 and black,--and thin wide mottled lips. He had had them, to the best of
6972 my belief, from forty to fifty years.
6973
6974 “So you were never in London before?” said Mr. Wemmick to me.
6975
6976 “No,” said I.
6977
6978 “I was new here once,” said Mr. Wemmick. “Rum to think of now!”
6979
6980 “You are well acquainted with it now?”
6981
6982 “Why, yes,” said Mr. Wemmick. “I know the moves of it.”
6983
6984 “Is it a very wicked place?” I asked, more for the sake of saying
6985 something than for information.
6986
6987 “You may get cheated, robbed, and murdered in London. But there are
6988 plenty of people anywhere, who’ll do that for you.”
6989
6990 “If there is bad blood between you and them,” said I, to soften it off a
6991 little.
6992
6993 “O! I don’t know about bad blood,” returned Mr. Wemmick; “there’s not
6994 much bad blood about. They’ll do it, if there’s anything to be got by
6995 it.”
6996
6997 “That makes it worse.”
6998
6999 “You think so?” returned Mr. Wemmick. “Much about the same, I should
7000 say.”
7001
7002 He wore his hat on the back of his head, and looked straight before him:
7003 walking in a self-contained way as if there were nothing in the streets
7004 to claim his attention. His mouth was such a post-office of a mouth
7005 that he had a mechanical appearance of smiling. We had got to the top of
7006 Holborn Hill before I knew that it was merely a mechanical appearance,
7007 and that he was not smiling at all.
7008
7009 “Do you know where Mr. Matthew Pocket lives?” I asked Mr. Wemmick.
7010
7011 “Yes,” said he, nodding in the direction. “At Hammersmith, west of
7012 London.”
7013
7014 “Is that far?”
7015
7016 “Well! Say five miles.”
7017
7018 “Do you know him?”
7019
7020 “Why, you’re a regular cross-examiner!” said Mr. Wemmick, looking at me
7021 with an approving air. “Yes, I know him. I know him!”
7022
7023 There was an air of toleration or depreciation about his utterance of
7024 these words that rather depressed me; and I was still looking sideways
7025 at his block of a face in search of any encouraging note to the text,
7026 when he said here we were at Barnard’s Inn. My depression was not
7027 alleviated by the announcement, for, I had supposed that establishment
7028 to be an hotel kept by Mr. Barnard, to which the Blue Boar in our town
7029 was a mere public-house. Whereas I now found Barnard to be a disembodied
7030 spirit, or a fiction, and his inn the dingiest collection of shabby
7031 buildings ever squeezed together in a rank corner as a club for
7032 Tom-cats.
7033
7034 We entered this haven through a wicket-gate, and were disgorged by an
7035 introductory passage into a melancholy little square that looked to me
7036 like a flat burying-ground. I thought it had the most dismal trees in
7037 it, and the most dismal sparrows, and the most dismal cats, and the most
7038 dismal houses (in number half a dozen or so), that I had ever seen. I
7039 thought the windows of the sets of chambers into which those houses were
7040 divided were in every stage of dilapidated blind and curtain, crippled
7041 flower-pot, cracked glass, dusty decay, and miserable makeshift; while
7042 To Let, To Let, To Let, glared at me from empty rooms, as if no new
7043 wretches ever came there, and the vengeance of the soul of Barnard were
7044 being slowly appeased by the gradual suicide of the present occupants
7045 and their unholy interment under the gravel. A frowzy mourning of soot
7046 and smoke attired this forlorn creation of Barnard, and it had strewn
7047 ashes on its head, and was undergoing penance and humiliation as a mere
7048 dust-hole. Thus far my sense of sight; while dry rot and wet rot and all
7049 the silent rots that rot in neglected roof and cellar,--rot of rat
7050 and mouse and bug and coaching-stables near at hand besides--addressed
7051 themselves faintly to my sense of smell, and moaned, “Try Barnard’s
7052 Mixture.”
7053
7054 So imperfect was this realization of the first of my great expectations,
7055 that I looked in dismay at Mr. Wemmick. “Ah!” said he, mistaking me;
7056 “the retirement reminds you of the country. So it does me.”
7057
7058 He led me into a corner and conducted me up a flight of stairs,--which
7059 appeared to me to be slowly collapsing into sawdust, so that one of
7060 those days the upper lodgers would look out at their doors and find
7061 themselves without the means of coming down,--to a set of chambers on
7062 the top floor. MR. POCKET, JUN., was painted on the door, and there was
7063 a label on the letter-box, “Return shortly.”
7064
7065 “He hardly thought you’d come so soon,” Mr. Wemmick explained. “You
7066 don’t want me any more?”
7067
7068 “No, thank you,” said I.
7069
7070 “As I keep the cash,” Mr. Wemmick observed, “we shall most likely meet
7071 pretty often. Good day.”
7072
7073 “Good day.”
7074
7075 I put out my hand, and Mr. Wemmick at first looked at it as if he
7076 thought I wanted something. Then he looked at me, and said, correcting
7077 himself,--
7078
7079 “To be sure! Yes. You’re in the habit of shaking hands?”
7080
7081 I was rather confused, thinking it must be out of the London fashion,
7082 but said yes.
7083
7084 “I have got so out of it!” said Mr. Wemmick,--“except at last. Very
7085 glad, I’m sure, to make your acquaintance. Good day!”
7086
7087 When we had shaken hands and he was gone, I opened the staircase window
7088 and had nearly beheaded myself, for, the lines had rotted away, and it
7089 came down like the guillotine. Happily it was so quick that I had not
7090 put my head out. After this escape, I was content to take a foggy view
7091 of the Inn through the window’s encrusting dirt, and to stand dolefully
7092 looking out, saying to myself that London was decidedly overrated.
7093
7094 Mr. Pocket, Junior’s, idea of Shortly was not mine, for I had nearly
7095 maddened myself with looking out for half an hour, and had written
7096 my name with my finger several times in the dirt of every pane in the
7097 window, before I heard footsteps on the stairs. Gradually there arose
7098 before me the hat, head, neckcloth, waistcoat, trousers, boots, of a
7099 member of society of about my own standing. He had a paper-bag under
7100 each arm and a pottle of strawberries in one hand, and was out of
7101 breath.
7102
7103 “Mr. Pip?” said he.
7104
7105 “Mr. Pocket?” said I.
7106
7107 “Dear me!” he exclaimed. “I am extremely sorry; but I knew there was a
7108 coach from your part of the country at midday, and I thought you would
7109 come by that one. The fact is, I have been out on your account,--not
7110 that that is any excuse,--for I thought, coming from the country, you
7111 might like a little fruit after dinner, and I went to Covent Garden
7112 Market to get it good.”
7113
7114 For a reason that I had, I felt as if my eyes would start out of my
7115 head. I acknowledged his attention incoherently, and began to think this
7116 was a dream.
7117
7118 “Dear me!” said Mr. Pocket, Junior. “This door sticks so!”
7119
7120 As he was fast making jam of his fruit by wrestling with the door while
7121 the paper-bags were under his arms, I begged him to allow me to hold
7122 them. He relinquished them with an agreeable smile, and combated with
7123 the door as if it were a wild beast. It yielded so suddenly at last,
7124 that he staggered back upon me, and I staggered back upon the opposite
7125 door, and we both laughed. But still I felt as if my eyes must start out
7126 of my head, and as if this must be a dream.
7127
7128 “Pray come in,” said Mr. Pocket, Junior. “Allow me to lead the way. I am
7129 rather bare here, but I hope you’ll be able to make out tolerably well
7130 till Monday. My father thought you would get on more agreeably through
7131 to-morrow with me than with him, and might like to take a walk about
7132 London. I am sure I shall be very happy to show London to you. As to our
7133 table, you won’t find that bad, I hope, for it will be supplied from our
7134 coffee-house here, and (it is only right I should add) at your expense,
7135 such being Mr. Jaggers’s directions. As to our lodging, it’s not by
7136 any means splendid, because I have my own bread to earn, and my father
7137 hasn’t anything to give me, and I shouldn’t be willing to take it, if he
7138 had. This is our sitting-room,--just such chairs and tables and carpet
7139 and so forth, you see, as they could spare from home. You mustn’t give
7140 me credit for the tablecloth and spoons and castors, because they come
7141 for you from the coffee-house. This is my little bedroom; rather musty,
7142 but Barnard’s is musty. This is your bedroom; the furniture’s hired for
7143 the occasion, but I trust it will answer the purpose; if you should want
7144 anything, I’ll go and fetch it. The chambers are retired, and we shall
7145 be alone together, but we shan’t fight, I dare say. But dear me, I beg
7146 your pardon, you’re holding the fruit all this time. Pray let me take
7147 these bags from you. I am quite ashamed.”
7148
7149 As I stood opposite to Mr. Pocket, Junior, delivering him the bags, One,
7150 Two, I saw the starting appearance come into his own eyes that I knew to
7151 be in mine, and he said, falling back,--
7152
7153 “Lord bless me, you’re the prowling boy!”
7154
7155 “And you,” said I, “are the pale young gentleman!”
7156
7157
7158
7159
7160 Chapter XXII
7161
7162 The pale young gentleman and I stood contemplating one another in
7163 Barnard’s Inn, until we both burst out laughing. “The idea of its
7164 being you!” said he. “The idea of its being you!” said I. And then we
7165 contemplated one another afresh, and laughed again. “Well!” said the
7166 pale young gentleman, reaching out his hand good-humoredly, “it’s all
7167 over now, I hope, and it will be magnanimous in you if you’ll forgive me
7168 for having knocked you about so.”
7169
7170 I derived from this speech that Mr. Herbert Pocket (for Herbert was the
7171 pale young gentleman’s name) still rather confounded his intention with
7172 his execution. But I made a modest reply, and we shook hands warmly.
7173
7174 “You hadn’t come into your good fortune at that time?” said Herbert
7175 Pocket.
7176
7177 “No,” said I.
7178
7179 “No,” he acquiesced: “I heard it had happened very lately. I was rather
7180 on the lookout for good fortune then.”
7181
7182 “Indeed?”
7183
7184 “Yes. Miss Havisham had sent for me, to see if she could take a fancy to
7185 me. But she couldn’t,--at all events, she didn’t.”
7186
7187 I thought it polite to remark that I was surprised to hear that.
7188
7189 “Bad taste,” said Herbert, laughing, “but a fact. Yes, she had sent for
7190 me on a trial visit, and if I had come out of it successfully, I
7191 suppose I should have been provided for; perhaps I should have been
7192 what-you-may-called it to Estella.”
7193
7194 “What’s that?” I asked, with sudden gravity.
7195
7196 He was arranging his fruit in plates while we talked, which divided his
7197 attention, and was the cause of his having made this lapse of a word.
7198 “Affianced,” he explained, still busy with the fruit. “Betrothed.
7199 Engaged. What’s-his-named. Any word of that sort.”
7200
7201 “How did you bear your disappointment?” I asked.
7202
7203 “Pooh!” said he, “I didn’t care much for it. She’s a Tartar.”
7204
7205 “Miss Havisham?”
7206
7207 “I don’t say no to that, but I meant Estella. That girl’s hard and
7208 haughty and capricious to the last degree, and has been brought up by
7209 Miss Havisham to wreak revenge on all the male sex.”
7210
7211 “What relation is she to Miss Havisham?”
7212
7213 “None,” said he. “Only adopted.”
7214
7215 “Why should she wreak revenge on all the male sex? What revenge?”
7216
7217 “Lord, Mr. Pip!” said he. “Don’t you know?”
7218
7219 “No,” said I.
7220
7221 “Dear me! It’s quite a story, and shall be saved till dinner-time. And
7222 now let me take the liberty of asking you a question. How did you come
7223 there, that day?”
7224
7225 I told him, and he was attentive until I had finished, and then burst
7226 out laughing again, and asked me if I was sore afterwards? I didn’t
7227 ask him if he was, for my conviction on that point was perfectly
7228 established.
7229
7230 “Mr. Jaggers is your guardian, I understand?” he went on.
7231
7232 “Yes.”
7233
7234 “You know he is Miss Havisham’s man of business and solicitor, and has
7235 her confidence when nobody else has?”
7236
7237 This was bringing me (I felt) towards dangerous ground. I answered with
7238 a constraint I made no attempt to disguise, that I had seen Mr. Jaggers
7239 in Miss Havisham’s house on the very day of our combat, but never at any
7240 other time, and that I believed he had no recollection of having ever
7241 seen me there.
7242
7243 “He was so obliging as to suggest my father for your tutor, and he
7244 called on my father to propose it. Of course he knew about my father
7245 from his connection with Miss Havisham. My father is Miss Havisham’s
7246 cousin; not that that implies familiar intercourse between them, for he
7247 is a bad courtier and will not propitiate her.”
7248
7249 Herbert Pocket had a frank and easy way with him that was very taking.
7250 I had never seen any one then, and I have never seen any one since,
7251 who more strongly expressed to me, in every look and tone, a natural
7252 incapacity to do anything secret and mean. There was something
7253 wonderfully hopeful about his general air, and something that at the
7254 same time whispered to me he would never be very successful or rich. I
7255 don’t know how this was. I became imbued with the notion on that first
7256 occasion before we sat down to dinner, but I cannot define by what
7257 means.
7258
7259 He was still a pale young gentleman, and had a certain conquered languor
7260 about him in the midst of his spirits and briskness, that did not seem
7261 indicative of natural strength. He had not a handsome face, but it was
7262 better than handsome: being extremely amiable and cheerful. His figure
7263 was a little ungainly, as in the days when my knuckles had taken such
7264 liberties with it, but it looked as if it would always be light and
7265 young. Whether Mr. Trabb’s local work would have sat more gracefully on
7266 him than on me, may be a question; but I am conscious that he carried
7267 off his rather old clothes much better than I carried off my new suit.
7268
7269 As he was so communicative, I felt that reserve on my part would be a
7270 bad return unsuited to our years. I therefore told him my small story,
7271 and laid stress on my being forbidden to inquire who my benefactor was.
7272 I further mentioned that as I had been brought up a blacksmith in a
7273 country place, and knew very little of the ways of politeness, I would
7274 take it as a great kindness in him if he would give me a hint whenever
7275 he saw me at a loss or going wrong.
7276
7277 “With pleasure,” said he, “though I venture to prophesy that you’ll want
7278 very few hints. I dare say we shall be often together, and I should like
7279 to banish any needless restraint between us. Will you do me the favour
7280 to begin at once to call me by my Christian name, Herbert?”
7281
7282 I thanked him and said I would. I informed him in exchange that my
7283 Christian name was Philip.
7284
7285 “I don’t take to Philip,” said he, smiling, “for it sounds like a moral
7286 boy out of the spelling-book, who was so lazy that he fell into a pond,
7287 or so fat that he couldn’t see out of his eyes, or so avaricious that
7288 he locked up his cake till the mice ate it, or so determined to go a
7289 bird’s-nesting that he got himself eaten by bears who lived handy in the
7290 neighborhood. I tell you what I should like. We are so harmonious, and
7291 you have been a blacksmith,---would you mind it?”
7292
7293 “I shouldn’t mind anything that you propose,” I answered, “but I don’t
7294 understand you.”
7295
7296 “Would you mind Handel for a familiar name? There’s a charming piece of
7297 music by Handel, called the Harmonious Blacksmith.”
7298
7299 “I should like it very much.”
7300
7301 “Then, my dear Handel,” said he, turning round as the door opened,
7302 “here is the dinner, and I must beg of you to take the top of the table,
7303 because the dinner is of your providing.”
7304
7305 This I would not hear of, so he took the top, and I faced him. It was a
7306 nice little dinner,--seemed to me then a very Lord Mayor’s Feast,--and
7307 it acquired additional relish from being eaten under those independent
7308 circumstances, with no old people by, and with London all around us.
7309 This again was heightened by a certain gypsy character that set the
7310 banquet off; for while the table was, as Mr. Pumblechook might have
7311 said, the lap of luxury,--being entirely furnished forth from the
7312 coffee-house,--the circumjacent region of sitting-room was of a
7313 comparatively pastureless and shifty character; imposing on the waiter
7314 the wandering habits of putting the covers on the floor (where he
7315 fell over them), the melted butter in the arm-chair, the bread on the
7316 bookshelves, the cheese in the coal-scuttle, and the boiled fowl into my
7317 bed in the next room,--where I found much of its parsley and butter in
7318 a state of congelation when I retired for the night. All this made the
7319 feast delightful, and when the waiter was not there to watch me, my
7320 pleasure was without alloy.
7321
7322 We had made some progress in the dinner, when I reminded Herbert of his
7323 promise to tell me about Miss Havisham.
7324
7325 “True,” he replied. “I’ll redeem it at once. Let me introduce the topic,
7326 Handel, by mentioning that in London it is not the custom to put the
7327 knife in the mouth,--for fear of accidents,--and that while the fork is
7328 reserved for that use, it is not put further in than necessary. It is
7329 scarcely worth mentioning, only it’s as well to do as other people do.
7330 Also, the spoon is not generally used over-hand, but under. This has
7331 two advantages. You get at your mouth better (which after all is the
7332 object), and you save a good deal of the attitude of opening oysters, on
7333 the part of the right elbow.”
7334
7335 He offered these friendly suggestions in such a lively way, that we both
7336 laughed and I scarcely blushed.
7337
7338 “Now,” he pursued, “concerning Miss Havisham. Miss Havisham, you must
7339 know, was a spoilt child. Her mother died when she was a baby, and her
7340 father denied her nothing. Her father was a country gentleman down in
7341 your part of the world, and was a brewer. I don’t know why it should
7342 be a crack thing to be a brewer; but it is indisputable that while you
7343 cannot possibly be genteel and bake, you may be as genteel as never was
7344 and brew. You see it every day.”
7345
7346 “Yet a gentleman may not keep a public-house; may he?” said I.
7347
7348 “Not on any account,” returned Herbert; “but a public-house may keep a
7349 gentleman. Well! Mr. Havisham was very rich and very proud. So was his
7350 daughter.”
7351
7352 “Miss Havisham was an only child?” I hazarded.
7353
7354 “Stop a moment, I am coming to that. No, she was not an only child;
7355 she had a half-brother. Her father privately married again--his cook, I
7356 rather think.”
7357
7358 “I thought he was proud,” said I.
7359
7360 “My good Handel, so he was. He married his second wife privately,
7361 because he was proud, and in course of time she died. When she was dead,
7362 I apprehend he first told his daughter what he had done, and then
7363 the son became a part of the family, residing in the house you are
7364 acquainted with. As the son grew a young man, he turned out riotous,
7365 extravagant, undutiful,--altogether bad. At last his father disinherited
7366 him; but he softened when he was dying, and left him well off, though
7367 not nearly so well off as Miss Havisham.--Take another glass of wine,
7368 and excuse my mentioning that society as a body does not expect one
7369 to be so strictly conscientious in emptying one’s glass, as to turn it
7370 bottom upwards with the rim on one’s nose.”
7371
7372 I had been doing this, in an excess of attention to his recital. I
7373 thanked him, and apologized. He said, “Not at all,” and resumed.
7374
7375 “Miss Havisham was now an heiress, and you may suppose was looked after
7376 as a great match. Her half-brother had now ample means again, but what
7377 with debts and what with new madness wasted them most fearfully again.
7378 There were stronger differences between him and her than there had been
7379 between him and his father, and it is suspected that he cherished a deep
7380 and mortal grudge against her as having influenced the father’s anger.
7381 Now, I come to the cruel part of the story,--merely breaking off, my
7382 dear Handel, to remark that a dinner-napkin will not go into a tumbler.”
7383
7384 Why I was trying to pack mine into my tumbler, I am wholly unable to
7385 say. I only know that I found myself, with a perseverance worthy of a
7386 much better cause, making the most strenuous exertions to compress it
7387 within those limits. Again I thanked him and apologized, and again he
7388 said in the cheerfullest manner, “Not at all, I am sure!” and resumed.
7389
7390 “There appeared upon the scene--say at the races, or the public
7391 balls, or anywhere else you like--a certain man, who made love to Miss
7392 Havisham. I never saw him (for this happened five-and-twenty years ago,
7393 before you and I were, Handel), but I have heard my father mention that
7394 he was a showy man, and the kind of man for the purpose. But that he was
7395 not to be, without ignorance or prejudice, mistaken for a gentleman, my
7396 father most strongly asseverates; because it is a principle of his that
7397 no man who was not a true gentleman at heart ever was, since the world
7398 began, a true gentleman in manner. He says, no varnish can hide the
7399 grain of the wood; and that the more varnish you put on, the more the
7400 grain will express itself. Well! This man pursued Miss Havisham closely,
7401 and professed to be devoted to her. I believe she had not shown much
7402 susceptibility up to that time; but all the susceptibility she possessed
7403 certainly came out then, and she passionately loved him. There is no
7404 doubt that she perfectly idolized him. He practised on her affection in
7405 that systematic way, that he got great sums of money from her, and he
7406 induced her to buy her brother out of a share in the brewery (which had
7407 been weakly left him by his father) at an immense price, on the plea
7408 that when he was her husband he must hold and manage it all. Your
7409 guardian was not at that time in Miss Havisham’s counsels, and she was
7410 too haughty and too much in love to be advised by any one. Her relations
7411 were poor and scheming, with the exception of my father; he was poor
7412 enough, but not time-serving or jealous. The only independent one among
7413 them, he warned her that she was doing too much for this man, and
7414 was placing herself too unreservedly in his power. She took the first
7415 opportunity of angrily ordering my father out of the house, in his
7416 presence, and my father has never seen her since.”
7417
7418 I thought of her having said, “Matthew will come and see me at last when
7419 I am laid dead upon that table;” and I asked Herbert whether his father
7420 was so inveterate against her?
7421
7422 “It’s not that,” said he, “but she charged him, in the presence of her
7423 intended husband, with being disappointed in the hope of fawning upon
7424 her for his own advancement, and, if he were to go to her now, it would
7425 look true--even to him--and even to her. To return to the man and make
7426 an end of him. The marriage day was fixed, the wedding dresses were
7427 bought, the wedding tour was planned out, the wedding guests were
7428 invited. The day came, but not the bridegroom. He wrote her a letter--”
7429
7430 “Which she received,” I struck in, “when she was dressing for her
7431 marriage? At twenty minutes to nine?”
7432
7433 “At the hour and minute,” said Herbert, nodding, “at which she
7434 afterwards stopped all the clocks. What was in it, further than that
7435 it most heartlessly broke the marriage off, I can’t tell you, because I
7436 don’t know. When she recovered from a bad illness that she had, she
7437 laid the whole place waste, as you have seen it, and she has never since
7438 looked upon the light of day.”
7439
7440 “Is that all the story?” I asked, after considering it.
7441
7442 “All I know of it; and indeed I only know so much, through piecing it
7443 out for myself; for my father always avoids it, and, even when Miss
7444 Havisham invited me to go there, told me no more of it than it was
7445 absolutely requisite I should understand. But I have forgotten one
7446 thing. It has been supposed that the man to whom she gave her misplaced
7447 confidence acted throughout in concert with her half-brother; that it
7448 was a conspiracy between them; and that they shared the profits.”
7449
7450 “I wonder he didn’t marry her and get all the property,” said I.
7451
7452 “He may have been married already, and her cruel mortification may have
7453 been a part of her half-brother’s scheme,” said Herbert. “Mind! I don’t
7454 know that.”
7455
7456 “What became of the two men?” I asked, after again considering the
7457 subject.
7458
7459 “They fell into deeper shame and degradation--if there can be
7460 deeper--and ruin.”
7461
7462 “Are they alive now?”
7463
7464 “I don’t know.”
7465
7466 “You said just now that Estella was not related to Miss Havisham, but
7467 adopted. When adopted?”
7468
7469 Herbert shrugged his shoulders. “There has always been an Estella, since
7470 I have heard of a Miss Havisham. I know no more. And now, Handel,” said
7471 he, finally throwing off the story as it were, “there is a perfectly
7472 open understanding between us. All that I know about Miss Havisham, you
7473 know.”
7474
7475 “And all that I know,” I retorted, “you know.”
7476
7477 “I fully believe it. So there can be no competition or perplexity
7478 between you and me. And as to the condition on which you hold your
7479 advancement in life,--namely, that you are not to inquire or discuss to
7480 whom you owe it,--you may be very sure that it will never be encroached
7481 upon, or even approached, by me, or by any one belonging to me.”
7482
7483 In truth, he said this with so much delicacy, that I felt the subject
7484 done with, even though I should be under his father’s roof for years and
7485 years to come. Yet he said it with so much meaning, too, that I felt
7486 he as perfectly understood Miss Havisham to be my benefactress, as I
7487 understood the fact myself.
7488
7489 It had not occurred to me before, that he had led up to the theme for
7490 the purpose of clearing it out of our way; but we were so much the
7491 lighter and easier for having broached it, that I now perceived this
7492 to be the case. We were very gay and sociable, and I asked him, in the
7493 course of conversation, what he was? He replied, “A capitalist,--an
7494 Insurer of Ships.” I suppose he saw me glancing about the room in search
7495 of some tokens of Shipping, or capital, for he added, “In the City.”
7496
7497 I had grand ideas of the wealth and importance of Insurers of Ships in
7498 the City, and I began to think with awe of having laid a young Insurer
7499 on his back, blackened his enterprising eye, and cut his responsible
7500 head open. But again there came upon me, for my relief, that odd
7501 impression that Herbert Pocket would never be very successful or rich.
7502
7503 “I shall not rest satisfied with merely employing my capital in insuring
7504 ships. I shall buy up some good Life Assurance shares, and cut into the
7505 Direction. I shall also do a little in the mining way. None of these
7506 things will interfere with my chartering a few thousand tons on my own
7507 account. I think I shall trade,” said he, leaning back in his chair, “to
7508 the East Indies, for silks, shawls, spices, dyes, drugs, and precious
7509 woods. It’s an interesting trade.”
7510
7511 “And the profits are large?” said I.
7512
7513 “Tremendous!” said he.
7514
7515 I wavered again, and began to think here were greater expectations than
7516 my own.
7517
7518 “I think I shall trade, also,” said he, putting his thumbs in his
7519 waist-coat pockets, “to the West Indies, for sugar, tobacco, and rum.
7520 Also to Ceylon, specially for elephants’ tusks.”
7521
7522 “You will want a good many ships,” said I.
7523
7524 “A perfect fleet,” said he.
7525
7526 Quite overpowered by the magnificence of these transactions, I asked him
7527 where the ships he insured mostly traded to at present?
7528
7529 “I haven’t begun insuring yet,” he replied. “I am looking about me.”
7530
7531 Somehow, that pursuit seemed more in keeping with Barnard’s Inn. I said
7532 (in a tone of conviction), “Ah-h!”
7533
7534 “Yes. I am in a counting-house, and looking about me.”
7535
7536 “Is a counting-house profitable?” I asked.
7537
7538 “To--do you mean to the young fellow who’s in it?” he asked, in reply.
7539
7540 “Yes; to you.”
7541
7542 “Why, n-no; not to me.” He said this with the air of one carefully
7543 reckoning up and striking a balance. “Not directly profitable. That is,
7544 it doesn’t pay me anything, and I have to--keep myself.”
7545
7546 This certainly had not a profitable appearance, and I shook my head as
7547 if I would imply that it would be difficult to lay by much accumulative
7548 capital from such a source of income.
7549
7550 “But the thing is,” said Herbert Pocket, “that you look about you.
7551 That’s the grand thing. You are in a counting-house, you know, and you
7552 look about you.”
7553
7554 It struck me as a singular implication that you couldn’t be out of a
7555 counting-house, you know, and look about you; but I silently deferred to
7556 his experience.
7557
7558 “Then the time comes,” said Herbert, “when you see your opening. And you
7559 go in, and you swoop upon it and you make your capital, and then there
7560 you are! When you have once made your capital, you have nothing to do
7561 but employ it.”
7562
7563 This was very like his way of conducting that encounter in the garden;
7564 very like. His manner of bearing his poverty, too, exactly corresponded
7565 to his manner of bearing that defeat. It seemed to me that he took all
7566 blows and buffets now with just the same air as he had taken mine
7567 then. It was evident that he had nothing around him but the simplest
7568 necessaries, for everything that I remarked upon turned out to have been
7569 sent in on my account from the coffee-house or somewhere else.
7570
7571 Yet, having already made his fortune in his own mind, he was so
7572 unassuming with it that I felt quite grateful to him for not being
7573 puffed up. It was a pleasant addition to his naturally pleasant ways,
7574 and we got on famously. In the evening we went out for a walk in the
7575 streets, and went half-price to the Theatre; and next day we went to
7576 church at Westminster Abbey, and in the afternoon we walked in the
7577 Parks; and I wondered who shod all the horses there, and wished Joe did.
7578
7579 On a moderate computation, it was many months, that Sunday, since I had
7580 left Joe and Biddy. The space interposed between myself and them partook
7581 of that expansion, and our marshes were any distance off. That I could
7582 have been at our old church in my old church-going clothes, on the very
7583 last Sunday that ever was, seemed a combination of impossibilities,
7584 geographical and social, solar and lunar. Yet in the London streets so
7585 crowded with people and so brilliantly lighted in the dusk of evening,
7586 there were depressing hints of reproaches for that I had put the poor
7587 old kitchen at home so far away; and in the dead of night, the footsteps
7588 of some incapable impostor of a porter mooning about Barnard’s Inn,
7589 under pretence of watching it, fell hollow on my heart.
7590
7591 On the Monday morning at a quarter before nine, Herbert went to
7592 the counting-house to report himself,--to look about him, too, I
7593 suppose,--and I bore him company. He was to come away in an hour or
7594 two to attend me to Hammersmith, and I was to wait about for him. It
7595 appeared to me that the eggs from which young Insurers were hatched were
7596 incubated in dust and heat, like the eggs of ostriches, judging from the
7597 places to which those incipient giants repaired on a Monday morning. Nor
7598 did the counting-house where Herbert assisted, show in my eyes as at
7599 all a good Observatory; being a back second floor up a yard, of a grimy
7600 presence in all particulars, and with a look into another back second
7601 floor, rather than a look out.
7602
7603 I waited about until it was noon, and I went upon ‘Change, and I saw
7604 fluey men sitting there under the bills about shipping, whom I took to
7605 be great merchants, though I couldn’t understand why they should all be
7606 out of spirits. When Herbert came, we went and had lunch at a celebrated
7607 house which I then quite venerated, but now believe to have been the
7608 most abject superstition in Europe, and where I could not help noticing,
7609 even then, that there was much more gravy on the tablecloths and knives
7610 and waiters’ clothes, than in the steaks. This collation disposed of at
7611 a moderate price (considering the grease, which was not charged for), we
7612 went back to Barnard’s Inn and got my little portmanteau, and then took
7613 coach for Hammersmith. We arrived there at two or three o’clock in
7614 the afternoon, and had very little way to walk to Mr. Pocket’s house.
7615 Lifting the latch of a gate, we passed direct into a little garden
7616 overlooking the river, where Mr. Pocket’s children were playing
7617 about. And unless I deceive myself on a point where my interests or
7618 prepossessions are certainly not concerned, I saw that Mr. and Mrs.
7619 Pocket’s children were not growing up or being brought up, but were
7620 tumbling up.
7621
7622 Mrs. Pocket was sitting on a garden chair under a tree, reading, with
7623 her legs upon another garden chair; and Mrs. Pocket’s two nurse-maids
7624 were looking about them while the children played. “Mamma,” said
7625 Herbert, “this is young Mr. Pip.” Upon which Mrs. Pocket received me
7626 with an appearance of amiable dignity.
7627
7628 “Master Alick and Miss Jane,” cried one of the nurses to two of the
7629 children, “if you go a bouncing up against them bushes you’ll fall over
7630 into the river and be drownded, and what’ll your pa say then?”
7631
7632 At the same time this nurse picked up Mrs. Pocket’s handkerchief, and
7633 said, “If that don’t make six times you’ve dropped it, Mum!” Upon which
7634 Mrs. Pocket laughed and said, “Thank you, Flopson,” and settling herself
7635 in one chair only, resumed her book. Her countenance immediately assumed
7636 a knitted and intent expression as if she had been reading for a week,
7637 but before she could have read half a dozen lines, she fixed her eyes
7638 upon me, and said, “I hope your mamma is quite well?” This unexpected
7639 inquiry put me into such a difficulty that I began saying in the
7640 absurdest way that if there had been any such person I had no doubt she
7641 would have been quite well and would have been very much obliged and
7642 would have sent her compliments, when the nurse came to my rescue.
7643
7644 “Well!” she cried, picking up the pocket-handkerchief, “if that don’t
7645 make seven times! What ARE you a doing of this afternoon, Mum!” Mrs.
7646 Pocket received her property, at first with a look of unutterable
7647 surprise as if she had never seen it before, and then with a laugh of
7648 recognition, and said, “Thank you, Flopson,” and forgot me, and went on
7649 reading.
7650
7651 I found, now I had leisure to count them, that there were no fewer than
7652 six little Pockets present, in various stages of tumbling up. I had
7653 scarcely arrived at the total when a seventh was heard, as in the region
7654 of air, wailing dolefully.
7655
7656 “If there ain’t Baby!” said Flopson, appearing to think it most
7657 surprising. “Make haste up, Millers.”
7658
7659 Millers, who was the other nurse, retired into the house, and by degrees
7660 the child’s wailing was hushed and stopped, as if it were a young
7661 ventriloquist with something in its mouth. Mrs. Pocket read all the
7662 time, and I was curious to know what the book could be.
7663
7664 We were waiting, I supposed, for Mr. Pocket to come out to us; at any
7665 rate we waited there, and so I had an opportunity of observing the
7666 remarkable family phenomenon that whenever any of the children strayed
7667 near Mrs. Pocket in their play, they always tripped themselves up and
7668 tumbled over her,--always very much to her momentary astonishment, and
7669 their own more enduring lamentation. I was at a loss to account for
7670 this surprising circumstance, and could not help giving my mind to
7671 speculations about it, until by and by Millers came down with the baby,
7672 which baby was handed to Flopson, which Flopson was handing it to Mrs.
7673 Pocket, when she too went fairly head foremost over Mrs. Pocket, baby
7674 and all, and was caught by Herbert and myself.
7675
7676 “Gracious me, Flopson!” said Mrs. Pocket, looking off her book for a
7677 moment, “everybody’s tumbling!”
7678
7679 “Gracious you, indeed, Mum!” returned Flopson, very red in the face;
7680 “what have you got there?”
7681
7682 “I got here, Flopson?” asked Mrs. Pocket.
7683
7684 “Why, if it ain’t your footstool!” cried Flopson. “And if you keep it
7685 under your skirts like that, who’s to help tumbling? Here! Take the
7686 baby, Mum, and give me your book.”
7687
7688 Mrs. Pocket acted on the advice, and inexpertly danced the infant a
7689 little in her lap, while the other children played about it. This had
7690 lasted but a very short time, when Mrs. Pocket issued summary orders
7691 that they were all to be taken into the house for a nap. Thus I made the
7692 second discovery on that first occasion, that the nurture of the little
7693 Pockets consisted of alternately tumbling up and lying down.
7694
7695 Under these circumstances, when Flopson and Millers had got the children
7696 into the house, like a little flock of sheep, and Mr. Pocket came out
7697 of it to make my acquaintance, I was not much surprised to find that Mr.
7698 Pocket was a gentleman with a rather perplexed expression of face, and
7699 with his very gray hair disordered on his head, as if he didn’t quite
7700 see his way to putting anything straight.
7701
7702
7703
7704
7705 Chapter XXIII
7706
7707 Mr. Pocket said he was glad to see me, and he hoped I was not sorry to
7708 see him. “For, I really am not,” he added, with his son’s smile,
7709 “an alarming personage.” He was a young-looking man, in spite of
7710 his perplexities and his very gray hair, and his manner seemed quite
7711 natural. I use the word natural, in the sense of its being unaffected;
7712 there was something comic in his distraught way, as though it would have
7713 been downright ludicrous but for his own perception that it was very
7714 near being so. When he had talked with me a little, he said to Mrs.
7715 Pocket, with a rather anxious contraction of his eyebrows, which were
7716 black and handsome, “Belinda, I hope you have welcomed Mr. Pip?” And she
7717 looked up from her book, and said, “Yes.” She then smiled upon me in an
7718 absent state of mind, and asked me if I liked the taste of orange-flower
7719 water? As the question had no bearing, near or remote, on any foregone
7720 or subsequent transaction, I consider it to have been thrown out, like
7721 her previous approaches, in general conversational condescension.
7722
7723 I found out within a few hours, and may mention at once, that Mrs.
7724 Pocket was the only daughter of a certain quite accidental deceased
7725 Knight, who had invented for himself a conviction that his deceased
7726 father would have been made a Baronet but for somebody’s determined
7727 opposition arising out of entirely personal motives,--I forget whose,
7728 if I ever knew,--the Sovereign’s, the Prime Minister’s, the Lord
7729 Chancellor’s, the Archbishop of Canterbury’s, anybody’s,--and had
7730 tacked himself on to the nobles of the earth in right of this quite
7731 supposititious fact. I believe he had been knighted himself for storming
7732 the English grammar at the point of the pen, in a desperate address
7733 engrossed on vellum, on the occasion of the laying of the first stone of
7734 some building or other, and for handing some Royal Personage either the
7735 trowel or the mortar. Be that as it may, he had directed Mrs. Pocket to
7736 be brought up from her cradle as one who in the nature of things
7737 must marry a title, and who was to be guarded from the acquisition of
7738 plebeian domestic knowledge.
7739
7740 So successful a watch and ward had been established over the young lady
7741 by this judicious parent, that she had grown up highly ornamental, but
7742 perfectly helpless and useless. With her character thus happily formed,
7743 in the first bloom of her youth she had encountered Mr. Pocket: who was
7744 also in the first bloom of youth, and not quite decided whether to mount
7745 to the Woolsack, or to roof himself in with a mitre. As his doing the
7746 one or the other was a mere question of time, he and Mrs. Pocket had
7747 taken Time by the forelock (when, to judge from its length, it would
7748 seem to have wanted cutting), and had married without the knowledge of
7749 the judicious parent. The judicious parent, having nothing to bestow or
7750 withhold but his blessing, had handsomely settled that dower upon them
7751 after a short struggle, and had informed Mr. Pocket that his wife was “a
7752 treasure for a Prince.” Mr. Pocket had invested the Prince’s treasure
7753 in the ways of the world ever since, and it was supposed to have brought
7754 him in but indifferent interest. Still, Mrs. Pocket was in general the
7755 object of a queer sort of respectful pity, because she had not married
7756 a title; while Mr. Pocket was the object of a queer sort of forgiving
7757 reproach, because he had never got one.
7758
7759 Mr. Pocket took me into the house and showed me my room: which was a
7760 pleasant one, and so furnished as that I could use it with comfort for
7761 my own private sitting-room. He then knocked at the doors of two other
7762 similar rooms, and introduced me to their occupants, by name Drummle
7763 and Startop. Drummle, an old-looking young man of a heavy order of
7764 architecture, was whistling. Startop, younger in years and appearance,
7765 was reading and holding his head, as if he thought himself in danger of
7766 exploding it with too strong a charge of knowledge.
7767
7768 Both Mr. and Mrs. Pocket had such a noticeable air of being in somebody
7769 else’s hands, that I wondered who really was in possession of the house
7770 and let them live there, until I found this unknown power to be the
7771 servants. It was a smooth way of going on, perhaps, in respect of saving
7772 trouble; but it had the appearance of being expensive, for the servants
7773 felt it a duty they owed to themselves to be nice in their eating and
7774 drinking, and to keep a deal of company downstairs. They allowed a very
7775 liberal table to Mr. and Mrs. Pocket, yet it always appeared to me that
7776 by far the best part of the house to have boarded in would have been
7777 the kitchen,--always supposing the boarder capable of self-defence, for,
7778 before I had been there a week, a neighboring lady with whom the family
7779 were personally unacquainted, wrote in to say that she had seen Millers
7780 slapping the baby. This greatly distressed Mrs. Pocket, who burst into
7781 tears on receiving the note, and said that it was an extraordinary thing
7782 that the neighbors couldn’t mind their own business.
7783
7784 By degrees I learnt, and chiefly from Herbert, that Mr. Pocket had been
7785 educated at Harrow and at Cambridge, where he had distinguished himself;
7786 but that when he had had the happiness of marrying Mrs. Pocket very
7787 early in life, he had impaired his prospects and taken up the calling
7788 of a Grinder. After grinding a number of dull blades,--of whom it was
7789 remarkable that their fathers, when influential, were always going to
7790 help him to preferment, but always forgot to do it when the blades had
7791 left the Grindstone,--he had wearied of that poor work and had come to
7792 London. Here, after gradually failing in loftier hopes, he had “read”
7793 with divers who had lacked opportunities or neglected them, and had
7794 refurbished divers others for special occasions, and had turned his
7795 acquirements to the account of literary compilation and correction,
7796 and on such means, added to some very moderate private resources, still
7797 maintained the house I saw.
7798
7799 Mr. and Mrs. Pocket had a toady neighbor; a widow lady of that highly
7800 sympathetic nature that she agreed with everybody, blessed everybody,
7801 and shed smiles and tears on everybody, according to circumstances. This
7802 lady’s name was Mrs. Coiler, and I had the honor of taking her down to
7803 dinner on the day of my installation. She gave me to understand on the
7804 stairs, that it was a blow to dear Mrs. Pocket that dear Mr. Pocket
7805 should be under the necessity of receiving gentlemen to read with him.
7806 That did not extend to me, she told me in a gush of love and confidence
7807 (at that time, I had known her something less than five minutes); if
7808 they were all like Me, it would be quite another thing.
7809
7810 “But dear Mrs. Pocket,” said Mrs. Coiler, “after her early
7811 disappointment (not that dear Mr. Pocket was to blame in that), requires
7812 so much luxury and elegance--”
7813
7814 “Yes, ma’am,” I said, to stop her, for I was afraid she was going to
7815 cry.
7816
7817 “And she is of so aristocratic a disposition--”
7818
7819 “Yes, ma’am,” I said again, with the same object as before.
7820
7821 “--That it is hard,” said Mrs. Coiler, “to have dear Mr. Pocket’s time
7822 and attention diverted from dear Mrs. Pocket.”
7823
7824 I could not help thinking that it might be harder if the butcher’s time
7825 and attention were diverted from dear Mrs. Pocket; but I said nothing,
7826 and indeed had enough to do in keeping a bashful watch upon my company
7827 manners.
7828
7829 It came to my knowledge, through what passed between Mrs. Pocket and
7830 Drummle while I was attentive to my knife and fork, spoon, glasses, and
7831 other instruments of self-destruction, that Drummle, whose Christian
7832 name was Bentley, was actually the next heir but one to a baronetcy.
7833 It further appeared that the book I had seen Mrs. Pocket reading in the
7834 garden was all about titles, and that she knew the exact date at which
7835 her grandpapa would have come into the book, if he ever had come at all.
7836 Drummle didn’t say much, but in his limited way (he struck me as a sulky
7837 kind of fellow) he spoke as one of the elect, and recognized Mrs. Pocket
7838 as a woman and a sister. No one but themselves and Mrs. Coiler the toady
7839 neighbor showed any interest in this part of the conversation, and it
7840 appeared to me that it was painful to Herbert; but it promised to last
7841 a long time, when the page came in with the announcement of a domestic
7842 affliction. It was, in effect, that the cook had mislaid the beef. To my
7843 unutterable amazement, I now, for the first time, saw Mr. Pocket
7844 relieve his mind by going through a performance that struck me as very
7845 extraordinary, but which made no impression on anybody else, and
7846 with which I soon became as familiar as the rest. He laid down the
7847 carving-knife and fork,--being engaged in carving, at the moment,--put
7848 his two hands into his disturbed hair, and appeared to make an
7849 extraordinary effort to lift himself up by it. When he had done this,
7850 and had not lifted himself up at all, he quietly went on with what he
7851 was about.
7852
7853 Mrs. Coiler then changed the subject and began to flatter me. I liked
7854 it for a few moments, but she flattered me so very grossly that the
7855 pleasure was soon over. She had a serpentine way of coming close at
7856 me when she pretended to be vitally interested in the friends and
7857 localities I had left, which was altogether snaky and fork-tongued; and
7858 when she made an occasional bounce upon Startop (who said very little to
7859 her), or upon Drummle (who said less), I rather envied them for being on
7860 the opposite side of the table.
7861
7862 After dinner the children were introduced, and Mrs. Coiler made admiring
7863 comments on their eyes, noses, and legs,--a sagacious way of improving
7864 their minds. There were four little girls, and two little boys, besides
7865 the baby who might have been either, and the baby’s next successor who
7866 was as yet neither. They were brought in by Flopson and Millers, much as
7867 though those two non-commissioned officers had been recruiting somewhere
7868 for children and had enlisted these, while Mrs. Pocket looked at the
7869 young Nobles that ought to have been as if she rather thought she had
7870 had the pleasure of inspecting them before, but didn’t quite know what
7871 to make of them.
7872
7873 “Here! Give me your fork, Mum, and take the baby,” said Flopson. “Don’t
7874 take it that way, or you’ll get its head under the table.”
7875
7876 Thus advised, Mrs. Pocket took it the other way, and got its head
7877 upon the table; which was announced to all present by a prodigious
7878 concussion.
7879
7880 “Dear, dear! Give it me back, Mum,” said Flopson; “and Miss Jane, come
7881 and dance to baby, do!”
7882
7883 One of the little girls, a mere mite who seemed to have prematurely
7884 taken upon herself some charge of the others, stepped out of her place
7885 by me, and danced to and from the baby until it left off crying, and
7886 laughed. Then, all the children laughed, and Mr. Pocket (who in the
7887 meantime had twice endeavored to lift himself up by the hair) laughed,
7888 and we all laughed and were glad.
7889
7890 Flopson, by dint of doubling the baby at the joints like a Dutch doll,
7891 then got it safely into Mrs. Pocket’s lap, and gave it the nut-crackers
7892 to play with; at the same time recommending Mrs. Pocket to take notice
7893 that the handles of that instrument were not likely to agree with its
7894 eyes, and sharply charging Miss Jane to look after the same. Then, the
7895 two nurses left the room, and had a lively scuffle on the staircase with
7896 a dissipated page who had waited at dinner, and who had clearly lost
7897 half his buttons at the gaming-table.
7898
7899 I was made very uneasy in my mind by Mrs. Pocket’s falling into a
7900 discussion with Drummle respecting two baronetcies, while she ate a
7901 sliced orange steeped in sugar and wine, and, forgetting all about the
7902 baby on her lap, who did most appalling things with the nut-crackers. At
7903 length little Jane, perceiving its young brains to be imperilled, softly
7904 left her place, and with many small artifices coaxed the dangerous
7905 weapon away. Mrs. Pocket finishing her orange at about the same time,
7906 and not approving of this, said to Jane,--
7907
7908 “You naughty child, how dare you? Go and sit down this instant!”
7909
7910 “Mamma dear,” lisped the little girl, “baby ood have put hith eyeth
7911 out.”
7912
7913 “How dare you tell me so?” retorted Mrs. Pocket. “Go and sit down in
7914 your chair this moment!”
7915
7916 Mrs. Pocket’s dignity was so crushing, that I felt quite abashed, as if
7917 I myself had done something to rouse it.
7918
7919 “Belinda,” remonstrated Mr. Pocket, from the other end of the table,
7920 “how can you be so unreasonable? Jane only interfered for the protection
7921 of baby.”
7922
7923 “I will not allow anybody to interfere,” said Mrs. Pocket. “I am
7924 surprised, Matthew, that you should expose me to the affront of
7925 interference.”
7926
7927 “Good God!” cried Mr. Pocket, in an outbreak of desolate desperation.
7928 “Are infants to be nut-crackered into their tombs, and is nobody to save
7929 them?”
7930
7931 “I will not be interfered with by Jane,” said Mrs. Pocket, with a
7932 majestic glance at that innocent little offender. “I hope I know my poor
7933 grandpapa’s position. Jane, indeed!”
7934
7935 Mr. Pocket got his hands in his hair again, and this time really did
7936 lift himself some inches out of his chair. “Hear this!” he helplessly
7937 exclaimed to the elements. “Babies are to be nut-crackered dead, for
7938 people’s poor grandpapa’s positions!” Then he let himself down again,
7939 and became silent.
7940
7941 We all looked awkwardly at the tablecloth while this was going on. A
7942 pause succeeded, during which the honest and irrepressible baby made a
7943 series of leaps and crows at little Jane, who appeared to me to be the
7944 only member of the family (irrespective of servants) with whom it had
7945 any decided acquaintance.
7946
7947 “Mr. Drummle,” said Mrs. Pocket, “will you ring for Flopson? Jane, you
7948 undutiful little thing, go and lie down. Now, baby darling, come with
7949 ma!”
7950
7951 The baby was the soul of honor, and protested with all its might. It
7952 doubled itself up the wrong way over Mrs. Pocket’s arm, exhibited a pair
7953 of knitted shoes and dimpled ankles to the company in lieu of its soft
7954 face, and was carried out in the highest state of mutiny. And it gained
7955 its point after all, for I saw it through the window within a few
7956 minutes, being nursed by little Jane.
7957
7958 It happened that the other five children were left behind at the
7959 dinner-table, through Flopson’s having some private engagement, and
7960 their not being anybody else’s business. I thus became aware of the
7961 mutual relations between them and Mr. Pocket, which were exemplified in
7962 the following manner. Mr. Pocket, with the normal perplexity of his face
7963 heightened and his hair rumpled, looked at them for some minutes, as if
7964 he couldn’t make out how they came to be boarding and lodging in that
7965 establishment, and why they hadn’t been billeted by Nature on
7966 somebody else. Then, in a distant Missionary way he asked them certain
7967 questions,--as why little Joe had that hole in his frill, who said, Pa,
7968 Flopson was going to mend it when she had time,--and how little Fanny
7969 came by that whitlow, who said, Pa, Millers was going to poultice it
7970 when she didn’t forget. Then, he melted into parental tenderness, and
7971 gave them a shilling apiece and told them to go and play; and then as
7972 they went out, with one very strong effort to lift himself up by the
7973 hair he dismissed the hopeless subject.
7974
7975 In the evening there was rowing on the river. As Drummle and Startop had
7976 each a boat, I resolved to set up mine, and to cut them both out. I was
7977 pretty good at most exercises in which country boys are adepts, but as
7978 I was conscious of wanting elegance of style for the Thames,--not to say
7979 for other waters,--I at once engaged to place myself under the tuition
7980 of the winner of a prize-wherry who plied at our stairs, and to whom I
7981 was introduced by my new allies. This practical authority confused me
7982 very much by saying I had the arm of a blacksmith. If he could have
7983 known how nearly the compliment lost him his pupil, I doubt if he would
7984 have paid it.
7985
7986 There was a supper-tray after we got home at night, and I think we
7987 should all have enjoyed ourselves, but for a rather disagreeable
7988 domestic occurrence. Mr. Pocket was in good spirits, when a housemaid
7989 came in, and said, “If you please, sir, I should wish to speak to you.”
7990
7991 “Speak to your master?” said Mrs. Pocket, whose dignity was roused
7992 again. “How can you think of such a thing? Go and speak to Flopson. Or
7993 speak to me--at some other time.”
7994
7995 “Begging your pardon, ma’am,” returned the housemaid, “I should wish to
7996 speak at once, and to speak to master.”
7997
7998 Hereupon, Mr. Pocket went out of the room, and we made the best of
7999 ourselves until he came back.
8000
8001 “This is a pretty thing, Belinda!” said Mr. Pocket, returning with a
8002 countenance expressive of grief and despair. “Here’s the cook lying
8003 insensibly drunk on the kitchen floor, with a large bundle of fresh
8004 butter made up in the cupboard ready to sell for grease!”
8005
8006 Mrs. Pocket instantly showed much amiable emotion, and said, “This is
8007 that odious Sophia’s doing!”
8008
8009 “What do you mean, Belinda?” demanded Mr. Pocket.
8010
8011 “Sophia has told you,” said Mrs. Pocket. “Did I not see her with my own
8012 eyes and hear her with my own ears, come into the room just now and ask
8013 to speak to you?”
8014
8015 “But has she not taken me downstairs, Belinda,” returned Mr. Pocket,
8016 “and shown me the woman, and the bundle too?”
8017
8018 “And do you defend her, Matthew,” said Mrs. Pocket, “for making
8019 mischief?”
8020
8021 Mr. Pocket uttered a dismal groan.
8022
8023 “Am I, grandpapa’s granddaughter, to be nothing in the house?” said Mrs.
8024 Pocket. “Besides, the cook has always been a very nice respectful woman,
8025 and said in the most natural manner when she came to look after the
8026 situation, that she felt I was born to be a Duchess.”
8027
8028 There was a sofa where Mr. Pocket stood, and he dropped upon it in the
8029 attitude of the Dying Gladiator. Still in that attitude he said, with a
8030 hollow voice, “Good night, Mr. Pip,” when I deemed it advisable to go to
8031 bed and leave him.
8032
8033
8034
8035
8036 Chapter XXIV
8037
8038 After two or three days, when I had established myself in my room and
8039 had gone backwards and forwards to London several times, and had ordered
8040 all I wanted of my tradesmen, Mr. Pocket and I had a long talk together.
8041 He knew more of my intended career than I knew myself, for he referred
8042 to his having been told by Mr. Jaggers that I was not designed for any
8043 profession, and that I should be well enough educated for my destiny
8044 if I could “hold my own” with the average of young men in prosperous
8045 circumstances. I acquiesced, of course, knowing nothing to the contrary.
8046
8047 He advised my attending certain places in London, for the acquisition of
8048 such mere rudiments as I wanted, and my investing him with the functions
8049 of explainer and director of all my studies. He hoped that with
8050 intelligent assistance I should meet with little to discourage me, and
8051 should soon be able to dispense with any aid but his. Through his way
8052 of saying this, and much more to similar purpose, he placed himself on
8053 confidential terms with me in an admirable manner; and I may state
8054 at once that he was always so zealous and honorable in fulfilling his
8055 compact with me, that he made me zealous and honorable in fulfilling
8056 mine with him. If he had shown indifference as a master, I have no doubt
8057 I should have returned the compliment as a pupil; he gave me no such
8058 excuse, and each of us did the other justice. Nor did I ever regard
8059 him as having anything ludicrous about him--or anything but what was
8060 serious, honest, and good--in his tutor communication with me.
8061
8062 When these points were settled, and so far carried out as that I had
8063 begun to work in earnest, it occurred to me that if I could retain my
8064 bedroom in Barnard’s Inn, my life would be agreeably varied, while my
8065 manners would be none the worse for Herbert’s society. Mr. Pocket did
8066 not object to this arrangement, but urged that before any step could
8067 possibly be taken in it, it must be submitted to my guardian. I felt
8068 that this delicacy arose out of the consideration that the plan would
8069 save Herbert some expense, so I went off to Little Britain and imparted
8070 my wish to Mr. Jaggers.
8071
8072 “If I could buy the furniture now hired for me,” said I, “and one or two
8073 other little things, I should be quite at home there.”
8074
8075 “Go it!” said Mr. Jaggers, with a short laugh. “I told you you’d get on.
8076 Well! How much do you want?”
8077
8078 I said I didn’t know how much.
8079
8080 “Come!” retorted Mr. Jaggers. “How much? Fifty pounds?”
8081
8082 “O, not nearly so much.”
8083
8084 “Five pounds?” said Mr. Jaggers.
8085
8086 This was such a great fall, that I said in discomfiture, “O, more than
8087 that.”
8088
8089 “More than that, eh!” retorted Mr. Jaggers, lying in wait for me, with
8090 his hands in his pockets, his head on one side, and his eyes on the wall
8091 behind me; “how much more?”
8092
8093 “It is so difficult to fix a sum,” said I, hesitating.
8094
8095 “Come!” said Mr. Jaggers. “Let’s get at it. Twice five; will that do?
8096 Three times five; will that do? Four times five; will that do?”
8097
8098 I said I thought that would do handsomely.
8099
8100 “Four times five will do handsomely, will it?” said Mr. Jaggers,
8101 knitting his brows. “Now, what do you make of four times five?”
8102
8103 “What do I make of it?”
8104
8105 “Ah!” said Mr. Jaggers; “how much?”
8106
8107 “I suppose you make it twenty pounds,” said I, smiling.
8108
8109 “Never mind what I make it, my friend,” observed Mr. Jaggers, with a
8110 knowing and contradictory toss of his head. “I want to know what you
8111 make it.”
8112
8113 “Twenty pounds, of course.”
8114
8115 “Wemmick!” said Mr. Jaggers, opening his office door. “Take Mr. Pip’s
8116 written order, and pay him twenty pounds.”
8117
8118 This strongly marked way of doing business made a strongly marked
8119 impression on me, and that not of an agreeable kind. Mr. Jaggers never
8120 laughed; but he wore great bright creaking boots, and, in poising
8121 himself on these boots, with his large head bent down and his eyebrows
8122 joined together, awaiting an answer, he sometimes caused the boots to
8123 creak, as if they laughed in a dry and suspicious way. As he happened
8124 to go out now, and as Wemmick was brisk and talkative, I said to Wemmick
8125 that I hardly knew what to make of Mr. Jaggers’s manner.
8126
8127 “Tell him that, and he’ll take it as a compliment,” answered Wemmick;
8128 “he don’t mean that you should know what to make of it.--Oh!” for
8129 I looked surprised, “it’s not personal; it’s professional: only
8130 professional.”
8131
8132 Wemmick was at his desk, lunching--and crunching--on a dry hard biscuit;
8133 pieces of which he threw from time to time into his slit of a mouth, as
8134 if he were posting them.
8135
8136 “Always seems to me,” said Wemmick, “as if he had set a man-trap and was
8137 watching it. Suddenly-click--you’re caught!”
8138
8139 Without remarking that man-traps were not among the amenities of life, I
8140 said I supposed he was very skilful?
8141
8142 “Deep,” said Wemmick, “as Australia.” Pointing with his pen at the
8143 office floor, to express that Australia was understood, for the purposes
8144 of the figure, to be symmetrically on the opposite spot of the globe.
8145 “If there was anything deeper,” added Wemmick, bringing his pen to
8146 paper, “he’d be it.”
8147
8148 Then, I said I supposed he had a fine business, and Wemmick said,
8149 “Ca-pi-tal!” Then I asked if there were many clerks? to which he
8150 replied,--
8151
8152 “We don’t run much into clerks, because there’s only one Jaggers, and
8153 people won’t have him at second hand. There are only four of us. Would
8154 you like to see ‘em? You are one of us, as I may say.”
8155
8156 I accepted the offer. When Mr. Wemmick had put all the biscuit into the
8157 post, and had paid me my money from a cash-box in a safe, the key
8158 of which safe he kept somewhere down his back and produced from his
8159 coat-collar like an iron-pigtail, we went upstairs. The house was dark
8160 and shabby, and the greasy shoulders that had left their mark in Mr.
8161 Jaggers’s room seemed to have been shuffling up and down the staircase
8162 for years. In the front first floor, a clerk who looked something
8163 between a publican and a rat-catcher--a large pale, puffed, swollen
8164 man--was attentively engaged with three or four people of shabby
8165 appearance, whom he treated as unceremoniously as everybody seemed to
8166 be treated who contributed to Mr. Jaggers’s coffers. “Getting evidence
8167 together,” said Mr. Wemmick, as we came out, “for the Bailey.” In the
8168 room over that, a little flabby terrier of a clerk with dangling hair
8169 (his cropping seemed to have been forgotten when he was a puppy) was
8170 similarly engaged with a man with weak eyes, whom Mr. Wemmick presented
8171 to me as a smelter who kept his pot always boiling, and who would melt
8172 me anything I pleased,--and who was in an excessive white-perspiration,
8173 as if he had been trying his art on himself. In a back room, a
8174 high-shouldered man with a face-ache tied up in dirty flannel, who was
8175 dressed in old black clothes that bore the appearance of having been
8176 waxed, was stooping over his work of making fair copies of the notes of
8177 the other two gentlemen, for Mr. Jaggers’s own use.
8178
8179 This was all the establishment. When we went downstairs again, Wemmick
8180 led me into my guardian’s room, and said, “This you’ve seen already.”
8181
8182 “Pray,” said I, as the two odious casts with the twitchy leer upon them
8183 caught my sight again, “whose likenesses are those?”
8184
8185 “These?” said Wemmick, getting upon a chair, and blowing the dust off
8186 the horrible heads before bringing them down. “These are two celebrated
8187 ones. Famous clients of ours that got us a world of credit. This chap
8188 (why you must have come down in the night and been peeping into the
8189 inkstand, to get this blot upon your eyebrow, you old rascal!) murdered
8190 his master, and, considering that he wasn’t brought up to evidence,
8191 didn’t plan it badly.”
8192
8193 “Is it like him?” I asked, recoiling from the brute, as Wemmick spat
8194 upon his eyebrow and gave it a rub with his sleeve.
8195
8196 “Like him? It’s himself, you know. The cast was made in Newgate,
8197 directly after he was taken down. You had a particular fancy for
8198 me, hadn’t you, Old Artful?” said Wemmick. He then explained this
8199 affectionate apostrophe, by touching his brooch representing the lady
8200 and the weeping willow at the tomb with the urn upon it, and saying,
8201 “Had it made for me, express!”
8202
8203 “Is the lady anybody?” said I.
8204
8205 “No,” returned Wemmick. “Only his game. (You liked your bit of game,
8206 didn’t you?) No; deuce a bit of a lady in the case, Mr. Pip, except
8207 one,--and she wasn’t of this slender lady-like sort, and you wouldn’t
8208 have caught her looking after this urn, unless there was something to
8209 drink in it.” Wemmick’s attention being thus directed to his brooch, he
8210 put down the cast, and polished the brooch with his pocket-handkerchief.
8211
8212 “Did that other creature come to the same end?” I asked. “He has the
8213 same look.”
8214
8215 “You’re right,” said Wemmick; “it’s the genuine look. Much as if one
8216 nostril was caught up with a horse-hair and a little fish-hook. Yes,
8217 he came to the same end; quite the natural end here, I assure you.
8218 He forged wills, this blade did, if he didn’t also put the supposed
8219 testators to sleep too. You were a gentlemanly Cove, though” (Mr.
8220 Wemmick was again apostrophizing), “and you said you could write Greek.
8221 Yah, Bounceable! What a liar you were! I never met such a liar as you!”
8222 Before putting his late friend on his shelf again, Wemmick touched the
8223 largest of his mourning rings and said, “Sent out to buy it for me, only
8224 the day before.”
8225
8226 While he was putting up the other cast and coming down from the chair,
8227 the thought crossed my mind that all his personal jewelry was derived
8228 from like sources. As he had shown no diffidence on the subject, I
8229 ventured on the liberty of asking him the question, when he stood before
8230 me, dusting his hands.
8231
8232 “O yes,” he returned, “these are all gifts of that kind. One brings
8233 another, you see; that’s the way of it. I always take ‘em. They’re
8234 curiosities. And they’re property. They may not be worth much, but,
8235 after all, they’re property and portable. It don’t signify to you with
8236 your brilliant lookout, but as to myself, my guiding-star always is,
8237 ‘Get hold of portable property’.”
8238
8239 When I had rendered homage to this light, he went on to say, in a
8240 friendly manner:--
8241
8242 “If at any odd time when you have nothing better to do, you wouldn’t
8243 mind coming over to see me at Walworth, I could offer you a bed, and I
8244 should consider it an honor. I have not much to show you; but such two
8245 or three curiosities as I have got you might like to look over; and I am
8246 fond of a bit of garden and a summer-house.”
8247
8248 I said I should be delighted to accept his hospitality.
8249
8250 “Thankee,” said he; “then we’ll consider that it’s to come off, when
8251 convenient to you. Have you dined with Mr. Jaggers yet?”
8252
8253 “Not yet.”
8254
8255 “Well,” said Wemmick, “he’ll give you wine, and good wine. I’ll give you
8256 punch, and not bad punch. And now I’ll tell you something. When you go
8257 to dine with Mr. Jaggers, look at his housekeeper.”
8258
8259 “Shall I see something very uncommon?”
8260
8261 “Well,” said Wemmick, “you’ll see a wild beast tamed. Not so very
8262 uncommon, you’ll tell me. I reply, that depends on the original wildness
8263 of the beast, and the amount of taming. It won’t lower your opinion of
8264 Mr. Jaggers’s powers. Keep your eye on it.”
8265
8266 I told him I would do so, with all the interest and curiosity that his
8267 preparation awakened. As I was taking my departure, he asked me if I
8268 would like to devote five minutes to seeing Mr. Jaggers “at it?”
8269
8270 For several reasons, and not least because I didn’t clearly know what
8271 Mr. Jaggers would be found to be “at,” I replied in the affirmative.
8272 We dived into the City, and came up in a crowded police-court, where
8273 a blood-relation (in the murderous sense) of the deceased, with the
8274 fanciful taste in brooches, was standing at the bar, uncomfortably
8275 chewing something; while my guardian had a woman under examination or
8276 cross-examination,--I don’t know which,--and was striking her, and
8277 the bench, and everybody present, with awe. If anybody, of whatsoever
8278 degree, said a word that he didn’t approve of, he instantly required to
8279 have it “taken down.” If anybody wouldn’t make an admission, he said,
8280 “I’ll have it out of you!” and if anybody made an admission, he said,
8281 “Now I have got you!” The magistrates shivered under a single bite of
8282 his finger. Thieves and thief-takers hung in dread rapture on his words,
8283 and shrank when a hair of his eyebrows turned in their direction. Which
8284 side he was on I couldn’t make out, for he seemed to me to be grinding
8285 the whole place in a mill; I only know that when I stole out on tiptoe,
8286 he was not on the side of the bench; for, he was making the legs of the
8287 old gentleman who presided, quite convulsive under the table, by his
8288 denunciations of his conduct as the representative of British law and
8289 justice in that chair that day.
8290
8291
8292
8293
8294 Chapter XXV
8295
8296 Bentley Drummle, who was so sulky a fellow that he even took up a book
8297 as if its writer had done him an injury, did not take up an
8298 acquaintance in a more agreeable spirit. Heavy in figure, movement,
8299 and comprehension,--in the sluggish complexion of his face, and in
8300 the large, awkward tongue that seemed to loll about in his mouth as
8301 he himself lolled about in a room,--he was idle, proud, niggardly,
8302 reserved, and suspicious. He came of rich people down in Somersetshire,
8303 who had nursed this combination of qualities until they made the
8304 discovery that it was just of age and a blockhead. Thus, Bentley Drummle
8305 had come to Mr. Pocket when he was a head taller than that gentleman,
8306 and half a dozen heads thicker than most gentlemen.
8307
8308 Startop had been spoilt by a weak mother and kept at home when he
8309 ought to have been at school, but he was devotedly attached to her, and
8310 admired her beyond measure. He had a woman’s delicacy of feature,
8311 and was--“as you may see, though you never saw her,” said Herbert to
8312 me--“exactly like his mother.” It was but natural that I should take to
8313 him much more kindly than to Drummle, and that, even in the earliest
8314 evenings of our boating, he and I should pull homeward abreast of one
8315 another, conversing from boat to boat, while Bentley Drummle came up
8316 in our wake alone, under the overhanging banks and among the rushes. He
8317 would always creep in-shore like some uncomfortable amphibious creature,
8318 even when the tide would have sent him fast upon his way; and I always
8319 think of him as coming after us in the dark or by the back-water,
8320 when our own two boats were breaking the sunset or the moonlight in
8321 mid-stream.
8322
8323 Herbert was my intimate companion and friend. I presented him with a
8324 half-share in my boat, which was the occasion of his often coming down
8325 to Hammersmith; and my possession of a half-share in his chambers often
8326 took me up to London. We used to walk between the two places at all
8327 hours. I have an affection for the road yet (though it is not so
8328 pleasant a road as it was then), formed in the impressibility of untried
8329 youth and hope.
8330
8331 When I had been in Mr. Pocket’s family a month or two, Mr. and Mrs.
8332 Camilla turned up. Camilla was Mr. Pocket’s sister. Georgiana, whom I
8333 had seen at Miss Havisham’s on the same occasion, also turned up. She
8334 was a cousin,--an indigestive single woman, who called her rigidity
8335 religion, and her liver love. These people hated me with the hatred of
8336 cupidity and disappointment. As a matter of course, they fawned upon
8337 me in my prosperity with the basest meanness. Towards Mr. Pocket, as
8338 a grown-up infant with no notion of his own interests, they showed the
8339 complacent forbearance I had heard them express. Mrs. Pocket they
8340 held in contempt; but they allowed the poor soul to have been heavily
8341 disappointed in life, because that shed a feeble reflected light upon
8342 themselves.
8343
8344 These were the surroundings among which I settled down, and applied
8345 myself to my education. I soon contracted expensive habits, and began
8346 to spend an amount of money that within a few short months I should have
8347 thought almost fabulous; but through good and evil I stuck to my books.
8348 There was no other merit in this, than my having sense enough to feel
8349 my deficiencies. Between Mr. Pocket and Herbert I got on fast; and, with
8350 one or the other always at my elbow to give me the start I wanted, and
8351 clear obstructions out of my road, I must have been as great a dolt as
8352 Drummle if I had done less.
8353
8354 I had not seen Mr. Wemmick for some weeks, when I thought I would write
8355 him a note and propose to go home with him on a certain evening. He
8356 replied that it would give him much pleasure, and that he would expect
8357 me at the office at six o’clock. Thither I went, and there I found him,
8358 putting the key of his safe down his back as the clock struck.
8359
8360 “Did you think of walking down to Walworth?” said he.
8361
8362 “Certainly,” said I, “if you approve.”
8363
8364 “Very much,” was Wemmick’s reply, “for I have had my legs under the desk
8365 all day, and shall be glad to stretch them. Now, I’ll tell you what I
8366 have got for supper, Mr. Pip. I have got a stewed steak,--which is
8367 of home preparation,--and a cold roast fowl,--which is from the
8368 cook’s-shop. I think it’s tender, because the master of the shop was a
8369 Juryman in some cases of ours the other day, and we let him down easy.
8370 I reminded him of it when I bought the fowl, and I said, “Pick us out
8371 a good one, old Briton, because if we had chosen to keep you in the box
8372 another day or two, we could easily have done it.” He said to that,
8373 “Let me make you a present of the best fowl in the shop.” I let him, of
8374 course. As far as it goes, it’s property and portable. You don’t object
8375 to an aged parent, I hope?”
8376
8377 I really thought he was still speaking of the fowl, until he added,
8378 “Because I have got an aged parent at my place.” I then said what
8379 politeness required.
8380
8381 “So, you haven’t dined with Mr. Jaggers yet?” he pursued, as we walked
8382 along.
8383
8384 “Not yet.”
8385
8386 “He told me so this afternoon when he heard you were coming. I expect
8387 you’ll have an invitation to-morrow. He’s going to ask your pals, too.
8388 Three of ‘em; ain’t there?”
8389
8390 Although I was not in the habit of counting Drummle as one of my
8391 intimate associates, I answered, “Yes.”
8392
8393 “Well, he’s going to ask the whole gang,”--I hardly felt complimented by
8394 the word,--“and whatever he gives you, he’ll give you good. Don’t look
8395 forward to variety, but you’ll have excellence. And there’s another rum
8396 thing in his house,” proceeded Wemmick, after a moment’s pause, as if
8397 the remark followed on the housekeeper understood; “he never lets a door
8398 or window be fastened at night.”
8399
8400 “Is he never robbed?”
8401
8402 “That’s it!” returned Wemmick. “He says, and gives it out publicly, “I
8403 want to see the man who’ll rob me.” Lord bless you, I have heard him, a
8404 hundred times, if I have heard him once, say to regular cracksmen in our
8405 front office, “You know where I live; now, no bolt is ever drawn there;
8406 why don’t you do a stroke of business with me? Come; can’t I tempt you?”
8407 Not a man of them, sir, would be bold enough to try it on, for love or
8408 money.”
8409
8410 “They dread him so much?” said I.
8411
8412 “Dread him,” said Wemmick. “I believe you they dread him. Not but what
8413 he’s artful, even in his defiance of them. No silver, sir. Britannia
8414 metal, every spoon.”
8415
8416 “So they wouldn’t have much,” I observed, “even if they--”
8417
8418 “Ah! But he would have much,” said Wemmick, cutting me short, “and they
8419 know it. He’d have their lives, and the lives of scores of ‘em. He’d
8420 have all he could get. And it’s impossible to say what he couldn’t get,
8421 if he gave his mind to it.”
8422
8423 I was falling into meditation on my guardian’s greatness, when Wemmick
8424 remarked:--
8425
8426 “As to the absence of plate, that’s only his natural depth, you know.
8427 A river’s its natural depth, and he’s his natural depth. Look at his
8428 watch-chain. That’s real enough.”
8429
8430 “It’s very massive,” said I.
8431
8432 “Massive?” repeated Wemmick. “I think so. And his watch is a gold
8433 repeater, and worth a hundred pound if it’s worth a penny. Mr. Pip,
8434 there are about seven hundred thieves in this town who know all about
8435 that watch; there’s not a man, a woman, or a child, among them, who
8436 wouldn’t identify the smallest link in that chain, and drop it as if it
8437 was red hot, if inveigled into touching it.”
8438
8439 At first with such discourse, and afterwards with conversation of a more
8440 general nature, did Mr. Wemmick and I beguile the time and the road,
8441 until he gave me to understand that we had arrived in the district of
8442 Walworth.
8443
8444 It appeared to be a collection of back lanes, ditches, and little
8445 gardens, and to present the aspect of a rather dull retirement.
8446 Wemmick’s house was a little wooden cottage in the midst of plots of
8447 garden, and the top of it was cut out and painted like a battery mounted
8448 with guns.
8449
8450 “My own doing,” said Wemmick. “Looks pretty; don’t it?”
8451
8452 I highly commended it, I think it was the smallest house I ever saw;
8453 with the queerest gothic windows (by far the greater part of them sham),
8454 and a gothic door almost too small to get in at.
8455
8456 “That’s a real flagstaff, you see,” said Wemmick, “and on Sundays I
8457 run up a real flag. Then look here. After I have crossed this bridge, I
8458 hoist it up--so--and cut off the communication.”
8459
8460 The bridge was a plank, and it crossed a chasm about four feet wide
8461 and two deep. But it was very pleasant to see the pride with which he
8462 hoisted it up and made it fast; smiling as he did so, with a relish and
8463 not merely mechanically.
8464
8465 “At nine o’clock every night, Greenwich time,” said Wemmick, “the gun
8466 fires. There he is, you see! And when you hear him go, I think you’ll
8467 say he’s a Stinger.”
8468
8469 The piece of ordnance referred to, was mounted in a separate fortress,
8470 constructed of lattice-work. It was protected from the weather by an
8471 ingenious little tarpaulin contrivance in the nature of an umbrella.
8472
8473 “Then, at the back,” said Wemmick, “out of sight, so as not to impede
8474 the idea of fortifications,--for it’s a principle with me, if you have
8475 an idea, carry it out and keep it up,--I don’t know whether that’s your
8476 opinion--”
8477
8478 I said, decidedly.
8479
8480 “--At the back, there’s a pig, and there are fowls and rabbits; then,
8481 I knock together my own little frame, you see, and grow cucumbers; and
8482 you’ll judge at supper what sort of a salad I can raise. So, sir,” said
8483 Wemmick, smiling again, but seriously too, as he shook his head, “if you
8484 can suppose the little place besieged, it would hold out a devil of a
8485 time in point of provisions.”
8486
8487 Then, he conducted me to a bower about a dozen yards off, but which was
8488 approached by such ingenious twists of path that it took quite a long
8489 time to get at; and in this retreat our glasses were already set forth.
8490 Our punch was cooling in an ornamental lake, on whose margin the bower
8491 was raised. This piece of water (with an island in the middle which
8492 might have been the salad for supper) was of a circular form, and he had
8493 constructed a fountain in it, which, when you set a little mill going
8494 and took a cork out of a pipe, played to that powerful extent that it
8495 made the back of your hand quite wet.
8496
8497 “I am my own engineer, and my own carpenter, and my own plumber, and
8498 my own gardener, and my own Jack of all Trades,” said Wemmick, in
8499 acknowledging my compliments. “Well; it’s a good thing, you know. It
8500 brushes the Newgate cobwebs away, and pleases the Aged. You wouldn’t
8501 mind being at once introduced to the Aged, would you? It wouldn’t put
8502 you out?”
8503
8504 I expressed the readiness I felt, and we went into the castle. There
8505 we found, sitting by a fire, a very old man in a flannel coat: clean,
8506 cheerful, comfortable, and well cared for, but intensely deaf.
8507
8508 “Well aged parent,” said Wemmick, shaking hands with him in a cordial
8509 and jocose way, “how am you?”
8510
8511 “All right, John; all right!” replied the old man.
8512
8513 “Here’s Mr. Pip, aged parent,” said Wemmick, “and I wish you could hear
8514 his name. Nod away at him, Mr. Pip; that’s what he likes. Nod away at
8515 him, if you please, like winking!”
8516
8517 “This is a fine place of my son’s, sir,” cried the old man, while I
8518 nodded as hard as I possibly could. “This is a pretty pleasure-ground,
8519 sir. This spot and these beautiful works upon it ought to be kept
8520 together by the Nation, after my son’s time, for the people’s
8521 enjoyment.”
8522
8523 “You’re as proud of it as Punch; ain’t you, Aged?” said Wemmick,
8524 contemplating the old man, with his hard face really softened; “there’s
8525 a nod for you;” giving him a tremendous one; “there’s another for you;”
8526 giving him a still more tremendous one; “you like that, don’t you? If
8527 you’re not tired, Mr. Pip--though I know it’s tiring to strangers--will
8528 you tip him one more? You can’t think how it pleases him.”
8529
8530 I tipped him several more, and he was in great spirits. We left him
8531 bestirring himself to feed the fowls, and we sat down to our punch in
8532 the arbor; where Wemmick told me, as he smoked a pipe, that it had taken
8533 him a good many years to bring the property up to its present pitch of
8534 perfection.
8535
8536 “Is it your own, Mr. Wemmick?”
8537
8538 “O yes,” said Wemmick, “I have got hold of it, a bit at a time. It’s a
8539 freehold, by George!”
8540
8541 “Is it indeed? I hope Mr. Jaggers admires it?”
8542
8543 “Never seen it,” said Wemmick. “Never heard of it. Never seen the Aged.
8544 Never heard of him. No; the office is one thing, and private life is
8545 another. When I go into the office, I leave the Castle behind me, and
8546 when I come into the Castle, I leave the office behind me. If it’s not
8547 in any way disagreeable to you, you’ll oblige me by doing the same. I
8548 don’t wish it professionally spoken about.”
8549
8550 Of course I felt my good faith involved in the observance of his
8551 request. The punch being very nice, we sat there drinking it and
8552 talking, until it was almost nine o’clock. “Getting near gun-fire,” said
8553 Wemmick then, as he laid down his pipe; “it’s the Aged’s treat.”
8554
8555 Proceeding into the Castle again, we found the Aged heating the poker,
8556 with expectant eyes, as a preliminary to the performance of this great
8557 nightly ceremony. Wemmick stood with his watch in his hand until the
8558 moment was come for him to take the red-hot poker from the Aged, and
8559 repair to the battery. He took it, and went out, and presently the
8560 Stinger went off with a Bang that shook the crazy little box of a
8561 cottage as if it must fall to pieces, and made every glass and teacup in
8562 it ring. Upon this, the Aged--who I believe would have been blown out
8563 of his arm-chair but for holding on by the elbows--cried out exultingly,
8564 “He’s fired! I heerd him!” and I nodded at the old gentleman until it is
8565 no figure of speech to declare that I absolutely could not see him.
8566
8567 The interval between that time and supper Wemmick devoted to showing
8568 me his collection of curiosities. They were mostly of a felonious
8569 character; comprising the pen with which a celebrated forgery had been
8570 committed, a distinguished razor or two, some locks of hair, and several
8571 manuscript confessions written under condemnation,--upon which Mr.
8572 Wemmick set particular value as being, to use his own words, “every one
8573 of ‘em Lies, sir.” These were agreeably dispersed among small specimens
8574 of china and glass, various neat trifles made by the proprietor of the
8575 museum, and some tobacco-stoppers carved by the Aged. They were all
8576 displayed in that chamber of the Castle into which I had been first
8577 inducted, and which served, not only as the general sitting-room but
8578 as the kitchen too, if I might judge from a saucepan on the hob, and
8579 a brazen bijou over the fireplace designed for the suspension of a
8580 roasting-jack.
8581
8582 There was a neat little girl in attendance, who looked after the Aged in
8583 the day. When she had laid the supper-cloth, the bridge was lowered to
8584 give her means of egress, and she withdrew for the night. The supper was
8585 excellent; and though the Castle was rather subject to dry-rot insomuch
8586 that it tasted like a bad nut, and though the pig might have been
8587 farther off, I was heartily pleased with my whole entertainment. Nor was
8588 there any drawback on my little turret bedroom, beyond there being such
8589 a very thin ceiling between me and the flagstaff, that when I lay down
8590 on my back in bed, it seemed as if I had to balance that pole on my
8591 forehead all night.
8592
8593 Wemmick was up early in the morning, and I am afraid I heard him
8594 cleaning my boots. After that, he fell to gardening, and I saw him from
8595 my gothic window pretending to employ the Aged, and nodding at him in
8596 a most devoted manner. Our breakfast was as good as the supper, and at
8597 half-past eight precisely we started for Little Britain. By degrees,
8598 Wemmick got dryer and harder as we went along, and his mouth tightened
8599 into a post-office again. At last, when we got to his place of business
8600 and he pulled out his key from his coat-collar, he looked as unconscious
8601 of his Walworth property as if the Castle and the drawbridge and the
8602 arbor and the lake and the fountain and the Aged, had all been blown
8603 into space together by the last discharge of the Stinger.
8604
8605
8606
8607
8608 Chapter XXVI
8609
8610 It fell out as Wemmick had told me it would, that I had an early
8611 opportunity of comparing my guardian’s establishment with that of his
8612 cashier and clerk. My guardian was in his room, washing his hands with
8613 his scented soap, when I went into the office from Walworth; and he
8614 called me to him, and gave me the invitation for myself and friends
8615 which Wemmick had prepared me to receive. “No ceremony,” he stipulated,
8616 “and no dinner dress, and say to-morrow.” I asked him where we should
8617 come to (for I had no idea where he lived), and I believe it was in his
8618 general objection to make anything like an admission, that he replied,
8619 “Come here, and I’ll take you home with me.” I embrace this opportunity
8620 of remarking that he washed his clients off, as if he were a surgeon or
8621 a dentist. He had a closet in his room, fitted up for the purpose, which
8622 smelt of the scented soap like a perfumer’s shop. It had an unusually
8623 large jack-towel on a roller inside the door, and he would wash his
8624 hands, and wipe them and dry them all over this towel, whenever he came
8625 in from a police court or dismissed a client from his room. When I and
8626 my friends repaired to him at six o’clock next day, he seemed to have
8627 been engaged on a case of a darker complexion than usual, for we found
8628 him with his head butted into this closet, not only washing his hands,
8629 but laving his face and gargling his throat. And even when he had
8630 done all that, and had gone all round the jack-towel, he took out his
8631 penknife and scraped the case out of his nails before he put his coat
8632 on.
8633
8634 There were some people slinking about as usual when we passed out into
8635 the street, who were evidently anxious to speak with him; but there was
8636 something so conclusive in the halo of scented soap which encircled
8637 his presence, that they gave it up for that day. As we walked along
8638 westward, he was recognized ever and again by some face in the crowd of
8639 the streets, and whenever that happened he talked louder to me; but
8640 he never otherwise recognized anybody, or took notice that anybody
8641 recognized him.
8642
8643 He conducted us to Gerrard Street, Soho, to a house on the south side of
8644 that street. Rather a stately house of its kind, but dolefully in want
8645 of painting, and with dirty windows. He took out his key and opened the
8646 door, and we all went into a stone hall, bare, gloomy, and little used.
8647 So, up a dark brown staircase into a series of three dark brown rooms on
8648 the first floor. There were carved garlands on the panelled walls, and
8649 as he stood among them giving us welcome, I know what kind of loops I
8650 thought they looked like.
8651
8652 Dinner was laid in the best of these rooms; the second was his
8653 dressing-room; the third, his bedroom. He told us that he held the whole
8654 house, but rarely used more of it than we saw. The table was comfortably
8655 laid--no silver in the service, of course--and at the side of his chair
8656 was a capacious dumb-waiter, with a variety of bottles and decanters on
8657 it, and four dishes of fruit for dessert. I noticed throughout, that he
8658 kept everything under his own hand, and distributed everything himself.
8659
8660 There was a bookcase in the room; I saw from the backs of the books,
8661 that they were about evidence, criminal law, criminal biography, trials,
8662 acts of Parliament, and such things. The furniture was all very solid
8663 and good, like his watch-chain. It had an official look, however, and
8664 there was nothing merely ornamental to be seen. In a corner was a little
8665 table of papers with a shaded lamp: so that he seemed to bring the
8666 office home with him in that respect too, and to wheel it out of an
8667 evening and fall to work.
8668
8669 As he had scarcely seen my three companions until now,--for he and I had
8670 walked together,--he stood on the hearth-rug, after ringing the bell,
8671 and took a searching look at them. To my surprise, he seemed at once to
8672 be principally if not solely interested in Drummle.
8673
8674 “Pip,” said he, putting his large hand on my shoulder and moving me to
8675 the window, “I don’t know one from the other. Who’s the Spider?”
8676
8677 “The spider?” said I.
8678
8679 “The blotchy, sprawly, sulky fellow.”
8680
8681 “That’s Bentley Drummle,” I replied; “the one with the delicate face is
8682 Startop.”
8683
8684 Not making the least account of “the one with the delicate face,” he
8685 returned, “Bentley Drummle is his name, is it? I like the look of that
8686 fellow.”
8687
8688 He immediately began to talk to Drummle: not at all deterred by his
8689 replying in his heavy reticent way, but apparently led on by it to screw
8690 discourse out of him. I was looking at the two, when there came between
8691 me and them the housekeeper, with the first dish for the table.
8692
8693 She was a woman of about forty, I supposed,--but I may have thought her
8694 younger than she was. Rather tall, of a lithe nimble figure, extremely
8695 pale, with large faded eyes, and a quantity of streaming hair. I cannot
8696 say whether any diseased affection of the heart caused her lips to be
8697 parted as if she were panting, and her face to bear a curious expression
8698 of suddenness and flutter; but I know that I had been to see Macbeth at
8699 the theatre, a night or two before, and that her face looked to me as if
8700 it were all disturbed by fiery air, like the faces I had seen rise out
8701 of the Witches’ caldron.
8702
8703 She set the dish on, touched my guardian quietly on the arm with a
8704 finger to notify that dinner was ready, and vanished. We took our seats
8705 at the round table, and my guardian kept Drummle on one side of him,
8706 while Startop sat on the other. It was a noble dish of fish that the
8707 housekeeper had put on table, and we had a joint of equally choice
8708 mutton afterwards, and then an equally choice bird. Sauces, wines, all
8709 the accessories we wanted, and all of the best, were given out by our
8710 host from his dumb-waiter; and when they had made the circuit of the
8711 table, he always put them back again. Similarly, he dealt us clean
8712 plates and knives and forks, for each course, and dropped those just
8713 disused into two baskets on the ground by his chair. No other attendant
8714 than the housekeeper appeared. She set on every dish; and I always saw
8715 in her face, a face rising out of the caldron. Years afterwards, I made
8716 a dreadful likeness of that woman, by causing a face that had no other
8717 natural resemblance to it than it derived from flowing hair to pass
8718 behind a bowl of flaming spirits in a dark room.
8719
8720 Induced to take particular notice of the housekeeper, both by her
8721 own striking appearance and by Wemmick’s preparation, I observed
8722 that whenever she was in the room she kept her eyes attentively on my
8723 guardian, and that she would remove her hands from any dish she put
8724 before him, hesitatingly, as if she dreaded his calling her back, and
8725 wanted him to speak when she was nigh, if he had anything to say. I
8726 fancied that I could detect in his manner a consciousness of this, and a
8727 purpose of always holding her in suspense.
8728
8729 Dinner went off gayly, and although my guardian seemed to follow rather
8730 than originate subjects, I knew that he wrenched the weakest part of
8731 our dispositions out of us. For myself, I found that I was expressing my
8732 tendency to lavish expenditure, and to patronize Herbert, and to boast
8733 of my great prospects, before I quite knew that I had opened my lips.
8734 It was so with all of us, but with no one more than Drummle: the
8735 development of whose inclination to gird in a grudging and suspicious
8736 way at the rest, was screwed out of him before the fish was taken off.
8737
8738 It was not then, but when we had got to the cheese, that our
8739 conversation turned upon our rowing feats, and that Drummle was rallied
8740 for coming up behind of a night in that slow amphibious way of his.
8741 Drummle upon this, informed our host that he much preferred our room to
8742 our company, and that as to skill he was more than our master, and that
8743 as to strength he could scatter us like chaff. By some invisible agency,
8744 my guardian wound him up to a pitch little short of ferocity about this
8745 trifle; and he fell to baring and spanning his arm to show how muscular
8746 it was, and we all fell to baring and spanning our arms in a ridiculous
8747 manner.
8748
8749 Now the housekeeper was at that time clearing the table; my guardian,
8750 taking no heed of her, but with the side of his face turned from her,
8751 was leaning back in his chair biting the side of his forefinger and
8752 showing an interest in Drummle, that, to me, was quite inexplicable.
8753 Suddenly, he clapped his large hand on the housekeeper’s, like a trap,
8754 as she stretched it across the table. So suddenly and smartly did he do
8755 this, that we all stopped in our foolish contention.
8756
8757 “If you talk of strength,” said Mr. Jaggers, “I’ll show you a wrist.
8758 Molly, let them see your wrist.”
8759
8760 Her entrapped hand was on the table, but she had already put her other
8761 hand behind her waist. “Master,” she said, in a low voice, with her eyes
8762 attentively and entreatingly fixed upon him. “Don’t.”
8763
8764 “I’ll show you a wrist,” repeated Mr. Jaggers, with an immovable
8765 determination to show it. “Molly, let them see your wrist.”
8766
8767 “Master,” she again murmured. “Please!”
8768
8769 “Molly,” said Mr. Jaggers, not looking at her, but obstinately looking
8770 at the opposite side of the room, “let them see both your wrists. Show
8771 them. Come!”
8772
8773 He took his hand from hers, and turned that wrist up on the table. She
8774 brought her other hand from behind her, and held the two out side by
8775 side. The last wrist was much disfigured,--deeply scarred and scarred
8776 across and across. When she held her hands out she took her eyes from
8777 Mr. Jaggers, and turned them watchfully on every one of the rest of us
8778 in succession.
8779
8780 “There’s power here,” said Mr. Jaggers, coolly tracing out the sinews
8781 with his forefinger. “Very few men have the power of wrist that this
8782 woman has. It’s remarkable what mere force of grip there is in these
8783 hands. I have had occasion to notice many hands; but I never saw
8784 stronger in that respect, man’s or woman’s, than these.”
8785
8786 While he said these words in a leisurely, critical style, she continued
8787 to look at every one of us in regular succession as we sat. The moment
8788 he ceased, she looked at him again. “That’ll do, Molly,” said Mr.
8789 Jaggers, giving her a slight nod; “you have been admired, and can
8790 go.” She withdrew her hands and went out of the room, and Mr. Jaggers,
8791 putting the decanters on from his dumb-waiter, filled his glass and
8792 passed round the wine.
8793
8794 “At half-past nine, gentlemen,” said he, “we must break up. Pray make
8795 the best use of your time. I am glad to see you all. Mr. Drummle, I
8796 drink to you.”
8797
8798 If his object in singling out Drummle were to bring him out still more,
8799 it perfectly succeeded. In a sulky triumph, Drummle showed his morose
8800 depreciation of the rest of us, in a more and more offensive degree,
8801 until he became downright intolerable. Through all his stages, Mr.
8802 Jaggers followed him with the same strange interest. He actually seemed
8803 to serve as a zest to Mr. Jaggers’s wine.
8804
8805 In our boyish want of discretion I dare say we took too much to drink,
8806 and I know we talked too much. We became particularly hot upon some
8807 boorish sneer of Drummle’s, to the effect that we were too free with our
8808 money. It led to my remarking, with more zeal than discretion, that it
8809 came with a bad grace from him, to whom Startop had lent money in my
8810 presence but a week or so before.
8811
8812 “Well,” retorted Drummle; “he’ll be paid.”
8813
8814 “I don’t mean to imply that he won’t,” said I, “but it might make you
8815 hold your tongue about us and our money, I should think.”
8816
8817 “You should think!” retorted Drummle. “Oh Lord!”
8818
8819 “I dare say,” I went on, meaning to be very severe, “that you wouldn’t
8820 lend money to any of us if we wanted it.”
8821
8822 “You are right,” said Drummle. “I wouldn’t lend one of you a sixpence. I
8823 wouldn’t lend anybody a sixpence.”
8824
8825 “Rather mean to borrow under those circumstances, I should say.”
8826
8827 “You should say,” repeated Drummle. “Oh Lord!”
8828
8829 This was so very aggravating--the more especially as I found myself
8830 making no way against his surly obtuseness--that I said, disregarding
8831 Herbert’s efforts to check me,--
8832
8833 “Come, Mr. Drummle, since we are on the subject, I’ll tell you what
8834 passed between Herbert here and me, when you borrowed that money.”
8835
8836 “I don’t want to know what passed between Herbert there and you,”
8837 growled Drummle. And I think he added in a lower growl, that we might
8838 both go to the devil and shake ourselves.
8839
8840 “I’ll tell you, however,” said I, “whether you want to know or not. We
8841 said that as you put it in your pocket very glad to get it, you seemed
8842 to be immensely amused at his being so weak as to lend it.”
8843
8844 Drummle laughed outright, and sat laughing in our faces, with his hands
8845 in his pockets and his round shoulders raised; plainly signifying that
8846 it was quite true, and that he despised us as asses all.
8847
8848 Hereupon Startop took him in hand, though with a much better grace than
8849 I had shown, and exhorted him to be a little more agreeable. Startop,
8850 being a lively, bright young fellow, and Drummle being the exact
8851 opposite, the latter was always disposed to resent him as a direct
8852 personal affront. He now retorted in a coarse, lumpish way, and Startop
8853 tried to turn the discussion aside with some small pleasantry that made
8854 us all laugh. Resenting this little success more than anything, Drummle,
8855 without any threat or warning, pulled his hands out of his pockets,
8856 dropped his round shoulders, swore, took up a large glass, and would
8857 have flung it at his adversary’s head, but for our entertainer’s
8858 dexterously seizing it at the instant when it was raised for that
8859 purpose.
8860
8861 “Gentlemen,” said Mr. Jaggers, deliberately putting down the glass, and
8862 hauling out his gold repeater by its massive chain, “I am exceedingly
8863 sorry to announce that it’s half past nine.”
8864
8865 On this hint we all rose to depart. Before we got to the street door,
8866 Startop was cheerily calling Drummle “old boy,” as if nothing had
8867 happened. But the old boy was so far from responding, that he would not
8868 even walk to Hammersmith on the same side of the way; so Herbert and I,
8869 who remained in town, saw them going down the street on opposite sides;
8870 Startop leading, and Drummle lagging behind in the shadow of the houses,
8871 much as he was wont to follow in his boat.
8872
8873 As the door was not yet shut, I thought I would leave Herbert there for
8874 a moment, and run upstairs again to say a word to my guardian. I found
8875 him in his dressing-room surrounded by his stock of boots, already hard
8876 at it, washing his hands of us.
8877
8878 I told him I had come up again to say how sorry I was that anything
8879 disagreeable should have occurred, and that I hoped he would not blame
8880 me much.
8881
8882 “Pooh!” said he, sluicing his face, and speaking through the
8883 water-drops; “it’s nothing, Pip. I like that Spider though.”
8884
8885 He had turned towards me now, and was shaking his head, and blowing, and
8886 towelling himself.
8887
8888 “I am glad you like him, sir,” said I--“but I don’t.”
8889
8890 “No, no,” my guardian assented; “don’t have too much to do with him.
8891 Keep as clear of him as you can. But I like the fellow, Pip; he is one
8892 of the true sort. Why, if I was a fortune-teller--”
8893
8894 Looking out of the towel, he caught my eye.
8895
8896 “But I am not a fortune-teller,” he said, letting his head drop into a
8897 festoon of towel, and towelling away at his two ears. “You know what I
8898 am, don’t you? Good night, Pip.”
8899
8900 “Good night, sir.”
8901
8902 In about a month after that, the Spider’s time with Mr. Pocket was up
8903 for good, and, to the great relief of all the house but Mrs. Pocket, he
8904 went home to the family hole.
8905
8906
8907
8908
8909 Chapter XXVII
8910
8911
8912 “MY DEAR MR PIP:--
8913
8914 “I write this by request of Mr. Gargery, for to let you know that he
8915 is going to London in company with Mr. Wopsle and would be glad if
8916 agreeable to be allowed to see you. He would call at Barnard’s Hotel
8917 Tuesday morning at nine o’clock, when if not agreeable please leave
8918 word. Your poor sister is much the same as when you left. We talk of you
8919 in the kitchen every night, and wonder what you are saying and doing. If
8920 now considered in the light of a liberty, excuse it for the love of
8921 poor old days. No more, dear Mr. Pip, from your ever obliged, and
8922 affectionate servant,
8923
8924 “BIDDY.”
8925
8926 “P.S. He wishes me most particular to write what larks. He says you will
8927 understand. I hope and do not doubt it will be agreeable to see him,
8928 even though a gentleman, for you had ever a good heart, and he is a
8929 worthy, worthy man. I have read him all, excepting only the last little
8930 sentence, and he wishes me most particular to write again what larks.”
8931
8932 I received this letter by the post on Monday morning, and therefore its
8933 appointment was for next day. Let me confess exactly with what feelings
8934 I looked forward to Joe’s coming.
8935
8936 Not with pleasure, though I was bound to him by so many ties; no;
8937 with considerable disturbance, some mortification, and a keen sense of
8938 incongruity. If I could have kept him away by paying money, I certainly
8939 would have paid money. My greatest reassurance was that he was coming
8940 to Barnard’s Inn, not to Hammersmith, and consequently would not fall
8941 in Bentley Drummle’s way. I had little objection to his being seen by
8942 Herbert or his father, for both of whom I had a respect; but I had the
8943 sharpest sensitiveness as to his being seen by Drummle, whom I held in
8944 contempt. So, throughout life, our worst weaknesses and meannesses are
8945 usually committed for the sake of the people whom we most despise.
8946
8947 I had begun to be always decorating the chambers in some quite
8948 unnecessary and inappropriate way or other, and very expensive those
8949 wrestles with Barnard proved to be. By this time, the rooms were
8950 vastly different from what I had found them, and I enjoyed the honor
8951 of occupying a few prominent pages in the books of a neighboring
8952 upholsterer. I had got on so fast of late, that I had even started a boy
8953 in boots,--top boots,--in bondage and slavery to whom I might have been
8954 said to pass my days. For, after I had made the monster (out of the
8955 refuse of my washerwoman’s family), and had clothed him with a blue
8956 coat, canary waistcoat, white cravat, creamy breeches, and the boots
8957 already mentioned, I had to find him a little to do and a great deal
8958 to eat; and with both of those horrible requirements he haunted my
8959 existence.
8960
8961 This avenging phantom was ordered to be on duty at eight on Tuesday
8962 morning in the hall, (it was two feet square, as charged for
8963 floorcloth,) and Herbert suggested certain things for breakfast that he
8964 thought Joe would like. While I felt sincerely obliged to him for being
8965 so interested and considerate, I had an odd half-provoked sense of
8966 suspicion upon me, that if Joe had been coming to see him, he wouldn’t
8967 have been quite so brisk about it.
8968
8969 However, I came into town on the Monday night to be ready for Joe, and
8970 I got up early in the morning, and caused the sitting-room and
8971 breakfast-table to assume their most splendid appearance. Unfortunately
8972 the morning was drizzly, and an angel could not have concealed the fact
8973 that Barnard was shedding sooty tears outside the window, like some weak
8974 giant of a Sweep.
8975
8976 As the time approached I should have liked to run away, but the Avenger
8977 pursuant to orders was in the hall, and presently I heard Joe on
8978 the staircase. I knew it was Joe, by his clumsy manner of coming upstairs,
8979 --his state boots being always too big for him,--and by the time
8980 it took him to read the names on the other floors in the course of
8981 his ascent. When at last he stopped outside our door, I could hear his
8982 finger tracing over the painted letters of my name, and I afterwards
8983 distinctly heard him breathing in at the keyhole. Finally he gave a
8984 faint single rap, and Pepper--such was the compromising name of the
8985 avenging boy--announced “Mr. Gargery!” I thought he never would have
8986 done wiping his feet, and that I must have gone out to lift him off the
8987 mat, but at last he came in.
8988
8989 “Joe, how are you, Joe?”
8990
8991 “Pip, how AIR you, Pip?”
8992
8993 With his good honest face all glowing and shining, and his hat put
8994 down on the floor between us, he caught both my hands and worked them
8995 straight up and down, as if I had been the last-patented Pump.
8996
8997 “I am glad to see you, Joe. Give me your hat.”
8998
8999 But Joe, taking it up carefully with both hands, like a bird’s-nest with
9000 eggs in it, wouldn’t hear of parting with that piece of property, and
9001 persisted in standing talking over it in a most uncomfortable way.
9002
9003 “Which you have that growed,” said Joe, “and that swelled, and that
9004 gentle-folked;” Joe considered a little before he discovered this word;
9005 “as to be sure you are a honor to your king and country.”
9006
9007 “And you, Joe, look wonderfully well.”
9008
9009 “Thank God,” said Joe, “I’m ekerval to most. And your sister, she’s
9010 no worse than she were. And Biddy, she’s ever right and ready. And all
9011 friends is no backerder, if not no forarder. ‘Ceptin Wopsle; he’s had a
9012 drop.”
9013
9014 All this time (still with both hands taking great care of the
9015 bird’s-nest), Joe was rolling his eyes round and round the room, and
9016 round and round the flowered pattern of my dressing-gown.
9017
9018 “Had a drop, Joe?”
9019
9020 “Why yes,” said Joe, lowering his voice, “he’s left the Church and went
9021 into the playacting. Which the playacting have likeways brought him
9022 to London along with me. And his wish were,” said Joe, getting the
9023 bird’s-nest under his left arm for the moment, and groping in it for an
9024 egg with his right; “if no offence, as I would ‘and you that.”
9025
9026 I took what Joe gave me, and found it to be the crumpled play-bill of
9027 a small metropolitan theatre, announcing the first appearance, in that
9028 very week, of “the celebrated Provincial Amateur of Roscian renown,
9029 whose unique performance in the highest tragic walk of our National Bard
9030 has lately occasioned so great a sensation in local dramatic circles.”
9031
9032 “Were you at his performance, Joe?” I inquired.
9033
9034 “I were,” said Joe, with emphasis and solemnity.
9035
9036 “Was there a great sensation?”
9037
9038 “Why,” said Joe, “yes, there certainly were a peck of orange-peel.
9039 Partickler when he see the ghost. Though I put it to yourself, sir,
9040 whether it were calc’lated to keep a man up to his work with a good
9041 hart, to be continiwally cutting in betwixt him and the Ghost with
9042 “Amen!” A man may have had a misfortun’ and been in the Church,” said
9043 Joe, lowering his voice to an argumentative and feeling tone, “but
9044 that is no reason why you should put him out at such a time. Which I
9045 meantersay, if the ghost of a man’s own father cannot be allowed to
9046 claim his attention, what can, Sir? Still more, when his mourning ‘at
9047 is unfortunately made so small as that the weight of the black feathers
9048 brings it off, try to keep it on how you may.”
9049
9050 A ghost-seeing effect in Joe’s own countenance informed me that Herbert
9051 had entered the room. So, I presented Joe to Herbert, who held out his
9052 hand; but Joe backed from it, and held on by the bird’s-nest.
9053
9054 “Your servant, Sir,” said Joe, “which I hope as you and Pip”--here his
9055 eye fell on the Avenger, who was putting some toast on table, and so
9056 plainly denoted an intention to make that young gentleman one of the
9057 family, that I frowned it down and confused him more--“I meantersay, you
9058 two gentlemen,--which I hope as you get your elths in this close spot?
9059 For the present may be a werry good inn, according to London opinions,”
9060 said Joe, confidentially, “and I believe its character do stand it; but I
9061 wouldn’t keep a pig in it myself,--not in the case that I wished him to
9062 fatten wholesome and to eat with a meller flavor on him.”
9063
9064 Having borne this flattering testimony to the merits of our
9065 dwelling-place, and having incidentally shown this tendency to call me
9066 “sir,” Joe, being invited to sit down to table, looked all round the
9067 room for a suitable spot on which to deposit his hat,--as if it were
9068 only on some very few rare substances in nature that it could find a
9069 resting place,--and ultimately stood it on an extreme corner of the
9070 chimney-piece, from which it ever afterwards fell off at intervals.
9071
9072 “Do you take tea, or coffee, Mr. Gargery?” asked Herbert, who always
9073 presided of a morning.
9074
9075 “Thankee, Sir,” said Joe, stiff from head to foot, “I’ll take whichever
9076 is most agreeable to yourself.”
9077
9078 “What do you say to coffee?”
9079
9080 “Thankee, Sir,” returned Joe, evidently dispirited by the proposal,
9081 “since you are so kind as make chice of coffee, I will not run contrairy
9082 to your own opinions. But don’t you never find it a little ‘eating?”
9083
9084 “Say tea then,” said Herbert, pouring it out.
9085
9086 Here Joe’s hat tumbled off the mantel-piece, and he started out of his
9087 chair and picked it up, and fitted it to the same exact spot. As if it
9088 were an absolute point of good breeding that it should tumble off again
9089 soon.
9090
9091 “When did you come to town, Mr. Gargery?”
9092
9093 “Were it yesterday afternoon?” said Joe, after coughing behind his hand,
9094 as if he had had time to catch the whooping-cough since he came. “No
9095 it were not. Yes it were. Yes. It were yesterday afternoon” (with an
9096 appearance of mingled wisdom, relief, and strict impartiality).
9097
9098 “Have you seen anything of London yet?”
9099
9100 “Why, yes, Sir,” said Joe, “me and Wopsle went off straight to look at
9101 the Blacking Ware’us. But we didn’t find that it come up to its likeness
9102 in the red bills at the shop doors; which I meantersay,” added Joe, in
9103 an explanatory manner, “as it is there drawd too architectooralooral.”
9104
9105 I really believe Joe would have prolonged this word (mightily expressive
9106 to my mind of some architecture that I know) into a perfect Chorus, but
9107 for his attention being providentially attracted by his hat, which
9108 was toppling. Indeed, it demanded from him a constant attention, and a
9109 quickness of eye and hand, very like that exacted by wicket-keeping.
9110 He made extraordinary play with it, and showed the greatest skill; now,
9111 rushing at it and catching it neatly as it dropped; now, merely stopping
9112 it midway, beating it up, and humoring it in various parts of the room
9113 and against a good deal of the pattern of the paper on the wall,
9114 before he felt it safe to close with it; finally splashing it into the
9115 slop-basin, where I took the liberty of laying hands upon it.
9116
9117 As to his shirt-collar, and his coat-collar, they were perplexing to
9118 reflect upon,--insoluble mysteries both. Why should a man scrape himself
9119 to that extent, before he could consider himself full dressed? Why
9120 should he suppose it necessary to be purified by suffering for
9121 his holiday clothes? Then he fell into such unaccountable fits of
9122 meditation, with his fork midway between his plate and his mouth; had
9123 his eyes attracted in such strange directions; was afflicted with such
9124 remarkable coughs; sat so far from the table, and dropped so much
9125 more than he ate, and pretended that he hadn’t dropped it; that I was
9126 heartily glad when Herbert left us for the City.
9127
9128 I had neither the good sense nor the good feeling to know that this was
9129 all my fault, and that if I had been easier with Joe, Joe would have
9130 been easier with me. I felt impatient of him and out of temper with him;
9131 in which condition he heaped coals of fire on my head.
9132
9133 “Us two being now alone, sir,”--began Joe.
9134
9135 “Joe,” I interrupted, pettishly, “how can you call me, sir?”
9136
9137 Joe looked at me for a single instant with something faintly like
9138 reproach. Utterly preposterous as his cravat was, and as his collars
9139 were, I was conscious of a sort of dignity in the look.
9140
9141 “Us two being now alone,” resumed Joe, “and me having the intentions and
9142 abilities to stay not many minutes more, I will now conclude--leastways
9143 begin--to mention what have led to my having had the present honor. For
9144 was it not,” said Joe, with his old air of lucid exposition, “that my
9145 only wish were to be useful to you, I should not have had the honor of
9146 breaking wittles in the company and abode of gentlemen.”
9147
9148 I was so unwilling to see the look again, that I made no remonstrance
9149 against this tone.
9150
9151 “Well, sir,” pursued Joe, “this is how it were. I were at the Bargemen
9152 t’other night, Pip;”--whenever he subsided into affection, he called me
9153 Pip, and whenever he relapsed into politeness he called me sir; “when
9154 there come up in his shay-cart, Pumblechook. Which that same identical,”
9155 said Joe, going down a new track, “do comb my ‘air the wrong way
9156 sometimes, awful, by giving out up and down town as it were him which
9157 ever had your infant companionation and were looked upon as a playfellow
9158 by yourself.”
9159
9160 “Nonsense. It was you, Joe.”
9161
9162 “Which I fully believed it were, Pip,” said Joe, slightly tossing
9163 his head, “though it signify little now, sir. Well, Pip; this same
9164 identical, which his manners is given to blusterous, come to me at
9165 the Bargemen (wot a pipe and a pint of beer do give refreshment to the
9166 workingman, sir, and do not over stimilate), and his word were, ‘Joseph,
9167 Miss Havisham she wish to speak to you.’”
9168
9169 “Miss Havisham, Joe?”
9170
9171 “‘She wish,’ were Pumblechook’s word, ‘to speak to you.’” Joe sat and
9172 rolled his eyes at the ceiling.
9173
9174 “Yes, Joe? Go on, please.”
9175
9176 “Next day, sir,” said Joe, looking at me as if I were a long way off,
9177 “having cleaned myself, I go and I see Miss A.”
9178
9179 “Miss A., Joe? Miss Havisham?”
9180
9181 “Which I say, sir,” replied Joe, with an air of legal formality, as if
9182 he were making his will, “Miss A., or otherways Havisham. Her expression
9183 air then as follering: ‘Mr. Gargery. You air in correspondence with Mr.
9184 Pip?’ Having had a letter from you, I were able to say ‘I am.’ (When
9185 I married your sister, sir, I said ‘I will;’ and when I answered your
9186 friend, Pip, I said ‘I am.’) ‘Would you tell him, then,’ said she, ‘that
9187 which Estella has come home and would be glad to see him.’”
9188
9189 I felt my face fire up as I looked at Joe. I hope one remote cause
9190 of its firing may have been my consciousness that if I had known his
9191 errand, I should have given him more encouragement.
9192
9193 “Biddy,” pursued Joe, “when I got home and asked her fur to write the
9194 message to you, a little hung back. Biddy says, ‘I know he will be very
9195 glad to have it by word of mouth, it is holiday time, you want to see
9196 him, go!’ I have now concluded, sir,” said Joe, rising from his chair,
9197 “and, Pip, I wish you ever well and ever prospering to a greater and a
9198 greater height.”
9199
9200 “But you are not going now, Joe?”
9201
9202 “Yes I am,” said Joe.
9203
9204 “But you are coming back to dinner, Joe?”
9205
9206 “No I am not,” said Joe.
9207
9208 Our eyes met, and all the “Sir” melted out of that manly heart as he gave
9209 me his hand.
9210
9211 “Pip, dear old chap, life is made of ever so many partings welded
9212 together, as I may say, and one man’s a blacksmith, and one’s a
9213 whitesmith, and one’s a goldsmith, and one’s a coppersmith. Diwisions
9214 among such must come, and must be met as they come. If there’s been
9215 any fault at all to-day, it’s mine. You and me is not two figures to
9216 be together in London; nor yet anywheres else but what is private, and
9217 beknown, and understood among friends. It ain’t that I am proud, but
9218 that I want to be right, as you shall never see me no more in these
9219 clothes. I’m wrong in these clothes. I’m wrong out of the forge, the
9220 kitchen, or off th’ meshes. You won’t find half so much fault in me if
9221 you think of me in my forge dress, with my hammer in my hand, or even
9222 my pipe. You won’t find half so much fault in me if, supposing as you
9223 should ever wish to see me, you come and put your head in at the forge
9224 window and see Joe the blacksmith, there, at the old anvil, in the old
9225 burnt apron, sticking to the old work. I’m awful dull, but I hope I’ve
9226 beat out something nigh the rights of this at last. And so GOD bless
9227 you, dear old Pip, old chap, GOD bless you!”
9228
9229 I had not been mistaken in my fancy that there was a simple dignity
9230 in him. The fashion of his dress could no more come in its way when he
9231 spoke these words than it could come in its way in Heaven. He touched me
9232 gently on the forehead, and went out. As soon as I could recover
9233 myself sufficiently, I hurried out after him and looked for him in the
9234 neighboring streets; but he was gone.
9235
9236
9237
9238
9239 Chapter XXVIII
9240
9241 It was clear that I must repair to our town next day, and in the first
9242 flow of my repentance, it was equally clear that I must stay at Joe’s.
9243 But, when I had secured my box-place by to-morrow’s coach, and had been
9244 down to Mr. Pocket’s and back, I was not by any means convinced on the
9245 last point, and began to invent reasons and make excuses for putting
9246 up at the Blue Boar. I should be an inconvenience at Joe’s; I was not
9247 expected, and my bed would not be ready; I should be too far from
9248 Miss Havisham’s, and she was exacting and mightn’t like it. All other
9249 swindlers upon earth are nothing to the self-swindlers, and with such
9250 pretences did I cheat myself. Surely a curious thing. That I should
9251 innocently take a bad half-crown of somebody else’s manufacture is
9252 reasonable enough; but that I should knowingly reckon the spurious coin
9253 of my own make as good money! An obliging stranger, under pretence of
9254 compactly folding up my bank-notes for security’s sake, abstracts the
9255 notes and gives me nutshells; but what is his sleight of hand to mine,
9256 when I fold up my own nutshells and pass them on myself as notes!
9257
9258 Having settled that I must go to the Blue Boar, my mind was much
9259 disturbed by indecision whether or not to take the Avenger. It was
9260 tempting to think of that expensive Mercenary publicly airing his boots
9261 in the archway of the Blue Boar’s posting-yard; it was almost solemn to
9262 imagine him casually produced in the tailor’s shop, and confounding
9263 the disrespectful senses of Trabb’s boy. On the other hand, Trabb’s boy
9264 might worm himself into his intimacy and tell him things; or, reckless
9265 and desperate wretch as I knew he could be, might hoot him in the High
9266 Street. My patroness, too, might hear of him, and not approve. On the
9267 whole, I resolved to leave the Avenger behind.
9268
9269 It was the afternoon coach by which I had taken my place, and, as winter
9270 had now come round, I should not arrive at my destination until two or
9271 three hours after dark. Our time of starting from the Cross Keys was
9272 two o’clock. I arrived on the ground with a quarter of an hour to spare,
9273 attended by the Avenger,--if I may connect that expression with one who
9274 never attended on me if he could possibly help it.
9275
9276 At that time it was customary to carry Convicts down to the dock-yards
9277 by stage-coach. As I had often heard of them in the capacity of outside
9278 passengers, and had more than once seen them on the high road dangling
9279 their ironed legs over the coach roof, I had no cause to be surprised
9280 when Herbert, meeting me in the yard, came up and told me there were two
9281 convicts going down with me. But I had a reason that was an old reason
9282 now for constitutionally faltering whenever I heard the word “convict.”
9283
9284 “You don’t mind them, Handel?” said Herbert.
9285
9286 “O no!”
9287
9288 “I thought you seemed as if you didn’t like them?”
9289
9290 “I can’t pretend that I do like them, and I suppose you don’t
9291 particularly. But I don’t mind them.”
9292
9293 “See! There they are,” said Herbert, “coming out of the Tap. What a
9294 degraded and vile sight it is!”
9295
9296 They had been treating their guard, I suppose, for they had a gaoler
9297 with them, and all three came out wiping their mouths on their hands.
9298 The two convicts were handcuffed together, and had irons on their
9299 legs,--irons of a pattern that I knew well. They wore the dress that I
9300 likewise knew well. Their keeper had a brace of pistols, and carried
9301 a thick-knobbed bludgeon under his arm; but he was on terms of good
9302 understanding with them, and stood with them beside him, looking on at
9303 the putting-to of the horses, rather with an air as if the convicts were
9304 an interesting Exhibition not formally open at the moment, and he the
9305 Curator. One was a taller and stouter man than the other, and appeared
9306 as a matter of course, according to the mysterious ways of the world,
9307 both convict and free, to have had allotted to him the smaller suit of
9308 clothes. His arms and legs were like great pincushions of those shapes,
9309 and his attire disguised him absurdly; but I knew his half-closed eye
9310 at one glance. There stood the man whom I had seen on the settle at the
9311 Three Jolly Bargemen on a Saturday night, and who had brought me down
9312 with his invisible gun!
9313
9314 It was easy to make sure that as yet he knew me no more than if he had
9315 never seen me in his life. He looked across at me, and his eye appraised
9316 my watch-chain, and then he incidentally spat and said something to the
9317 other convict, and they laughed and slued themselves round with a clink
9318 of their coupling manacle, and looked at something else. The great
9319 numbers on their backs, as if they were street doors; their coarse mangy
9320 ungainly outer surface, as if they were lower animals; their ironed
9321 legs, apologetically garlanded with pocket-handkerchiefs; and the way
9322 in which all present looked at them and kept from them; made them (as
9323 Herbert had said) a most disagreeable and degraded spectacle.
9324
9325 But this was not the worst of it. It came out that the whole of the back
9326 of the coach had been taken by a family removing from London, and that
9327 there were no places for the two prisoners but on the seat in front
9328 behind the coachman. Hereupon, a choleric gentleman, who had taken the
9329 fourth place on that seat, flew into a most violent passion, and said
9330 that it was a breach of contract to mix him up with such villainous
9331 company, and that it was poisonous, and pernicious, and infamous, and
9332 shameful, and I don’t know what else. At this time the coach was ready
9333 and the coachman impatient, and we were all preparing to get up, and
9334 the prisoners had come over with their keeper,--bringing with them that
9335 curious flavor of bread-poultice, baize, rope-yarn, and hearthstone,
9336 which attends the convict presence.
9337
9338 “Don’t take it so much amiss, sir,” pleaded the keeper to the angry
9339 passenger; “I’ll sit next you myself. I’ll put ‘em on the outside of
9340 the row. They won’t interfere with you, sir. You needn’t know they’re
9341 there.”
9342
9343 “And don’t blame me,” growled the convict I had recognized. “I don’t
9344 want to go. I am quite ready to stay behind. As fur as I am concerned
9345 any one’s welcome to my place.”
9346
9347 “Or mine,” said the other, gruffly. “I wouldn’t have incommoded none
9348 of you, if I’d had my way.” Then they both laughed, and began cracking
9349 nuts, and spitting the shells about.--As I really think I should have
9350 liked to do myself, if I had been in their place and so despised.
9351
9352 At length, it was voted that there was no help for the angry gentleman,
9353 and that he must either go in his chance company or remain behind. So he
9354 got into his place, still making complaints, and the keeper got into the
9355 place next him, and the convicts hauled themselves up as well as they
9356 could, and the convict I had recognized sat behind me with his breath on
9357 the hair of my head.
9358
9359 “Good-bye, Handel!” Herbert called out as we started. I thought what a
9360 blessed fortune it was, that he had found another name for me than Pip.
9361
9362 It is impossible to express with what acuteness I felt the convict’s
9363 breathing, not only on the back of my head, but all along my spine. The
9364 sensation was like being touched in the marrow with some pungent and
9365 searching acid, it set my very teeth on edge. He seemed to have more
9366 breathing business to do than another man, and to make more noise in
9367 doing it; and I was conscious of growing high-shouldered on one side, in
9368 my shrinking endeavors to fend him off.
9369
9370 The weather was miserably raw, and the two cursed the cold. It made us
9371 all lethargic before we had gone far, and when we had left the Half-way
9372 House behind, we habitually dozed and shivered and were silent. I dozed
9373 off, myself, in considering the question whether I ought to restore a
9374 couple of pounds sterling to this creature before losing sight of him,
9375 and how it could best be done. In the act of dipping forward as if I
9376 were going to bathe among the horses, I woke in a fright and took the
9377 question up again.
9378
9379 But I must have lost it longer than I had thought, since, although
9380 I could recognize nothing in the darkness and the fitful lights and
9381 shadows of our lamps, I traced marsh country in the cold damp wind that
9382 blew at us. Cowering forward for warmth and to make me a screen against
9383 the wind, the convicts were closer to me than before. The very first
9384 words I heard them interchange as I became conscious, were the words of
9385 my own thought, “Two One Pound notes.”
9386
9387 “How did he get ‘em?” said the convict I had never seen.
9388
9389 “How should I know?” returned the other. “He had ‘em stowed away
9390 somehows. Giv him by friends, I expect.”
9391
9392 “I wish,” said the other, with a bitter curse upon the cold, “that I had
9393 ‘em here.”
9394
9395 “Two one pound notes, or friends?”
9396
9397 “Two one pound notes. I’d sell all the friends I ever had for one, and
9398 think it a blessed good bargain. Well? So he says--?”
9399
9400 “So he says,” resumed the convict I had recognized,--“it was all
9401 said and done in half a minute, behind a pile of timber in the
9402 Dock-yard,--‘You’re a going to be discharged?’ Yes, I was. Would I find
9403 out that boy that had fed him and kep his secret, and give him them two
9404 one pound notes? Yes, I would. And I did.”
9405
9406 “More fool you,” growled the other. “I’d have spent ‘em on a Man, in
9407 wittles and drink. He must have been a green one. Mean to say he knowed
9408 nothing of you?”
9409
9410 “Not a ha’porth. Different gangs and different ships. He was tried again
9411 for prison breaking, and got made a Lifer.”
9412
9413 “And was that--Honor!--the only time you worked out, in this part of the
9414 country?”
9415
9416 “The only time.”
9417
9418 “What might have been your opinion of the place?”
9419
9420 “A most beastly place. Mudbank, mist, swamp, and work; work, swamp,
9421 mist, and mudbank.”
9422
9423 They both execrated the place in very strong language, and gradually
9424 growled themselves out, and had nothing left to say.
9425
9426 After overhearing this dialogue, I should assuredly have got down and
9427 been left in the solitude and darkness of the highway, but for feeling
9428 certain that the man had no suspicion of my identity. Indeed, I was not
9429 only so changed in the course of nature, but so differently dressed and
9430 so differently circumstanced, that it was not at all likely he could
9431 have known me without accidental help. Still, the coincidence of our
9432 being together on the coach, was sufficiently strange to fill me with a
9433 dread that some other coincidence might at any moment connect me, in his
9434 hearing, with my name. For this reason, I resolved to alight as soon as
9435 we touched the town, and put myself out of his hearing. This device I
9436 executed successfully. My little portmanteau was in the boot under my
9437 feet; I had but to turn a hinge to get it out; I threw it down before
9438 me, got down after it, and was left at the first lamp on the first
9439 stones of the town pavement. As to the convicts, they went their way
9440 with the coach, and I knew at what point they would be spirited off to
9441 the river. In my fancy, I saw the boat with its convict crew waiting for
9442 them at the slime-washed stairs,--again heard the gruff “Give way, you!”
9443 like and order to dogs,--again saw the wicked Noah’s Ark lying out on
9444 the black water.
9445
9446 I could not have said what I was afraid of, for my fear was altogether
9447 undefined and vague, but there was great fear upon me. As I walked on to
9448 the hotel, I felt that a dread, much exceeding the mere apprehension of
9449 a painful or disagreeable recognition, made me tremble. I am confident
9450 that it took no distinctness of shape, and that it was the revival for a
9451 few minutes of the terror of childhood.
9452
9453 The coffee-room at the Blue Boar was empty, and I had not only ordered
9454 my dinner there, but had sat down to it, before the waiter knew me. As
9455 soon as he had apologized for the remissness of his memory, he asked me
9456 if he should send Boots for Mr. Pumblechook?
9457
9458 “No,” said I, “certainly not.”
9459
9460 The waiter (it was he who had brought up the Great Remonstrance from the
9461 Commercials, on the day when I was bound) appeared surprised, and
9462 took the earliest opportunity of putting a dirty old copy of a local
9463 newspaper so directly in my way, that I took it up and read this
9464 paragraph:--
9465
9466 Our readers will learn, not altogether without interest, in reference to
9467 the recent romantic rise in fortune of a young artificer in iron of this
9468 neighborhood (what a theme, by the way, for the magic pen of our as yet
9469 not universally acknowledged townsman TOOBY, the poet of our columns!)
9470 that the youth’s earliest patron, companion, and friend, was a highly
9471 respected individual not entirely unconnected with the corn and seed
9472 trade, and whose eminently convenient and commodious business premises
9473 are situate within a hundred miles of the High Street. It is not wholly
9474 irrespective of our personal feelings that we record HIM as the Mentor
9475 of our young Telemachus, for it is good to know that our town produced
9476 the founder of the latter’s fortunes. Does the thought-contracted brow
9477 of the local Sage or the lustrous eye of local Beauty inquire whose
9478 fortunes? We believe that Quintin Matsys was the BLACKSMITH of Antwerp.
9479 VERB. SAP.
9480
9481 I entertain a conviction, based upon large experience, that if in the
9482 days of my prosperity I had gone to the North Pole, I should have met
9483 somebody there, wandering Esquimaux or civilized man, who would have
9484 told me that Pumblechook was my earliest patron and the founder of my
9485 fortunes.
9486
9487
9488
9489
9490 Chapter XXIX
9491
9492 Betimes in the morning I was up and out. It was too early yet to go to
9493 Miss Havisham’s, so I loitered into the country on Miss Havisham’s
9494 side of town,--which was not Joe’s side; I could go there
9495 to-morrow,--thinking about my patroness, and painting brilliant pictures
9496 of her plans for me.
9497
9498 She had adopted Estella, she had as good as adopted me, and it could not
9499 fail to be her intention to bring us together. She reserved it for me to
9500 restore the desolate house, admit the sunshine into the dark rooms,
9501 set the clocks a-going and the cold hearths a-blazing, tear down the
9502 cobwebs, destroy the vermin,--in short, do all the shining deeds of the
9503 young Knight of romance, and marry the Princess. I had stopped to
9504 look at the house as I passed; and its seared red brick walls, blocked
9505 windows, and strong green ivy clasping even the stacks of chimneys with
9506 its twigs and tendons, as if with sinewy old arms, had made up a rich
9507 attractive mystery, of which I was the hero. Estella was the inspiration
9508 of it, and the heart of it, of course. But, though she had taken such
9509 strong possession of me, though my fancy and my hope were so set upon
9510 her, though her influence on my boyish life and character had been
9511 all-powerful, I did not, even that romantic morning, invest her with any
9512 attributes save those she possessed. I mention this in this place, of a
9513 fixed purpose, because it is the clew by which I am to be followed into
9514 my poor labyrinth. According to my experience, the conventional notion
9515 of a lover cannot be always true. The unqualified truth is, that when I
9516 loved Estella with the love of a man, I loved her simply because I found
9517 her irresistible. Once for all; I knew to my sorrow, often and often,
9518 if not always, that I loved her against reason, against promise, against
9519 peace, against hope, against happiness, against all discouragement that
9520 could be. Once for all; I loved her none the less because I knew it,
9521 and it had no more influence in restraining me than if I had devoutly
9522 believed her to be human perfection.
9523
9524 I so shaped out my walk as to arrive at the gate at my old time. When
9525 I had rung at the bell with an unsteady hand, I turned my back upon the
9526 gate, while I tried to get my breath and keep the beating of my heart
9527 moderately quiet. I heard the side-door open, and steps come across the
9528 courtyard; but I pretended not to hear, even when the gate swung on its
9529 rusty hinges.
9530
9531 Being at last touched on the shoulder, I started and turned. I started
9532 much more naturally then, to find myself confronted by a man in a sober
9533 gray dress. The last man I should have expected to see in that place of
9534 porter at Miss Havisham’s door.
9535
9536 “Orlick!”
9537
9538 “Ah, young master, there’s more changes than yours. But come in, come
9539 in. It’s opposed to my orders to hold the gate open.”
9540
9541 I entered and he swung it, and locked it, and took the key out. “Yes!”
9542 said he, facing round, after doggedly preceding me a few steps towards
9543 the house. “Here I am!”
9544
9545 “How did you come here?”
9546
9547 “I come her,” he retorted, “on my legs. I had my box brought alongside
9548 me in a barrow.”
9549
9550 “Are you here for good?”
9551
9552 “I ain’t here for harm, young master, I suppose?”
9553
9554 I was not so sure of that. I had leisure to entertain the retort in my
9555 mind, while he slowly lifted his heavy glance from the pavement, up my
9556 legs and arms, to my face.
9557
9558 “Then you have left the forge?” I said.
9559
9560 “Do this look like a forge?” replied Orlick, sending his glance all
9561 round him with an air of injury. “Now, do it look like it?”
9562
9563 I asked him how long he had left Gargery’s forge?
9564
9565 “One day is so like another here,” he replied, “that I don’t know
9566 without casting it up. However, I come here some time since you left.”
9567
9568 “I could have told you that, Orlick.”
9569
9570 “Ah!” said he, dryly. “But then you’ve got to be a scholar.”
9571
9572 By this time we had come to the house, where I found his room to be one
9573 just within the side-door, with a little window in it looking on the
9574 courtyard. In its small proportions, it was not unlike the kind of place
9575 usually assigned to a gate-porter in Paris. Certain keys were hanging on
9576 the wall, to which he now added the gate key; and his patchwork-covered
9577 bed was in a little inner division or recess. The whole had a slovenly,
9578 confined, and sleepy look, like a cage for a human dormouse; while he,
9579 looming dark and heavy in the shadow of a corner by the window, looked
9580 like the human dormouse for whom it was fitted up,--as indeed he was.
9581
9582 “I never saw this room before,” I remarked; “but there used to be no
9583 Porter here.”
9584
9585 “No,” said he; “not till it got about that there was no protection on
9586 the premises, and it come to be considered dangerous, with convicts and
9587 Tag and Rag and Bobtail going up and down. And then I was recommended to
9588 the place as a man who could give another man as good as he brought, and
9589 I took it. It’s easier than bellowsing and hammering.--That’s loaded,
9590 that is.”
9591
9592 My eye had been caught by a gun with a brass-bound stock over the
9593 chimney-piece, and his eye had followed mine.
9594
9595 “Well,” said I, not desirous of more conversation, “shall I go up to
9596 Miss Havisham?”
9597
9598 “Burn me, if I know!” he retorted, first stretching himself and then
9599 shaking himself; “my orders ends here, young master. I give this here
9600 bell a rap with this here hammer, and you go on along the passage till
9601 you meet somebody.”
9602
9603 “I am expected, I believe?”
9604
9605 “Burn me twice over, if I can say!” said he.
9606
9607 Upon that, I turned down the long passage which I had first trodden in
9608 my thick boots, and he made his bell sound. At the end of the passage,
9609 while the bell was still reverberating, I found Sarah Pocket, who
9610 appeared to have now become constitutionally green and yellow by reason
9611 of me.
9612
9613 “Oh!” said she. “You, is it, Mr. Pip?”
9614
9615 “It is, Miss Pocket. I am glad to tell you that Mr. Pocket and family
9616 are all well.”
9617
9618 “Are they any wiser?” said Sarah, with a dismal shake of the head; “they
9619 had better be wiser, than well. Ah, Matthew, Matthew! You know your way,
9620 sir?”
9621
9622 Tolerably, for I had gone up the staircase in the dark, many a time. I
9623 ascended it now, in lighter boots than of yore, and tapped in my old
9624 way at the door of Miss Havisham’s room. “Pip’s rap,” I heard her say,
9625 immediately; “come in, Pip.”
9626
9627 She was in her chair near the old table, in the old dress, with her two
9628 hands crossed on her stick, her chin resting on them, and her eyes on
9629 the fire. Sitting near her, with the white shoe, that had never been
9630 worn, in her hand, and her head bent as she looked at it, was an elegant
9631 lady whom I had never seen.
9632
9633 “Come in, Pip,” Miss Havisham continued to mutter, without looking round
9634 or up; “come in, Pip, how do you do, Pip? so you kiss my hand as if I
9635 were a queen, eh?--Well?”
9636
9637 She looked up at me suddenly, only moving her eyes, and repeated in a
9638 grimly playful manner,--
9639
9640 “Well?”
9641
9642 “I heard, Miss Havisham,” said I, rather at a loss, “that you were so
9643 kind as to wish me to come and see you, and I came directly.”
9644
9645 “Well?”
9646
9647 The lady whom I had never seen before, lifted up her eyes and looked
9648 archly at me, and then I saw that the eyes were Estella’s eyes. But she
9649 was so much changed, was so much more beautiful, so much more womanly,
9650 in all things winning admiration, had made such wonderful advance,
9651 that I seemed to have made none. I fancied, as I looked at her, that
9652 I slipped hopelessly back into the coarse and common boy again. O
9653 the sense of distance and disparity that came upon me, and the
9654 inaccessibility that came about her!
9655
9656 She gave me her hand. I stammered something about the pleasure I felt in
9657 seeing her again, and about my having looked forward to it, for a long,
9658 long time.
9659
9660 “Do you find her much changed, Pip?” asked Miss Havisham, with her
9661 greedy look, and striking her stick upon a chair that stood between
9662 them, as a sign to me to sit down there.
9663
9664 “When I came in, Miss Havisham, I thought there was nothing of Estella
9665 in the face or figure; but now it all settles down so curiously into the
9666 old--”
9667
9668 “What? You are not going to say into the old Estella?” Miss Havisham
9669 interrupted. “She was proud and insulting, and you wanted to go away
9670 from her. Don’t you remember?”
9671
9672 I said confusedly that that was long ago, and that I knew no better
9673 then, and the like. Estella smiled with perfect composure, and said she
9674 had no doubt of my having been quite right, and of her having been very
9675 disagreeable.
9676
9677 “Is he changed?” Miss Havisham asked her.
9678
9679 “Very much,” said Estella, looking at me.
9680
9681 “Less coarse and common?” said Miss Havisham, playing with Estella’s
9682 hair.
9683
9684 Estella laughed, and looked at the shoe in her hand, and laughed again,
9685 and looked at me, and put the shoe down. She treated me as a boy still,
9686 but she lured me on.
9687
9688 We sat in the dreamy room among the old strange influences which had
9689 so wrought upon me, and I learnt that she had but just come home from
9690 France, and that she was going to London. Proud and wilful as of old,
9691 she had brought those qualities into such subjection to her beauty that
9692 it was impossible and out of nature--or I thought so--to separate them
9693 from her beauty. Truly it was impossible to dissociate her presence
9694 from all those wretched hankerings after money and gentility that had
9695 disturbed my boyhood,--from all those ill-regulated aspirations that had
9696 first made me ashamed of home and Joe,--from all those visions that had
9697 raised her face in the glowing fire, struck it out of the iron on the
9698 anvil, extracted it from the darkness of night to look in at the wooden
9699 window of the forge, and flit away. In a word, it was impossible for me
9700 to separate her, in the past or in the present, from the innermost life
9701 of my life.
9702
9703 It was settled that I should stay there all the rest of the day, and
9704 return to the hotel at night, and to London to-morrow. When we had
9705 conversed for a while, Miss Havisham sent us two out to walk in the
9706 neglected garden: on our coming in by and by, she said, I should wheel
9707 her about a little, as in times of yore.
9708
9709 So, Estella and I went out into the garden by the gate through which I
9710 had strayed to my encounter with the pale young gentleman, now Herbert;
9711 I, trembling in spirit and worshipping the very hem of her dress; she,
9712 quite composed and most decidedly not worshipping the hem of mine. As we
9713 drew near to the place of encounter, she stopped and said,--
9714
9715 “I must have been a singular little creature to hide and see that fight
9716 that day; but I did, and I enjoyed it very much.”
9717
9718 “You rewarded me very much.”
9719
9720 “Did I?” she replied, in an incidental and forgetful way. “I remember I
9721 entertained a great objection to your adversary, because I took it ill
9722 that he should be brought here to pester me with his company.”
9723
9724 “He and I are great friends now.”
9725
9726 “Are you? I think I recollect though, that you read with his father?”
9727
9728 “Yes.”
9729
9730 I made the admission with reluctance, for it seemed to have a boyish
9731 look, and she already treated me more than enough like a boy.
9732
9733 “Since your change of fortune and prospects, you have changed your
9734 companions,” said Estella.
9735
9736 “Naturally,” said I.
9737
9738 “And necessarily,” she added, in a haughty tone; “what was fit company
9739 for you once, would be quite unfit company for you now.”
9740
9741 In my conscience, I doubt very much whether I had any lingering
9742 intention left of going to see Joe; but if I had, this observation put
9743 it to flight.
9744
9745 “You had no idea of your impending good fortune, in those times?” said
9746 Estella, with a slight wave of her hand, signifying in the fighting
9747 times.
9748
9749 “Not the least.”
9750
9751 The air of completeness and superiority with which she walked at my
9752 side, and the air of youthfulness and submission with which I walked at
9753 hers, made a contrast that I strongly felt. It would have rankled in me
9754 more than it did, if I had not regarded myself as eliciting it by being
9755 so set apart for her and assigned to her.
9756
9757 The garden was too overgrown and rank for walking in with ease, and
9758 after we had made the round of it twice or thrice, we came out again
9759 into the brewery yard. I showed her to a nicety where I had seen her
9760 walking on the casks, that first old day, and she said, with a cold and
9761 careless look in that direction, “Did I?” I reminded her where she had
9762 come out of the house and given me my meat and drink, and she said, “I
9763 don’t remember.” “Not remember that you made me cry?” said I. “No,” said
9764 she, and shook her head and looked about her. I verily believe that
9765 her not remembering and not minding in the least, made me cry again,
9766 inwardly,--and that is the sharpest crying of all.
9767
9768 “You must know,” said Estella, condescending to me as a brilliant and
9769 beautiful woman might, “that I have no heart,--if that has anything to
9770 do with my memory.”
9771
9772 I got through some jargon to the effect that I took the liberty of
9773 doubting that. That I knew better. That there could be no such beauty
9774 without it.
9775
9776 “Oh! I have a heart to be stabbed in or shot in, I have no doubt,” said
9777 Estella, “and of course if it ceased to beat I should cease
9778 to be. But you know what I mean. I have no softness there,
9779 no--sympathy--sentiment--nonsense.”
9780
9781 What was it that was borne in upon my mind when she stood still and
9782 looked attentively at me? Anything that I had seen in Miss Havisham? No.
9783 In some of her looks and gestures there was that tinge of resemblance
9784 to Miss Havisham which may often be noticed to have been acquired by
9785 children, from grown person with whom they have been much associated and
9786 secluded, and which, when childhood is passed, will produce a remarkable
9787 occasional likeness of expression between faces that are otherwise quite
9788 different. And yet I could not trace this to Miss Havisham. I looked
9789 again, and though she was still looking at me, the suggestion was gone.
9790
9791 What was it?
9792
9793 “I am serious,” said Estella, not so much with a frown (for her brow was
9794 smooth) as with a darkening of her face; “if we are to be thrown much
9795 together, you had better believe it at once. No!” imperiously stopping
9796 me as I opened my lips. “I have not bestowed my tenderness anywhere. I
9797 have never had any such thing.”
9798
9799 In another moment we were in the brewery, so long disused, and she
9800 pointed to the high gallery where I had seen her going out on that same
9801 first day, and told me she remembered to have been up there, and to have
9802 seen me standing scared below. As my eyes followed her white hand, again
9803 the same dim suggestion that I could not possibly grasp crossed me. My
9804 involuntary start occasioned her to lay her hand upon my arm. Instantly
9805 the ghost passed once more and was gone.
9806
9807 What was it?
9808
9809 “What is the matter?” asked Estella. “Are you scared again?”
9810
9811 “I should be, if I believed what you said just now,” I replied, to turn
9812 it off.
9813
9814 “Then you don’t? Very well. It is said, at any rate. Miss Havisham will
9815 soon be expecting you at your old post, though I think that might be
9816 laid aside now, with other old belongings. Let us make one more round
9817 of the garden, and then go in. Come! You shall not shed tears for my
9818 cruelty to-day; you shall be my Page, and give me your shoulder.”
9819
9820 Her handsome dress had trailed upon the ground. She held it in one hand
9821 now, and with the other lightly touched my shoulder as we walked. We
9822 walked round the ruined garden twice or thrice more, and it was all in
9823 bloom for me. If the green and yellow growth of weed in the chinks of
9824 the old wall had been the most precious flowers that ever blew, it could
9825 not have been more cherished in my remembrance.
9826
9827 There was no discrepancy of years between us to remove her far from me;
9828 we were of nearly the same age, though of course the age told for more
9829 in her case than in mine; but the air of inaccessibility which her
9830 beauty and her manner gave her, tormented me in the midst of my delight,
9831 and at the height of the assurance I felt that our patroness had chosen
9832 us for one another. Wretched boy!
9833
9834 At last we went back into the house, and there I heard, with surprise,
9835 that my guardian had come down to see Miss Havisham on business, and
9836 would come back to dinner. The old wintry branches of chandeliers in
9837 the room where the mouldering table was spread had been lighted while we
9838 were out, and Miss Havisham was in her chair and waiting for me.
9839
9840 It was like pushing the chair itself back into the past, when we began
9841 the old slow circuit round about the ashes of the bridal feast. But,
9842 in the funereal room, with that figure of the grave fallen back in the
9843 chair fixing its eyes upon her, Estella looked more bright and beautiful
9844 than before, and I was under stronger enchantment.
9845
9846 The time so melted away, that our early dinner-hour drew close at hand,
9847 and Estella left us to prepare herself. We had stopped near the centre
9848 of the long table, and Miss Havisham, with one of her withered arms
9849 stretched out of the chair, rested that clenched hand upon the yellow
9850 cloth. As Estella looked back over her shoulder before going out at the
9851 door, Miss Havisham kissed that hand to her, with a ravenous intensity
9852 that was of its kind quite dreadful.
9853
9854 Then, Estella being gone and we two left alone, she turned to me, and
9855 said in a whisper,--
9856
9857 “Is she beautiful, graceful, well-grown? Do you admire her?”
9858
9859 “Everybody must who sees her, Miss Havisham.”
9860
9861 She drew an arm round my neck, and drew my head close down to hers as
9862 she sat in the chair. “Love her, love her, love her! How does she use
9863 you?”
9864
9865 Before I could answer (if I could have answered so difficult a question
9866 at all) she repeated, “Love her, love her, love her! If she favors
9867 you, love her. If she wounds you, love her. If she tears your heart to
9868 pieces,--and as it gets older and stronger it will tear deeper,--love
9869 her, love her, love her!”
9870
9871 Never had I seen such passionate eagerness as was joined to her
9872 utterance of these words. I could feel the muscles of the thin arm round
9873 my neck swell with the vehemence that possessed her.
9874
9875 “Hear me, Pip! I adopted her, to be loved. I bred her and educated her,
9876 to be loved. I developed her into what she is, that she might be loved.
9877 Love her!”
9878
9879 She said the word often enough, and there could be no doubt that she
9880 meant to say it; but if the often repeated word had been hate instead of
9881 love--despair--revenge--dire death--it could not have sounded from her
9882 lips more like a curse.
9883
9884 “I’ll tell you,” said she, in the same hurried passionate whisper, “what
9885 real love is. It is blind devotion, unquestioning self-humiliation,
9886 utter submission, trust and belief against yourself and against the
9887 whole world, giving up your whole heart and soul to the smiter--as I
9888 did!”
9889
9890 When she came to that, and to a wild cry that followed that, I caught
9891 her round the waist. For she rose up in the chair, in her shroud of a
9892 dress, and struck at the air as if she would as soon have struck herself
9893 against the wall and fallen dead.
9894
9895 All this passed in a few seconds. As I drew her down into her chair, I
9896 was conscious of a scent that I knew, and turning, saw my guardian in
9897 the room.
9898
9899 He always carried (I have not yet mentioned it, I think) a
9900 pocket-handkerchief of rich silk and of imposing proportions, which was
9901 of great value to him in his profession. I have seen him so terrify a
9902 client or a witness by ceremoniously unfolding this pocket-handkerchief
9903 as if he were immediately going to blow his nose, and then pausing,
9904 as if he knew he should not have time to do it before such client
9905 or witness committed himself, that the self-committal has followed
9906 directly, quite as a matter of course. When I saw him in the room he had
9907 this expressive pocket-handkerchief in both hands, and was looking at
9908 us. On meeting my eye, he said plainly, by a momentary and silent pause
9909 in that attitude, “Indeed? Singular!” and then put the handkerchief to
9910 its right use with wonderful effect.
9911
9912 Miss Havisham had seen him as soon as I, and was (like everybody
9913 else) afraid of him. She made a strong attempt to compose herself, and
9914 stammered that he was as punctual as ever.
9915
9916 “As punctual as ever,” he repeated, coming up to us. “(How do you do,
9917 Pip? Shall I give you a ride, Miss Havisham? Once round?) And so you are
9918 here, Pip?”
9919
9920 I told him when I had arrived, and how Miss Havisham had wished me to
9921 come and see Estella. To which he replied, “Ah! Very fine young lady!”
9922 Then he pushed Miss Havisham in her chair before him, with one of his
9923 large hands, and put the other in his trousers-pocket as if the pocket
9924 were full of secrets.
9925
9926 “Well, Pip! How often have you seen Miss Estella before?” said he, when
9927 he came to a stop.
9928
9929 “How often?”
9930
9931 “Ah! How many times? Ten thousand times?”
9932
9933 “Oh! Certainly not so many.”
9934
9935 “Twice?”
9936
9937 “Jaggers,” interposed Miss Havisham, much to my relief, “leave my Pip
9938 alone, and go with him to your dinner.”
9939
9940 He complied, and we groped our way down the dark stairs together. While
9941 we were still on our way to those detached apartments across the paved
9942 yard at the back, he asked me how often I had seen Miss Havisham eat
9943 and drink; offering me a breadth of choice, as usual, between a hundred
9944 times and once.
9945
9946 I considered, and said, “Never.”
9947
9948 “And never will, Pip,” he retorted, with a frowning smile. “She has
9949 never allowed herself to be seen doing either, since she lived this
9950 present life of hers. She wanders about in the night, and then lays
9951 hands on such food as she takes.”
9952
9953 “Pray, sir,” said I, “may I ask you a question?”
9954
9955 “You may,” said he, “and I may decline to answer it. Put your question.”
9956
9957 “Estella’s name. Is it Havisham or--?” I had nothing to add.
9958
9959 “Or what?” said he.
9960
9961 “Is it Havisham?”
9962
9963 “It is Havisham.”
9964
9965 This brought us to the dinner-table, where she and Sarah Pocket awaited
9966 us. Mr. Jaggers presided, Estella sat opposite to him, I faced my
9967 green and yellow friend. We dined very well, and were waited on by a
9968 maid-servant whom I had never seen in all my comings and goings, but
9969 who, for anything I know, had been in that mysterious house the whole
9970 time. After dinner a bottle of choice old port was placed before my
9971 guardian (he was evidently well acquainted with the vintage), and the
9972 two ladies left us.
9973
9974 Anything to equal the determined reticence of Mr. Jaggers under that
9975 roof I never saw elsewhere, even in him. He kept his very looks to
9976 himself, and scarcely directed his eyes to Estella’s face once during
9977 dinner. When she spoke to him, he listened, and in due course answered,
9978 but never looked at her, that I could see. On the other hand, she often
9979 looked at him, with interest and curiosity, if not distrust, but his
9980 face never showed the least consciousness. Throughout dinner he took
9981 a dry delight in making Sarah Pocket greener and yellower, by often
9982 referring in conversation with me to my expectations; but here,
9983 again, he showed no consciousness, and even made it appear that he
9984 extorted--and even did extort, though I don’t know how--those references
9985 out of my innocent self.
9986
9987 And when he and I were left alone together, he sat with an air upon him
9988 of general lying by in consequence of information he possessed, that
9989 really was too much for me. He cross-examined his very wine when he had
9990 nothing else in hand. He held it between himself and the candle, tasted
9991 the port, rolled it in his mouth, swallowed it, looked at his
9992 glass again, smelt the port, tried it, drank it, filled again, and
9993 cross-examined the glass again, until I was as nervous as if I had known
9994 the wine to be telling him something to my disadvantage. Three or four
9995 times I feebly thought I would start conversation; but whenever he saw
9996 me going to ask him anything, he looked at me with his glass in his
9997 hand, and rolling his wine about in his mouth, as if requesting me to
9998 take notice that it was of no use, for he couldn’t answer.
9999
10000 I think Miss Pocket was conscious that the sight of me involved her
10001 in the danger of being goaded to madness, and perhaps tearing off her
10002 cap,--which was a very hideous one, in the nature of a muslin mop,--and
10003 strewing the ground with her hair,--which assuredly had never grown
10004 on her head. She did not appear when we afterwards went up to Miss
10005 Havisham’s room, and we four played at whist. In the interval, Miss
10006 Havisham, in a fantastic way, had put some of the most beautiful jewels
10007 from her dressing-table into Estella’s hair, and about her bosom and
10008 arms; and I saw even my guardian look at her from under his thick
10009 eyebrows, and raise them a little, when her loveliness was before him,
10010 with those rich flushes of glitter and color in it.
10011
10012 Of the manner and extent to which he took our trumps into custody, and
10013 came out with mean little cards at the ends of hands, before which the
10014 glory of our Kings and Queens was utterly abased, I say nothing; nor, of
10015 the feeling that I had, respecting his looking upon us personally in the
10016 light of three very obvious and poor riddles that he had found out long
10017 ago. What I suffered from, was the incompatibility between his cold
10018 presence and my feelings towards Estella. It was not that I knew I could
10019 never bear to speak to him about her, that I knew I could never bear to
10020 hear him creak his boots at her, that I knew I could never bear to see
10021 him wash his hands of her; it was, that my admiration should be within
10022 a foot or two of him,--it was, that my feelings should be in the same
10023 place with him,--that, was the agonizing circumstance.
10024
10025 We played until nine o’clock, and then it was arranged that when Estella
10026 came to London I should be forewarned of her coming and should meet her
10027 at the coach; and then I took leave of her, and touched her and left
10028 her.
10029
10030 My guardian lay at the Boar in the next room to mine. Far into the
10031 night, Miss Havisham’s words, “Love her, love her, love her!” sounded in
10032 my ears. I adapted them for my own repetition, and said to my pillow, “I
10033 love her, I love her, I love her!” hundreds of times. Then, a burst of
10034 gratitude came upon me, that she should be destined for me, once the
10035 blacksmith’s boy. Then I thought if she were, as I feared, by no means
10036 rapturously grateful for that destiny yet, when would she begin to be
10037 interested in me? When should I awaken the heart within her that was
10038 mute and sleeping now?
10039
10040 Ah me! I thought those were high and great emotions. But I never thought
10041 there was anything low and small in my keeping away from Joe, because
10042 I knew she would be contemptuous of him. It was but a day gone, and Joe
10043 had brought the tears into my eyes; they had soon dried, God forgive me!
10044 soon dried.
10045
10046
10047
10048
10049 Chapter XXX
10050
10051 After well considering the matter while I was dressing at the Blue Boar
10052 in the morning, I resolved to tell my guardian that I doubted Orlick’s
10053 being the right sort of man to fill a post of trust at Miss Havisham’s.
10054 “Why of course he is not the right sort of man, Pip,” said my guardian,
10055 comfortably satisfied beforehand on the general head, “because the man
10056 who fills the post of trust never is the right sort of man.” It seemed
10057 quite to put him into spirits to find that this particular post was
10058 not exceptionally held by the right sort of man, and he listened in a
10059 satisfied manner while I told him what knowledge I had of Orlick. “Very
10060 good, Pip,” he observed, when I had concluded, “I’ll go round presently,
10061 and pay our friend off.” Rather alarmed by this summary action, I was
10062 for a little delay, and even hinted that our friend himself might be
10063 difficult to deal with. “Oh no he won’t,” said my guardian, making his
10064 pocket-handkerchief-point, with perfect confidence; “I should like to
10065 see him argue the question with me.”
10066
10067 As we were going back together to London by the midday coach, and as I
10068 breakfasted under such terrors of Pumblechook that I could scarcely hold
10069 my cup, this gave me an opportunity of saying that I wanted a walk, and
10070 that I would go on along the London road while Mr. Jaggers was occupied,
10071 if he would let the coachman know that I would get into my place when
10072 overtaken. I was thus enabled to fly from the Blue Boar immediately
10073 after breakfast. By then making a loop of about a couple of miles into
10074 the open country at the back of Pumblechook’s premises, I got round into
10075 the High Street again, a little beyond that pitfall, and felt myself in
10076 comparative security.
10077
10078 It was interesting to be in the quiet old town once more, and it was not
10079 disagreeable to be here and there suddenly recognized and stared after.
10080 One or two of the tradespeople even darted out of their shops and went
10081 a little way down the street before me, that they might turn, as if they
10082 had forgotten something, and pass me face to face,--on which occasions I
10083 don’t know whether they or I made the worse pretence; they of not doing
10084 it, or I of not seeing it. Still my position was a distinguished one,
10085 and I was not at all dissatisfied with it, until Fate threw me in the
10086 way of that unlimited miscreant, Trabb’s boy.
10087
10088 Casting my eyes along the street at a certain point of my progress, I
10089 beheld Trabb’s boy approaching, lashing himself with an empty blue bag.
10090 Deeming that a serene and unconscious contemplation of him would best
10091 beseem me, and would be most likely to quell his evil mind, I advanced
10092 with that expression of countenance, and was rather congratulating
10093 myself on my success, when suddenly the knees of Trabb’s boy smote
10094 together, his hair uprose, his cap fell off, he trembled violently in
10095 every limb, staggered out into the road, and crying to the populace,
10096 “Hold me! I’m so frightened!” feigned to be in a paroxysm of terror and
10097 contrition, occasioned by the dignity of my appearance. As I passed him,
10098 his teeth loudly chattered in his head, and with every mark of extreme
10099 humiliation, he prostrated himself in the dust.
10100
10101 This was a hard thing to bear, but this was nothing. I had not advanced
10102 another two hundred yards when, to my inexpressible terror, amazement,
10103 and indignation, I again beheld Trabb’s boy approaching. He was coming
10104 round a narrow corner. His blue bag was slung over his shoulder, honest
10105 industry beamed in his eyes, a determination to proceed to Trabb’s with
10106 cheerful briskness was indicated in his gait. With a shock he became
10107 aware of me, and was severely visited as before; but this time his
10108 motion was rotatory, and he staggered round and round me with knees
10109 more afflicted, and with uplifted hands as if beseeching for mercy. His
10110 sufferings were hailed with the greatest joy by a knot of spectators,
10111 and I felt utterly confounded.
10112
10113 I had not got as much further down the street as the post-office, when I
10114 again beheld Trabb’s boy shooting round by a back way. This time, he was
10115 entirely changed. He wore the blue bag in the manner of my great-coat,
10116 and was strutting along the pavement towards me on the opposite side of
10117 the street, attended by a company of delighted young friends to whom he
10118 from time to time exclaimed, with a wave of his hand, “Don’t know yah!”
10119 Words cannot state the amount of aggravation and injury wreaked upon
10120 me by Trabb’s boy, when passing abreast of me, he pulled up his
10121 shirt-collar, twined his side-hair, stuck an arm akimbo, and smirked
10122 extravagantly by, wriggling his elbows and body, and drawling to his
10123 attendants, “Don’t know yah, don’t know yah, ‘pon my soul don’t know
10124 yah!” The disgrace attendant on his immediately afterwards taking
10125 to crowing and pursuing me across the bridge with crows, as from an
10126 exceedingly dejected fowl who had known me when I was a blacksmith,
10127 culminated the disgrace with which I left the town, and was, so to
10128 speak, ejected by it into the open country.
10129
10130 But unless I had taken the life of Trabb’s boy on that occasion, I
10131 really do not even now see what I could have done save endure. To
10132 have struggled with him in the street, or to have exacted any lower
10133 recompense from him than his heart’s best blood, would have been
10134 futile and degrading. Moreover, he was a boy whom no man could hurt; an
10135 invulnerable and dodging serpent who, when chased into a corner, flew
10136 out again between his captor’s legs, scornfully yelping. I wrote,
10137 however, to Mr. Trabb by next day’s post, to say that Mr. Pip must
10138 decline to deal further with one who could so far forget what he owed to
10139 the best interests of society, as to employ a boy who excited Loathing
10140 in every respectable mind.
10141
10142 The coach, with Mr. Jaggers inside, came up in due time, and I took my
10143 box-seat again, and arrived in London safe,--but not sound, for my heart
10144 was gone. As soon as I arrived, I sent a penitential codfish and barrel
10145 of oysters to Joe (as reparation for not having gone myself), and then
10146 went on to Barnard’s Inn.
10147
10148 I found Herbert dining on cold meat, and delighted to welcome me back.
10149 Having despatched The Avenger to the coffee-house for an addition to the
10150 dinner, I felt that I must open my breast that very evening to my friend
10151 and chum. As confidence was out of the question with The Avenger in the
10152 hall, which could merely be regarded in the light of an antechamber to
10153 the keyhole, I sent him to the Play. A better proof of the severity
10154 of my bondage to that taskmaster could scarcely be afforded, than
10155 the degrading shifts to which I was constantly driven to find him
10156 employment. So mean is extremity, that I sometimes sent him to Hyde Park
10157 corner to see what o’clock it was.
10158
10159 Dinner done and we sitting with our feet upon the fender, I said to
10160 Herbert, “My dear Herbert, I have something very particular to tell
10161 you.”
10162
10163 “My dear Handel,” he returned, “I shall esteem and respect your
10164 confidence.”
10165
10166 “It concerns myself, Herbert,” said I, “and one other person.”
10167
10168 Herbert crossed his feet, looked at the fire with his head on one side,
10169 and having looked at it in vain for some time, looked at me because I
10170 didn’t go on.
10171
10172 “Herbert,” said I, laying my hand upon his knee, “I love--I
10173 adore--Estella.”
10174
10175 Instead of being transfixed, Herbert replied in an easy matter-of-course
10176 way, “Exactly. Well?”
10177
10178 “Well, Herbert? Is that all you say? Well?”
10179
10180 “What next, I mean?” said Herbert. “Of course I know that.”
10181
10182 “How do you know it?” said I.
10183
10184 “How do I know it, Handel? Why, from you.”
10185
10186 “I never told you.”
10187
10188 “Told me! You have never told me when you have got your hair cut, but I
10189 have had senses to perceive it. You have always adored her, ever since
10190 I have known you. You brought your adoration and your portmanteau here
10191 together. Told me! Why, you have always told me all day long. When you
10192 told me your own story, you told me plainly that you began adoring her
10193 the first time you saw her, when you were very young indeed.”
10194
10195 “Very well, then,” said I, to whom this was a new and not unwelcome
10196 light, “I have never left off adoring her. And she has come back, a most
10197 beautiful and most elegant creature. And I saw her yesterday. And if I
10198 adored her before, I now doubly adore her.”
10199
10200 “Lucky for you then, Handel,” said Herbert, “that you are picked out for
10201 her and allotted to her. Without encroaching on forbidden ground, we
10202 may venture to say that there can be no doubt between ourselves of
10203 that fact. Have you any idea yet, of Estella’s views on the adoration
10204 question?”
10205
10206 I shook my head gloomily. “Oh! She is thousands of miles away, from me,”
10207 said I.
10208
10209 “Patience, my dear Handel: time enough, time enough. But you have
10210 something more to say?”
10211
10212 “I am ashamed to say it,” I returned, “and yet it’s no worse to say it
10213 than to think it. You call me a lucky fellow. Of course, I am. I was a
10214 blacksmith’s boy but yesterday; I am--what shall I say I am--to-day?”
10215
10216 “Say a good fellow, if you want a phrase,” returned Herbert, smiling,
10217 and clapping his hand on the back of mine--“a good fellow, with
10218 impetuosity and hesitation, boldness and diffidence, action and
10219 dreaming, curiously mixed in him.”
10220
10221 I stopped for a moment to consider whether there really was this mixture
10222 in my character. On the whole, I by no means recognized the analysis,
10223 but thought it not worth disputing.
10224
10225 “When I ask what I am to call myself to-day, Herbert,” I went on, “I
10226 suggest what I have in my thoughts. You say I am lucky. I know I have
10227 done nothing to raise myself in life, and that Fortune alone has raised
10228 me; that is being very lucky. And yet, when I think of Estella--”
10229
10230 (“And when don’t you, you know?” Herbert threw in, with his eyes on the
10231 fire; which I thought kind and sympathetic of him.)
10232
10233 “--Then, my dear Herbert, I cannot tell you how dependent and uncertain
10234 I feel, and how exposed to hundreds of chances. Avoiding forbidden
10235 ground, as you did just now, I may still say that on the constancy of
10236 one person (naming no person) all my expectations depend. And at the
10237 best, how indefinite and unsatisfactory, only to know so vaguely what
10238 they are!” In saying this, I relieved my mind of what had always been
10239 there, more or less, though no doubt most since yesterday.
10240
10241 “Now, Handel,” Herbert replied, in his gay, hopeful way, “it seems to me
10242 that in the despondency of the tender passion, we are looking into our
10243 gift-horse’s mouth with a magnifying-glass. Likewise, it seems to me
10244 that, concentrating our attention on the examination, we altogether
10245 overlook one of the best points of the animal. Didn’t you tell me that
10246 your guardian, Mr. Jaggers, told you in the beginning, that you were
10247 not endowed with expectations only? And even if he had not told you
10248 so,--though that is a very large If, I grant,--could you believe that of
10249 all men in London, Mr. Jaggers is the man to hold his present relations
10250 towards you unless he were sure of his ground?”
10251
10252 I said I could not deny that this was a strong point. I said it (people
10253 often do so, in such cases) like a rather reluctant concession to truth
10254 and justice;--as if I wanted to deny it!
10255
10256 “I should think it was a strong point,” said Herbert, “and I should
10257 think you would be puzzled to imagine a stronger; as to the rest, you
10258 must bide your guardian’s time, and he must bide his client’s time.
10259 You’ll be one-and-twenty before you know where you are, and then perhaps
10260 you’ll get some further enlightenment. At all events, you’ll be nearer
10261 getting it, for it must come at last.”
10262
10263 “What a hopeful disposition you have!” said I, gratefully admiring his
10264 cheery ways.
10265
10266 “I ought to have,” said Herbert, “for I have not much else. I must
10267 acknowledge, by the by, that the good sense of what I have just said is
10268 not my own, but my father’s. The only remark I ever heard him make on
10269 your story, was the final one, “The thing is settled and done, or Mr.
10270 Jaggers would not be in it.” And now before I say anything more about my
10271 father, or my father’s son, and repay confidence with confidence, I want
10272 to make myself seriously disagreeable to you for a moment,--positively
10273 repulsive.”
10274
10275 “You won’t succeed,” said I.
10276
10277 “O yes I shall!” said he. “One, two, three, and now I am in for it.
10278 Handel, my good fellow;”--though he spoke in this light tone, he was
10279 very much in earnest,--“I have been thinking since we have been talking
10280 with our feet on this fender, that Estella surely cannot be a condition
10281 of your inheritance, if she was never referred to by your guardian. Am
10282 I right in so understanding what you have told me, as that he never
10283 referred to her, directly or indirectly, in any way? Never even hinted,
10284 for instance, that your patron might have views as to your marriage
10285 ultimately?”
10286
10287 “Never.”
10288
10289 “Now, Handel, I am quite free from the flavor of sour grapes, upon my
10290 soul and honor! Not being bound to her, can you not detach yourself from
10291 her?--I told you I should be disagreeable.”
10292
10293 I turned my head aside, for, with a rush and a sweep, like the old marsh
10294 winds coming up from the sea, a feeling like that which had subdued
10295 me on the morning when I left the forge, when the mists were solemnly
10296 rising, and when I laid my hand upon the village finger-post, smote upon
10297 my heart again. There was silence between us for a little while.
10298
10299 “Yes; but my dear Handel,” Herbert went on, as if we had been talking,
10300 instead of silent, “its having been so strongly rooted in the breast of
10301 a boy whom nature and circumstances made so romantic, renders it very
10302 serious. Think of her bringing-up, and think of Miss Havisham. Think of
10303 what she is herself (now I am repulsive and you abominate me). This may
10304 lead to miserable things.”
10305
10306 “I know it, Herbert,” said I, with my head still turned away, “but I
10307 can’t help it.”
10308
10309 “You can’t detach yourself?”
10310
10311 “No. Impossible!”
10312
10313 “You can’t try, Handel?”
10314
10315 “No. Impossible!”
10316
10317 “Well!” said Herbert, getting up with a lively shake as if he had
10318 been asleep, and stirring the fire, “now I’ll endeavor to make myself
10319 agreeable again!”
10320
10321 So he went round the room and shook the curtains out, put the chairs
10322 in their places, tidied the books and so forth that were lying about,
10323 looked into the hall, peeped into the letter-box, shut the door, and
10324 came back to his chair by the fire: where he sat down, nursing his left
10325 leg in both arms.
10326
10327 “I was going to say a word or two, Handel, concerning my father and my
10328 father’s son. I am afraid it is scarcely necessary for my father’s son
10329 to remark that my father’s establishment is not particularly brilliant
10330 in its housekeeping.”
10331
10332 “There is always plenty, Herbert,” said I, to say something encouraging.
10333
10334 “O yes! and so the dustman says, I believe, with the strongest approval,
10335 and so does the marine-store shop in the back street. Gravely, Handel,
10336 for the subject is grave enough, you know how it is as well as I do. I
10337 suppose there was a time once when my father had not given matters up;
10338 but if ever there was, the time is gone. May I ask you if you have ever
10339 had an opportunity of remarking, down in your part of the country,
10340 that the children of not exactly suitable marriages are always most
10341 particularly anxious to be married?”
10342
10343 This was such a singular question, that I asked him in return, “Is it
10344 so?”
10345
10346 “I don’t know,” said Herbert, “that’s what I want to know. Because it
10347 is decidedly the case with us. My poor sister Charlotte, who was next me
10348 and died before she was fourteen, was a striking example. Little Jane
10349 is the same. In her desire to be matrimonially established, you
10350 might suppose her to have passed her short existence in the perpetual
10351 contemplation of domestic bliss. Little Alick in a frock has already
10352 made arrangements for his union with a suitable young person at Kew. And
10353 indeed, I think we are all engaged, except the baby.”
10354
10355 “Then you are?” said I.
10356
10357 “I am,” said Herbert; “but it’s a secret.”
10358
10359 I assured him of my keeping the secret, and begged to be favored with
10360 further particulars. He had spoken so sensibly and feelingly of my
10361 weakness that I wanted to know something about his strength.
10362
10363 “May I ask the name?” I said.
10364
10365 “Name of Clara,” said Herbert.
10366
10367 “Live in London?”
10368
10369 “Yes, perhaps I ought to mention,” said Herbert, who had become
10370 curiously crestfallen and meek, since we entered on the interesting
10371 theme, “that she is rather below my mother’s nonsensical family notions.
10372 Her father had to do with the victualling of passenger-ships. I think he
10373 was a species of purser.”
10374
10375 “What is he now?” said I.
10376
10377 “He’s an invalid now,” replied Herbert.
10378
10379 “Living on--?”
10380
10381 “On the first floor,” said Herbert. Which was not at all what I meant,
10382 for I had intended my question to apply to his means. “I have never seen
10383 him, for he has always kept his room overhead, since I have known Clara.
10384 But I have heard him constantly. He makes tremendous rows,--roars, and
10385 pegs at the floor with some frightful instrument.” In looking at me and
10386 then laughing heartily, Herbert for the time recovered his usual lively
10387 manner.
10388
10389 “Don’t you expect to see him?” said I.
10390
10391 “O yes, I constantly expect to see him,” returned Herbert, “because
10392 I never hear him, without expecting him to come tumbling through the
10393 ceiling. But I don’t know how long the rafters may hold.”
10394
10395 When he had once more laughed heartily, he became meek again, and told
10396 me that the moment he began to realize Capital, it was his intention
10397 to marry this young lady. He added as a self-evident proposition,
10398 engendering low spirits, “But you can’t marry, you know, while you’re
10399 looking about you.”
10400
10401 As we contemplated the fire, and as I thought what a difficult vision to
10402 realize this same Capital sometimes was, I put my hands in my pockets.
10403 A folded piece of paper in one of them attracting my attention, I opened
10404 it and found it to be the play-bill I had received from Joe, relative
10405 to the celebrated provincial amateur of Roscian renown. “And bless my
10406 heart,” I involuntarily added aloud, “it’s to-night!”
10407
10408 This changed the subject in an instant, and made us hurriedly resolve
10409 to go to the play. So, when I had pledged myself to comfort and abet
10410 Herbert in the affair of his heart by all practicable and impracticable
10411 means, and when Herbert had told me that his affianced already knew me
10412 by reputation and that I should be presented to her, and when we had
10413 warmly shaken hands upon our mutual confidence, we blew out our candles,
10414 made up our fire, locked our door, and issued forth in quest of Mr.
10415 Wopsle and Denmark.
10416
10417
10418
10419
10420 Chapter XXXI
10421
10422 On our arrival in Denmark, we found the king and queen of that country
10423 elevated in two arm-chairs on a kitchen-table, holding a Court. The
10424 whole of the Danish nobility were in attendance; consisting of a noble
10425 boy in the wash-leather boots of a gigantic ancestor, a venerable Peer
10426 with a dirty face who seemed to have risen from the people late in life,
10427 and the Danish chivalry with a comb in its hair and a pair of white
10428 silk legs, and presenting on the whole a feminine appearance. My gifted
10429 townsman stood gloomily apart, with folded arms, and I could have wished
10430 that his curls and forehead had been more probable.
10431
10432 Several curious little circumstances transpired as the action proceeded.
10433 The late king of the country not only appeared to have been troubled
10434 with a cough at the time of his decease, but to have taken it with him
10435 to the tomb, and to have brought it back. The royal phantom also carried
10436 a ghostly manuscript round its truncheon, to which it had the appearance
10437 of occasionally referring, and that too, with an air of anxiety and a
10438 tendency to lose the place of reference which were suggestive of a state
10439 of mortality. It was this, I conceive, which led to the Shade’s being
10440 advised by the gallery to “turn over!”--a recommendation which it took
10441 extremely ill. It was likewise to be noted of this majestic spirit, that
10442 whereas it always appeared with an air of having been out a long time
10443 and walked an immense distance, it perceptibly came from a closely
10444 contiguous wall. This occasioned its terrors to be received derisively.
10445 The Queen of Denmark, a very buxom lady, though no doubt historically
10446 brazen, was considered by the public to have too much brass about her;
10447 her chin being attached to her diadem by a broad band of that metal (as
10448 if she had a gorgeous toothache), her waist being encircled by another,
10449 and each of her arms by another, so that she was openly mentioned
10450 as “the kettle-drum.” The noble boy in the ancestral boots was
10451 inconsistent, representing himself, as it were in one breath, as an able
10452 seaman, a strolling actor, a grave-digger, a clergyman, and a person
10453 of the utmost importance at a Court fencing-match, on the authority
10454 of whose practised eye and nice discrimination the finest strokes were
10455 judged. This gradually led to a want of toleration for him, and even--on
10456 his being detected in holy orders, and declining to perform the funeral
10457 service--to the general indignation taking the form of nuts. Lastly,
10458 Ophelia was a prey to such slow musical madness, that when, in course of
10459 time, she had taken off her white muslin scarf, folded it up, and buried
10460 it, a sulky man who had been long cooling his impatient nose against an
10461 iron bar in the front row of the gallery, growled, “Now the baby’s put
10462 to bed let’s have supper!” Which, to say the least of it, was out of
10463 keeping.
10464
10465 Upon my unfortunate townsman all these incidents accumulated with
10466 playful effect. Whenever that undecided Prince had to ask a question or
10467 state a doubt, the public helped him out with it. As for example; on the
10468 question whether ‘twas nobler in the mind to suffer, some roared yes,
10469 and some no, and some inclining to both opinions said “Toss up for
10470 it;” and quite a Debating Society arose. When he asked what should such
10471 fellows as he do crawling between earth and heaven, he was encouraged
10472 with loud cries of “Hear, hear!” When he appeared with his stocking
10473 disordered (its disorder expressed, according to usage, by one very neat
10474 fold in the top, which I suppose to be always got up with a flat iron),
10475 a conversation took place in the gallery respecting the paleness of his
10476 leg, and whether it was occasioned by the turn the ghost had given him.
10477 On his taking the recorders,--very like a little black flute that had
10478 just been played in the orchestra and handed out at the door,--he was
10479 called upon unanimously for Rule Britannia. When he recommended the
10480 player not to saw the air thus, the sulky man said, “And don’t you do
10481 it, neither; you’re a deal worse than him!” And I grieve to add that
10482 peals of laughter greeted Mr. Wopsle on every one of these occasions.
10483
10484 But his greatest trials were in the churchyard, which had the appearance
10485 of a primeval forest, with a kind of small ecclesiastical wash-house
10486 on one side, and a turnpike gate on the other. Mr. Wopsle in a
10487 comprehensive black cloak, being descried entering at the turnpike,
10488 the gravedigger was admonished in a friendly way, “Look out! Here’s the
10489 undertaker a coming, to see how you’re a getting on with your work!”
10490 I believe it is well known in a constitutional country that Mr. Wopsle
10491 could not possibly have returned the skull, after moralizing over it,
10492 without dusting his fingers on a white napkin taken from his breast;
10493 but even that innocent and indispensable action did not pass without the
10494 comment, “Wai-ter!” The arrival of the body for interment (in an empty
10495 black box with the lid tumbling open), was the signal for a general
10496 joy, which was much enhanced by the discovery, among the bearers, of
10497 an individual obnoxious to identification. The joy attended Mr. Wopsle
10498 through his struggle with Laertes on the brink of the orchestra and
10499 the grave, and slackened no more until he had tumbled the king off the
10500 kitchen-table, and had died by inches from the ankles upward.
10501
10502 We had made some pale efforts in the beginning to applaud Mr. Wopsle;
10503 but they were too hopeless to be persisted in. Therefore we had sat,
10504 feeling keenly for him, but laughing, nevertheless, from ear to ear. I
10505 laughed in spite of myself all the time, the whole thing was so droll;
10506 and yet I had a latent impression that there was something decidedly
10507 fine in Mr. Wopsle’s elocution,--not for old associations’ sake, I am
10508 afraid, but because it was very slow, very dreary, very uphill and
10509 downhill, and very unlike any way in which any man in any natural
10510 circumstances of life or death ever expressed himself about anything.
10511 When the tragedy was over, and he had been called for and hooted, I said
10512 to Herbert, “Let us go at once, or perhaps we shall meet him.”
10513
10514 We made all the haste we could downstairs, but we were not quick enough
10515 either. Standing at the door was a Jewish man with an unnatural heavy
10516 smear of eyebrow, who caught my eyes as we advanced, and said, when we
10517 came up with him,--
10518
10519 “Mr. Pip and friend?”
10520
10521 Identity of Mr. Pip and friend confessed.
10522
10523 “Mr. Waldengarver,” said the man, “would be glad to have the honor.”
10524
10525 “Waldengarver?” I repeated--when Herbert murmured in my ear, “Probably
10526 Wopsle.”
10527
10528 “Oh!” said I. “Yes. Shall we follow you?”
10529
10530 “A few steps, please.” When we were in a side alley, he turned and
10531 asked, “How did you think he looked?--I dressed him.”
10532
10533 I don’t know what he had looked like, except a funeral; with the
10534 addition of a large Danish sun or star hanging round his neck by a
10535 blue ribbon, that had given him the appearance of being insured in some
10536 extraordinary Fire Office. But I said he had looked very nice.
10537
10538 “When he come to the grave,” said our conductor, “he showed his cloak
10539 beautiful. But, judging from the wing, it looked to me that when he
10540 see the ghost in the queen’s apartment, he might have made more of his
10541 stockings.”
10542
10543 I modestly assented, and we all fell through a little dirty swing door,
10544 into a sort of hot packing-case immediately behind it. Here Mr. Wopsle
10545 was divesting himself of his Danish garments, and here there was just
10546 room for us to look at him over one another’s shoulders, by keeping the
10547 packing-case door, or lid, wide open.
10548
10549 “Gentlemen,” said Mr. Wopsle, “I am proud to see you. I hope, Mr. Pip,
10550 you will excuse my sending round. I had the happiness to know you in
10551 former times, and the Drama has ever had a claim which has ever been
10552 acknowledged, on the noble and the affluent.”
10553
10554 Meanwhile, Mr. Waldengarver, in a frightful perspiration, was trying to
10555 get himself out of his princely sables.
10556
10557 “Skin the stockings off Mr. Waldengarver,” said the owner of that
10558 property, “or you’ll bust ‘em. Bust ‘em, and you’ll bust five-and-thirty
10559 shillings. Shakspeare never was complimented with a finer pair. Keep
10560 quiet in your chair now, and leave ‘em to me.”
10561
10562 With that, he went upon his knees, and began to flay his victim; who, on
10563 the first stocking coming off, would certainly have fallen over backward
10564 with his chair, but for there being no room to fall anyhow.
10565
10566 I had been afraid until then to say a word about the play. But then, Mr.
10567 Waldengarver looked up at us complacently, and said,--
10568
10569 “Gentlemen, how did it seem to you, to go, in front?”
10570
10571 Herbert said from behind (at the same time poking me), “Capitally.” So I
10572 said “Capitally.”
10573
10574 “How did you like my reading of the character, gentlemen?” said Mr.
10575 Waldengarver, almost, if not quite, with patronage.
10576
10577 Herbert said from behind (again poking me), “Massive and concrete.” So I
10578 said boldly, as if I had originated it, and must beg to insist upon it,
10579 “Massive and concrete.”
10580
10581 “I am glad to have your approbation, gentlemen,” said Mr. Waldengarver,
10582 with an air of dignity, in spite of his being ground against the wall at
10583 the time, and holding on by the seat of the chair.
10584
10585 “But I’ll tell you one thing, Mr. Waldengarver,” said the man who was on
10586 his knees, “in which you’re out in your reading. Now mind! I don’t care
10587 who says contrairy; I tell you so. You’re out in your reading of Hamlet
10588 when you get your legs in profile. The last Hamlet as I dressed, made
10589 the same mistakes in his reading at rehearsal, till I got him to put a
10590 large red wafer on each of his shins, and then at that rehearsal (which
10591 was the last) I went in front, sir, to the back of the pit, and whenever
10592 his reading brought him into profile, I called out “I don’t see no
10593 wafers!” And at night his reading was lovely.”
10594
10595 Mr. Waldengarver smiled at me, as much as to say “a faithful
10596 Dependent--I overlook his folly;” and then said aloud, “My view is a
10597 little classic and thoughtful for them here; but they will improve, they
10598 will improve.”
10599
10600 Herbert and I said together, O, no doubt they would improve.
10601
10602 “Did you observe, gentlemen,” said Mr. Waldengarver, “that there was a
10603 man in the gallery who endeavored to cast derision on the service,--I
10604 mean, the representation?”
10605
10606 We basely replied that we rather thought we had noticed such a man. I
10607 added, “He was drunk, no doubt.”
10608
10609 “O dear no, sir,” said Mr. Wopsle, “not drunk. His employer would see to
10610 that, sir. His employer would not allow him to be drunk.”
10611
10612 “You know his employer?” said I.
10613
10614 Mr. Wopsle shut his eyes, and opened them again; performing both
10615 ceremonies very slowly. “You must have observed, gentlemen,” said he,
10616 “an ignorant and a blatant ass, with a rasping throat and a countenance
10617 expressive of low malignity, who went through--I will not say
10618 sustained--the rôle (if I may use a French expression) of Claudius, King
10619 of Denmark. That is his employer, gentlemen. Such is the profession!”
10620
10621 Without distinctly knowing whether I should have been more sorry for Mr.
10622 Wopsle if he had been in despair, I was so sorry for him as it was,
10623 that I took the opportunity of his turning round to have his braces
10624 put on,--which jostled us out at the doorway,--to ask Herbert what he
10625 thought of having him home to supper? Herbert said he thought it would
10626 be kind to do so; therefore I invited him, and he went to Barnard’s
10627 with us, wrapped up to the eyes, and we did our best for him, and he sat
10628 until two o’clock in the morning, reviewing his success and developing
10629 his plans. I forget in detail what they were, but I have a general
10630 recollection that he was to begin with reviving the Drama, and to end
10631 with crushing it; inasmuch as his decease would leave it utterly bereft
10632 and without a chance or hope.
10633
10634 Miserably I went to bed after all, and miserably thought of Estella, and
10635 miserably dreamed that my expectations were all cancelled, and that I
10636 had to give my hand in marriage to Herbert’s Clara, or play Hamlet to
10637 Miss Havisham’s Ghost, before twenty thousand people, without knowing
10638 twenty words of it.
10639
10640
10641
10642
10643 Chapter XXXII
10644
10645 One day when I was busy with my books and Mr. Pocket, I received a note
10646 by the post, the mere outside of which threw me into a great flutter;
10647 for, though I had never seen the handwriting in which it was addressed,
10648 I divined whose hand it was. It had no set beginning, as Dear Mr. Pip,
10649 or Dear Pip, or Dear Sir, or Dear Anything, but ran thus:--
10650
10651 “I am to come to London the day after to-morrow by the midday coach. I
10652 believe it was settled you should meet me? At all events Miss Havisham
10653 has that impression, and I write in obedience to it. She sends you her
10654 regard.
10655
10656 “Yours, ESTELLA.”
10657
10658 If there had been time, I should probably have ordered several suits
10659 of clothes for this occasion; but as there was not, I was fain to be
10660 content with those I had. My appetite vanished instantly, and I knew
10661 no peace or rest until the day arrived. Not that its arrival brought
10662 me either; for, then I was worse than ever, and began haunting the
10663 coach-office in Wood Street, Cheapside, before the coach had left the
10664 Blue Boar in our town. For all that I knew this perfectly well, I still
10665 felt as if it were not safe to let the coach-office be out of my sight
10666 longer than five minutes at a time; and in this condition of unreason I
10667 had performed the first half-hour of a watch of four or five hours, when
10668 Wemmick ran against me.
10669
10670 “Halloa, Mr. Pip,” said he; “how do you do? I should hardly have thought
10671 this was your beat.”
10672
10673 I explained that I was waiting to meet somebody who was coming up by
10674 coach, and I inquired after the Castle and the Aged.
10675
10676 “Both flourishing thankye,” said Wemmick, “and particularly the Aged.
10677 He’s in wonderful feather. He’ll be eighty-two next birthday. I have
10678 a notion of firing eighty-two times, if the neighborhood shouldn’t
10679 complain, and that cannon of mine should prove equal to the pressure.
10680 However, this is not London talk. Where do you think I am going to?”
10681
10682 “To the office?” said I, for he was tending in that direction.
10683
10684 “Next thing to it,” returned Wemmick, “I am going to Newgate. We are in
10685 a banker’s-parcel case just at present, and I have been down the road
10686 taking a squint at the scene of action, and thereupon must have a word
10687 or two with our client.”
10688
10689 “Did your client commit the robbery?” I asked.
10690
10691 “Bless your soul and body, no,” answered Wemmick, very drily. “But he
10692 is accused of it. So might you or I be. Either of us might be accused of
10693 it, you know.”
10694
10695 “Only neither of us is,” I remarked.
10696
10697 “Yah!” said Wemmick, touching me on the breast with his forefinger;
10698 “you’re a deep one, Mr. Pip! Would you like to have a look at Newgate?
10699 Have you time to spare?”
10700
10701 I had so much time to spare, that the proposal came as a relief,
10702 notwithstanding its irreconcilability with my latent desire to keep my
10703 eye on the coach-office. Muttering that I would make the inquiry whether
10704 I had time to walk with him, I went into the office, and ascertained
10705 from the clerk with the nicest precision and much to the trying of his
10706 temper, the earliest moment at which the coach could be expected,--which
10707 I knew beforehand, quite as well as he. I then rejoined Mr. Wemmick, and
10708 affecting to consult my watch, and to be surprised by the information I
10709 had received, accepted his offer.
10710
10711 We were at Newgate in a few minutes, and we passed through the lodge
10712 where some fetters were hanging up on the bare walls among the prison
10713 rules, into the interior of the jail. At that time jails were much
10714 neglected, and the period of exaggerated reaction consequent on
10715 all public wrongdoing--and which is always its heaviest and longest
10716 punishment--was still far off. So, felons were not lodged and fed better
10717 than soldiers (to say nothing of paupers), and seldom set fire to their
10718 prisons with the excusable object of improving the flavor of their soup.
10719 It was visiting time when Wemmick took me in, and a potman was going his
10720 rounds with beer; and the prisoners, behind bars in yards, were buying
10721 beer, and talking to friends; and a frowzy, ugly, disorderly, depressing
10722 scene it was.
10723
10724 It struck me that Wemmick walked among the prisoners much as a gardener
10725 might walk among his plants. This was first put into my head by his
10726 seeing a shoot that had come up in the night, and saying, “What, Captain
10727 Tom? Are you there? Ah, indeed!” and also, “Is that Black Bill behind
10728 the cistern? Why I didn’t look for you these two months; how do you find
10729 yourself?” Equally in his stopping at the bars and attending to
10730 anxious whisperers,--always singly,--Wemmick with his post-office in
10731 an immovable state, looked at them while in conference, as if he were
10732 taking particular notice of the advance they had made, since last
10733 observed, towards coming out in full blow at their trial.
10734
10735 He was highly popular, and I found that he took the familiar department
10736 of Mr. Jaggers’s business; though something of the state of Mr. Jaggers
10737 hung about him too, forbidding approach beyond certain limits. His
10738 personal recognition of each successive client was comprised in a nod,
10739 and in his settling his hat a little easier on his head with both
10740 hands, and then tightening the post-office, and putting his hands in his
10741 pockets. In one or two instances there was a difficulty respecting the
10742 raising of fees, and then Mr. Wemmick, backing as far as possible from
10743 the insufficient money produced, said, “it’s no use, my boy. I’m only
10744 a subordinate. I can’t take it. Don’t go on in that way with a
10745 subordinate. If you are unable to make up your quantum, my boy, you had
10746 better address yourself to a principal; there are plenty of principals
10747 in the profession, you know, and what is not worth the while of one, may
10748 be worth the while of another; that’s my recommendation to you, speaking
10749 as a subordinate. Don’t try on useless measures. Why should you? Now,
10750 who’s next?”
10751
10752 Thus, we walked through Wemmick’s greenhouse, until he turned to me and
10753 said, “Notice the man I shall shake hands with.” I should have done so,
10754 without the preparation, as he had shaken hands with no one yet.
10755
10756 Almost as soon as he had spoken, a portly upright man (whom I can
10757 see now, as I write) in a well-worn olive-colored frock-coat, with a
10758 peculiar pallor overspreading the red in his complexion, and eyes that
10759 went wandering about when he tried to fix them, came up to a corner
10760 of the bars, and put his hand to his hat--which had a greasy and fatty
10761 surface like cold broth--with a half-serious and half-jocose military
10762 salute.
10763
10764 “Colonel, to you!” said Wemmick; “how are you, Colonel?”
10765
10766 “All right, Mr. Wemmick.”
10767
10768 “Everything was done that could be done, but the evidence was too strong
10769 for us, Colonel.”
10770
10771 “Yes, it was too strong, sir,--but I don’t care.”
10772
10773 “No, no,” said Wemmick, coolly, “you don’t care.” Then, turning to me,
10774 “Served His Majesty this man. Was a soldier in the line and bought his
10775 discharge.”
10776
10777 I said, “Indeed?” and the man’s eyes looked at me, and then looked over
10778 my head, and then looked all round me, and then he drew his hand across
10779 his lips and laughed.
10780
10781 “I think I shall be out of this on Monday, sir,” he said to Wemmick.
10782
10783 “Perhaps,” returned my friend, “but there’s no knowing.”
10784
10785 “I am glad to have the chance of bidding you good-bye, Mr. Wemmick,” said
10786 the man, stretching out his hand between two bars.
10787
10788 “Thankye,” said Wemmick, shaking hands with him. “Same to you, Colonel.”
10789
10790 “If what I had upon me when taken had been real, Mr. Wemmick,” said the
10791 man, unwilling to let his hand go, “I should have asked the favor of
10792 your wearing another ring--in acknowledgment of your attentions.”
10793
10794 “I’ll accept the will for the deed,” said Wemmick. “By the by; you were
10795 quite a pigeon-fancier.” The man looked up at the sky. “I am told you
10796 had a remarkable breed of tumblers. Could you commission any friend of
10797 yours to bring me a pair, if you’ve no further use for ‘em?”
10798
10799 “It shall be done, sir.”
10800
10801 “All right,” said Wemmick, “they shall be taken care of. Good afternoon,
10802 Colonel. Good-bye!” They shook hands again, and as we walked away Wemmick
10803 said to me, “A Coiner, a very good workman. The Recorder’s report is
10804 made to-day, and he is sure to be executed on Monday. Still you see, as
10805 far as it goes, a pair of pigeons are portable property all the same.”
10806 With that, he looked back, and nodded at this dead plant, and then cast
10807 his eyes about him in walking out of the yard, as if he were considering
10808 what other pot would go best in its place.
10809
10810 As we came out of the prison through the lodge, I found that the great
10811 importance of my guardian was appreciated by the turnkeys, no less
10812 than by those whom they held in charge. “Well, Mr. Wemmick,” said the
10813 turnkey, who kept us between the two studded and spiked lodge gates,
10814 and who carefully locked one before he unlocked the other, “what’s Mr.
10815 Jaggers going to do with that water-side murder? Is he going to make it
10816 manslaughter, or what’s he going to make of it?”
10817
10818 “Why don’t you ask him?” returned Wemmick.
10819
10820 “O yes, I dare say!” said the turnkey.
10821
10822 “Now, that’s the way with them here, Mr. Pip,” remarked Wemmick, turning
10823 to me with his post-office elongated. “They don’t mind what they ask of
10824 me, the subordinate; but you’ll never catch ‘em asking any questions of
10825 my principal.”
10826
10827 “Is this young gentleman one of the ‘prentices or articled ones of your
10828 office?” asked the turnkey, with a grin at Mr. Wemmick’s humor.
10829
10830 “There he goes again, you see!” cried Wemmick, “I told you so! Asks
10831 another question of the subordinate before his first is dry! Well,
10832 supposing Mr. Pip is one of them?”
10833
10834 “Why then,” said the turnkey, grinning again, “he knows what Mr. Jaggers
10835 is.”
10836
10837 “Yah!” cried Wemmick, suddenly hitting out at the turnkey in a facetious
10838 way, “you’re dumb as one of your own keys when you have to do with my
10839 principal, you know you are. Let us out, you old fox, or I’ll get him to
10840 bring an action against you for false imprisonment.”
10841
10842 The turnkey laughed, and gave us good day, and stood laughing at us over
10843 the spikes of the wicket when we descended the steps into the street.
10844
10845 “Mind you, Mr. Pip,” said Wemmick, gravely in my ear, as he took my arm
10846 to be more confidential; “I don’t know that Mr. Jaggers does a better
10847 thing than the way in which he keeps himself so high. He’s always so
10848 high. His constant height is of a piece with his immense abilities. That
10849 Colonel durst no more take leave of him, than that turnkey durst ask him
10850 his intentions respecting a case. Then, between his height and them, he
10851 slips in his subordinate,--don’t you see?--and so he has ‘em, soul and
10852 body.”
10853
10854 I was very much impressed, and not for the first time, by my guardian’s
10855 subtlety. To confess the truth, I very heartily wished, and not for the
10856 first time, that I had had some other guardian of minor abilities.
10857
10858 Mr. Wemmick and I parted at the office in Little Britain, where
10859 suppliants for Mr. Jaggers’s notice were lingering about as usual, and I
10860 returned to my watch in the street of the coach-office, with some three
10861 hours on hand. I consumed the whole time in thinking how strange it
10862 was that I should be encompassed by all this taint of prison and crime;
10863 that, in my childhood out on our lonely marshes on a winter evening, I
10864 should have first encountered it; that, it should have reappeared on two
10865 occasions, starting out like a stain that was faded but not gone; that,
10866 it should in this new way pervade my fortune and advancement. While my
10867 mind was thus engaged, I thought of the beautiful young Estella, proud
10868 and refined, coming towards me, and I thought with absolute abhorrence
10869 of the contrast between the jail and her. I wished that Wemmick had not
10870 met me, or that I had not yielded to him and gone with him, so that,
10871 of all days in the year on this day, I might not have had Newgate in
10872 my breath and on my clothes. I beat the prison dust off my feet as I
10873 sauntered to and fro, and I shook it out of my dress, and I exhaled
10874 its air from my lungs. So contaminated did I feel, remembering who was
10875 coming, that the coach came quickly after all, and I was not yet free
10876 from the soiling consciousness of Mr. Wemmick’s conservatory, when I saw
10877 her face at the coach window and her hand waving to me.
10878
10879 What was the nameless shadow which again in that one instant had passed?
10880
10881
10882
10883
10884 Chapter XXXIII
10885
10886 In her furred travelling-dress, Estella seemed more delicately beautiful
10887 than she had ever seemed yet, even in my eyes. Her manner was more
10888 winning than she had cared to let it be to me before, and I thought I
10889 saw Miss Havisham’s influence in the change.
10890
10891 We stood in the Inn Yard while she pointed out her luggage to me, and
10892 when it was all collected I remembered--having forgotten everything but
10893 herself in the meanwhile--that I knew nothing of her destination.
10894
10895 “I am going to Richmond,” she told me. “Our lesson is, that there are
10896 two Richmonds, one in Surrey and one in Yorkshire, and that mine is the
10897 Surrey Richmond. The distance is ten miles. I am to have a carriage, and
10898 you are to take me. This is my purse, and you are to pay my charges out
10899 of it. O, you must take the purse! We have no choice, you and I, but to
10900 obey our instructions. We are not free to follow our own devices, you
10901 and I.”
10902
10903 As she looked at me in giving me the purse, I hoped there was an
10904 inner meaning in her words. She said them slightingly, but not with
10905 displeasure.
10906
10907 “A carriage will have to be sent for, Estella. Will you rest here a
10908 little?”
10909
10910 “Yes, I am to rest here a little, and I am to drink some tea, and you
10911 are to take care of me the while.”
10912
10913 She drew her arm through mine, as if it must be done, and I requested a
10914 waiter who had been staring at the coach like a man who had never seen
10915 such a thing in his life, to show us a private sitting-room. Upon that,
10916 he pulled out a napkin, as if it were a magic clew without which he
10917 couldn’t find the way upstairs, and led us to the black hole of the
10918 establishment, fitted up with a diminishing mirror (quite a superfluous
10919 article, considering the hole’s proportions), an anchovy sauce-cruet,
10920 and somebody’s pattens. On my objecting to this retreat, he took us into
10921 another room with a dinner-table for thirty, and in the grate a scorched
10922 leaf of a copy-book under a bushel of coal-dust. Having looked at this
10923 extinct conflagration and shaken his head, he took my order; which,
10924 proving to be merely, “Some tea for the lady,” sent him out of the room
10925 in a very low state of mind.
10926
10927 I was, and I am, sensible that the air of this chamber, in its strong
10928 combination of stable with soup-stock, might have led one to infer that
10929 the coaching department was not doing well, and that the enterprising
10930 proprietor was boiling down the horses for the refreshment department.
10931 Yet the room was all in all to me, Estella being in it. I thought that
10932 with her I could have been happy there for life. (I was not at all happy
10933 there at the time, observe, and I knew it well.)
10934
10935 “Where are you going to, at Richmond?” I asked Estella.
10936
10937 “I am going to live,” said she, “at a great expense, with a lady there,
10938 who has the power--or says she has--of taking me about, and introducing
10939 me, and showing people to me and showing me to people.”
10940
10941 “I suppose you will be glad of variety and admiration?”
10942
10943 “Yes, I suppose so.”
10944
10945 She answered so carelessly, that I said, “You speak of yourself as if
10946 you were some one else.”
10947
10948 “Where did you learn how I speak of others? Come, come,” said Estella,
10949 smiling delightfully, “you must not expect me to go to school to you; I
10950 must talk in my own way. How do you thrive with Mr. Pocket?”
10951
10952 “I live quite pleasantly there; at least--” It appeared to me that I was
10953 losing a chance.
10954
10955 “At least?” repeated Estella.
10956
10957 “As pleasantly as I could anywhere, away from you.”
10958
10959 “You silly boy,” said Estella, quite composedly, “how can you talk such
10960 nonsense? Your friend Mr. Matthew, I believe, is superior to the rest of
10961 his family?”
10962
10963 “Very superior indeed. He is nobody’s enemy--”
10964
10965 “Don’t add but his own,” interposed Estella, “for I hate that class of
10966 man. But he really is disinterested, and above small jealousy and spite,
10967 I have heard?”
10968
10969 “I am sure I have every reason to say so.”
10970
10971 “You have not every reason to say so of the rest of his people,” said
10972 Estella, nodding at me with an expression of face that was at once
10973 grave and rallying, “for they beset Miss Havisham with reports and
10974 insinuations to your disadvantage. They watch you, misrepresent you,
10975 write letters about you (anonymous sometimes), and you are the torment
10976 and the occupation of their lives. You can scarcely realize to yourself
10977 the hatred those people feel for you.”
10978
10979 “They do me no harm, I hope?”
10980
10981 Instead of answering, Estella burst out laughing. This was very singular
10982 to me, and I looked at her in considerable perplexity. When she left
10983 off--and she had not laughed languidly, but with real enjoyment--I said,
10984 in my diffident way with her,--
10985
10986 “I hope I may suppose that you would not be amused if they did me any
10987 harm.”
10988
10989 “No, no you may be sure of that,” said Estella. “You may be certain that
10990 I laugh because they fail. O, those people with Miss Havisham, and the
10991 tortures they undergo!” She laughed again, and even now when she had
10992 told me why, her laughter was very singular to me, for I could not
10993 doubt its being genuine, and yet it seemed too much for the occasion.
10994 I thought there must really be something more here than I knew; she saw
10995 the thought in my mind, and answered it.
10996
10997 “It is not easy for even you.” said Estella, “to know what satisfaction
10998 it gives me to see those people thwarted, or what an enjoyable sense of
10999 the ridiculous I have when they are made ridiculous. For you were not
11000 brought up in that strange house from a mere baby. I was. You had not
11001 your little wits sharpened by their intriguing against you, suppressed
11002 and defenceless, under the mask of sympathy and pity and what not that
11003 is soft and soothing. I had. You did not gradually open your round
11004 childish eyes wider and wider to the discovery of that impostor of a
11005 woman who calculates her stores of peace of mind for when she wakes up
11006 in the night. I did.”
11007
11008 It was no laughing matter with Estella now, nor was she summoning these
11009 remembrances from any shallow place. I would not have been the cause of
11010 that look of hers for all my expectations in a heap.
11011
11012 “Two things I can tell you,” said Estella. “First, notwithstanding the
11013 proverb that constant dropping will wear away a stone, you may set
11014 your mind at rest that these people never will--never would, in hundred
11015 years--impair your ground with Miss Havisham, in any particular, great
11016 or small. Second, I am beholden to you as the cause of their being so
11017 busy and so mean in vain, and there is my hand upon it.”
11018
11019 As she gave it to me playfully,--for her darker mood had been but
11020 Momentary,--I held it and put it to my lips. “You ridiculous boy,” said
11021 Estella, “will you never take warning? Or do you kiss my hand in the
11022 same spirit in which I once let you kiss my cheek?”
11023
11024 “What spirit was that?” said I.
11025
11026 “I must think a moment. A spirit of contempt for the fawners and
11027 plotters.”
11028
11029 “If I say yes, may I kiss the cheek again?”
11030
11031 “You should have asked before you touched the hand. But, yes, if you
11032 like.”
11033
11034 I leaned down, and her calm face was like a statue’s. “Now,” said
11035 Estella, gliding away the instant I touched her cheek, “you are to take
11036 care that I have some tea, and you are to take me to Richmond.”
11037
11038 Her reverting to this tone as if our association were forced upon
11039 us, and we were mere puppets, gave me pain; but everything in our
11040 intercourse did give me pain. Whatever her tone with me happened to be,
11041 I could put no trust in it, and build no hope on it; and yet I went on
11042 against trust and against hope. Why repeat it a thousand times? So it
11043 always was.
11044
11045 I rang for the tea, and the waiter, reappearing with his magic clew,
11046 brought in by degrees some fifty adjuncts to that refreshment, but of
11047 tea not a glimpse. A teaboard, cups and saucers, plates, knives and
11048 forks (including carvers), spoons (various), saltcellars, a meek little
11049 muffin confined with the utmost precaution under a strong iron cover,
11050 Moses in the bulrushes typified by a soft bit of butter in a quantity of
11051 parsley, a pale loaf with a powdered head, two proof impressions of
11052 the bars of the kitchen fireplace on triangular bits of bread, and
11053 ultimately a fat family urn; which the waiter staggered in with,
11054 expressing in his countenance burden and suffering. After a prolonged
11055 absence at this stage of the entertainment, he at length came back with
11056 a casket of precious appearance containing twigs. These I steeped in hot
11057 water, and so from the whole of these appliances extracted one cup of I
11058 don’t know what for Estella.
11059
11060 The bill paid, and the waiter remembered, and the ostler not forgotten,
11061 and the chambermaid taken into consideration,--in a word, the whole
11062 house bribed into a state of contempt and animosity, and Estella’s purse
11063 much lightened,--we got into our post-coach and drove away. Turning into
11064 Cheapside and rattling up Newgate Street, we were soon under the walls
11065 of which I was so ashamed.
11066
11067 “What place is that?” Estella asked me.
11068
11069 I made a foolish pretence of not at first recognizing it, and then
11070 told her. As she looked at it, and drew in her head again,
11071 murmuring, “Wretches!” I would not have confessed to my visit for any
11072 consideration.
11073
11074 “Mr. Jaggers,” said I, by way of putting it neatly on somebody else,
11075 “has the reputation of being more in the secrets of that dismal place
11076 than any man in London.”
11077
11078 “He is more in the secrets of every place, I think,” said Estella, in a
11079 low voice.
11080
11081 “You have been accustomed to see him often, I suppose?”
11082
11083 “I have been accustomed to see him at uncertain intervals, ever since
11084 I can remember. But I know him no better now, than I did before I could
11085 speak plainly. What is your own experience of him? Do you advance with
11086 him?”
11087
11088 “Once habituated to his distrustful manner,” said I, “I have done very
11089 well.”
11090
11091 “Are you intimate?”
11092
11093 “I have dined with him at his private house.”
11094
11095 “I fancy,” said Estella, shrinking “that must be a curious place.”
11096
11097 “It is a curious place.”
11098
11099 I should have been chary of discussing my guardian too freely even with
11100 her; but I should have gone on with the subject so far as to describe
11101 the dinner in Gerrard Street, if we had not then come into a sudden
11102 glare of gas. It seemed, while it lasted, to be all alight and alive
11103 with that inexplicable feeling I had had before; and when we were out of
11104 it, I was as much dazed for a few moments as if I had been in lightning.
11105
11106 So we fell into other talk, and it was principally about the way by
11107 which we were travelling, and about what parts of London lay on this
11108 side of it, and what on that. The great city was almost new to her, she
11109 told me, for she had never left Miss Havisham’s neighborhood until she
11110 had gone to France, and she had merely passed through London then in
11111 going and returning. I asked her if my guardian had any charge of her
11112 while she remained here? To that she emphatically said “God forbid!” and
11113 no more.
11114
11115 It was impossible for me to avoid seeing that she cared to attract me;
11116 that she made herself winning, and would have won me even if the task
11117 had needed pains. Yet this made me none the happier, for even if she had
11118 not taken that tone of our being disposed of by others, I should have
11119 felt that she held my heart in her hand because she wilfully chose to do
11120 it, and not because it would have wrung any tenderness in her to crush
11121 it and throw it away.
11122
11123 When we passed through Hammersmith, I showed her where Mr. Matthew
11124 Pocket lived, and said it was no great way from Richmond, and that I
11125 hoped I should see her sometimes.
11126
11127 “O yes, you are to see me; you are to come when you think proper; you
11128 are to be mentioned to the family; indeed you are already mentioned.”
11129
11130 I inquired was it a large household she was going to be a member of?
11131
11132 “No; there are only two; mother and daughter. The mother is a lady of
11133 some station, though not averse to increasing her income.”
11134
11135 “I wonder Miss Havisham could part with you again so soon.”
11136
11137 “It is a part of Miss Havisham’s plans for me, Pip,” said Estella, with
11138 a sigh, as if she were tired; “I am to write to her constantly and see
11139 her regularly and report how I go on,--I and the jewels,--for they are
11140 nearly all mine now.”
11141
11142 It was the first time she had ever called me by my name. Of course she
11143 did so purposely, and knew that I should treasure it up.
11144
11145 We came to Richmond all too soon, and our destination there was a house
11146 by the green,--a staid old house, where hoops and powder and patches,
11147 embroidered coats, rolled stockings, ruffles and swords, had had their
11148 court days many a time. Some ancient trees before the house were still
11149 cut into fashions as formal and unnatural as the hoops and wigs and
11150 stiff skirts; but their own allotted places in the great procession of
11151 the dead were not far off, and they would soon drop into them and go the
11152 silent way of the rest.
11153
11154 A bell with an old voice--which I dare say in its time had often said
11155 to the house, Here is the green farthingale, Here is the diamond-hilted
11156 sword, Here are the shoes with red heels and the blue solitaire--sounded
11157 gravely in the moonlight, and two cherry-colored maids came fluttering
11158 out to receive Estella. The doorway soon absorbed her boxes, and she
11159 gave me her hand and a smile, and said good night, and was absorbed
11160 likewise. And still I stood looking at the house, thinking how happy I
11161 should be if I lived there with her, and knowing that I never was happy
11162 with her, but always miserable.
11163
11164 I got into the carriage to be taken back to Hammersmith, and I got in
11165 with a bad heart-ache, and I got out with a worse heart-ache. At our
11166 own door, I found little Jane Pocket coming home from a little party
11167 escorted by her little lover; and I envied her little lover, in spite of
11168 his being subject to Flopson.
11169
11170 Mr. Pocket was out lecturing; for, he was a most delightful lecturer on
11171 domestic economy, and his treatises on the management of children and
11172 servants were considered the very best text-books on those themes. But
11173 Mrs. Pocket was at home, and was in a little difficulty, on account of
11174 the baby’s having been accommodated with a needle-case to keep him quiet
11175 during the unaccountable absence (with a relative in the Foot Guards)
11176 of Millers. And more needles were missing than it could be regarded
11177 as quite wholesome for a patient of such tender years either to apply
11178 externally or to take as a tonic.
11179
11180 Mr. Pocket being justly celebrated for giving most excellent practical
11181 advice, and for having a clear and sound perception of things and a
11182 highly judicious mind, I had some notion in my heart-ache of begging him
11183 to accept my confidence. But happening to look up at Mrs. Pocket as she
11184 sat reading her book of dignities after prescribing Bed as a sovereign
11185 remedy for baby, I thought--Well--No, I wouldn’t.
11186
11187
11188
11189
11190 Chapter XXXIV
11191
11192 As I had grown accustomed to my expectations, I had insensibly begun to
11193 notice their effect upon myself and those around me. Their influence on
11194 my own character I disguised from my recognition as much as possible,
11195 but I knew very well that it was not all good. I lived in a state of
11196 chronic uneasiness respecting my behavior to Joe. My conscience was not
11197 by any means comfortable about Biddy. When I woke up in the night,--like
11198 Camilla,--I used to think, with a weariness on my spirits, that I should
11199 have been happier and better if I had never seen Miss Havisham’s face,
11200 and had risen to manhood content to be partners with Joe in the honest
11201 old forge. Many a time of an evening, when I sat alone looking at the
11202 fire, I thought, after all there was no fire like the forge fire and the
11203 kitchen fire at home.
11204
11205 Yet Estella was so inseparable from all my restlessness and disquiet of
11206 mind, that I really fell into confusion as to the limits of my own part
11207 in its production. That is to say, supposing I had had no expectations,
11208 and yet had had Estella to think of, I could not make out to my
11209 satisfaction that I should have done much better. Now, concerning the
11210 influence of my position on others, I was in no such difficulty, and so
11211 I perceived--though dimly enough perhaps--that it was not beneficial
11212 to anybody, and, above all, that it was not beneficial to Herbert.
11213 My lavish habits led his easy nature into expenses that he could not
11214 afford, corrupted the simplicity of his life, and disturbed his peace
11215 with anxieties and regrets. I was not at all remorseful for having
11216 unwittingly set those other branches of the Pocket family to the poor
11217 arts they practised; because such littlenesses were their natural
11218 bent, and would have been evoked by anybody else, if I had left them
11219 slumbering. But Herbert’s was a very different case, and it often caused
11220 me a twinge to think that I had done him evil service in crowding his
11221 sparely furnished chambers with incongruous upholstery work, and placing
11222 the Canary-breasted Avenger at his disposal.
11223
11224 So now, as an infallible way of making little ease great ease, I began
11225 to contract a quantity of debt. I could hardly begin but Herbert
11226 must begin too, so he soon followed. At Startop’s suggestion, we put
11227 ourselves down for election into a club called The Finches of the Grove:
11228 the object of which institution I have never divined, if it were not
11229 that the members should dine expensively once a fortnight, to quarrel
11230 among themselves as much as possible after dinner, and to cause six
11231 waiters to get drunk on the stairs. I know that these gratifying social
11232 ends were so invariably accomplished, that Herbert and I understood
11233 nothing else to be referred to in the first standing toast of the
11234 society: which ran “Gentlemen, may the present promotion of good feeling
11235 ever reign predominant among the Finches of the Grove.”
11236
11237 The Finches spent their money foolishly (the Hotel we dined at was
11238 in Covent Garden), and the first Finch I saw when I had the honor of
11239 joining the Grove was Bentley Drummle, at that time floundering about
11240 town in a cab of his own, and doing a great deal of damage to the posts
11241 at the street corners. Occasionally, he shot himself out of his equipage
11242 headforemost over the apron; and I saw him on one occasion deliver
11243 himself at the door of the Grove in this unintentional way--like coals.
11244 But here I anticipate a little, for I was not a Finch, and could not be,
11245 according to the sacred laws of the society, until I came of age.
11246
11247 In my confidence in my own resources, I would willingly have taken
11248 Herbert’s expenses on myself; but Herbert was proud, and I could make
11249 no such proposal to him. So he got into difficulties in every direction,
11250 and continued to look about him. When we gradually fell into keeping
11251 late hours and late company, I noticed that he looked about him with a
11252 desponding eye at breakfast-time; that he began to look about him more
11253 hopefully about mid-day; that he drooped when he came into dinner;
11254 that he seemed to descry Capital in the distance, rather clearly, after
11255 dinner; that he all but realized Capital towards midnight; and that at
11256 about two o’clock in the morning, he became so deeply despondent again
11257 as to talk of buying a rifle and going to America, with a general
11258 purpose of compelling buffaloes to make his fortune.
11259
11260 I was usually at Hammersmith about half the week, and when I was at
11261 Hammersmith I haunted Richmond, whereof separately by and by. Herbert
11262 would often come to Hammersmith when I was there, and I think at those
11263 seasons his father would occasionally have some passing perception that
11264 the opening he was looking for, had not appeared yet. But in the general
11265 tumbling up of the family, his tumbling out in life somewhere, was
11266 a thing to transact itself somehow. In the meantime Mr. Pocket grew
11267 grayer, and tried oftener to lift himself out of his perplexities by the
11268 hair. While Mrs. Pocket tripped up the family with her footstool, read
11269 her book of dignities, lost her pocket-handkerchief, told us about her
11270 grandpapa, and taught the young idea how to shoot, by shooting it into
11271 bed whenever it attracted her notice.
11272
11273 As I am now generalizing a period of my life with the object of clearing
11274 my way before me, I can scarcely do so better than by at once completing
11275 the description of our usual manners and customs at Barnard’s Inn.
11276
11277 We spent as much money as we could, and got as little for it as people
11278 could make up their minds to give us. We were always more or less
11279 miserable, and most of our acquaintance were in the same condition.
11280 There was a gay fiction among us that we were constantly enjoying
11281 ourselves, and a skeleton truth that we never did. To the best of my
11282 belief, our case was in the last aspect a rather common one.
11283
11284 Every morning, with an air ever new, Herbert went into the City to look
11285 about him. I often paid him a visit in the dark back-room in which
11286 he consorted with an ink-jar, a hat-peg, a coal-box, a string-box, an
11287 almanac, a desk and stool, and a ruler; and I do not remember that I
11288 ever saw him do anything else but look about him. If we all did what
11289 we undertake to do, as faithfully as Herbert did, we might live in a
11290 Republic of the Virtues. He had nothing else to do, poor fellow, except
11291 at a certain hour of every afternoon to “go to Lloyd’s”--in observance
11292 of a ceremony of seeing his principal, I think. He never did anything
11293 else in connection with Lloyd’s that I could find out, except come back
11294 again. When he felt his case unusually serious, and that he positively
11295 must find an opening, he would go on ‘Change at a busy time, and walk in
11296 and out, in a kind of gloomy country dance figure, among the assembled
11297 magnates. “For,” says Herbert to me, coming home to dinner on one
11298 of those special occasions, “I find the truth to be, Handel, that an
11299 opening won’t come to one, but one must go to it,--so I have been.”
11300
11301 If we had been less attached to one another, I think we must have hated
11302 one another regularly every morning. I detested the chambers beyond
11303 expression at that period of repentance, and could not endure the
11304 sight of the Avenger’s livery; which had a more expensive and a
11305 less remunerative appearance then than at any other time in the
11306 four-and-twenty hours. As we got more and more into debt, breakfast
11307 became a hollower and hollower form, and, being on one occasion at
11308 breakfast-time threatened (by letter) with legal proceedings, “not
11309 unwholly unconnected,” as my local paper might put it, “with jewelery,”
11310 I went so far as to seize the Avenger by his blue collar and shake
11311 him off his feet,--so that he was actually in the air, like a booted
11312 Cupid,--for presuming to suppose that we wanted a roll.
11313
11314 At certain times--meaning at uncertain times, for they depended on our
11315 humor--I would say to Herbert, as if it were a remarkable discovery,--
11316
11317 “My dear Herbert, we are getting on badly.”
11318
11319 “My dear Handel,” Herbert would say to me, in all sincerity, “if you will
11320 believe me, those very words were on my lips, by a strange coincidence.”
11321
11322 “Then, Herbert,” I would respond, “let us look into our affairs.”
11323
11324 We always derived profound satisfaction from making an appointment for
11325 this purpose. I always thought this was business, this was the way to
11326 confront the thing, this was the way to take the foe by the throat. And
11327 I know Herbert thought so too.
11328
11329 We ordered something rather special for dinner, with a bottle of
11330 something similarly out of the common way, in order that our minds might
11331 be fortified for the occasion, and we might come well up to the mark.
11332 Dinner over, we produced a bundle of pens, a copious supply of ink, and
11333 a goodly show of writing and blotting paper. For there was something
11334 very comfortable in having plenty of stationery.
11335
11336 I would then take a sheet of paper, and write across the top of it, in a
11337 neat hand, the heading, “Memorandum of Pip’s debts”; with Barnard’s Inn
11338 and the date very carefully added. Herbert would also take a sheet of
11339 paper, and write across it with similar formalities, “Memorandum of
11340 Herbert’s debts.”
11341
11342 Each of us would then refer to a confused heap of papers at his side,
11343 which had been thrown into drawers, worn into holes in pockets, half
11344 burnt in lighting candles, stuck for weeks into the looking-glass, and
11345 otherwise damaged. The sound of our pens going refreshed us exceedingly,
11346 insomuch that I sometimes found it difficult to distinguish between this
11347 edifying business proceeding and actually paying the money. In point of
11348 meritorious character, the two things seemed about equal.
11349
11350 When we had written a little while, I would ask Herbert how he got on?
11351 Herbert probably would have been scratching his head in a most rueful
11352 manner at the sight of his accumulating figures.
11353
11354 “They are mounting up, Handel,” Herbert would say; “upon my life, they
11355 are mounting up.”
11356
11357 “Be firm, Herbert,” I would retort, plying my own pen with great
11358 assiduity. “Look the thing in the face. Look into your affairs. Stare
11359 them out of countenance.”
11360
11361 “So I would, Handel, only they are staring me out of countenance.”
11362
11363 However, my determined manner would have its effect, and Herbert would
11364 fall to work again. After a time he would give up once more, on the plea
11365 that he had not got Cobbs’s bill, or Lobbs’s, or Nobbs’s, as the case
11366 might be.
11367
11368 “Then, Herbert, estimate; estimate it in round numbers, and put it
11369 down.”
11370
11371 “What a fellow of resource you are!” my friend would reply, with
11372 admiration. “Really your business powers are very remarkable.”
11373
11374 I thought so too. I established with myself, on these occasions,
11375 the reputation of a first-rate man of business,--prompt, decisive,
11376 energetic, clear, cool-headed. When I had got all my responsibilities
11377 down upon my list, I compared each with the bill, and ticked it off. My
11378 self-approval when I ticked an entry was quite a luxurious sensation.
11379 When I had no more ticks to make, I folded all my bills up uniformly,
11380 docketed each on the back, and tied the whole into a symmetrical
11381 bundle. Then I did the same for Herbert (who modestly said he had not my
11382 administrative genius), and felt that I had brought his affairs into a
11383 focus for him.
11384
11385 My business habits had one other bright feature, which I called “leaving
11386 a Margin.” For example; supposing Herbert’s debts to be one hundred and
11387 sixty-four pounds four-and-twopence, I would say, “Leave a margin, and
11388 put them down at two hundred.” Or, supposing my own to be four times as
11389 much, I would leave a margin, and put them down at seven hundred. I had
11390 the highest opinion of the wisdom of this same Margin, but I am bound
11391 to acknowledge that on looking back, I deem it to have been an expensive
11392 device. For, we always ran into new debt immediately, to the full extent
11393 of the margin, and sometimes, in the sense of freedom and solvency it
11394 imparted, got pretty far on into another margin.
11395
11396 But there was a calm, a rest, a virtuous hush, consequent on these
11397 examinations of our affairs that gave me, for the time, an admirable
11398 opinion of myself. Soothed by my exertions, my method, and Herbert’s
11399 compliments, I would sit with his symmetrical bundle and my own on the
11400 table before me among the stationary, and feel like a Bank of some sort,
11401 rather than a private individual.
11402
11403 We shut our outer door on these solemn occasions, in order that we might
11404 not be interrupted. I had fallen into my serene state one evening, when
11405 we heard a letter dropped through the slit in the said door, and fall on
11406 the ground. “It’s for you, Handel,” said Herbert, going out and coming
11407 back with it, “and I hope there is nothing the matter.” This was in
11408 allusion to its heavy black seal and border.
11409
11410 The letter was signed Trabb & Co., and its contents were simply, that
11411 I was an honored sir, and that they begged to inform me that Mrs. J.
11412 Gargery had departed this life on Monday last at twenty minutes past six
11413 in the evening, and that my attendance was requested at the interment on
11414 Monday next at three o’clock in the afternoon.
11415
11416
11417
11418
11419 Chapter XXXV
11420
11421 It was the first time that a grave had opened in my road of life, and
11422 the gap it made in the smooth ground was wonderful. The figure of my
11423 sister in her chair by the kitchen fire, haunted me night and day. That
11424 the place could possibly be, without her, was something my mind seemed
11425 unable to compass; and whereas she had seldom or never been in my
11426 thoughts of late, I had now the strangest ideas that she was coming
11427 towards me in the street, or that she would presently knock at the door.
11428 In my rooms too, with which she had never been at all associated, there
11429 was at once the blankness of death and a perpetual suggestion of the
11430 sound of her voice or the turn of her face or figure, as if she were
11431 still alive and had been often there.
11432
11433 Whatever my fortunes might have been, I could scarcely have recalled my
11434 sister with much tenderness. But I suppose there is a shock of regret
11435 which may exist without much tenderness. Under its influence (and
11436 perhaps to make up for the want of the softer feeling) I was seized with
11437 a violent indignation against the assailant from whom she had suffered
11438 so much; and I felt that on sufficient proof I could have revengefully
11439 pursued Orlick, or any one else, to the last extremity.
11440
11441 Having written to Joe, to offer him consolation, and to assure him
11442 that I would come to the funeral, I passed the intermediate days in
11443 the curious state of mind I have glanced at. I went down early in the
11444 morning, and alighted at the Blue Boar in good time to walk over to the
11445 forge.
11446
11447 It was fine summer weather again, and, as I walked along, the times
11448 when I was a little helpless creature, and my sister did not spare me,
11449 vividly returned. But they returned with a gentle tone upon them that
11450 softened even the edge of Tickler. For now, the very breath of the beans
11451 and clover whispered to my heart that the day must come when it would
11452 be well for my memory that others walking in the sunshine should be
11453 softened as they thought of me.
11454
11455 At last I came within sight of the house, and saw that Trabb and Co. had
11456 put in a funereal execution and taken possession. Two dismally absurd
11457 persons, each ostentatiously exhibiting a crutch done up in a black
11458 bandage,--as if that instrument could possibly communicate any comfort
11459 to anybody,--were posted at the front door; and in one of them I
11460 recognized a postboy discharged from the Boar for turning a young couple
11461 into a sawpit on their bridal morning, in consequence of intoxication
11462 rendering it necessary for him to ride his horse clasped round the neck
11463 with both arms. All the children of the village, and most of the women,
11464 were admiring these sable warders and the closed windows of the house
11465 and forge; and as I came up, one of the two warders (the postboy)
11466 knocked at the door,--implying that I was far too much exhausted by
11467 grief to have strength remaining to knock for myself.
11468
11469 Another sable warder (a carpenter, who had once eaten two geese for a
11470 wager) opened the door, and showed me into the best parlor. Here, Mr.
11471 Trabb had taken unto himself the best table, and had got all the leaves
11472 up, and was holding a kind of black Bazaar, with the aid of a quantity
11473 of black pins. At the moment of my arrival, he had just finished putting
11474 somebody’s hat into black long-clothes, like an African baby; so he held
11475 out his hand for mine. But I, misled by the action, and confused by the
11476 occasion, shook hands with him with every testimony of warm affection.
11477
11478 Poor dear Joe, entangled in a little black cloak tied in a large bow
11479 under his chin, was seated apart at the upper end of the room; where,
11480 as chief mourner, he had evidently been stationed by Trabb. When I bent
11481 down and said to him, “Dear Joe, how are you?” he said, “Pip, old chap,
11482 you knowed her when she were a fine figure of a--” and clasped my hand
11483 and said no more.
11484
11485 Biddy, looking very neat and modest in her black dress, went quietly
11486 here and there, and was very helpful. When I had spoken to Biddy, as
11487 I thought it not a time for talking I went and sat down near Joe, and
11488 there began to wonder in what part of the house it--she--my sister--was.
11489 The air of the parlor being faint with the smell of sweet-cake, I looked
11490 about for the table of refreshments; it was scarcely visible until one
11491 had got accustomed to the gloom, but there was a cut-up plum cake upon
11492 it, and there were cut-up oranges, and sandwiches, and biscuits, and two
11493 decanters that I knew very well as ornaments, but had never seen used
11494 in all my life; one full of port, and one of sherry. Standing at this
11495 table, I became conscious of the servile Pumblechook in a black cloak
11496 and several yards of hatband, who was alternately stuffing himself,
11497 and making obsequious movements to catch my attention. The moment he
11498 succeeded, he came over to me (breathing sherry and crumbs), and said
11499 in a subdued voice, “May I, dear sir?” and did. I then descried Mr. and
11500 Mrs. Hubble; the last-named in a decent speechless paroxysm in a corner.
11501 We were all going to “follow,” and were all in course of being tied up
11502 separately (by Trabb) into ridiculous bundles.
11503
11504 “Which I meantersay, Pip,” Joe whispered me, as we were being what Mr.
11505 Trabb called “formed” in the parlor, two and two,--and it was dreadfully
11506 like a preparation for some grim kind of dance; “which I meantersay,
11507 sir, as I would in preference have carried her to the church myself,
11508 along with three or four friendly ones wot come to it with willing harts
11509 and arms, but it were considered wot the neighbors would look down on
11510 such and would be of opinions as it were wanting in respect.”
11511
11512 “Pocket-handkerchiefs out, all!” cried Mr. Trabb at this point, in a
11513 depressed business-like voice. “Pocket-handkerchiefs out! We are ready!”
11514
11515 So we all put our pocket-handkerchiefs to our faces, as if our
11516 noses were bleeding, and filed out two and two; Joe and I; Biddy and
11517 Pumblechook; Mr. and Mrs. Hubble. The remains of my poor sister had been
11518 brought round by the kitchen door, and, it being a point of Undertaking
11519 ceremony that the six bearers must be stifled and blinded under a
11520 horrible black velvet housing with a white border, the whole looked like
11521 a blind monster with twelve human legs, shuffling and blundering along,
11522 under the guidance of two keepers,--the postboy and his comrade.
11523
11524 The neighborhood, however, highly approved of these arrangements, and we
11525 were much admired as we went through the village; the more youthful and
11526 vigorous part of the community making dashes now and then to cut us off,
11527 and lying in wait to intercept us at points of vantage. At such times
11528 the more exuberant among them called out in an excited manner on our
11529 emergence round some corner of expectancy, “Here they come!” “Here they
11530 are!” and we were all but cheered. In this progress I was much annoyed
11531 by the abject Pumblechook, who, being behind me, persisted all the way
11532 as a delicate attention in arranging my streaming hatband, and smoothing
11533 my cloak. My thoughts were further distracted by the excessive pride of
11534 Mr. and Mrs. Hubble, who were surpassingly conceited and vainglorious in
11535 being members of so distinguished a procession.
11536
11537 And now the range of marshes lay clear before us, with the sails of the
11538 ships on the river growing out of it; and we went into the churchyard,
11539 close to the graves of my unknown parents, Philip Pirrip, late of this
11540 parish, and Also Georgiana, Wife of the Above. And there, my sister was
11541 laid quietly in the earth, while the larks sang high above it, and the
11542 light wind strewed it with beautiful shadows of clouds and trees.
11543
11544 Of the conduct of the worldly minded Pumblechook while this was doing,
11545 I desire to say no more than it was all addressed to me; and that even
11546 when those noble passages were read which remind humanity how it brought
11547 nothing into the world and can take nothing out, and how it fleeth like
11548 a shadow and never continueth long in one stay, I heard him cough a
11549 reservation of the case of a young gentleman who came unexpectedly into
11550 large property. When we got back, he had the hardihood to tell me that
11551 he wished my sister could have known I had done her so much honor, and
11552 to hint that she would have considered it reasonably purchased at the
11553 price of her death. After that, he drank all the rest of the sherry,
11554 and Mr. Hubble drank the port, and the two talked (which I have since
11555 observed to be customary in such cases) as if they were of quite another
11556 race from the deceased, and were notoriously immortal. Finally, he went
11557 away with Mr. and Mrs. Hubble,--to make an evening of it, I felt sure,
11558 and to tell the Jolly Bargemen that he was the founder of my fortunes
11559 and my earliest benefactor.
11560
11561 When they were all gone, and when Trabb and his men--but not his Boy; I
11562 looked for him--had crammed their mummery into bags, and were gone too,
11563 the house felt wholesomer. Soon afterwards, Biddy, Joe, and I, had a
11564 cold dinner together; but we dined in the best parlor, not in the old
11565 kitchen, and Joe was so exceedingly particular what he did with his
11566 knife and fork and the saltcellar and what not, that there was great
11567 restraint upon us. But after dinner, when I made him take his pipe,
11568 and when I had loitered with him about the forge, and when we sat down
11569 together on the great block of stone outside it, we got on better. I
11570 noticed that after the funeral Joe changed his clothes so far, as to
11571 make a compromise between his Sunday dress and working dress; in which
11572 the dear fellow looked natural, and like the Man he was.
11573
11574 He was very much pleased by my asking if I might sleep in my own little
11575 room, and I was pleased too; for I felt that I had done rather a great
11576 thing in making the request. When the shadows of evening were closing
11577 in, I took an opportunity of getting into the garden with Biddy for a
11578 little talk.
11579
11580 “Biddy,” said I, “I think you might have written to me about these sad
11581 matters.”
11582
11583 “Do you, Mr. Pip?” said Biddy. “I should have written if I had thought
11584 that.”
11585
11586 “Don’t suppose that I mean to be unkind, Biddy, when I say I consider
11587 that you ought to have thought that.”
11588
11589 “Do you, Mr. Pip?”
11590
11591 She was so quiet, and had such an orderly, good, and pretty way with
11592 her, that I did not like the thought of making her cry again. After
11593 looking a little at her downcast eyes as she walked beside me, I gave up
11594 that point.
11595
11596 “I suppose it will be difficult for you to remain here now, Biddy dear?”
11597
11598 “Oh! I can’t do so, Mr. Pip,” said Biddy, in a tone of regret but still
11599 of quiet conviction. “I have been speaking to Mrs. Hubble, and I am
11600 going to her to-morrow. I hope we shall be able to take some care of Mr.
11601 Gargery, together, until he settles down.”
11602
11603 “How are you going to live, Biddy? If you want any mo--”
11604
11605 “How am I going to live?” repeated Biddy, striking in, with a momentary
11606 flush upon her face. “I’ll tell you, Mr. Pip. I am going to try to get
11607 the place of mistress in the new school nearly finished here. I can be
11608 well recommended by all the neighbors, and I hope I can be industrious
11609 and patient, and teach myself while I teach others. You know, Mr. Pip,”
11610 pursued Biddy, with a smile, as she raised her eyes to my face, “the new
11611 schools are not like the old, but I learnt a good deal from you after
11612 that time, and have had time since then to improve.”
11613
11614 “I think you would always improve, Biddy, under any circumstances.”
11615
11616 “Ah! Except in my bad side of human nature,” murmured Biddy.
11617
11618 It was not so much a reproach as an irresistible thinking aloud. Well!
11619 I thought I would give up that point too. So, I walked a little further
11620 with Biddy, looking silently at her downcast eyes.
11621
11622 “I have not heard the particulars of my sister’s death, Biddy.”
11623
11624 “They are very slight, poor thing. She had been in one of her bad
11625 states--though they had got better of late, rather than worse--for four
11626 days, when she came out of it in the evening, just at tea-time, and said
11627 quite plainly, ‘Joe.’ As she had never said any word for a long while, I
11628 ran and fetched in Mr. Gargery from the forge. She made signs to me that
11629 she wanted him to sit down close to her, and wanted me to put her arms
11630 round his neck. So I put them round his neck, and she laid her head down
11631 on his shoulder quite content and satisfied. And so she presently said
11632 ‘Joe’ again, and once ‘Pardon,’ and once ‘Pip.’ And so she never lifted
11633 her head up any more, and it was just an hour later when we laid it down
11634 on her own bed, because we found she was gone.”
11635
11636 Biddy cried; the darkening garden, and the lane, and the stars that were
11637 coming out, were blurred in my own sight.
11638
11639 “Nothing was ever discovered, Biddy?”
11640
11641 “Nothing.”
11642
11643 “Do you know what is become of Orlick?”
11644
11645 “I should think from the color of his clothes that he is working in the
11646 quarries.”
11647
11648 “Of course you have seen him then?--Why are you looking at that dark
11649 tree in the lane?”
11650
11651 “I saw him there, on the night she died.”
11652
11653 “That was not the last time either, Biddy?”
11654
11655 “No; I have seen him there, since we have been walking here.--It is of
11656 no use,” said Biddy, laying her hand upon my arm, as I was for running
11657 out, “you know I would not deceive you; he was not there a minute, and
11658 he is gone.”
11659
11660 It revived my utmost indignation to find that she was still pursued by
11661 this fellow, and I felt inveterate against him. I told her so, and told
11662 her that I would spend any money or take any pains to drive him out of
11663 that country. By degrees she led me into more temperate talk, and she
11664 told me how Joe loved me, and how Joe never complained of anything,--she
11665 didn’t say, of me; she had no need; I knew what she meant,--but ever did
11666 his duty in his way of life, with a strong hand, a quiet tongue, and a
11667 gentle heart.
11668
11669 “Indeed, it would be hard to say too much for him,” said I; “and Biddy,
11670 we must often speak of these things, for of course I shall be often down
11671 here now. I am not going to leave poor Joe alone.”
11672
11673 Biddy said never a single word.
11674
11675 “Biddy, don’t you hear me?”
11676
11677 “Yes, Mr. Pip.”
11678
11679 “Not to mention your calling me Mr. Pip,--which appears to me to be in
11680 bad taste, Biddy,--what do you mean?”
11681
11682 “What do I mean?” asked Biddy, timidly.
11683
11684 “Biddy,” said I, in a virtuously self-asserting manner, “I must request
11685 to know what you mean by this?”
11686
11687 “By this?” said Biddy.
11688
11689 “Now, don’t echo,” I retorted. “You used not to echo, Biddy.”
11690
11691 “Used not!” said Biddy. “O Mr. Pip! Used!”
11692
11693 Well! I rather thought I would give up that point too. After another
11694 silent turn in the garden, I fell back on the main position.
11695
11696 “Biddy,” said I, “I made a remark respecting my coming down here often,
11697 to see Joe, which you received with a marked silence. Have the goodness,
11698 Biddy, to tell me why.”
11699
11700 “Are you quite sure, then, that you WILL come to see him often?” asked
11701 Biddy, stopping in the narrow garden walk, and looking at me under the
11702 stars with a clear and honest eye.
11703
11704 “O dear me!” said I, as if I found myself compelled to give up Biddy in
11705 despair. “This really is a very bad side of human nature! Don’t say any
11706 more, if you please, Biddy. This shocks me very much.”
11707
11708 For which cogent reason I kept Biddy at a distance during supper, and
11709 when I went up to my own old little room, took as stately a leave of her
11710 as I could, in my murmuring soul, deem reconcilable with the churchyard
11711 and the event of the day. As often as I was restless in the night, and
11712 that was every quarter of an hour, I reflected what an unkindness, what
11713 an injury, what an injustice, Biddy had done me.
11714
11715 Early in the morning I was to go. Early in the morning I was out, and
11716 looking in, unseen, at one of the wooden windows of the forge. There
11717 I stood, for minutes, looking at Joe, already at work with a glow of
11718 health and strength upon his face that made it show as if the bright sun
11719 of the life in store for him were shining on it.
11720
11721 “Good-bye, dear Joe!--No, don’t wipe it off--for God’s sake, give me your
11722 blackened hand!--I shall be down soon and often.”
11723
11724 “Never too soon, sir,” said Joe, “and never too often, Pip!”
11725
11726 Biddy was waiting for me at the kitchen door, with a mug of new milk and
11727 a crust of bread. “Biddy,” said I, when I gave her my hand at parting,
11728 “I am not angry, but I am hurt.”
11729
11730 “No, don’t be hurt,” she pleaded quite pathetically; “let only me be
11731 hurt, if I have been ungenerous.”
11732
11733 Once more, the mists were rising as I walked away. If they disclosed to
11734 me, as I suspect they did, that I should not come back, and that Biddy
11735 was quite right, all I can say is,--they were quite right too.
11736
11737
11738
11739
11740 Chapter XXXVI
11741
11742 Herbert and I went on from bad to worse, in the way of increasing our
11743 debts, looking into our affairs, leaving Margins, and the like exemplary
11744 transactions; and Time went on, whether or no, as he has a way of doing;
11745 and I came of age,--in fulfilment of Herbert’s prediction, that I should
11746 do so before I knew where I was.
11747
11748 Herbert himself had come of age eight months before me. As he had
11749 nothing else than his majority to come into, the event did not make a
11750 profound sensation in Barnard’s Inn. But we had looked forward to
11751 my one-and-twentieth birthday, with a crowd of speculations and
11752 anticipations, for we had both considered that my guardian could hardly
11753 help saying something definite on that occasion.
11754
11755 I had taken care to have it well understood in Little Britain when my
11756 birthday was. On the day before it, I received an official note from
11757 Wemmick, informing me that Mr. Jaggers would be glad if I would call
11758 upon him at five in the afternoon of the auspicious day. This convinced
11759 us that something great was to happen, and threw me into an unusual
11760 flutter when I repaired to my guardian’s office, a model of punctuality.
11761
11762 In the outer office Wemmick offered me his congratulations, and
11763 incidentally rubbed the side of his nose with a folded piece of
11764 tissue-paper that I liked the look of. But he said nothing respecting
11765 it, and motioned me with a nod into my guardian’s room. It was November,
11766 and my guardian was standing before his fire leaning his back against
11767 the chimney-piece, with his hands under his coattails.
11768
11769 “Well, Pip,” said he, “I must call you Mr. Pip to-day. Congratulations,
11770 Mr. Pip.”
11771
11772 We shook hands,--he was always a remarkably short shaker,--and I thanked
11773 him.
11774
11775 “Take a chair, Mr. Pip,” said my guardian.
11776
11777 As I sat down, and he preserved his attitude and bent his brows at his
11778 boots, I felt at a disadvantage, which reminded me of that old time when
11779 I had been put upon a tombstone. The two ghastly casts on the shelf
11780 were not far from him, and their expression was as if they were making a
11781 stupid apoplectic attempt to attend to the conversation.
11782
11783 “Now my young friend,” my guardian began, as if I were a witness in the
11784 box, “I am going to have a word or two with you.”
11785
11786 “If you please, sir.”
11787
11788 “What do you suppose,” said Mr. Jaggers, bending forward to look at the
11789 ground, and then throwing his head back to look at the ceiling,--“what
11790 do you suppose you are living at the rate of?”
11791
11792 “At the rate of, sir?”
11793
11794 “At,” repeated Mr. Jaggers, still looking at the ceiling,
11795 “the--rate--of?” And then looked all round the room, and paused with his
11796 pocket-handkerchief in his hand, half-way to his nose.
11797
11798 I had looked into my affairs so often, that I had thoroughly destroyed
11799 any slight notion I might ever have had of their bearings. Reluctantly,
11800 I confessed myself quite unable to answer the question. This reply
11801 seemed agreeable to Mr. Jaggers, who said, “I thought so!” and blew his
11802 nose with an air of satisfaction.
11803
11804 “Now, I have asked you a question, my friend,” said Mr. Jaggers. “Have
11805 you anything to ask me?”
11806
11807 “Of course it would be a great relief to me to ask you several
11808 questions, sir; but I remember your prohibition.”
11809
11810 “Ask one,” said Mr. Jaggers.
11811
11812 “Is my benefactor to be made known to me to-day?”
11813
11814 “No. Ask another.”
11815
11816 “Is that confidence to be imparted to me soon?”
11817
11818 “Waive that, a moment,” said Mr. Jaggers, “and ask another.”
11819
11820 I looked about me, but there appeared to be now no possible escape from
11821 the inquiry, “Have-I--anything to receive, sir?” On that, Mr. Jaggers
11822 said, triumphantly, “I thought we should come to it!” and called to
11823 Wemmick to give him that piece of paper. Wemmick appeared, handed it in,
11824 and disappeared.
11825
11826 “Now, Mr. Pip,” said Mr. Jaggers, “attend, if you please. You have been
11827 drawing pretty freely here; your name occurs pretty often in Wemmick’s
11828 cash-book; but you are in debt, of course?”
11829
11830 “I am afraid I must say yes, sir.”
11831
11832 “You know you must say yes; don’t you?” said Mr. Jaggers.
11833
11834 “Yes, sir.”
11835
11836 “I don’t ask you what you owe, because you don’t know; and if you did
11837 know, you wouldn’t tell me; you would say less. Yes, yes, my friend,”
11838 cried Mr. Jaggers, waving his forefinger to stop me as I made a show
11839 of protesting: “it’s likely enough that you think you wouldn’t, but
11840 you would. You’ll excuse me, but I know better than you. Now, take this
11841 piece of paper in your hand. You have got it? Very good. Now, unfold it
11842 and tell me what it is.”
11843
11844 “This is a bank-note,” said I, “for five hundred pounds.”
11845
11846 “That is a bank-note,” repeated Mr. Jaggers, “for five hundred pounds.
11847 And a very handsome sum of money too, I think. You consider it so?”
11848
11849 “How could I do otherwise!”
11850
11851 “Ah! But answer the question,” said Mr. Jaggers.
11852
11853 “Undoubtedly.”
11854
11855 “You consider it, undoubtedly, a handsome sum of money. Now, that
11856 handsome sum of money, Pip, is your own. It is a present to you on this
11857 day, in earnest of your expectations. And at the rate of that handsome
11858 sum of money per annum, and at no higher rate, you are to live until the
11859 donor of the whole appears. That is to say, you will now take your money
11860 affairs entirely into your own hands, and you will draw from Wemmick
11861 one hundred and twenty-five pounds per quarter, until you are in
11862 communication with the fountain-head, and no longer with the mere
11863 agent. As I have told you before, I am the mere agent. I execute my
11864 instructions, and I am paid for doing so. I think them injudicious, but
11865 I am not paid for giving any opinion on their merits.”
11866
11867 I was beginning to express my gratitude to my benefactor for the great
11868 liberality with which I was treated, when Mr. Jaggers stopped me. “I am
11869 not paid, Pip,” said he, coolly, “to carry your words to any one;” and
11870 then gathered up his coat-tails, as he had gathered up the subject, and
11871 stood frowning at his boots as if he suspected them of designs against
11872 him.
11873
11874 After a pause, I hinted,--
11875
11876 “There was a question just now, Mr. Jaggers, which you desired me to
11877 waive for a moment. I hope I am doing nothing wrong in asking it again?”
11878
11879 “What is it?” said he.
11880
11881 I might have known that he would never help me out; but it took me aback
11882 to have to shape the question afresh, as if it were quite new. “Is it
11883 likely,” I said, after hesitating, “that my patron, the fountain-head
11884 you have spoken of, Mr. Jaggers, will soon--” there I delicately
11885 stopped.
11886
11887 “Will soon what?” asked Mr. Jaggers. “That’s no question as it stands,
11888 you know.”
11889
11890 “Will soon come to London,” said I, after casting about for a precise
11891 form of words, “or summon me anywhere else?”
11892
11893 “Now, here,” replied Mr. Jaggers, fixing me for the first time with
11894 his dark deep-set eyes, “we must revert to the evening when we first
11895 encountered one another in your village. What did I tell you then, Pip?”
11896
11897 “You told me, Mr. Jaggers, that it might be years hence when that person
11898 appeared.”
11899
11900 “Just so,” said Mr. Jaggers, “that’s my answer.”
11901
11902 As we looked full at one another, I felt my breath come quicker in my
11903 strong desire to get something out of him. And as I felt that it came
11904 quicker, and as I felt that he saw that it came quicker, I felt that I
11905 had less chance than ever of getting anything out of him.
11906
11907 “Do you suppose it will still be years hence, Mr. Jaggers?”
11908
11909 Mr. Jaggers shook his head,--not in negativing the question, but in
11910 altogether negativing the notion that he could anyhow be got to answer
11911 it,--and the two horrible casts of the twitched faces looked, when
11912 my eyes strayed up to them, as if they had come to a crisis in their
11913 suspended attention, and were going to sneeze.
11914
11915 “Come!” said Mr. Jaggers, warming the backs of his legs with the backs
11916 of his warmed hands, “I’ll be plain with you, my friend Pip. That’s a
11917 question I must not be asked. You’ll understand that better, when I tell
11918 you it’s a question that might compromise me. Come! I’ll go a little
11919 further with you; I’ll say something more.”
11920
11921 He bent down so low to frown at his boots, that he was able to rub the
11922 calves of his legs in the pause he made.
11923
11924 “When that person discloses,” said Mr. Jaggers, straightening himself,
11925 “you and that person will settle your own affairs. When that person
11926 discloses, my part in this business will cease and determine. When that
11927 person discloses, it will not be necessary for me to know anything about
11928 it. And that’s all I have got to say.”
11929
11930 We looked at one another until I withdrew my eyes, and looked
11931 thoughtfully at the floor. From this last speech I derived the notion
11932 that Miss Havisham, for some reason or no reason, had not taken him
11933 into her confidence as to her designing me for Estella; that he resented
11934 this, and felt a jealousy about it; or that he really did object to
11935 that scheme, and would have nothing to do with it. When I raised my eyes
11936 again, I found that he had been shrewdly looking at me all the time, and
11937 was doing so still.
11938
11939 “If that is all you have to say, sir,” I remarked, “there can be nothing
11940 left for me to say.”
11941
11942 He nodded assent, and pulled out his thief-dreaded watch, and asked me
11943 where I was going to dine? I replied at my own chambers, with Herbert.
11944 As a necessary sequence, I asked him if he would favor us with his
11945 company, and he promptly accepted the invitation. But he insisted on
11946 walking home with me, in order that I might make no extra preparation
11947 for him, and first he had a letter or two to write, and (of course) had
11948 his hands to wash. So I said I would go into the outer office and talk
11949 to Wemmick.
11950
11951 The fact was, that when the five hundred pounds had come into my pocket,
11952 a thought had come into my head which had been often there before;
11953 and it appeared to me that Wemmick was a good person to advise with
11954 concerning such thought.
11955
11956 He had already locked up his safe, and made preparations for going home.
11957 He had left his desk, brought out his two greasy office candlesticks and
11958 stood them in line with the snuffers on a slab near the door, ready to
11959 be extinguished; he had raked his fire low, put his hat and great-coat
11960 ready, and was beating himself all over the chest with his safe-key, as
11961 an athletic exercise after business.
11962
11963 “Mr. Wemmick,” said I, “I want to ask your opinion. I am very desirous
11964 to serve a friend.”
11965
11966 Wemmick tightened his post-office and shook his head, as if his opinion
11967 were dead against any fatal weakness of that sort.
11968
11969 “This friend,” I pursued, “is trying to get on in commercial life,
11970 but has no money, and finds it difficult and disheartening to make a
11971 beginning. Now I want somehow to help him to a beginning.”
11972
11973 “With money down?” said Wemmick, in a tone drier than any sawdust.
11974
11975 “With some money down,” I replied, for an uneasy remembrance shot across
11976 me of that symmetrical bundle of papers at home--“with some money down,
11977 and perhaps some anticipation of my expectations.”
11978
11979 “Mr. Pip,” said Wemmick, “I should like just to run over with you on my
11980 fingers, if you please, the names of the various bridges up as high
11981 as Chelsea Reach. Let’s see; there’s London, one; Southwark, two;
11982 Blackfriars, three; Waterloo, four; Westminster, five; Vauxhall, six.”
11983 He had checked off each bridge in its turn, with the handle of his
11984 safe-key on the palm of his hand. “There’s as many as six, you see, to
11985 choose from.”
11986
11987 “I don’t understand you,” said I.
11988
11989 “Choose your bridge, Mr. Pip,” returned Wemmick, “and take a walk upon
11990 your bridge, and pitch your money into the Thames over the centre arch
11991 of your bridge, and you know the end of it. Serve a friend with it, and
11992 you may know the end of it too,--but it’s a less pleasant and profitable
11993 end.”
11994
11995 I could have posted a newspaper in his mouth, he made it so wide after
11996 saying this.
11997
11998 “This is very discouraging,” said I.
11999
12000 “Meant to be so,” said Wemmick.
12001
12002 “Then is it your opinion,” I inquired, with some little indignation,
12003 “that a man should never--”
12004
12005 “--Invest portable property in a friend?” said Wemmick. “Certainly
12006 he should not. Unless he wants to get rid of the friend,--and then it
12007 becomes a question how much portable property it may be worth to get rid
12008 of him.”
12009
12010 “And that,” said I, “is your deliberate opinion, Mr. Wemmick?”
12011
12012 “That,” he returned, “is my deliberate opinion in this office.”
12013
12014 “Ah!” said I, pressing him, for I thought I saw him near a loophole
12015 here; “but would that be your opinion at Walworth?”
12016
12017 “Mr. Pip,” he replied, with gravity, “Walworth is one place, and this
12018 office is another. Much as the Aged is one person, and Mr. Jaggers is
12019 another. They must not be confounded together. My Walworth sentiments
12020 must be taken at Walworth; none but my official sentiments can be taken
12021 in this office.”
12022
12023 “Very well,” said I, much relieved, “then I shall look you up at
12024 Walworth, you may depend upon it.”
12025
12026 “Mr. Pip,” he returned, “you will be welcome there, in a private and
12027 personal capacity.”
12028
12029 We had held this conversation in a low voice, well knowing my guardian’s
12030 ears to be the sharpest of the sharp. As he now appeared in his doorway,
12031 towelling his hands, Wemmick got on his great-coat and stood by to snuff
12032 out the candles. We all three went into the street together, and from
12033 the door-step Wemmick turned his way, and Mr. Jaggers and I turned ours.
12034
12035 I could not help wishing more than once that evening, that Mr. Jaggers
12036 had had an Aged in Gerrard Street, or a Stinger, or a Something, or
12037 a Somebody, to unbend his brows a little. It was an uncomfortable
12038 consideration on a twenty-first birthday, that coming of age at all
12039 seemed hardly worth while in such a guarded and suspicious world as he
12040 made of it. He was a thousand times better informed and cleverer than
12041 Wemmick, and yet I would a thousand times rather have had Wemmick to
12042 dinner. And Mr. Jaggers made not me alone intensely melancholy, because,
12043 after he was gone, Herbert said of himself, with his eyes fixed on the
12044 fire, that he thought he must have committed a felony and forgotten the
12045 details of it, he felt so dejected and guilty.
12046
12047
12048
12049
12050 Chapter XXXVII
12051
12052 Deeming Sunday the best day for taking Mr. Wemmick’s Walworth
12053 sentiments, I devoted the next ensuing Sunday afternoon to a pilgrimage
12054 to the Castle. On arriving before the battlements, I found the Union
12055 Jack flying and the drawbridge up; but undeterred by this show of
12056 defiance and resistance, I rang at the gate, and was admitted in a most
12057 pacific manner by the Aged.
12058
12059 “My son, sir,” said the old man, after securing the drawbridge, “rather
12060 had it in his mind that you might happen to drop in, and he left word
12061 that he would soon be home from his afternoon’s walk. He is very regular
12062 in his walks, is my son. Very regular in everything, is my son.”
12063
12064 I nodded at the old gentleman as Wemmick himself might have nodded, and
12065 we went in and sat down by the fireside.
12066
12067 “You made acquaintance with my son, sir,” said the old man, in his
12068 chirping way, while he warmed his hands at the blaze, “at his office, I
12069 expect?” I nodded. “Hah! I have heerd that my son is a wonderful hand at
12070 his business, sir?” I nodded hard. “Yes; so they tell me. His business
12071 is the Law?” I nodded harder. “Which makes it more surprising in my
12072 son,” said the old man, “for he was not brought up to the Law, but to
12073 the Wine-Coopering.”
12074
12075 Curious to know how the old gentleman stood informed concerning the
12076 reputation of Mr. Jaggers, I roared that name at him. He threw me into
12077 the greatest confusion by laughing heartily and replying in a very
12078 sprightly manner, “No, to be sure; you’re right.” And to this hour I
12079 have not the faintest notion what he meant, or what joke he thought I
12080 had made.
12081
12082 As I could not sit there nodding at him perpetually, without making
12083 some other attempt to interest him, I shouted at inquiry whether his own
12084 calling in life had been “the Wine-Coopering.” By dint of straining that
12085 term out of myself several times and tapping the old gentleman on the
12086 chest to associate it with him, I at last succeeded in making my meaning
12087 understood.
12088
12089 “No,” said the old gentleman; “the warehousing, the warehousing. First,
12090 over yonder;” he appeared to mean up the chimney, but I believe he
12091 intended to refer me to Liverpool; “and then in the City of London here.
12092 However, having an infirmity--for I am hard of hearing, sir--”
12093
12094 I expressed in pantomime the greatest astonishment.
12095
12096 “--Yes, hard of hearing; having that infirmity coming upon me, my son he
12097 went into the Law, and he took charge of me, and he by little and little
12098 made out this elegant and beautiful property. But returning to what you
12099 said, you know,” pursued the old man, again laughing heartily, “what I
12100 say is, No to be sure; you’re right.”
12101
12102 I was modestly wondering whether my utmost ingenuity would have enabled
12103 me to say anything that would have amused him half as much as this
12104 imaginary pleasantry, when I was startled by a sudden click in the wall
12105 on one side of the chimney, and the ghostly tumbling open of a little
12106 wooden flap with “JOHN” upon it. The old man, following my eyes, cried
12107 with great triumph, “My son’s come home!” and we both went out to the
12108 drawbridge.
12109
12110 It was worth any money to see Wemmick waving a salute to me from the
12111 other side of the moat, when we might have shaken hands across it with
12112 the greatest ease. The Aged was so delighted to work the drawbridge,
12113 that I made no offer to assist him, but stood quiet until Wemmick had
12114 come across, and had presented me to Miss Skiffins; a lady by whom he
12115 was accompanied.
12116
12117 Miss Skiffins was of a wooden appearance, and was, like her escort, in
12118 the post-office branch of the service. She might have been some two or
12119 three years younger than Wemmick, and I judged her to stand possessed
12120 of portable property. The cut of her dress from the waist upward, both
12121 before and behind, made her figure very like a boy’s kite; and I might
12122 have pronounced her gown a little too decidedly orange, and her gloves a
12123 little too intensely green. But she seemed to be a good sort of fellow,
12124 and showed a high regard for the Aged. I was not long in discovering
12125 that she was a frequent visitor at the Castle; for, on our going in,
12126 and my complimenting Wemmick on his ingenious contrivance for announcing
12127 himself to the Aged, he begged me to give my attention for a moment to
12128 the other side of the chimney, and disappeared. Presently another click
12129 came, and another little door tumbled open with “Miss Skiffins” on it;
12130 then Miss Skiffins shut up and John tumbled open; then Miss Skiffins
12131 and John both tumbled open together, and finally shut up together. On
12132 Wemmick’s return from working these mechanical appliances, I expressed
12133 the great admiration with which I regarded them, and he said, “Well, you
12134 know, they’re both pleasant and useful to the Aged. And by George, sir,
12135 it’s a thing worth mentioning, that of all the people who come to
12136 this gate, the secret of those pulls is only known to the Aged, Miss
12137 Skiffins, and me!”
12138
12139 “And Mr. Wemmick made them,” added Miss Skiffins, “with his own hands
12140 out of his own head.”
12141
12142 While Miss Skiffins was taking off her bonnet (she retained her green
12143 gloves during the evening as an outward and visible sign that there was
12144 company), Wemmick invited me to take a walk with him round the property,
12145 and see how the island looked in wintertime. Thinking that he did this
12146 to give me an opportunity of taking his Walworth sentiments, I seized
12147 the opportunity as soon as we were out of the Castle.
12148
12149 Having thought of the matter with care, I approached my subject as if I
12150 had never hinted at it before. I informed Wemmick that I was anxious in
12151 behalf of Herbert Pocket, and I told him how we had first met, and how
12152 we had fought. I glanced at Herbert’s home, and at his character, and
12153 at his having no means but such as he was dependent on his father for;
12154 those, uncertain and unpunctual. I alluded to the advantages I had
12155 derived in my first rawness and ignorance from his society, and I
12156 confessed that I feared I had but ill repaid them, and that he might
12157 have done better without me and my expectations. Keeping Miss Havisham
12158 in the background at a great distance, I still hinted at the possibility
12159 of my having competed with him in his prospects, and at the certainty of
12160 his possessing a generous soul, and being far above any mean distrusts,
12161 retaliations, or designs. For all these reasons (I told Wemmick),
12162 and because he was my young companion and friend, and I had a great
12163 affection for him, I wished my own good fortune to reflect some rays
12164 upon him, and therefore I sought advice from Wemmick’s experience and
12165 knowledge of men and affairs, how I could best try with my resources to
12166 help Herbert to some present income,--say of a hundred a year, to keep
12167 him in good hope and heart,--and gradually to buy him on to some small
12168 partnership. I begged Wemmick, in conclusion, to understand that my help
12169 must always be rendered without Herbert’s knowledge or suspicion, and
12170 that there was no one else in the world with whom I could advise. I
12171 wound up by laying my hand upon his shoulder, and saying, “I can’t help
12172 confiding in you, though I know it must be troublesome to you; but that
12173 is your fault, in having ever brought me here.”
12174
12175 Wemmick was silent for a little while, and then said with a kind of
12176 start, “Well you know, Mr. Pip, I must tell you one thing. This is
12177 devilish good of you.”
12178
12179 “Say you’ll help me to be good then,” said I.
12180
12181 “Ecod,” replied Wemmick, shaking his head, “that’s not my trade.”
12182
12183 “Nor is this your trading-place,” said I.
12184
12185 “You are right,” he returned. “You hit the nail on the head. Mr. Pip,
12186 I’ll put on my considering-cap, and I think all you want to do may be
12187 done by degrees. Skiffins (that’s her brother) is an accountant and
12188 agent. I’ll look him up and go to work for you.”
12189
12190 “I thank you ten thousand times.”
12191
12192 “On the contrary,” said he, “I thank you, for though we are strictly in
12193 our private and personal capacity, still it may be mentioned that there
12194 are Newgate cobwebs about, and it brushes them away.”
12195
12196 After a little further conversation to the same effect, we returned into
12197 the Castle where we found Miss Skiffins preparing tea. The responsible
12198 duty of making the toast was delegated to the Aged, and that excellent
12199 old gentleman was so intent upon it that he seemed to me in some danger
12200 of melting his eyes. It was no nominal meal that we were going to make,
12201 but a vigorous reality. The Aged prepared such a hay-stack of buttered
12202 toast, that I could scarcely see him over it as it simmered on an iron
12203 stand hooked on to the top-bar; while Miss Skiffins brewed such a jorum
12204 of tea, that the pig in the back premises became strongly excited, and
12205 repeatedly expressed his desire to participate in the entertainment.
12206
12207 The flag had been struck, and the gun had been fired, at the right
12208 moment of time, and I felt as snugly cut off from the rest of Walworth
12209 as if the moat were thirty feet wide by as many deep. Nothing disturbed
12210 the tranquillity of the Castle, but the occasional tumbling open of
12211 John and Miss Skiffins: which little doors were a prey to some spasmodic
12212 infirmity that made me sympathetically uncomfortable until I got used
12213 to it. I inferred from the methodical nature of Miss Skiffins’s
12214 arrangements that she made tea there every Sunday night; and I rather
12215 suspected that a classic brooch she wore, representing the profile of an
12216 undesirable female with a very straight nose and a very new moon, was a
12217 piece of portable property that had been given her by Wemmick.
12218
12219 We ate the whole of the toast, and drank tea in proportion, and it was
12220 delightful to see how warm and greasy we all got after it. The Aged
12221 especially, might have passed for some clean old chief of a savage
12222 tribe, just oiled. After a short pause of repose, Miss Skiffins--in the
12223 absence of the little servant who, it seemed, retired to the bosom of
12224 her family on Sunday afternoons--washed up the tea-things, in a trifling
12225 lady-like amateur manner that compromised none of us. Then, she put on
12226 her gloves again, and we drew round the fire, and Wemmick said, “Now,
12227 Aged Parent, tip us the paper.”
12228
12229 Wemmick explained to me while the Aged got his spectacles out, that this
12230 was according to custom, and that it gave the old gentleman infinite
12231 satisfaction to read the news aloud. “I won’t offer an apology,” said
12232 Wemmick, “for he isn’t capable of many pleasures--are you, Aged P.?”
12233
12234 “All right, John, all right,” returned the old man, seeing himself
12235 spoken to.
12236
12237 “Only tip him a nod every now and then when he looks off his paper,”
12238 said Wemmick, “and he’ll be as happy as a king. We are all attention,
12239 Aged One.”
12240
12241 “All right, John, all right!” returned the cheerful old man, so busy and
12242 so pleased, that it really was quite charming.
12243
12244 The Aged’s reading reminded me of the classes at Mr. Wopsle’s
12245 great-aunt’s, with the pleasanter peculiarity that it seemed to come
12246 through a keyhole. As he wanted the candles close to him, and as he was
12247 always on the verge of putting either his head or the newspaper into
12248 them, he required as much watching as a powder-mill. But Wemmick was
12249 equally untiring and gentle in his vigilance, and the Aged read on,
12250 quite unconscious of his many rescues. Whenever he looked at us, we
12251 all expressed the greatest interest and amazement, and nodded until he
12252 resumed again.
12253
12254 As Wemmick and Miss Skiffins sat side by side, and as I sat in a shadowy
12255 corner, I observed a slow and gradual elongation of Mr. Wemmick’s mouth,
12256 powerfully suggestive of his slowly and gradually stealing his arm round
12257 Miss Skiffins’s waist. In course of time I saw his hand appear on the
12258 other side of Miss Skiffins; but at that moment Miss Skiffins neatly
12259 stopped him with the green glove, unwound his arm again as if it were
12260 an article of dress, and with the greatest deliberation laid it on the
12261 table before her. Miss Skiffins’s composure while she did this was one
12262 of the most remarkable sights I have ever seen, and if I could have
12263 thought the act consistent with abstraction of mind, I should have
12264 deemed that Miss Skiffins performed it mechanically.
12265
12266 By and by, I noticed Wemmick’s arm beginning to disappear again, and
12267 gradually fading out of view. Shortly afterwards, his mouth began to
12268 widen again. After an interval of suspense on my part that was quite
12269 enthralling and almost painful, I saw his hand appear on the other side
12270 of Miss Skiffins. Instantly, Miss Skiffins stopped it with the neatness
12271 of a placid boxer, took off that girdle or cestus as before, and laid
12272 it on the table. Taking the table to represent the path of virtue, I am
12273 justified in stating that during the whole time of the Aged’s reading,
12274 Wemmick’s arm was straying from the path of virtue and being recalled to
12275 it by Miss Skiffins.
12276
12277 At last, the Aged read himself into a light slumber. This was the time
12278 for Wemmick to produce a little kettle, a tray of glasses, and a
12279 black bottle with a porcelain-topped cork, representing some clerical
12280 dignitary of a rubicund and social aspect. With the aid of these
12281 appliances we all had something warm to drink, including the Aged, who
12282 was soon awake again. Miss Skiffins mixed, and I observed that she and
12283 Wemmick drank out of one glass. Of course I knew better than to offer to
12284 see Miss Skiffins home, and under the circumstances I thought I had best
12285 go first; which I did, taking a cordial leave of the Aged, and having
12286 passed a pleasant evening.
12287
12288 Before a week was out, I received a note from Wemmick, dated Walworth,
12289 stating that he hoped he had made some advance in that matter
12290 appertaining to our private and personal capacities, and that he would
12291 be glad if I could come and see him again upon it. So, I went out
12292 to Walworth again, and yet again, and yet again, and I saw him by
12293 appointment in the City several times, but never held any communication
12294 with him on the subject in or near Little Britain. The upshot was,
12295 that we found a worthy young merchant or shipping-broker, not long
12296 established in business, who wanted intelligent help, and who wanted
12297 capital, and who in due course of time and receipt would want a partner.
12298 Between him and me, secret articles were signed of which Herbert was the
12299 subject, and I paid him half of my five hundred pounds down, and engaged
12300 for sundry other payments: some, to fall due at certain dates out of my
12301 income: some, contingent on my coming into my property. Miss Skiffins’s
12302 brother conducted the negotiation. Wemmick pervaded it throughout, but
12303 never appeared in it.
12304
12305 The whole business was so cleverly managed, that Herbert had not the
12306 least suspicion of my hand being in it. I never shall forget the radiant
12307 face with which he came home one afternoon, and told me, as a mighty
12308 piece of news, of his having fallen in with one Clarriker (the young
12309 merchant’s name), and of Clarriker’s having shown an extraordinary
12310 inclination towards him, and of his belief that the opening had come at
12311 last. Day by day as his hopes grew stronger and his face brighter, he
12312 must have thought me a more and more affectionate friend, for I had the
12313 greatest difficulty in restraining my tears of triumph when I saw him so
12314 happy. At length, the thing being done, and he having that day entered
12315 Clarriker’s House, and he having talked to me for a whole evening in a
12316 flush of pleasure and success, I did really cry in good earnest when
12317 I went to bed, to think that my expectations had done some good to
12318 somebody.
12319
12320 A great event in my life, the turning point of my life, now opens on my
12321 view. But, before I proceed to narrate it, and before I pass on to all
12322 the changes it involved, I must give one chapter to Estella. It is not
12323 much to give to the theme that so long filled my heart.
12324
12325
12326
12327
12328 Chapter XXXVIII
12329
12330 If that staid old house near the Green at Richmond should ever come to
12331 be haunted when I am dead, it will be haunted, surely, by my ghost. O
12332 the many, many nights and days through which the unquiet spirit within
12333 me haunted that house when Estella lived there! Let my body be where it
12334 would, my spirit was always wandering, wandering, wandering, about that
12335 house.
12336
12337 The lady with whom Estella was placed, Mrs. Brandley by name, was a
12338 widow, with one daughter several years older than Estella. The mother
12339 looked young, and the daughter looked old; the mother’s complexion was
12340 pink, and the daughter’s was yellow; the mother set up for frivolity,
12341 and the daughter for theology. They were in what is called a good
12342 position, and visited, and were visited by, numbers of people. Little,
12343 if any, community of feeling subsisted between them and Estella, but the
12344 understanding was established that they were necessary to her, and
12345 that she was necessary to them. Mrs. Brandley had been a friend of Miss
12346 Havisham’s before the time of her seclusion.
12347
12348 In Mrs. Brandley’s house and out of Mrs. Brandley’s house, I suffered
12349 every kind and degree of torture that Estella could cause me. The
12350 nature of my relations with her, which placed me on terms of familiarity
12351 without placing me on terms of favor, conduced to my distraction.
12352 She made use of me to tease other admirers, and she turned the very
12353 familiarity between herself and me to the account of putting a constant
12354 slight on my devotion to her. If I had been her secretary, steward,
12355 half-brother, poor relation,--if I had been a younger brother of her
12356 appointed husband,--I could not have seemed to myself further from my
12357 hopes when I was nearest to her. The privilege of calling her by her
12358 name and hearing her call me by mine became, under the circumstances
12359 an aggravation of my trials; and while I think it likely that it almost
12360 maddened her other lovers, I know too certainly that it almost maddened
12361 me.
12362
12363 She had admirers without end. No doubt my jealousy made an admirer of
12364 every one who went near her; but there were more than enough of them
12365 without that.
12366
12367 I saw her often at Richmond, I heard of her often in town, and I used
12368 often to take her and the Brandleys on the water; there were picnics,
12369 fête days, plays, operas, concerts, parties, all sorts of pleasures,
12370 through which I pursued her,--and they were all miseries to me. I never
12371 had one hour’s happiness in her society, and yet my mind all round the
12372 four-and-twenty hours was harping on the happiness of having her with me
12373 unto death.
12374
12375 Throughout this part of our intercourse,--and it lasted, as will
12376 presently be seen, for what I then thought a long time,--she habitually
12377 reverted to that tone which expressed that our association was forced
12378 upon us. There were other times when she would come to a sudden check in
12379 this tone and in all her many tones, and would seem to pity me.
12380
12381 “Pip, Pip,” she said one evening, coming to such a check, when we sat
12382 apart at a darkening window of the house in Richmond; “will you never
12383 take warning?”
12384
12385 “Of what?”
12386
12387 “Of me.”
12388
12389 “Warning not to be attracted by you, do you mean, Estella?”
12390
12391 “Do I mean! If you don’t know what I mean, you are blind.”
12392
12393 I should have replied that Love was commonly reputed blind, but for the
12394 reason that I always was restrained--and this was not the least of my
12395 miseries--by a feeling that it was ungenerous to press myself upon her,
12396 when she knew that she could not choose but obey Miss Havisham. My
12397 dread always was, that this knowledge on her part laid me under a heavy
12398 disadvantage with her pride, and made me the subject of a rebellious
12399 struggle in her bosom.
12400
12401 “At any rate,” said I, “I have no warning given me just now, for you
12402 wrote to me to come to you, this time.”
12403
12404 “That’s true,” said Estella, with a cold careless smile that always
12405 chilled me.
12406
12407 After looking at the twilight without, for a little while, she went on
12408 to say:--
12409
12410 “The time has come round when Miss Havisham wishes to have me for a day
12411 at Satis. You are to take me there, and bring me back, if you will. She
12412 would rather I did not travel alone, and objects to receiving my maid,
12413 for she has a sensitive horror of being talked of by such people. Can
12414 you take me?”
12415
12416 “Can I take you, Estella!”
12417
12418 “You can then? The day after to-morrow, if you please. You are to pay
12419 all charges out of my purse, You hear the condition of your going?”
12420
12421 “And must obey,” said I.
12422
12423 This was all the preparation I received for that visit, or for others
12424 like it; Miss Havisham never wrote to me, nor had I ever so much as seen
12425 her handwriting. We went down on the next day but one, and we found her
12426 in the room where I had first beheld her, and it is needless to add that
12427 there was no change in Satis House.
12428
12429 She was even more dreadfully fond of Estella than she had been when
12430 I last saw them together; I repeat the word advisedly, for there was
12431 something positively dreadful in the energy of her looks and embraces.
12432 She hung upon Estella’s beauty, hung upon her words, hung upon her
12433 gestures, and sat mumbling her own trembling fingers while she looked at
12434 her, as though she were devouring the beautiful creature she had reared.
12435
12436 From Estella she looked at me, with a searching glance that seemed to
12437 pry into my heart and probe its wounds. “How does she use you, Pip; how
12438 does she use you?” she asked me again, with her witch-like eagerness,
12439 even in Estella’s hearing. But, when we sat by her flickering fire
12440 at night, she was most weird; for then, keeping Estella’s hand drawn
12441 through her arm and clutched in her own hand, she extorted from her,
12442 by dint of referring back to what Estella had told her in her regular
12443 letters, the names and conditions of the men whom she had fascinated;
12444 and as Miss Havisham dwelt upon this roll, with the intensity of a mind
12445 mortally hurt and diseased, she sat with her other hand on her crutch
12446 stick, and her chin on that, and her wan bright eyes glaring at me, a
12447 very spectre.
12448
12449 I saw in this, wretched though it made me, and bitter the sense of
12450 dependence and even of degradation that it awakened,--I saw in this that
12451 Estella was set to wreak Miss Havisham’s revenge on men, and that she
12452 was not to be given to me until she had gratified it for a term. I saw
12453 in this, a reason for her being beforehand assigned to me. Sending her
12454 out to attract and torment and do mischief, Miss Havisham sent her with
12455 the malicious assurance that she was beyond the reach of all admirers,
12456 and that all who staked upon that cast were secured to lose. I saw in
12457 this that I, too, was tormented by a perversion of ingenuity, even while
12458 the prize was reserved for me. I saw in this the reason for my being
12459 staved off so long and the reason for my late guardian’s declining to
12460 commit himself to the formal knowledge of such a scheme. In a word, I
12461 saw in this Miss Havisham as I had her then and there before my eyes,
12462 and always had had her before my eyes; and I saw in this, the distinct
12463 shadow of the darkened and unhealthy house in which her life was hidden
12464 from the sun.
12465
12466 The candles that lighted that room of hers were placed in sconces on
12467 the wall. They were high from the ground, and they burnt with the steady
12468 dulness of artificial light in air that is seldom renewed. As I looked
12469 round at them, and at the pale gloom they made, and at the stopped
12470 clock, and at the withered articles of bridal dress upon the table and
12471 the ground, and at her own awful figure with its ghostly reflection
12472 thrown large by the fire upon the ceiling and the wall, I saw in
12473 everything the construction that my mind had come to, repeated and
12474 thrown back to me. My thoughts passed into the great room across the
12475 landing where the table was spread, and I saw it written, as it were, in
12476 the falls of the cobwebs from the centre-piece, in the crawlings of the
12477 spiders on the cloth, in the tracks of the mice as they betook their
12478 little quickened hearts behind the panels, and in the gropings and
12479 pausings of the beetles on the floor.
12480
12481 It happened on the occasion of this visit that some sharp words arose
12482 between Estella and Miss Havisham. It was the first time I had ever seen
12483 them opposed.
12484
12485 We were seated by the fire, as just now described, and Miss Havisham
12486 still had Estella’s arm drawn through her own, and still clutched
12487 Estella’s hand in hers, when Estella gradually began to detach herself.
12488 She had shown a proud impatience more than once before, and had rather
12489 endured that fierce affection than accepted or returned it.
12490
12491 “What!” said Miss Havisham, flashing her eyes upon her, “are you tired
12492 of me?”
12493
12494 “Only a little tired of myself,” replied Estella, disengaging her arm,
12495 and moving to the great chimney-piece, where she stood looking down at
12496 the fire.
12497
12498 “Speak the truth, you ingrate!” cried Miss Havisham, passionately
12499 striking her stick upon the floor; “you are tired of me.”
12500
12501 Estella looked at her with perfect composure, and again looked down
12502 at the fire. Her graceful figure and her beautiful face expressed a
12503 self-possessed indifference to the wild heat of the other, that was
12504 almost cruel.
12505
12506 “You stock and stone!” exclaimed Miss Havisham. “You cold, cold heart!”
12507
12508 “What?” said Estella, preserving her attitude of indifference as she
12509 leaned against the great chimney-piece and only moving her eyes; “do you
12510 reproach me for being cold? You?”
12511
12512 “Are you not?” was the fierce retort.
12513
12514 “You should know,” said Estella. “I am what you have made me. Take
12515 all the praise, take all the blame; take all the success, take all the
12516 failure; in short, take me.”
12517
12518 “O, look at her, look at her!” cried Miss Havisham, bitterly; “Look at
12519 her so hard and thankless, on the hearth where she was reared! Where I
12520 took her into this wretched breast when it was first bleeding from its
12521 stabs, and where I have lavished years of tenderness upon her!”
12522
12523 “At least I was no party to the compact,” said Estella, “for if I could
12524 walk and speak, when it was made, it was as much as I could do. But what
12525 would you have? You have been very good to me, and I owe everything to
12526 you. What would you have?”
12527
12528 “Love,” replied the other.
12529
12530 “You have it.”
12531
12532 “I have not,” said Miss Havisham.
12533
12534 “Mother by adoption,” retorted Estella, never departing from the easy
12535 grace of her attitude, never raising her voice as the other did, never
12536 yielding either to anger or tenderness,--“mother by adoption, I have
12537 said that I owe everything to you. All I possess is freely yours. All
12538 that you have given me, is at your command to have again. Beyond that, I
12539 have nothing. And if you ask me to give you, what you never gave me, my
12540 gratitude and duty cannot do impossibilities.”
12541
12542 “Did I never give her love!” cried Miss Havisham, turning wildly to me.
12543 “Did I never give her a burning love, inseparable from jealousy at all
12544 times, and from sharp pain, while she speaks thus to me! Let her call me
12545 mad, let her call me mad!”
12546
12547 “Why should I call you mad,” returned Estella, “I, of all people? Does
12548 any one live, who knows what set purposes you have, half as well as I
12549 do? Does any one live, who knows what a steady memory you have, half
12550 as well as I do? I who have sat on this same hearth on the little stool
12551 that is even now beside you there, learning your lessons and looking up
12552 into your face, when your face was strange and frightened me!”
12553
12554 “Soon forgotten!” moaned Miss Havisham. “Times soon forgotten!”
12555
12556 “No, not forgotten,” retorted Estella,--“not forgotten, but treasured up
12557 in my memory. When have you found me false to your teaching? When have
12558 you found me unmindful of your lessons? When have you found me giving
12559 admission here,” she touched her bosom with her hand, “to anything that
12560 you excluded? Be just to me.”
12561
12562 “So proud, so proud!” moaned Miss Havisham, pushing away her gray hair
12563 with both her hands.
12564
12565 “Who taught me to be proud?” returned Estella. “Who praised me when I
12566 learnt my lesson?”
12567
12568 “So hard, so hard!” moaned Miss Havisham, with her former action.
12569
12570 “Who taught me to be hard?” returned Estella. “Who praised me when I
12571 learnt my lesson?”
12572
12573 “But to be proud and hard to me!” Miss Havisham quite shrieked, as she
12574 stretched out her arms. “Estella, Estella, Estella, to be proud and hard
12575 to me!”
12576
12577 Estella looked at her for a moment with a kind of calm wonder, but was
12578 not otherwise disturbed; when the moment was past, she looked down at
12579 the fire again.
12580
12581 “I cannot think,” said Estella, raising her eyes after a silence “why
12582 you should be so unreasonable when I come to see you after a separation.
12583 I have never forgotten your wrongs and their causes. I have never been
12584 unfaithful to you or your schooling. I have never shown any weakness
12585 that I can charge myself with.”
12586
12587 “Would it be weakness to return my love?” exclaimed Miss Havisham. “But
12588 yes, yes, she would call it so!”
12589
12590 “I begin to think,” said Estella, in a musing way, after another moment
12591 of calm wonder, “that I almost understand how this comes about. If you
12592 had brought up your adopted daughter wholly in the dark confinement of
12593 these rooms, and had never let her know that there was such a thing as
12594 the daylight by which she had never once seen your face,--if you had
12595 done that, and then, for a purpose had wanted her to understand the
12596 daylight and know all about it, you would have been disappointed and
12597 angry?”
12598
12599 Miss Havisham, with her head in her hands, sat making a low moaning, and
12600 swaying herself on her chair, but gave no answer.
12601
12602 “Or,” said Estella,--“which is a nearer case,--if you had taught her,
12603 from the dawn of her intelligence, with your utmost energy and might,
12604 that there was such a thing as daylight, but that it was made to be her
12605 enemy and destroyer, and she must always turn against it, for it had
12606 blighted you and would else blight her;--if you had done this, and then,
12607 for a purpose, had wanted her to take naturally to the daylight and she
12608 could not do it, you would have been disappointed and angry?”
12609
12610 Miss Havisham sat listening (or it seemed so, for I could not see her
12611 face), but still made no answer.
12612
12613 “So,” said Estella, “I must be taken as I have been made. The success is
12614 not mine, the failure is not mine, but the two together make me.”
12615
12616 Miss Havisham had settled down, I hardly knew how, upon the floor, among
12617 the faded bridal relics with which it was strewn. I took advantage of
12618 the moment--I had sought one from the first--to leave the room, after
12619 beseeching Estella’s attention to her, with a movement of my hand. When
12620 I left, Estella was yet standing by the great chimney-piece, just as she
12621 had stood throughout. Miss Havisham’s gray hair was all adrift upon the
12622 ground, among the other bridal wrecks, and was a miserable sight to see.
12623
12624 It was with a depressed heart that I walked in the starlight for an
12625 hour and more, about the courtyard, and about the brewery, and about
12626 the ruined garden. When I at last took courage to return to the room, I
12627 found Estella sitting at Miss Havisham’s knee, taking up some stitches
12628 in one of those old articles of dress that were dropping to pieces, and
12629 of which I have often been reminded since by the faded tatters of old
12630 banners that I have seen hanging up in cathedrals. Afterwards, Estella
12631 and I played at cards, as of yore,--only we were skilful now, and played
12632 French games,--and so the evening wore away, and I went to bed.
12633
12634 I lay in that separate building across the courtyard. It was the first
12635 time I had ever lain down to rest in Satis House, and sleep refused to
12636 come near me. A thousand Miss Havishams haunted me. She was on this side
12637 of my pillow, on that, at the head of the bed, at the foot, behind the
12638 half-opened door of the dressing-room, in the dressing-room, in the room
12639 overhead, in the room beneath,--everywhere. At last, when the night was
12640 slow to creep on towards two o’clock, I felt that I absolutely could no
12641 longer bear the place as a place to lie down in, and that I must get up.
12642 I therefore got up and put on my clothes, and went out across the yard
12643 into the long stone passage, designing to gain the outer courtyard and
12644 walk there for the relief of my mind. But I was no sooner in the passage
12645 than I extinguished my candle; for I saw Miss Havisham going along it
12646 in a ghostly manner, making a low cry. I followed her at a distance,
12647 and saw her go up the staircase. She carried a bare candle in her hand,
12648 which she had probably taken from one of the sconces in her own room,
12649 and was a most unearthly object by its light. Standing at the bottom
12650 of the staircase, I felt the mildewed air of the feast-chamber, without
12651 seeing her open the door, and I heard her walking there, and so across
12652 into her own room, and so across again into that, never ceasing the low
12653 cry. After a time, I tried in the dark both to get out, and to go back,
12654 but I could do neither until some streaks of day strayed in and showed
12655 me where to lay my hands. During the whole interval, whenever I went to
12656 the bottom of the staircase, I heard her footstep, saw her light pass
12657 above, and heard her ceaseless low cry.
12658
12659 Before we left next day, there was no revival of the difference between
12660 her and Estella, nor was it ever revived on any similar occasion; and
12661 there were four similar occasions, to the best of my remembrance. Nor,
12662 did Miss Havisham’s manner towards Estella in anywise change, except
12663 that I believed it to have something like fear infused among its former
12664 characteristics.
12665
12666 It is impossible to turn this leaf of my life, without putting Bentley
12667 Drummle’s name upon it; or I would, very gladly.
12668
12669 On a certain occasion when the Finches were assembled in force, and when
12670 good feeling was being promoted in the usual manner by nobody’s agreeing
12671 with anybody else, the presiding Finch called the Grove to order,
12672 forasmuch as Mr. Drummle had not yet toasted a lady; which, according
12673 to the solemn constitution of the society, it was the brute’s turn to
12674 do that day. I thought I saw him leer in an ugly way at me while the
12675 decanters were going round, but as there was no love lost between us,
12676 that might easily be. What was my indignant surprise when he called upon
12677 the company to pledge him to “Estella!”
12678
12679 “Estella who?” said I.
12680
12681 “Never you mind,” retorted Drummle.
12682
12683 “Estella of where?” said I. “You are bound to say of where.” Which he
12684 was, as a Finch.
12685
12686 “Of Richmond, gentlemen,” said Drummle, putting me out of the question,
12687 “and a peerless beauty.”
12688
12689 Much he knew about peerless beauties, a mean, miserable idiot! I
12690 whispered Herbert.
12691
12692 “I know that lady,” said Herbert, across the table, when the toast had
12693 been honored.
12694
12695 “Do you?” said Drummle.
12696
12697 “And so do I,” I added, with a scarlet face.
12698
12699 “Do you?” said Drummle. “O, Lord!”
12700
12701 This was the only retort--except glass or crockery--that the heavy
12702 creature was capable of making; but, I became as highly incensed by it
12703 as if it had been barbed with wit, and I immediately rose in my place
12704 and said that I could not but regard it as being like the honorable
12705 Finch’s impudence to come down to that Grove,--we always talked
12706 about coming down to that Grove, as a neat Parliamentary turn of
12707 expression,--down to that Grove, proposing a lady of whom he knew
12708 nothing. Mr. Drummle, upon this, starting up, demanded what I meant by
12709 that? Whereupon I made him the extreme reply that I believed he knew
12710 where I was to be found.
12711
12712 Whether it was possible in a Christian country to get on without blood,
12713 after this, was a question on which the Finches were divided. The debate
12714 upon it grew so lively, indeed, that at least six more honorable members
12715 told six more, during the discussion, that they believed they knew where
12716 they were to be found. However, it was decided at last (the Grove being
12717 a Court of Honor) that if Mr. Drummle would bring never so slight
12718 a certificate from the lady, importing that he had the honor of her
12719 acquaintance, Mr. Pip must express his regret, as a gentleman and a
12720 Finch, for “having been betrayed into a warmth which.” Next day was
12721 appointed for the production (lest our honor should take cold from
12722 delay), and next day Drummle appeared with a polite little avowal in
12723 Estella’s hand, that she had had the honor of dancing with him several
12724 times. This left me no course but to regret that I had been “betrayed
12725 into a warmth which,” and on the whole to repudiate, as untenable, the
12726 idea that I was to be found anywhere. Drummle and I then sat snorting
12727 at one another for an hour, while the Grove engaged in indiscriminate
12728 contradiction, and finally the promotion of good feeling was declared to
12729 have gone ahead at an amazing rate.
12730
12731 I tell this lightly, but it was no light thing to me. For, I cannot
12732 adequately express what pain it gave me to think that Estella should
12733 show any favor to a contemptible, clumsy, sulky booby, so very far below
12734 the average. To the present moment, I believe it to have been referable
12735 to some pure fire of generosity and disinterestedness in my love for
12736 her, that I could not endure the thought of her stooping to that hound.
12737 No doubt I should have been miserable whomsoever she had favored; but
12738 a worthier object would have caused me a different kind and degree of
12739 distress.
12740
12741 It was easy for me to find out, and I did soon find out, that Drummle
12742 had begun to follow her closely, and that she allowed him to do it. A
12743 little while, and he was always in pursuit of her, and he and I crossed
12744 one another every day. He held on, in a dull persistent way, and Estella
12745 held him on; now with encouragement, now with discouragement, now almost
12746 flattering him, now openly despising him, now knowing him very well, now
12747 scarcely remembering who he was.
12748
12749 The Spider, as Mr. Jaggers had called him, was used to lying in wait,
12750 however, and had the patience of his tribe. Added to that, he had a
12751 blockhead confidence in his money and in his family greatness,
12752 which sometimes did him good service,--almost taking the place of
12753 concentration and determined purpose. So, the Spider, doggedly watching
12754 Estella, outwatched many brighter insects, and would often uncoil
12755 himself and drop at the right nick of time.
12756
12757 At a certain Assembly Ball at Richmond (there used to be Assembly Balls
12758 at most places then), where Estella had outshone all other beauties,
12759 this blundering Drummle so hung about her, and with so much toleration
12760 on her part, that I resolved to speak to her concerning him. I took the
12761 next opportunity; which was when she was waiting for Mrs. Blandley to
12762 take her home, and was sitting apart among some flowers, ready to go.
12763 I was with her, for I almost always accompanied them to and from such
12764 places.
12765
12766 “Are you tired, Estella?”
12767
12768 “Rather, Pip.”
12769
12770 “You should be.”
12771
12772 “Say rather, I should not be; for I have my letter to Satis House to
12773 write, before I go to sleep.”
12774
12775 “Recounting to-night’s triumph?” said I. “Surely a very poor one,
12776 Estella.”
12777
12778 “What do you mean? I didn’t know there had been any.”
12779
12780 “Estella,” said I, “do look at that fellow in the corner yonder, who is
12781 looking over here at us.”
12782
12783 “Why should I look at him?” returned Estella, with her eyes on me
12784 instead. “What is there in that fellow in the corner yonder,--to use
12785 your words,--that I need look at?”
12786
12787 “Indeed, that is the very question I want to ask you,” said I. “For he
12788 has been hovering about you all night.”
12789
12790 “Moths, and all sorts of ugly creatures,” replied Estella, with a glance
12791 towards him, “hover about a lighted candle. Can the candle help it?”
12792
12793 “No,” I returned; “but cannot the Estella help it?”
12794
12795 “Well!” said she, laughing, after a moment, “perhaps. Yes. Anything you
12796 like.”
12797
12798 “But, Estella, do hear me speak. It makes me wretched that you should
12799 encourage a man so generally despised as Drummle. You know he is
12800 despised.”
12801
12802 “Well?” said she.
12803
12804 “You know he is as ungainly within as without. A deficient,
12805 ill-tempered, lowering, stupid fellow.”
12806
12807 “Well?” said she.
12808
12809 “You know he has nothing to recommend him but money and a ridiculous
12810 roll of addle-headed predecessors; now, don’t you?”
12811
12812 “Well?” said she again; and each time she said it, she opened her lovely
12813 eyes the wider.
12814
12815 To overcome the difficulty of getting past that monosyllable, I took it
12816 from her, and said, repeating it with emphasis, “Well! Then, that is why
12817 it makes me wretched.”
12818
12819 Now, if I could have believed that she favored Drummle with any idea of
12820 making me-me--wretched, I should have been in better heart about it;
12821 but in that habitual way of hers, she put me so entirely out of the
12822 question, that I could believe nothing of the kind.
12823
12824 “Pip,” said Estella, casting her glance over the room, “don’t be foolish
12825 about its effect on you. It may have its effect on others, and may be
12826 meant to have. It’s not worth discussing.”
12827
12828 “Yes it is,” said I, “because I cannot bear that people should say, ‘she
12829 throws away her graces and attractions on a mere boor, the lowest in the
12830 crowd.’”
12831
12832 “I can bear it,” said Estella.
12833
12834 “Oh! don’t be so proud, Estella, and so inflexible.”
12835
12836 “Calls me proud and inflexible in this breath!” said Estella, opening
12837 her hands. “And in his last breath reproached me for stooping to a
12838 boor!”
12839
12840 “There is no doubt you do,” said I, something hurriedly, “for I have
12841 seen you give him looks and smiles this very night, such as you never
12842 give to--me.”
12843
12844 “Do you want me then,” said Estella, turning suddenly with a fixed and
12845 serious, if not angry, look, “to deceive and entrap you?”
12846
12847 “Do you deceive and entrap him, Estella?”
12848
12849 “Yes, and many others,--all of them but you. Here is Mrs. Brandley. I’ll
12850 say no more.”
12851
12852 * *
12853
12854 And now that I have given the one chapter to the theme that so filled my
12855 heart, and so often made it ache and ache again, I pass on unhindered,
12856 to the event that had impended over me longer yet; the event that had
12857 begun to be prepared for, before I knew that the world held Estella,
12858 and in the days when her baby intelligence was receiving its first
12859 distortions from Miss Havisham’s wasting hands.
12860
12861 In the Eastern story, the heavy slab that was to fall on the bed of
12862 state in the flush of conquest was slowly wrought out of the quarry, the
12863 tunnel for the rope to hold it in its place was slowly carried through
12864 the leagues of rock, the slab was slowly raised and fitted in the roof,
12865 the rope was rove to it and slowly taken through the miles of hollow to
12866 the great iron ring. All being made ready with much labor, and the hour
12867 come, the sultan was aroused in the dead of the night, and the sharpened
12868 axe that was to sever the rope from the great iron ring was put into his
12869 hand, and he struck with it, and the rope parted and rushed away, and
12870 the ceiling fell. So, in my case; all the work, near and afar, that
12871 tended to the end, had been accomplished; and in an instant the blow was
12872 struck, and the roof of my stronghold dropped upon me.
12873
12874
12875
12876
12877 Chapter XXXIX
12878
12879 I was three-and-twenty years of age. Not another word had I heard to
12880 enlighten me on the subject of my expectations, and my twenty-third
12881 birthday was a week gone. We had left Barnard’s Inn more than a year,
12882 and lived in the Temple. Our chambers were in Garden-court, down by the
12883 river.
12884
12885 Mr. Pocket and I had for some time parted company as to our original
12886 relations, though we continued on the best terms. Notwithstanding my
12887 inability to settle to anything,--which I hope arose out of the restless
12888 and incomplete tenure on which I held my means,--I had a taste for
12889 reading, and read regularly so many hours a day. That matter of
12890 Herbert’s was still progressing, and everything with me was as I have
12891 brought it down to the close of the last preceding chapter.
12892
12893 Business had taken Herbert on a journey to Marseilles. I was alone, and
12894 had a dull sense of being alone. Dispirited and anxious, long hoping
12895 that to-morrow or next week would clear my way, and long disappointed, I
12896 sadly missed the cheerful face and ready response of my friend.
12897
12898 It was wretched weather; stormy and wet, stormy and wet; and mud, mud,
12899 mud, deep in all the streets. Day after day, a vast heavy veil had been
12900 driving over London from the East, and it drove still, as if in the East
12901 there were an Eternity of cloud and wind. So furious had been the gusts,
12902 that high buildings in town had had the lead stripped off their roofs;
12903 and in the country, trees had been torn up, and sails of windmills
12904 carried away; and gloomy accounts had come in from the coast, of
12905 shipwreck and death. Violent blasts of rain had accompanied these rages
12906 of wind, and the day just closed as I sat down to read had been the
12907 worst of all.
12908
12909 Alterations have been made in that part of the Temple since that time,
12910 and it has not now so lonely a character as it had then, nor is it so
12911 exposed to the river. We lived at the top of the last house, and the
12912 wind rushing up the river shook the house that night, like discharges
12913 of cannon, or breakings of a sea. When the rain came with it and dashed
12914 against the windows, I thought, raising my eyes to them as they
12915 rocked, that I might have fancied myself in a storm-beaten lighthouse.
12916 Occasionally, the smoke came rolling down the chimney as though it could
12917 not bear to go out into such a night; and when I set the doors open and
12918 looked down the staircase, the staircase lamps were blown out; and when
12919 I shaded my face with my hands and looked through the black windows
12920 (opening them ever so little was out of the question in the teeth of
12921 such wind and rain), I saw that the lamps in the court were blown out,
12922 and that the lamps on the bridges and the shore were shuddering, and
12923 that the coal-fires in barges on the river were being carried away
12924 before the wind like red-hot splashes in the rain.
12925
12926 I read with my watch upon the table, purposing to close my book
12927 at eleven o’clock. As I shut it, Saint Paul’s, and all the many
12928 church-clocks in the City--some leading, some accompanying, some
12929 following--struck that hour. The sound was curiously flawed by the wind;
12930 and I was listening, and thinking how the wind assailed and tore it,
12931 when I heard a footstep on the stair.
12932
12933 What nervous folly made me start, and awfully connect it with the
12934 footstep of my dead sister, matters not. It was past in a moment, and I
12935 listened again, and heard the footstep stumble in coming on.
12936 Remembering then, that the staircase-lights were blown out, I took up
12937 my reading-lamp and went out to the stair-head. Whoever was below had
12938 stopped on seeing my lamp, for all was quiet.
12939
12940 “There is some one down there, is there not?” I called out, looking
12941 down.
12942
12943 “Yes,” said a voice from the darkness beneath.
12944
12945 “What floor do you want?”
12946
12947 “The top. Mr. Pip.”
12948
12949 “That is my name.--There is nothing the matter?”
12950
12951 “Nothing the matter,” returned the voice. And the man came on.
12952
12953 I stood with my lamp held out over the stair-rail, and he came slowly
12954 within its light. It was a shaded lamp, to shine upon a book, and its
12955 circle of light was very contracted; so that he was in it for a mere
12956 instant, and then out of it. In the instant, I had seen a face that was
12957 strange to me, looking up with an incomprehensible air of being touched
12958 and pleased by the sight of me.
12959
12960 Moving the lamp as the man moved, I made out that he was substantially
12961 dressed, but roughly, like a voyager by sea. That he had long iron-gray
12962 hair. That his age was about sixty. That he was a muscular man, strong
12963 on his legs, and that he was browned and hardened by exposure to
12964 weather. As he ascended the last stair or two, and the light of my lamp
12965 included us both, I saw, with a stupid kind of amazement, that he was
12966 holding out both his hands to me.
12967
12968 “Pray what is your business?” I asked him.
12969
12970 “My business?” he repeated, pausing. “Ah! Yes. I will explain my
12971 business, by your leave.”
12972
12973 “Do you wish to come in?”
12974
12975 “Yes,” he replied; “I wish to come in, master.”
12976
12977 I had asked him the question inhospitably enough, for I resented the
12978 sort of bright and gratified recognition that still shone in his face.
12979 I resented it, because it seemed to imply that he expected me to respond
12980 to it. But I took him into the room I had just left, and, having set the
12981 lamp on the table, asked him as civilly as I could to explain himself.
12982
12983 He looked about him with the strangest air,--an air of wondering
12984 pleasure, as if he had some part in the things he admired,--and he
12985 pulled off a rough outer coat, and his hat. Then, I saw that his head
12986 was furrowed and bald, and that the long iron-gray hair grew only on
12987 its sides. But, I saw nothing that in the least explained him. On the
12988 contrary, I saw him next moment, once more holding out both his hands to
12989 me.
12990
12991 “What do you mean?” said I, half suspecting him to be mad.
12992
12993 He stopped in his looking at me, and slowly rubbed his right hand over
12994 his head. “It’s disapinting to a man,” he said, in a coarse broken
12995 voice, “arter having looked for’ard so distant, and come so fur; but
12996 you’re not to blame for that,--neither on us is to blame for that. I’ll
12997 speak in half a minute. Give me half a minute, please.”
12998
12999 He sat down on a chair that stood before the fire, and covered his
13000 forehead with his large brown veinous hands. I looked at him attentively
13001 then, and recoiled a little from him; but I did not know him.
13002
13003 “There’s no one nigh,” said he, looking over his shoulder; “is there?”
13004
13005 “Why do you, a stranger coming into my rooms at this time of the night,
13006 ask that question?” said I.
13007
13008 “You’re a game one,” he returned, shaking his head at me with a
13009 deliberate affection, at once most unintelligible and most exasperating;
13010 “I’m glad you’ve grow’d up, a game one! But don’t catch hold of me.
13011 You’d be sorry arterwards to have done it.”
13012
13013 I relinquished the intention he had detected, for I knew him! Even yet
13014 I could not recall a single feature, but I knew him! If the wind and
13015 the rain had driven away the intervening years, had scattered all the
13016 intervening objects, had swept us to the churchyard where we first stood
13017 face to face on such different levels, I could not have known my convict
13018 more distinctly than I knew him now as he sat in the chair before the
13019 fire. No need to take a file from his pocket and show it to me; no need
13020 to take the handkerchief from his neck and twist it round his head; no
13021 need to hug himself with both his arms, and take a shivering turn across
13022 the room, looking back at me for recognition. I knew him before he gave
13023 me one of those aids, though, a moment before, I had not been conscious
13024 of remotely suspecting his identity.
13025
13026 He came back to where I stood, and again held out both his hands.
13027 Not knowing what to do,--for, in my astonishment I had lost my
13028 self-possession,--I reluctantly gave him my hands. He grasped them
13029 heartily, raised them to his lips, kissed them, and still held them.
13030
13031 “You acted noble, my boy,” said he. “Noble, Pip! And I have never forgot
13032 it!”
13033
13034 At a change in his manner as if he were even going to embrace me, I laid
13035 a hand upon his breast and put him away.
13036
13037 “Stay!” said I. “Keep off! If you are grateful to me for what I did when
13038 I was a little child, I hope you have shown your gratitude by mending
13039 your way of life. If you have come here to thank me, it was not
13040 necessary. Still, however you have found me out, there must be something
13041 good in the feeling that has brought you here, and I will not repulse
13042 you; but surely you must understand that--I--”
13043
13044 My attention was so attracted by the singularity of his fixed look at
13045 me, that the words died away on my tongue.
13046
13047 “You was a saying,” he observed, when we had confronted one another
13048 in silence, “that surely I must understand. What, surely must I
13049 understand?”
13050
13051 “That I cannot wish to renew that chance intercourse with you of long
13052 ago, under these different circumstances. I am glad to believe you have
13053 repented and recovered yourself. I am glad to tell you so. I am glad
13054 that, thinking I deserve to be thanked, you have come to thank me. But
13055 our ways are different ways, none the less. You are wet, and you look
13056 weary. Will you drink something before you go?”
13057
13058 He had replaced his neckerchief loosely, and had stood, keenly observant
13059 of me, biting a long end of it. “I think,” he answered, still with the
13060 end at his mouth and still observant of me, “that I will drink (I thank
13061 you) afore I go.”
13062
13063 There was a tray ready on a side-table. I brought it to the table
13064 near the fire, and asked him what he would have? He touched one of the
13065 bottles without looking at it or speaking, and I made him some hot rum
13066 and water. I tried to keep my hand steady while I did so, but his look
13067 at me as he leaned back in his chair with the long draggled end of his
13068 neckerchief between his teeth--evidently forgotten--made my hand very
13069 difficult to master. When at last I put the glass to him, I saw with
13070 amazement that his eyes were full of tears.
13071
13072 Up to this time I had remained standing, not to disguise that I wished
13073 him gone. But I was softened by the softened aspect of the man, and felt
13074 a touch of reproach. “I hope,” said I, hurriedly putting something into
13075 a glass for myself, and drawing a chair to the table, “that you will not
13076 think I spoke harshly to you just now. I had no intention of doing it,
13077 and I am sorry for it if I did. I wish you well and happy!”
13078
13079 As I put my glass to my lips, he glanced with surprise at the end of his
13080 neckerchief, dropping from his mouth when he opened it, and stretched
13081 out his hand. I gave him mine, and then he drank, and drew his sleeve
13082 across his eyes and forehead.
13083
13084 “How are you living?” I asked him.
13085
13086 “I’ve been a sheep-farmer, stock-breeder, other trades besides, away in
13087 the new world,” said he; “many a thousand mile of stormy water off from
13088 this.”
13089
13090 “I hope you have done well?”
13091
13092 “I’ve done wonderfully well. There’s others went out alonger me as has
13093 done well too, but no man has done nigh as well as me. I’m famous for
13094 it.”
13095
13096 “I am glad to hear it.”
13097
13098 “I hope to hear you say so, my dear boy.”
13099
13100 Without stopping to try to understand those words or the tone in which
13101 they were spoken, I turned off to a point that had just come into my
13102 mind.
13103
13104 “Have you ever seen a messenger you once sent to me,” I inquired, “since
13105 he undertook that trust?”
13106
13107 “Never set eyes upon him. I warn’t likely to it.”
13108
13109 “He came faithfully, and he brought me the two one-pound notes. I was
13110 a poor boy then, as you know, and to a poor boy they were a little
13111 fortune. But, like you, I have done well since, and you must let me pay
13112 them back. You can put them to some other poor boy’s use.” I took out my
13113 purse.
13114
13115 He watched me as I laid my purse upon the table and opened it, and he
13116 watched me as I separated two one-pound notes from its contents. They
13117 were clean and new, and I spread them out and handed them over to
13118 him. Still watching me, he laid them one upon the other, folded them
13119 long-wise, gave them a twist, set fire to them at the lamp, and dropped
13120 the ashes into the tray.
13121
13122 “May I make so bold,” he said then, with a smile that was like a frown,
13123 and with a frown that was like a smile, “as ask you how you have done
13124 well, since you and me was out on them lone shivering marshes?”
13125
13126 “How?”
13127
13128 “Ah!”
13129
13130 He emptied his glass, got up, and stood at the side of the fire, with
13131 his heavy brown hand on the mantel-shelf. He put a foot up to the bars,
13132 to dry and warm it, and the wet boot began to steam; but, he neither
13133 looked at it, nor at the fire, but steadily looked at me. It was only
13134 now that I began to tremble.
13135
13136 When my lips had parted, and had shaped some words that were
13137 without sound, I forced myself to tell him (though I could not do it
13138 distinctly), that I had been chosen to succeed to some property.
13139
13140 “Might a mere warmint ask what property?” said he.
13141
13142 I faltered, “I don’t know.”
13143
13144 “Might a mere warmint ask whose property?” said he.
13145
13146 I faltered again, “I don’t know.”
13147
13148 “Could I make a guess, I wonder,” said the Convict, “at your income
13149 since you come of age! As to the first figure now. Five?”
13150
13151 With my heart beating like a heavy hammer of disordered action, I rose
13152 out of my chair, and stood with my hand upon the back of it, looking
13153 wildly at him.
13154
13155 “Concerning a guardian,” he went on. “There ought to have been some
13156 guardian, or such-like, whiles you was a minor. Some lawyer, maybe. As
13157 to the first letter of that lawyer’s name now. Would it be J?”
13158
13159 All the truth of my position came flashing on me; and its
13160 disappointments, dangers, disgraces, consequences of all kinds, rushed
13161 in in such a multitude that I was borne down by them and had to struggle
13162 for every breath I drew.
13163
13164 “Put it,” he resumed, “as the employer of that lawyer whose name begun
13165 with a J, and might be Jaggers,--put it as he had come over sea to
13166 Portsmouth, and had landed there, and had wanted to come on to you.
13167 ‘However, you have found me out,’ you says just now. Well! However, did
13168 I find you out? Why, I wrote from Portsmouth to a person in London, for
13169 particulars of your address. That person’s name? Why, Wemmick.”
13170
13171 I could not have spoken one word, though it had been to save my life.
13172 I stood, with a hand on the chair-back and a hand on my breast, where
13173 I seemed to be suffocating,--I stood so, looking wildly at him, until I
13174 grasped at the chair, when the room began to surge and turn. He caught
13175 me, drew me to the sofa, put me up against the cushions, and bent on one
13176 knee before me, bringing the face that I now well remembered, and that I
13177 shuddered at, very near to mine.
13178
13179 “Yes, Pip, dear boy, I’ve made a gentleman on you! It’s me wot has
13180 done it! I swore that time, sure as ever I earned a guinea, that guinea
13181 should go to you. I swore arterwards, sure as ever I spec’lated and got
13182 rich, you should get rich. I lived rough, that you should live smooth;
13183 I worked hard, that you should be above work. What odds, dear boy? Do I
13184 tell it, fur you to feel a obligation? Not a bit. I tell it, fur you to
13185 know as that there hunted dunghill dog wot you kep life in, got his head
13186 so high that he could make a gentleman,--and, Pip, you’re him!”
13187
13188 The abhorrence in which I held the man, the dread I had of him, the
13189 repugnance with which I shrank from him, could not have been exceeded if
13190 he had been some terrible beast.
13191
13192 “Look’ee here, Pip. I’m your second father. You’re my son,--more to me
13193 nor any son. I’ve put away money, only for you to spend. When I was a
13194 hired-out shepherd in a solitary hut, not seeing no faces but faces of
13195 sheep till I half forgot wot men’s and women’s faces wos like, I see
13196 yourn. I drops my knife many a time in that hut when I was a-eating my
13197 dinner or my supper, and I says, ‘Here’s the boy again, a looking at
13198 me whiles I eats and drinks!’ I see you there a many times, as plain as
13199 ever I see you on them misty marshes. ‘Lord strike me dead!’ I says each
13200 time,--and I goes out in the air to say it under the open heavens,--‘but
13201 wot, if I gets liberty and money, I’ll make that boy a gentleman!’ And
13202 I done it. Why, look at you, dear boy! Look at these here lodgings
13203 o’yourn, fit for a lord! A lord? Ah! You shall show money with lords for
13204 wagers, and beat ‘em!”
13205
13206 In his heat and triumph, and in his knowledge that I had been nearly
13207 fainting, he did not remark on my reception of all this. It was the one
13208 grain of relief I had.
13209
13210 “Look’ee here!” he went on, taking my watch out of my pocket, and
13211 turning towards him a ring on my finger, while I recoiled from his
13212 touch as if he had been a snake, “a gold ‘un and a beauty: that’s a
13213 gentleman’s, I hope! A diamond all set round with rubies; that’s a
13214 gentleman’s, I hope! Look at your linen; fine and beautiful! Look at
13215 your clothes; better ain’t to be got! And your books too,” turning his
13216 eyes round the room, “mounting up, on their shelves, by hundreds! And
13217 you read ‘em; don’t you? I see you’d been a reading of ‘em when I come
13218 in. Ha, ha, ha! You shall read ‘em to me, dear boy! And if they’re in
13219 foreign languages wot I don’t understand, I shall be just as proud as if
13220 I did.”
13221
13222 Again he took both my hands and put them to his lips, while my blood ran
13223 cold within me.
13224
13225 “Don’t you mind talking, Pip,” said he, after again drawing his sleeve
13226 over his eyes and forehead, as the click came in his throat which I well
13227 remembered,--and he was all the more horrible to me that he was so much
13228 in earnest; “you can’t do better nor keep quiet, dear boy. You ain’t
13229 looked slowly forward to this as I have; you wosn’t prepared for this as
13230 I wos. But didn’t you never think it might be me?”
13231
13232 “O no, no, no,” I returned, “Never, never!”
13233
13234 “Well, you see it wos me, and single-handed. Never a soul in it but my
13235 own self and Mr. Jaggers.”
13236
13237 “Was there no one else?” I asked.
13238
13239 “No,” said he, with a glance of surprise: “who else should there be?
13240 And, dear boy, how good looking you have growed! There’s bright eyes
13241 somewheres--eh? Isn’t there bright eyes somewheres, wot you love the
13242 thoughts on?”
13243
13244 O Estella, Estella!
13245
13246 “They shall be yourn, dear boy, if money can buy ‘em. Not that a
13247 gentleman like you, so well set up as you, can’t win ‘em off of his own
13248 game; but money shall back you! Let me finish wot I was a telling you,
13249 dear boy. From that there hut and that there hiring-out, I got money
13250 left me by my master (which died, and had been the same as me), and got
13251 my liberty and went for myself. In every single thing I went for, I went
13252 for you. ‘Lord strike a blight upon it,’ I says, wotever it was I went
13253 for, ‘if it ain’t for him!’ It all prospered wonderful. As I giv’ you
13254 to understand just now, I’m famous for it. It was the money left me, and
13255 the gains of the first few year wot I sent home to Mr. Jaggers--all for
13256 you--when he first come arter you, agreeable to my letter.”
13257
13258 O that he had never come! That he had left me at the forge,--far from
13259 contented, yet, by comparison happy!
13260
13261 “And then, dear boy, it was a recompense to me, look’ee here, to know in
13262 secret that I was making a gentleman. The blood horses of them colonists
13263 might fling up the dust over me as I was walking; what do I say? I says
13264 to myself, ‘I’m making a better gentleman nor ever you’ll be!’ When
13265 one of ‘em says to another, ‘He was a convict, a few year ago, and is a
13266 ignorant common fellow now, for all he’s lucky,’ what do I say? I says
13267 to myself, ‘If I ain’t a gentleman, nor yet ain’t got no learning, I’m
13268 the owner of such. All on you owns stock and land; which on you owns a
13269 brought-up London gentleman?’ This way I kep myself a going. And this
13270 way I held steady afore my mind that I would for certain come one day
13271 and see my boy, and make myself known to him, on his own ground.”
13272
13273 He laid his hand on my shoulder. I shuddered at the thought that for
13274 anything I knew, his hand might be stained with blood.
13275
13276 “It warn’t easy, Pip, for me to leave them parts, nor yet it warn’t
13277 safe. But I held to it, and the harder it was, the stronger I held, for
13278 I was determined, and my mind firm made up. At last I done it. Dear boy,
13279 I done it!”
13280
13281 I tried to collect my thoughts, but I was stunned. Throughout, I had
13282 seemed to myself to attend more to the wind and the rain than to him;
13283 even now, I could not separate his voice from those voices, though those
13284 were loud and his was silent.
13285
13286 “Where will you put me?” he asked, presently. “I must be put somewheres,
13287 dear boy.”
13288
13289 “To sleep?” said I.
13290
13291 “Yes. And to sleep long and sound,” he answered; “for I’ve been
13292 sea-tossed and sea-washed, months and months.”
13293
13294 “My friend and companion,” said I, rising from the sofa, “is absent; you
13295 must have his room.”
13296
13297 “He won’t come back to-morrow; will he?”
13298
13299 “No,” said I, answering almost mechanically, in spite of my utmost
13300 efforts; “not to-morrow.”
13301
13302 “Because, look’ee here, dear boy,” he said, dropping his voice, and
13303 laying a long finger on my breast in an impressive manner, “caution is
13304 necessary.”
13305
13306 “How do you mean? Caution?”
13307
13308 “By G----, it’s Death!”
13309
13310 “What’s death?”
13311
13312 “I was sent for life. It’s death to come back. There’s been overmuch
13313 coming back of late years, and I should of a certainty be hanged if
13314 took.”
13315
13316 Nothing was needed but this; the wretched man, after loading wretched me
13317 with his gold and silver chains for years, had risked his life to come
13318 to me, and I held it there in my keeping! If I had loved him instead
13319 of abhorring him; if I had been attracted to him by the strongest
13320 admiration and affection, instead of shrinking from him with the
13321 strongest repugnance; it could have been no worse. On the contrary, it
13322 would have been better, for his preservation would then have naturally
13323 and tenderly addressed my heart.
13324
13325 My first care was to close the shutters, so that no light might be seen
13326 from without, and then to close and make fast the doors. While I did so,
13327 he stood at the table drinking rum and eating biscuit; and when I saw
13328 him thus engaged, I saw my convict on the marshes at his meal again. It
13329 almost seemed to me as if he must stoop down presently, to file at his
13330 leg.
13331
13332 When I had gone into Herbert’s room, and had shut off any other
13333 communication between it and the staircase than through the room in
13334 which our conversation had been held, I asked him if he would go to bed?
13335 He said yes, but asked me for some of my “gentleman’s linen” to put
13336 on in the morning. I brought it out, and laid it ready for him, and my
13337 blood again ran cold when he again took me by both hands to give me good
13338 night.
13339
13340 I got away from him, without knowing how I did it, and mended the fire
13341 in the room where we had been together, and sat down by it, afraid to go
13342 to bed. For an hour or more, I remained too stunned to think; and it
13343 was not until I began to think, that I began fully to know how wrecked I
13344 was, and how the ship in which I had sailed was gone to pieces.
13345
13346 Miss Havisham’s intentions towards me, all a mere dream; Estella not
13347 designed for me; I only suffered in Satis House as a convenience, a
13348 sting for the greedy relations, a model with a mechanical heart to
13349 practise on when no other practice was at hand; those were the first
13350 smarts I had. But, sharpest and deepest pain of all,--it was for the
13351 convict, guilty of I knew not what crimes, and liable to be taken out
13352 of those rooms where I sat thinking, and hanged at the Old Bailey door,
13353 that I had deserted Joe.
13354
13355 I would not have gone back to Joe now, I would not have gone back to
13356 Biddy now, for any consideration; simply, I suppose, because my sense of
13357 my own worthless conduct to them was greater than every consideration.
13358 No wisdom on earth could have given me the comfort that I should have
13359 derived from their simplicity and fidelity; but I could never, never,
13360 undo what I had done.
13361
13362 In every rage of wind and rush of rain, I heard pursuers. Twice, I could
13363 have sworn there was a knocking and whispering at the outer door. With
13364 these fears upon me, I began either to imagine or recall that I had had
13365 mysterious warnings of this man’s approach. That, for weeks gone by, I
13366 had passed faces in the streets which I had thought like his. That these
13367 likenesses had grown more numerous, as he, coming over the sea, had
13368 drawn nearer. That his wicked spirit had somehow sent these messengers
13369 to mine, and that now on this stormy night he was as good as his word,
13370 and with me.
13371
13372 Crowding up with these reflections came the reflection that I had seen
13373 him with my childish eyes to be a desperately violent man; that I had
13374 heard that other convict reiterate that he had tried to murder him; that
13375 I had seen him down in the ditch tearing and fighting like a wild
13376 beast. Out of such remembrances I brought into the light of the fire a
13377 half-formed terror that it might not be safe to be shut up there with
13378 him in the dead of the wild solitary night. This dilated until it filled
13379 the room, and impelled me to take a candle and go in and look at my
13380 dreadful burden.
13381
13382 He had rolled a handkerchief round his head, and his face was set and
13383 lowering in his sleep. But he was asleep, and quietly too, though he had
13384 a pistol lying on the pillow. Assured of this, I softly removed the key
13385 to the outside of his door, and turned it on him before I again sat down
13386 by the fire. Gradually I slipped from the chair and lay on the floor.
13387 When I awoke without having parted in my sleep with the perception of
13388 my wretchedness, the clocks of the Eastward churches were striking five,
13389 the candles were wasted out, the fire was dead, and the wind and rain
13390 intensified the thick black darkness.
13391
13392 THIS IS THE END OF THE SECOND STAGE OF PIP’S EXPECTATIONS.
13393
13394
13395
13396
13397 Chapter XL
13398
13399 It was fortunate for me that I had to take precautions to ensure (so far
13400 as I could) the safety of my dreaded visitor; for, this thought pressing
13401 on me when I awoke, held other thoughts in a confused concourse at a
13402 distance.
13403
13404 The impossibility of keeping him concealed in the chambers was
13405 self-evident. It could not be done, and the attempt to do it would
13406 inevitably engender suspicion. True, I had no Avenger in my service now,
13407 but I was looked after by an inflammatory old female, assisted by an
13408 animated rag-bag whom she called her niece, and to keep a room secret
13409 from them would be to invite curiosity and exaggeration. They both had
13410 weak eyes, which I had long attributed to their chronically looking in
13411 at keyholes, and they were always at hand when not wanted; indeed that
13412 was their only reliable quality besides larceny. Not to get up a mystery
13413 with these people, I resolved to announce in the morning that my uncle
13414 had unexpectedly come from the country.
13415
13416 This course I decided on while I was yet groping about in the darkness
13417 for the means of getting a light. Not stumbling on the means after all,
13418 I was fain to go out to the adjacent Lodge and get the watchman there to
13419 come with his lantern. Now, in groping my way down the black staircase I
13420 fell over something, and that something was a man crouching in a corner.
13421
13422 As the man made no answer when I asked him what he did there, but eluded
13423 my touch in silence, I ran to the Lodge and urged the watchman to come
13424 quickly; telling him of the incident on the way back. The wind being as
13425 fierce as ever, we did not care to endanger the light in the lantern by
13426 rekindling the extinguished lamps on the staircase, but we examined the
13427 staircase from the bottom to the top and found no one there. It then
13428 occurred to me as possible that the man might have slipped into my
13429 rooms; so, lighting my candle at the watchman’s, and leaving him
13430 standing at the door, I examined them carefully, including the room in
13431 which my dreaded guest lay asleep. All was quiet, and assuredly no other
13432 man was in those chambers.
13433
13434 It troubled me that there should have been a lurker on the stairs, on
13435 that night of all nights in the year, and I asked the watchman, on the
13436 chance of eliciting some hopeful explanation as I handed him a dram
13437 at the door, whether he had admitted at his gate any gentleman who had
13438 perceptibly been dining out? Yes, he said; at different times of the
13439 night, three. One lived in Fountain Court, and the other two lived in
13440 the Lane, and he had seen them all go home. Again, the only other man
13441 who dwelt in the house of which my chambers formed a part had been in
13442 the country for some weeks, and he certainly had not returned in the
13443 night, because we had seen his door with his seal on it as we came
13444 upstairs.
13445
13446 “The night being so bad, sir,” said the watchman, as he gave me back
13447 my glass, “uncommon few have come in at my gate. Besides them three
13448 gentlemen that I have named, I don’t call to mind another since about
13449 eleven o’clock, when a stranger asked for you.”
13450
13451 “My uncle,” I muttered. “Yes.”
13452
13453 “You saw him, sir?”
13454
13455 “Yes. Oh yes.”
13456
13457 “Likewise the person with him?”
13458
13459 “Person with him!” I repeated.
13460
13461 “I judged the person to be with him,” returned the watchman. “The person
13462 stopped, when he stopped to make inquiry of me, and the person took this
13463 way when he took this way.”
13464
13465 “What sort of person?”
13466
13467 The watchman had not particularly noticed; he should say a working
13468 person; to the best of his belief, he had a dust-colored kind of clothes
13469 on, under a dark coat. The watchman made more light of the matter than I
13470 did, and naturally; not having my reason for attaching weight to it.
13471
13472 When I had got rid of him, which I thought it well to do without
13473 prolonging explanations, my mind was much troubled by these two
13474 circumstances taken together. Whereas they were easy of innocent
13475 solution apart,--as, for instance, some diner out or diner at home,
13476 who had not gone near this watchman’s gate, might have strayed to my
13477 staircase and dropped asleep there,--and my nameless visitor might have
13478 brought some one with him to show him the way,--still, joined, they had
13479 an ugly look to one as prone to distrust and fear as the changes of a
13480 few hours had made me.
13481
13482 I lighted my fire, which burnt with a raw pale flare at that time of the
13483 morning, and fell into a doze before it. I seemed to have been dozing a
13484 whole night when the clocks struck six. As there was full an hour and
13485 a half between me and daylight, I dozed again; now, waking up uneasily,
13486 with prolix conversations about nothing, in my ears; now, making thunder
13487 of the wind in the chimney; at length, falling off into a profound sleep
13488 from which the daylight woke me with a start.
13489
13490 All this time I had never been able to consider my own situation, nor
13491 could I do so yet. I had not the power to attend to it. I was greatly
13492 dejected and distressed, but in an incoherent wholesale sort of way.
13493 As to forming any plan for the future, I could as soon have formed an
13494 elephant. When I opened the shutters and looked out at the wet wild
13495 morning, all of a leaden hue; when I walked from room to room; when I
13496 sat down again shivering, before the fire, waiting for my laundress to
13497 appear; I thought how miserable I was, but hardly knew why, or how long
13498 I had been so, or on what day of the week I made the reflection, or even
13499 who I was that made it.
13500
13501 At last, the old woman and the niece came in,--the latter with a head
13502 not easily distinguishable from her dusty broom,--and testified surprise
13503 at sight of me and the fire. To whom I imparted how my uncle had come in
13504 the night and was then asleep, and how the breakfast preparations were
13505 to be modified accordingly. Then I washed and dressed while they knocked
13506 the furniture about and made a dust; and so, in a sort of dream
13507 or sleep-waking, I found myself sitting by the fire again, waiting
13508 for--Him--to come to breakfast.
13509
13510 By and by, his door opened and he came out. I could not bring myself to
13511 bear the sight of him, and I thought he had a worse look by daylight.
13512
13513 “I do not even know,” said I, speaking low as he took his seat at the
13514 table, “by what name to call you. I have given out that you are my
13515 uncle.”
13516
13517 “That’s it, dear boy! Call me uncle.”
13518
13519 “You assumed some name, I suppose, on board ship?”
13520
13521 “Yes, dear boy. I took the name of Provis.”
13522
13523 “Do you mean to keep that name?”
13524
13525 “Why, yes, dear boy, it’s as good as another,--unless you’d like
13526 another.”
13527
13528 “What is your real name?” I asked him in a whisper.
13529
13530 “Magwitch,” he answered, in the same tone; “chrisen’d Abel.”
13531
13532 “What were you brought up to be?”
13533
13534 “A warmint, dear boy.”
13535
13536 He answered quite seriously, and used the word as if it denoted some
13537 profession.
13538
13539 “When you came into the Temple last night--” said I, pausing to wonder
13540 whether that could really have been last night, which seemed so long
13541 ago.
13542
13543 “Yes, dear boy?”
13544
13545 “When you came in at the gate and asked the watchman the way here, had
13546 you any one with you?”
13547
13548 “With me? No, dear boy.”
13549
13550 “But there was some one there?”
13551
13552 “I didn’t take particular notice,” he said, dubiously, “not knowing the
13553 ways of the place. But I think there was a person, too, come in alonger
13554 me.”
13555
13556 “Are you known in London?”
13557
13558 “I hope not!” said he, giving his neck a jerk with his forefinger that
13559 made me turn hot and sick.
13560
13561 “Were you known in London, once?”
13562
13563 “Not over and above, dear boy. I was in the provinces mostly.”
13564
13565 “Were you--tried--in London?”
13566
13567 “Which time?” said he, with a sharp look.
13568
13569 “The last time.”
13570
13571 He nodded. “First knowed Mr. Jaggers that way. Jaggers was for me.”
13572
13573 It was on my lips to ask him what he was tried for, but he took up
13574 a knife, gave it a flourish, and with the words, “And what I done is
13575 worked out and paid for!” fell to at his breakfast.
13576
13577 He ate in a ravenous way that was very disagreeable, and all his actions
13578 were uncouth, noisy, and greedy. Some of his teeth had failed him since
13579 I saw him eat on the marshes, and as he turned his food in his mouth,
13580 and turned his head sideways to bring his strongest fangs to bear upon
13581 it, he looked terribly like a hungry old dog. If I had begun with any
13582 appetite, he would have taken it away, and I should have sat much as
13583 I did,--repelled from him by an insurmountable aversion, and gloomily
13584 looking at the cloth.
13585
13586 “I’m a heavy grubber, dear boy,” he said, as a polite kind of apology
13587 when he made an end of his meal, “but I always was. If it had been in
13588 my constitution to be a lighter grubber, I might ha’ got into lighter
13589 trouble. Similarly, I must have my smoke. When I was first hired out as
13590 shepherd t’other side the world, it’s my belief I should ha’ turned into
13591 a molloncolly-mad sheep myself, if I hadn’t a had my smoke.”
13592
13593 As he said so, he got up from table, and putting his hand into the
13594 breast of the pea-coat he wore, brought out a short black pipe, and a
13595 handful of loose tobacco of the kind that is called Negro-head. Having
13596 filled his pipe, he put the surplus tobacco back again, as if his pocket
13597 were a drawer. Then, he took a live coal from the fire with the tongs,
13598 and lighted his pipe at it, and then turned round on the hearth-rug with
13599 his back to the fire, and went through his favorite action of holding
13600 out both his hands for mine.
13601
13602 “And this,” said he, dandling my hands up and down in his, as he puffed
13603 at his pipe,--“and this is the gentleman what I made! The real genuine
13604 One! It does me good fur to look at you, Pip. All I stip’late, is, to
13605 stand by and look at you, dear boy!”
13606
13607 I released my hands as soon as I could, and found that I was beginning
13608 slowly to settle down to the contemplation of my condition. What I was
13609 chained to, and how heavily, became intelligible to me, as I heard his
13610 hoarse voice, and sat looking up at his furrowed bald head with its iron
13611 gray hair at the sides.
13612
13613 “I mustn’t see my gentleman a footing it in the mire of the streets;
13614 there mustn’t be no mud on his boots. My gentleman must have horses,
13615 Pip! Horses to ride, and horses to drive, and horses for his servant
13616 to ride and drive as well. Shall colonists have their horses (and blood
13617 ‘uns, if you please, good Lord!) and not my London gentleman? No, no.
13618 We’ll show ‘em another pair of shoes than that, Pip; won’t us?”
13619
13620 He took out of his pocket a great thick pocket-book, bursting with
13621 papers, and tossed it on the table.
13622
13623 “There’s something worth spending in that there book, dear boy. It’s
13624 yourn. All I’ve got ain’t mine; it’s yourn. Don’t you be afeerd on it.
13625 There’s more where that come from. I’ve come to the old country fur
13626 to see my gentleman spend his money like a gentleman. That’ll be my
13627 pleasure. My pleasure ‘ull be fur to see him do it. And blast you all!”
13628 he wound up, looking round the room and snapping his fingers once with
13629 a loud snap, “blast you every one, from the judge in his wig, to the
13630 colonist a stirring up the dust, I’ll show a better gentleman than the
13631 whole kit on you put together!”
13632
13633 “Stop!” said I, almost in a frenzy of fear and dislike, “I want to speak
13634 to you. I want to know what is to be done. I want to know how you are to
13635 be kept out of danger, how long you are going to stay, what projects you
13636 have.”
13637
13638 “Look’ee here, Pip,” said he, laying his hand on my arm in a suddenly
13639 altered and subdued manner; “first of all, look’ee here. I forgot myself
13640 half a minute ago. What I said was low; that’s what it was; low. Look’ee
13641 here, Pip. Look over it. I ain’t a going to be low.”
13642
13643 “First,” I resumed, half groaning, “what precautions can be taken
13644 against your being recognized and seized?”
13645
13646 “No, dear boy,” he said, in the same tone as before, “that don’t
13647 go first. Lowness goes first. I ain’t took so many year to make a
13648 gentleman, not without knowing what’s due to him. Look’ee here, Pip. I
13649 was low; that’s what I was; low. Look over it, dear boy.”
13650
13651 Some sense of the grimly-ludicrous moved me to a fretful laugh, as I
13652 replied, “I have looked over it. In Heaven’s name, don’t harp upon it!”
13653
13654 “Yes, but look’ee here,” he persisted. “Dear boy, I ain’t come so fur,
13655 not fur to be low. Now, go on, dear boy. You was a saying--”
13656
13657 “How are you to be guarded from the danger you have incurred?”
13658
13659 “Well, dear boy, the danger ain’t so great. Without I was informed
13660 agen, the danger ain’t so much to signify. There’s Jaggers, and there’s
13661 Wemmick, and there’s you. Who else is there to inform?”
13662
13663 “Is there no chance person who might identify you in the street?” said
13664 I.
13665
13666 “Well,” he returned, “there ain’t many. Nor yet I don’t intend to
13667 advertise myself in the newspapers by the name of A.M. come back from
13668 Botany Bay; and years have rolled away, and who’s to gain by it? Still,
13669 look’ee here, Pip. If the danger had been fifty times as great, I should
13670 ha’ come to see you, mind you, just the same.”
13671
13672 “And how long do you remain?”
13673
13674 “How long?” said he, taking his black pipe from his mouth, and dropping
13675 his jaw as he stared at me. “I’m not a going back. I’ve come for good.”
13676
13677 “Where are you to live?” said I. “What is to be done with you? Where
13678 will you be safe?”
13679
13680 “Dear boy,” he returned, “there’s disguising wigs can be bought
13681 for money, and there’s hair powder, and spectacles, and black
13682 clothes,--shorts and what not. Others has done it safe afore, and what
13683 others has done afore, others can do agen. As to the where and how of
13684 living, dear boy, give me your own opinions on it.”
13685
13686 “You take it smoothly now,” said I, “but you were very serious last
13687 night, when you swore it was Death.”
13688
13689 “And so I swear it is Death,” said he, putting his pipe back in his
13690 mouth, “and Death by the rope, in the open street not fur from this, and
13691 it’s serious that you should fully understand it to be so. What then,
13692 when that’s once done? Here I am. To go back now ‘ud be as bad as to
13693 stand ground--worse. Besides, Pip, I’m here, because I’ve meant it by
13694 you, years and years. As to what I dare, I’m a old bird now, as has
13695 dared all manner of traps since first he was fledged, and I’m not afeerd
13696 to perch upon a scarecrow. If there’s Death hid inside of it, there is,
13697 and let him come out, and I’ll face him, and then I’ll believe in him
13698 and not afore. And now let me have a look at my gentleman agen.”
13699
13700 Once more, he took me by both hands and surveyed me with an air of
13701 admiring proprietorship: smoking with great complacency all the while.
13702
13703 It appeared to me that I could do no better than secure him some
13704 quiet lodging hard by, of which he might take possession when Herbert
13705 returned: whom I expected in two or three days. That the secret must
13706 be confided to Herbert as a matter of unavoidable necessity, even if I
13707 could have put the immense relief I should derive from sharing it with
13708 him out of the question, was plain to me. But it was by no means so
13709 plain to Mr. Provis (I resolved to call him by that name), who reserved
13710 his consent to Herbert’s participation until he should have seen him
13711 and formed a favorable judgment of his physiognomy. “And even then, dear
13712 boy,” said he, pulling a greasy little clasped black Testament out of
13713 his pocket, “we’ll have him on his oath.”
13714
13715 To state that my terrible patron carried this little black book about
13716 the world solely to swear people on in cases of emergency, would be to
13717 state what I never quite established; but this I can say, that I never
13718 knew him put it to any other use. The book itself had the appearance of
13719 having been stolen from some court of justice, and perhaps his knowledge
13720 of its antecedents, combined with his own experience in that wise, gave
13721 him a reliance on its powers as a sort of legal spell or charm. On this
13722 first occasion of his producing it, I recalled how he had made me swear
13723 fidelity in the churchyard long ago, and how he had described himself
13724 last night as always swearing to his resolutions in his solitude.
13725
13726 As he was at present dressed in a seafaring slop suit, in which he
13727 looked as if he had some parrots and cigars to dispose of, I next
13728 discussed with him what dress he should wear. He cherished an
13729 extraordinary belief in the virtues of “shorts” as a disguise, and had
13730 in his own mind sketched a dress for himself that would have made
13731 him something between a dean and a dentist. It was with considerable
13732 difficulty that I won him over to the assumption of a dress more like a
13733 prosperous farmer’s; and we arranged that he should cut his hair close,
13734 and wear a little powder. Lastly, as he had not yet been seen by the
13735 laundress or her niece, he was to keep himself out of their view until
13736 his change of dress was made.
13737
13738 It would seem a simple matter to decide on these precautions; but in my
13739 dazed, not to say distracted, state, it took so long, that I did not
13740 get out to further them until two or three in the afternoon. He was to
13741 remain shut up in the chambers while I was gone, and was on no account
13742 to open the door.
13743
13744 There being to my knowledge a respectable lodging-house in Essex Street,
13745 the back of which looked into the Temple, and was almost within hail of
13746 my windows, I first of all repaired to that house, and was so fortunate
13747 as to secure the second floor for my uncle, Mr. Provis. I then went from
13748 shop to shop, making such purchases as were necessary to the change in
13749 his appearance. This business transacted, I turned my face, on my own
13750 account, to Little Britain. Mr. Jaggers was at his desk, but, seeing me
13751 enter, got up immediately and stood before his fire.
13752
13753 “Now, Pip,” said he, “be careful.”
13754
13755 “I will, sir,” I returned. For, coming along I had thought well of what
13756 I was going to say.
13757
13758 “Don’t commit yourself,” said Mr. Jaggers, “and don’t commit any one.
13759 You understand--any one. Don’t tell me anything: I don’t want to know
13760 anything; I am not curious.”
13761
13762 Of course I saw that he knew the man was come.
13763
13764 “I merely want, Mr. Jaggers,” said I, “to assure myself that what I have
13765 been told is true. I have no hope of its being untrue, but at least I
13766 may verify it.”
13767
13768 Mr. Jaggers nodded. “But did you say ‘told’ or ‘informed’?” he asked
13769 me, with his head on one side, and not looking at me, but looking in
13770 a listening way at the floor. “Told would seem to imply verbal
13771 communication. You can’t have verbal communication with a man in New
13772 South Wales, you know.”
13773
13774 “I will say, informed, Mr. Jaggers.”
13775
13776 “Good.”
13777
13778 “I have been informed by a person named Abel Magwitch, that he is the
13779 benefactor so long unknown to me.”
13780
13781 “That is the man,” said Mr. Jaggers, “in New South Wales.”
13782
13783 “And only he?” said I.
13784
13785 “And only he,” said Mr. Jaggers.
13786
13787 “I am not so unreasonable, sir, as to think you at all responsible for
13788 my mistakes and wrong conclusions; but I always supposed it was Miss
13789 Havisham.”
13790
13791 “As you say, Pip,” returned Mr. Jaggers, turning his eyes upon
13792 me coolly, and taking a bite at his forefinger, “I am not at all
13793 responsible for that.”
13794
13795 “And yet it looked so like it, sir,” I pleaded with a downcast heart.
13796
13797 “Not a particle of evidence, Pip,” said Mr. Jaggers, shaking his head
13798 and gathering up his skirts. “Take nothing on its looks; take everything
13799 on evidence. There’s no better rule.”
13800
13801 “I have no more to say,” said I, with a sigh, after standing silent for
13802 a little while. “I have verified my information, and there’s an end.”
13803
13804 “And Magwitch--in New South Wales--having at last disclosed himself,”
13805 said Mr. Jaggers, “you will comprehend, Pip, how rigidly throughout
13806 my communication with you, I have always adhered to the strict line of
13807 fact. There has never been the least departure from the strict line of
13808 fact. You are quite aware of that?”
13809
13810 “Quite, sir.”
13811
13812 “I communicated to Magwitch--in New South Wales--when he first wrote to
13813 me--from New South Wales--the caution that he must not expect me ever to
13814 deviate from the strict line of fact. I also communicated to him another
13815 caution. He appeared to me to have obscurely hinted in his letter at
13816 some distant idea he had of seeing you in England here. I cautioned
13817 him that I must hear no more of that; that he was not at all likely to
13818 obtain a pardon; that he was expatriated for the term of his natural
13819 life; and that his presenting himself in this country would be an act of
13820 felony, rendering him liable to the extreme penalty of the law. I gave
13821 Magwitch that caution,” said Mr. Jaggers, looking hard at me; “I wrote
13822 it to New South Wales. He guided himself by it, no doubt.”
13823
13824 “No doubt,” said I.
13825
13826 “I have been informed by Wemmick,” pursued Mr. Jaggers, still looking
13827 hard at me, “that he has received a letter, under date Portsmouth, from
13828 a colonist of the name of Purvis, or--”
13829
13830 “Or Provis,” I suggested.
13831
13832 “Or Provis--thank you, Pip. Perhaps it is Provis? Perhaps you know it’s
13833 Provis?”
13834
13835 “Yes,” said I.
13836
13837 “You know it’s Provis. A letter, under date Portsmouth, from a colonist
13838 of the name of Provis, asking for the particulars of your address, on
13839 behalf of Magwitch. Wemmick sent him the particulars, I understand, by
13840 return of post. Probably it is through Provis that you have received the
13841 explanation of Magwitch--in New South Wales?”
13842
13843 “It came through Provis,” I replied.
13844
13845 “Good day, Pip,” said Mr. Jaggers, offering his hand; “glad to have
13846 seen you. In writing by post to Magwitch--in New South Wales--or in
13847 communicating with him through Provis, have the goodness to mention that
13848 the particulars and vouchers of our long account shall be sent to you,
13849 together with the balance; for there is still a balance remaining. Good
13850 day, Pip!”
13851
13852 We shook hands, and he looked hard at me as long as he could see me. I
13853 turned at the door, and he was still looking hard at me, while the two
13854 vile casts on the shelf seemed to be trying to get their eyelids open,
13855 and to force out of their swollen throats, “O, what a man he is!”
13856
13857 Wemmick was out, and though he had been at his desk he could have done
13858 nothing for me. I went straight back to the Temple, where I found
13859 the terrible Provis drinking rum and water and smoking negro-head, in
13860 safety.
13861
13862 Next day the clothes I had ordered all came home, and he put them on.
13863 Whatever he put on, became him less (it dismally seemed to me) than what
13864 he had worn before. To my thinking, there was something in him that made
13865 it hopeless to attempt to disguise him. The more I dressed him and the
13866 better I dressed him, the more he looked like the slouching fugitive on
13867 the marshes. This effect on my anxious fancy was partly referable, no
13868 doubt, to his old face and manner growing more familiar to me; but I
13869 believe too that he dragged one of his legs as if there were still a
13870 weight of iron on it, and that from head to foot there was Convict in
13871 the very grain of the man.
13872
13873 The influences of his solitary hut-life were upon him besides, and
13874 gave him a savage air that no dress could tame; added to these were the
13875 influences of his subsequent branded life among men, and, crowning all,
13876 his consciousness that he was dodging and hiding now. In all his ways of
13877 sitting and standing, and eating and drinking,--of brooding about in a
13878 high-shouldered reluctant style,--of taking out his great horn-handled
13879 jackknife and wiping it on his legs and cutting his food,--of
13880 lifting light glasses and cups to his lips, as if they were clumsy
13881 pannikins,--of chopping a wedge off his bread, and soaking up with it
13882 the last fragments of gravy round and round his plate, as if to make the
13883 most of an allowance, and then drying his finger-ends on it, and then
13884 swallowing it,--in these ways and a thousand other small nameless
13885 instances arising every minute in the day, there was Prisoner, Felon,
13886 Bondsman, plain as plain could be.
13887
13888 It had been his own idea to wear that touch of powder, and I had
13889 conceded the powder after overcoming the shorts. But I can compare the
13890 effect of it, when on, to nothing but the probable effect of rouge upon
13891 the dead; so awful was the manner in which everything in him that it was
13892 most desirable to repress, started through that thin layer of pretence,
13893 and seemed to come blazing out at the crown of his head. It was
13894 abandoned as soon as tried, and he wore his grizzled hair cut short.
13895
13896 Words cannot tell what a sense I had, at the same time, of the dreadful
13897 mystery that he was to me. When he fell asleep of an evening, with his
13898 knotted hands clenching the sides of the easy-chair, and his bald head
13899 tattooed with deep wrinkles falling forward on his breast, I would sit
13900 and look at him, wondering what he had done, and loading him with all
13901 the crimes in the Calendar, until the impulse was powerful on me to
13902 start up and fly from him. Every hour so increased my abhorrence of
13903 him, that I even think I might have yielded to this impulse in the first
13904 agonies of being so haunted, notwithstanding all he had done for me and
13905 the risk he ran, but for the knowledge that Herbert must soon come back.
13906 Once, I actually did start out of bed in the night, and begin to dress
13907 myself in my worst clothes, hurriedly intending to leave him there with
13908 everything else I possessed, and enlist for India as a private soldier.
13909
13910 I doubt if a ghost could have been more terrible to me, up in those
13911 lonely rooms in the long evenings and long nights, with the wind and the
13912 rain always rushing by. A ghost could not have been taken and hanged on
13913 my account, and the consideration that he could be, and the dread that
13914 he would be, were no small addition to my horrors. When he was not
13915 asleep, or playing a complicated kind of Patience with a ragged pack of
13916 cards of his own,--a game that I never saw before or since, and in which
13917 he recorded his winnings by sticking his jackknife into the table,--when
13918 he was not engaged in either of these pursuits, he would ask me to
13919 read to him,--“Foreign language, dear boy!” While I complied, he, not
13920 comprehending a single word, would stand before the fire surveying me
13921 with the air of an Exhibitor, and I would see him, between the fingers
13922 of the hand with which I shaded my face, appealing in dumb show to
13923 the furniture to take notice of my proficiency. The imaginary student
13924 pursued by the misshapen creature he had impiously made, was not more
13925 wretched than I, pursued by the creature who had made me, and recoiling
13926 from him with a stronger repulsion, the more he admired me and the
13927 fonder he was of me.
13928
13929 This is written of, I am sensible, as if it had lasted a year. It lasted
13930 about five days. Expecting Herbert all the time, I dared not go out,
13931 except when I took Provis for an airing after dark. At length, one
13932 evening when dinner was over and I had dropped into a slumber quite
13933 worn out,--for my nights had been agitated and my rest broken by fearful
13934 dreams,--I was roused by the welcome footstep on the staircase. Provis,
13935 who had been asleep too, staggered up at the noise I made, and in an
13936 instant I saw his jackknife shining in his hand.
13937
13938 “Quiet! It’s Herbert!” I said; and Herbert came bursting in, with the
13939 airy freshness of six hundred miles of France upon him.
13940
13941 “Handel, my dear fellow, how are you, and again how are you, and again
13942 how are you? I seem to have been gone a twelvemonth! Why, so I must have
13943 been, for you have grown quite thin and pale! Handel, my--Halloa! I beg
13944 your pardon.”
13945
13946 He was stopped in his running on and in his shaking hands with me, by
13947 seeing Provis. Provis, regarding him with a fixed attention, was slowly
13948 putting up his jackknife, and groping in another pocket for something
13949 else.
13950
13951 “Herbert, my dear friend,” said I, shutting the double doors, while
13952 Herbert stood staring and wondering, “something very strange has
13953 happened. This is--a visitor of mine.”
13954
13955 “It’s all right, dear boy!” said Provis coming forward, with his little
13956 clasped black book, and then addressing himself to Herbert. “Take it in
13957 your right hand. Lord strike you dead on the spot, if ever you split in
13958 any way sumever! Kiss it!”
13959
13960 “Do so, as he wishes it,” I said to Herbert. So, Herbert, looking at
13961 me with a friendly uneasiness and amazement, complied, and Provis
13962 immediately shaking hands with him, said, “Now you’re on your oath, you
13963 know. And never believe me on mine, if Pip shan’t make a gentleman on
13964 you!”
13965
13966
13967
13968
13969 Chapter XLI
13970
13971 In vain should I attempt to describe the astonishment and disquiet
13972 of Herbert, when he and I and Provis sat down before the fire, and I
13973 recounted the whole of the secret. Enough, that I saw my own feelings
13974 reflected in Herbert’s face, and not least among them, my repugnance
13975 towards the man who had done so much for me.
13976
13977 What would alone have set a division between that man and us, if there
13978 had been no other dividing circumstance, was his triumph in my story.
13979 Saving his troublesome sense of having been “low” on one occasion since
13980 his return,--on which point he began to hold forth to Herbert, the
13981 moment my revelation was finished,--he had no perception of the
13982 possibility of my finding any fault with my good fortune. His boast that
13983 he had made me a gentleman, and that he had come to see me support the
13984 character on his ample resources, was made for me quite as much as for
13985 himself. And that it was a highly agreeable boast to both of us,
13986 and that we must both be very proud of it, was a conclusion quite
13987 established in his own mind.
13988
13989 “Though, look’ee here, Pip’s comrade,” he said to Herbert, after having
13990 discoursed for some time, “I know very well that once since I come
13991 back--for half a minute--I’ve been low. I said to Pip, I knowed as I had
13992 been low. But don’t you fret yourself on that score. I ain’t made Pip a
13993 gentleman, and Pip ain’t a going to make you a gentleman, not fur me not
13994 to know what’s due to ye both. Dear boy, and Pip’s comrade, you two may
13995 count upon me always having a gen-teel muzzle on. Muzzled I have been
13996 since that half a minute when I was betrayed into lowness, muzzled I am
13997 at the present time, muzzled I ever will be.”
13998
13999 Herbert said, “Certainly,” but looked as if there were no specific
14000 consolation in this, and remained perplexed and dismayed. We were
14001 anxious for the time when he would go to his lodging and leave us
14002 together, but he was evidently jealous of leaving us together, and sat
14003 late. It was midnight before I took him round to Essex Street, and
14004 saw him safely in at his own dark door. When it closed upon him, I
14005 experienced the first moment of relief I had known since the night of
14006 his arrival.
14007
14008 Never quite free from an uneasy remembrance of the man on the stairs,
14009 I had always looked about me in taking my guest out after dark, and in
14010 bringing him back; and I looked about me now. Difficult as it is in a
14011 large city to avoid the suspicion of being watched, when the mind is
14012 conscious of danger in that regard, I could not persuade myself that any
14013 of the people within sight cared about my movements. The few who were
14014 passing passed on their several ways, and the street was empty when I
14015 turned back into the Temple. Nobody had come out at the gate with us,
14016 nobody went in at the gate with me. As I crossed by the fountain, I saw
14017 his lighted back windows looking bright and quiet, and, when I stood for
14018 a few moments in the doorway of the building where I lived, before going
14019 up the stairs, Garden Court was as still and lifeless as the staircase
14020 was when I ascended it.
14021
14022 Herbert received me with open arms, and I had never felt before so
14023 blessedly what it is to have a friend. When he had spoken some sound
14024 words of sympathy and encouragement, we sat down to consider the
14025 question, What was to be done?
14026
14027 The chair that Provis had occupied still remaining where it had
14028 stood,--for he had a barrack way with him of hanging about one spot, in
14029 one unsettled manner, and going through one round of observances with
14030 his pipe and his negro-head and his jackknife and his pack of cards,
14031 and what not, as if it were all put down for him on a slate,--I say his
14032 chair remaining where it had stood, Herbert unconsciously took it, but
14033 next moment started out of it, pushed it away, and took another. He had
14034 no occasion to say after that that he had conceived an aversion for my
14035 patron, neither had I occasion to confess my own. We interchanged that
14036 confidence without shaping a syllable.
14037
14038 “What,” said I to Herbert, when he was safe in another chair,--“what is
14039 to be done?”
14040
14041 “My poor dear Handel,” he replied, holding his head, “I am too stunned
14042 to think.”
14043
14044 “So was I, Herbert, when the blow first fell. Still, something must be
14045 done. He is intent upon various new expenses,--horses, and carriages,
14046 and lavish appearances of all kinds. He must be stopped somehow.”
14047
14048 “You mean that you can’t accept--”
14049
14050 “How can I?” I interposed, as Herbert paused. “Think of him! Look at
14051 him!”
14052
14053 An involuntary shudder passed over both of us.
14054
14055 “Yet I am afraid the dreadful truth is, Herbert, that he is attached to
14056 me, strongly attached to me. Was there ever such a fate!”
14057
14058 “My poor dear Handel,” Herbert repeated.
14059
14060 “Then,” said I, “after all, stopping short here, never taking another
14061 penny from him, think what I owe him already! Then again: I am heavily
14062 in debt,--very heavily for me, who have now no expectations,--and I have
14063 been bred to no calling, and I am fit for nothing.”
14064
14065 “Well, well, well!” Herbert remonstrated. “Don’t say fit for nothing.”
14066
14067 “What am I fit for? I know only one thing that I am fit for, and that
14068 is, to go for a soldier. And I might have gone, my dear Herbert, but for
14069 the prospect of taking counsel with your friendship and affection.”
14070
14071 Of course I broke down there: and of course Herbert, beyond seizing a
14072 warm grip of my hand, pretended not to know it.
14073
14074 “Anyhow, my dear Handel,” said he presently, “soldiering won’t do. If
14075 you were to renounce this patronage and these favors, I suppose you
14076 would do so with some faint hope of one day repaying what you have
14077 already had. Not very strong, that hope, if you went soldiering!
14078 Besides, it’s absurd. You would be infinitely better in Clarriker’s
14079 house, small as it is. I am working up towards a partnership, you know.”
14080
14081 Poor fellow! He little suspected with whose money.
14082
14083 “But there is another question,” said Herbert. “This is an ignorant,
14084 determined man, who has long had one fixed idea. More than that, he
14085 seems to me (I may misjudge him) to be a man of a desperate and fierce
14086 character.”
14087
14088 “I know he is,” I returned. “Let me tell you what evidence I have seen
14089 of it.” And I told him what I had not mentioned in my narrative, of that
14090 encounter with the other convict.
14091
14092 “See, then,” said Herbert; “think of this! He comes here at the peril
14093 of his life, for the realization of his fixed idea. In the moment of
14094 realization, after all his toil and waiting, you cut the ground from
14095 under his feet, destroy his idea, and make his gains worthless to him.
14096 Do you see nothing that he might do, under the disappointment?”
14097
14098 “I have seen it, Herbert, and dreamed of it, ever since the fatal night
14099 of his arrival. Nothing has been in my thoughts so distinctly as his
14100 putting himself in the way of being taken.”
14101
14102 “Then you may rely upon it,” said Herbert, “that there would be great
14103 danger of his doing it. That is his power over you as long as he remains
14104 in England, and that would be his reckless course if you forsook him.”
14105
14106 I was so struck by the horror of this idea, which had weighed upon
14107 me from the first, and the working out of which would make me regard
14108 myself, in some sort, as his murderer, that I could not rest in my
14109 chair, but began pacing to and fro. I said to Herbert, meanwhile, that
14110 even if Provis were recognized and taken, in spite of himself, I should
14111 be wretched as the cause, however innocently. Yes; even though I was so
14112 wretched in having him at large and near me, and even though I would
14113 far rather have worked at the forge all the days of my life than I would
14114 ever have come to this!
14115
14116 But there was no staving off the question, What was to be done?
14117
14118 “The first and the main thing to be done,” said Herbert, “is to get him
14119 out of England. You will have to go with him, and then he may be induced
14120 to go.”
14121
14122 “But get him where I will, could I prevent his coming back?”
14123
14124 “My good Handel, is it not obvious that with Newgate in the next street,
14125 there must be far greater hazard in your breaking your mind to him and
14126 making him reckless, here, than elsewhere? If a pretext to get him away
14127 could be made out of that other convict, or out of anything else in his
14128 life, now.”
14129
14130 “There, again!” said I, stopping before Herbert, with my open hands held
14131 out, as if they contained the desperation of the case. “I know nothing
14132 of his life. It has almost made me mad to sit here of a night and see
14133 him before me, so bound up with my fortunes and misfortunes, and yet so
14134 unknown to me, except as the miserable wretch who terrified me two days
14135 in my childhood!”
14136
14137 Herbert got up, and linked his arm in mine, and we slowly walked to and
14138 fro together, studying the carpet.
14139
14140 “Handel,” said Herbert, stopping, “you feel convinced that you can take
14141 no further benefits from him; do you?”
14142
14143 “Fully. Surely you would, too, if you were in my place?”
14144
14145 “And you feel convinced that you must break with him?”
14146
14147 “Herbert, can you ask me?”
14148
14149 “And you have, and are bound to have, that tenderness for the life he
14150 has risked on your account, that you must save him, if possible, from
14151 throwing it away. Then you must get him out of England before you stir a
14152 finger to extricate yourself. That done, extricate yourself, in Heaven’s
14153 name, and we’ll see it out together, dear old boy.”
14154
14155 It was a comfort to shake hands upon it, and walk up and down again,
14156 with only that done.
14157
14158 “Now, Herbert,” said I, “with reference to gaining some knowledge of
14159 his history. There is but one way that I know of. I must ask him point
14160 blank.”
14161
14162 “Yes. Ask him,” said Herbert, “when we sit at breakfast in the morning.”
14163 For he had said, on taking leave of Herbert, that he would come to
14164 breakfast with us.
14165
14166 With this project formed, we went to bed. I had the wildest dreams
14167 concerning him, and woke unrefreshed; I woke, too, to recover the fear
14168 which I had lost in the night, of his being found out as a returned
14169 transport. Waking, I never lost that fear.
14170
14171 He came round at the appointed time, took out his jackknife, and sat
14172 down to his meal. He was full of plans “for his gentleman’s coming out
14173 strong, and like a gentleman,” and urged me to begin speedily upon
14174 the pocket-book which he had left in my possession. He considered the
14175 chambers and his own lodging as temporary residences, and advised me to
14176 look out at once for a “fashionable crib” near Hyde Park, in which he
14177 could have “a shake-down.” When he had made an end of his breakfast,
14178 and was wiping his knife on his leg, I said to him, without a word of
14179 preface,--
14180
14181 “After you were gone last night, I told my friend of the struggle that
14182 the soldiers found you engaged in on the marshes, when we came up. You
14183 remember?”
14184
14185 “Remember!” said he. “I think so!”
14186
14187 “We want to know something about that man--and about you. It is strange
14188 to know no more about either, and particularly you, than I was able to
14189 tell last night. Is not this as good a time as another for our knowing
14190 more?”
14191
14192 “Well!” he said, after consideration. “You’re on your oath, you know,
14193 Pip’s comrade?”
14194
14195 “Assuredly,” replied Herbert.
14196
14197 “As to anything I say, you know,” he insisted. “The oath applies to
14198 all.”
14199
14200 “I understand it to do so.”
14201
14202 “And look’ee here! Wotever I done is worked out and paid for,” he
14203 insisted again.
14204
14205 “So be it.”
14206
14207 He took out his black pipe and was going to fill it with negro-head,
14208 when, looking at the tangle of tobacco in his hand, he seemed to think
14209 it might perplex the thread of his narrative. He put it back again,
14210 stuck his pipe in a button-hole of his coat, spread a hand on each knee,
14211 and after turning an angry eye on the fire for a few silent moments,
14212 looked round at us and said what follows.
14213
14214
14215
14216
14217 Chapter XLII
14218
14219 “Dear boy and Pip’s comrade. I am not a going fur to tell you my life
14220 like a song, or a story-book. But to give it you short and handy, I’ll
14221 put it at once into a mouthful of English. In jail and out of jail, in
14222 jail and out of jail, in jail and out of jail. There, you’ve got it.
14223 That’s my life pretty much, down to such times as I got shipped off,
14224 arter Pip stood my friend.
14225
14226 “I’ve been done everything to, pretty well--except hanged. I’ve been
14227 locked up as much as a silver tea-kittle. I’ve been carted here and
14228 carted there, and put out of this town, and put out of that town, and
14229 stuck in the stocks, and whipped and worried and drove. I’ve no more
14230 notion where I was born than you have--if so much. I first become aware
14231 of myself down in Essex, a thieving turnips for my living. Summun had
14232 run away from me--a man--a tinker--and he’d took the fire with him, and
14233 left me wery cold.
14234
14235 “I know’d my name to be Magwitch, chrisen’d Abel. How did I know
14236 it? Much as I know’d the birds’ names in the hedges to be chaffinch,
14237 sparrer, thrush. I might have thought it was all lies together, only as
14238 the birds’ names come out true, I supposed mine did.
14239
14240 “So fur as I could find, there warn’t a soul that see young Abel
14241 Magwitch, with us little on him as in him, but wot caught fright at him,
14242 and either drove him off, or took him up. I was took up, took up, took
14243 up, to that extent that I reg’larly grow’d up took up.
14244
14245 “This is the way it was, that when I was a ragged little creetur as much
14246 to be pitied as ever I see (not that I looked in the glass, for there
14247 warn’t many insides of furnished houses known to me), I got the name of
14248 being hardened. ‘This is a terrible hardened one,’ they says to prison
14249 wisitors, picking out me. ‘May be said to live in jails, this boy.’ Then
14250 they looked at me, and I looked at them, and they measured my head, some
14251 on ‘em,--they had better a measured my stomach,--and others on ‘em giv
14252 me tracts what I couldn’t read, and made me speeches what I couldn’t
14253 understand. They always went on agen me about the Devil. But what
14254 the Devil was I to do? I must put something into my stomach, mustn’t
14255 I?--Howsomever, I’m a getting low, and I know what’s due. Dear boy and
14256 Pip’s comrade, don’t you be afeerd of me being low.
14257
14258 “Tramping, begging, thieving, working sometimes when I could,--though
14259 that warn’t as often as you may think, till you put the question whether
14260 you would ha’ been over-ready to give me work yourselves,--a bit of a
14261 poacher, a bit of a laborer, a bit of a wagoner, a bit of a haymaker,
14262 a bit of a hawker, a bit of most things that don’t pay and lead to
14263 trouble, I got to be a man. A deserting soldier in a Traveller’s Rest,
14264 what lay hid up to the chin under a lot of taturs, learnt me to read;
14265 and a travelling Giant what signed his name at a penny a time learnt me
14266 to write. I warn’t locked up as often now as formerly, but I wore out my
14267 good share of key-metal still.
14268
14269 “At Epsom races, a matter of over twenty years ago, I got acquainted wi’
14270 a man whose skull I’d crack wi’ this poker, like the claw of a lobster,
14271 if I’d got it on this hob. His right name was Compeyson; and that’s the
14272 man, dear boy, what you see me a pounding in the ditch, according to
14273 what you truly told your comrade arter I was gone last night.
14274
14275 “He set up fur a gentleman, this Compeyson, and he’d been to a public
14276 boarding-school and had learning. He was a smooth one to talk, and was
14277 a dab at the ways of gentlefolks. He was good-looking too. It was the
14278 night afore the great race, when I found him on the heath, in a booth
14279 that I know’d on. Him and some more was a sitting among the tables when
14280 I went in, and the landlord (which had a knowledge of me, and was a
14281 sporting one) called him out, and said, ‘I think this is a man that
14282 might suit you,’--meaning I was.
14283
14284 “Compeyson, he looks at me very noticing, and I look at him. He has a
14285 watch and a chain and a ring and a breast-pin and a handsome suit of
14286 clothes.
14287
14288 “‘To judge from appearances, you’re out of luck,’ says Compeyson to me.
14289
14290 “‘Yes, master, and I’ve never been in it much.’ (I had come out of
14291 Kingston Jail last on a vagrancy committal. Not but what it might have
14292 been for something else; but it warn’t.)
14293
14294 “‘Luck changes,’ says Compeyson; ‘perhaps yours is going to change.’
14295
14296 “I says, ‘I hope it may be so. There’s room.’
14297
14298 “‘What can you do?’ says Compeyson.
14299
14300 “‘Eat and drink,’ I says; ‘if you’ll find the materials.’
14301
14302 “Compeyson laughed, looked at me again very noticing, giv me five
14303 shillings, and appointed me for next night. Same place.
14304
14305 “I went to Compeyson next night, same place, and Compeyson took me on
14306 to be his man and pardner. And what was Compeyson’s business in which we
14307 was to go pardners? Compeyson’s business was the swindling, handwriting
14308 forging, stolen bank-note passing, and such-like. All sorts of traps as
14309 Compeyson could set with his head, and keep his own legs out of and get
14310 the profits from and let another man in for, was Compeyson’s business.
14311 He’d no more heart than a iron file, he was as cold as death, and he had
14312 the head of the Devil afore mentioned.
14313
14314 “There was another in with Compeyson, as was called Arthur,--not as
14315 being so chrisen’d, but as a surname. He was in a Decline, and was a
14316 shadow to look at. Him and Compeyson had been in a bad thing with a
14317 rich lady some years afore, and they’d made a pot of money by it; but
14318 Compeyson betted and gamed, and he’d have run through the king’s taxes.
14319 So, Arthur was a dying, and a dying poor and with the horrors on him,
14320 and Compeyson’s wife (which Compeyson kicked mostly) was a having pity
14321 on him when she could, and Compeyson was a having pity on nothing and
14322 nobody.
14323
14324 “I might a took warning by Arthur, but I didn’t; and I won’t pretend I
14325 was partick’ler--for where ‘ud be the good on it, dear boy and comrade?
14326 So I begun wi’ Compeyson, and a poor tool I was in his hands. Arthur
14327 lived at the top of Compeyson’s house (over nigh Brentford it was), and
14328 Compeyson kept a careful account agen him for board and lodging, in case
14329 he should ever get better to work it out. But Arthur soon settled the
14330 account. The second or third time as ever I see him, he come a tearing
14331 down into Compeyson’s parlor late at night, in only a flannel gown, with
14332 his hair all in a sweat, and he says to Compeyson’s wife, ‘Sally, she
14333 really is upstairs alonger me, now, and I can’t get rid of her. She’s
14334 all in white,’ he says, ‘wi’ white flowers in her hair, and she’s awful
14335 mad, and she’s got a shroud hanging over her arm, and she says she’ll
14336 put it on me at five in the morning.’
14337
14338 “Says Compeyson: ‘Why, you fool, don’t you know she’s got a living body?
14339 And how should she be up there, without coming through the door, or in
14340 at the window, and up the stairs?’
14341
14342 “‘I don’t know how she’s there,’ says Arthur, shivering dreadful with
14343 the horrors, ‘but she’s standing in the corner at the foot of the bed,
14344 awful mad. And over where her heart’s broke--you broke it!--there’s
14345 drops of blood.’
14346
14347 “Compeyson spoke hardy, but he was always a coward. ‘Go up alonger this
14348 drivelling sick man,’ he says to his wife, ‘and Magwitch, lend her a
14349 hand, will you?’ But he never come nigh himself.
14350
14351 “Compeyson’s wife and me took him up to bed agen, and he raved most
14352 dreadful. ‘Why look at her!’ he cries out. ‘She’s a shaking the shroud
14353 at me! Don’t you see her? Look at her eyes! Ain’t it awful to see her so
14354 mad?’ Next he cries, ‘She’ll put it on me, and then I’m done for! Take
14355 it away from her, take it away!’ And then he catched hold of us, and kep
14356 on a talking to her, and answering of her, till I half believed I see
14357 her myself.
14358
14359 “Compeyson’s wife, being used to him, giv him some liquor to get the
14360 horrors off, and by and by he quieted. ‘O, she’s gone! Has her keeper
14361 been for her?’ he says. ‘Yes,’ says Compeyson’s wife. ‘Did you tell him
14362 to lock her and bar her in?’ ‘Yes.’ ‘And to take that ugly thing away
14363 from her?’ ‘Yes, yes, all right.’ ‘You’re a good creetur,’ he says,
14364 ‘don’t leave me, whatever you do, and thank you!’
14365
14366 “He rested pretty quiet till it might want a few minutes of five, and
14367 then he starts up with a scream, and screams out, ‘Here she is! She’s
14368 got the shroud again. She’s unfolding it. She’s coming out of the
14369 corner. She’s coming to the bed. Hold me, both on you--one of each
14370 side--don’t let her touch me with it. Hah! she missed me that time.
14371 Don’t let her throw it over my shoulders. Don’t let her lift me up to
14372 get it round me. She’s lifting me up. Keep me down!’ Then he lifted
14373 himself up hard, and was dead.
14374
14375 “Compeyson took it easy as a good riddance for both sides. Him and
14376 me was soon busy, and first he swore me (being ever artful) on my own
14377 book,--this here little black book, dear boy, what I swore your comrade
14378 on.
14379
14380 “Not to go into the things that Compeyson planned, and I done--which ‘ud
14381 take a week--I’ll simply say to you, dear boy, and Pip’s comrade, that
14382 that man got me into such nets as made me his black slave. I was always
14383 in debt to him, always under his thumb, always a working, always a
14384 getting into danger. He was younger than me, but he’d got craft, and
14385 he’d got learning, and he overmatched me five hundred times told and
14386 no mercy. My Missis as I had the hard time wi’--Stop though! I ain’t
14387 brought her in--”
14388
14389 He looked about him in a confused way, as if he had lost his place in
14390 the book of his remembrance; and he turned his face to the fire, and
14391 spread his hands broader on his knees, and lifted them off and put them
14392 on again.
14393
14394 “There ain’t no need to go into it,” he said, looking round once more.
14395 “The time wi’ Compeyson was a’most as hard a time as ever I had; that
14396 said, all’s said. Did I tell you as I was tried, alone, for misdemeanor,
14397 while with Compeyson?”
14398
14399 I answered, No.
14400
14401 “Well!” he said, “I was, and got convicted. As to took up on suspicion,
14402 that was twice or three times in the four or five year that it lasted;
14403 but evidence was wanting. At last, me and Compeyson was both committed
14404 for felony,--on a charge of putting stolen notes in circulation,--and
14405 there was other charges behind. Compeyson says to me, ‘Separate
14406 defences, no communication,’ and that was all. And I was so miserable
14407 poor, that I sold all the clothes I had, except what hung on my back,
14408 afore I could get Jaggers.
14409
14410 “When we was put in the dock, I noticed first of all what a gentleman
14411 Compeyson looked, wi’ his curly hair and his black clothes and his white
14412 pocket-handkercher, and what a common sort of a wretch I looked. When
14413 the prosecution opened and the evidence was put short, aforehand, I
14414 noticed how heavy it all bore on me, and how light on him. When the
14415 evidence was giv in the box, I noticed how it was always me that had
14416 come for’ard, and could be swore to, how it was always me that the money
14417 had been paid to, how it was always me that had seemed to work the thing
14418 and get the profit. But when the defence come on, then I see the plan
14419 plainer; for, says the counsellor for Compeyson, ‘My lord and gentlemen,
14420 here you has afore you, side by side, two persons as your eyes can
14421 separate wide; one, the younger, well brought up, who will be spoke to
14422 as such; one, the elder, ill brought up, who will be spoke to as such;
14423 one, the younger, seldom if ever seen in these here transactions, and
14424 only suspected; t’other, the elder, always seen in ‘em and always wi’ his
14425 guilt brought home. Can you doubt, if there is but one in it, which is
14426 the one, and, if there is two in it, which is much the worst one?’ And
14427 such-like. And when it come to character, warn’t it Compeyson as had
14428 been to the school, and warn’t it his schoolfellows as was in this
14429 position and in that, and warn’t it him as had been know’d by witnesses
14430 in such clubs and societies, and nowt to his disadvantage? And warn’t it
14431 me as had been tried afore, and as had been know’d up hill and down dale
14432 in Bridewells and Lock-Ups! And when it come to speech-making, warn’t it
14433 Compeyson as could speak to ‘em wi’ his face dropping every now and then
14434 into his white pocket-handkercher,--ah! and wi’ verses in his speech,
14435 too,--and warn’t it me as could only say, ‘Gentlemen, this man at my
14436 side is a most precious rascal’? And when the verdict come, warn’t it
14437 Compeyson as was recommended to mercy on account of good character and
14438 bad company, and giving up all the information he could agen me,
14439 and warn’t it me as got never a word but Guilty? And when I says to
14440 Compeyson, ‘Once out of this court, I’ll smash that face of yourn!’
14441 ain’t it Compeyson as prays the Judge to be protected, and gets two
14442 turnkeys stood betwixt us? And when we’re sentenced, ain’t it him as
14443 gets seven year, and me fourteen, and ain’t it him as the Judge is
14444 sorry for, because he might a done so well, and ain’t it me as the Judge
14445 perceives to be a old offender of wiolent passion, likely to come to
14446 worse?”
14447
14448 He had worked himself into a state of great excitement, but he checked
14449 it, took two or three short breaths, swallowed as often, and stretching
14450 out his hand towards me said, in a reassuring manner, “I ain’t a going
14451 to be low, dear boy!”
14452
14453 He had so heated himself that he took out his handkerchief and wiped his
14454 face and head and neck and hands, before he could go on.
14455
14456 “I had said to Compeyson that I’d smash that face of his, and I swore
14457 Lord smash mine! to do it. We was in the same prison-ship, but I
14458 couldn’t get at him for long, though I tried. At last I come behind him
14459 and hit him on the cheek to turn him round and get a smashing one at
14460 him, when I was seen and seized. The black-hole of that ship warn’t
14461 a strong one, to a judge of black-holes that could swim and dive. I
14462 escaped to the shore, and I was a hiding among the graves there, envying
14463 them as was in ‘em and all over, when I first see my boy!”
14464
14465 He regarded me with a look of affection that made him almost abhorrent
14466 to me again, though I had felt great pity for him.
14467
14468 “By my boy, I was giv to understand as Compeyson was out on them marshes
14469 too. Upon my soul, I half believe he escaped in his terror, to get quit
14470 of me, not knowing it was me as had got ashore. I hunted him down. I
14471 smashed his face. ‘And now,’ says I ‘as the worst thing I can do, caring
14472 nothing for myself, I’ll drag you back.’ And I’d have swum off, towing
14473 him by the hair, if it had come to that, and I’d a got him aboard
14474 without the soldiers.
14475
14476 “Of course he’d much the best of it to the last,--his character was so
14477 good. He had escaped when he was made half wild by me and my murderous
14478 intentions; and his punishment was light. I was put in irons, brought
14479 to trial again, and sent for life. I didn’t stop for life, dear boy and
14480 Pip’s comrade, being here.”
14481
14482 He wiped himself again, as he had done before, and then slowly took
14483 his tangle of tobacco from his pocket, and plucked his pipe from his
14484 button-hole, and slowly filled it, and began to smoke.
14485
14486 “Is he dead?” I asked, after a silence.
14487
14488 “Is who dead, dear boy?”
14489
14490 “Compeyson.”
14491
14492 “He hopes I am, if he’s alive, you may be sure,” with a fierce look. “I
14493 never heerd no more of him.”
14494
14495 Herbert had been writing with his pencil in the cover of a book. He
14496 softly pushed the book over to me, as Provis stood smoking with his eyes
14497 on the fire, and I read in it:--
14498
14499 “Young Havisham’s name was Arthur. Compeyson is the man who professed to
14500 be Miss Havisham’s lover.”
14501
14502 I shut the book and nodded slightly to Herbert, and put the book by; but
14503 we neither of us said anything, and both looked at Provis as he stood
14504 smoking by the fire.
14505
14506
14507
14508
14509 Chapter XLIII
14510
14511 Why should I pause to ask how much of my shrinking from Provis might be
14512 traced to Estella? Why should I loiter on my road, to compare the state
14513 of mind in which I had tried to rid myself of the stain of the prison
14514 before meeting her at the coach-office, with the state of mind in which
14515 I now reflected on the abyss between Estella in her pride and beauty,
14516 and the returned transport whom I harbored? The road would be none the
14517 smoother for it, the end would be none the better for it, he would not
14518 be helped, nor I extenuated.
14519
14520 A new fear had been engendered in my mind by his narrative; or rather,
14521 his narrative had given form and purpose to the fear that was already
14522 there. If Compeyson were alive and should discover his return, I could
14523 hardly doubt the consequence. That Compeyson stood in mortal fear of
14524 him, neither of the two could know much better than I; and that any
14525 such man as that man had been described to be would hesitate to release
14526 himself for good from a dreaded enemy by the safe means of becoming an
14527 informer was scarcely to be imagined.
14528
14529 Never had I breathed, and never would I breathe--or so I resolved--a
14530 word of Estella to Provis. But, I said to Herbert that, before I could
14531 go abroad, I must see both Estella and Miss Havisham. This was when we
14532 were left alone on the night of the day when Provis told us his story. I
14533 resolved to go out to Richmond next day, and I went.
14534
14535 On my presenting myself at Mrs. Brandley’s, Estella’s maid was called to
14536 tell that Estella had gone into the country. Where? To Satis House, as
14537 usual. Not as usual, I said, for she had never yet gone there without
14538 me; when was she coming back? There was an air of reservation in the
14539 answer which increased my perplexity, and the answer was, that her maid
14540 believed she was only coming back at all for a little while. I could
14541 make nothing of this, except that it was meant that I should make
14542 nothing of it, and I went home again in complete discomfiture.
14543
14544 Another night consultation with Herbert after Provis was gone home (I
14545 always took him home, and always looked well about me), led us to the
14546 conclusion that nothing should be said about going abroad until I came
14547 back from Miss Havisham’s. In the mean time, Herbert and I were to
14548 consider separately what it would be best to say; whether we should
14549 devise any pretence of being afraid that he was under suspicious
14550 observation; or whether I, who had never yet been abroad, should propose
14551 an expedition. We both knew that I had but to propose anything, and he
14552 would consent. We agreed that his remaining many days in his present
14553 hazard was not to be thought of.
14554
14555 Next day I had the meanness to feign that I was under a binding promise
14556 to go down to Joe; but I was capable of almost any meanness towards Joe
14557 or his name. Provis was to be strictly careful while I was gone, and
14558 Herbert was to take the charge of him that I had taken. I was to be
14559 absent only one night, and, on my return, the gratification of his
14560 impatience for my starting as a gentleman on a greater scale was to
14561 be begun. It occurred to me then, and as I afterwards found to
14562 Herbert also, that he might be best got away across the water, on that
14563 pretence,--as, to make purchases, or the like.
14564
14565 Having thus cleared the way for my expedition to Miss Havisham’s, I set
14566 off by the early morning coach before it was yet light, and was out
14567 on the open country road when the day came creeping on, halting and
14568 whimpering and shivering, and wrapped in patches of cloud and rags of
14569 mist, like a beggar. When we drove up to the Blue Boar after a drizzly
14570 ride, whom should I see come out under the gateway, toothpick in hand,
14571 to look at the coach, but Bentley Drummle!
14572
14573 As he pretended not to see me, I pretended not to see him. It was a very
14574 lame pretence on both sides; the lamer, because we both went into the
14575 coffee-room, where he had just finished his breakfast, and where I
14576 ordered mine. It was poisonous to me to see him in the town, for I very
14577 well knew why he had come there.
14578
14579 Pretending to read a smeary newspaper long out of date, which had
14580 nothing half so legible in its local news, as the foreign matter of
14581 coffee, pickles, fish sauces, gravy, melted butter, and wine with which
14582 it was sprinkled all over, as if it had taken the measles in a highly
14583 irregular form, I sat at my table while he stood before the fire. By
14584 degrees it became an enormous injury to me that he stood before the
14585 fire. And I got up, determined to have my share of it. I had to put my
14586 hand behind his legs for the poker when I went up to the fireplace to
14587 stir the fire, but still pretended not to know him.
14588
14589 “Is this a cut?” said Mr. Drummle.
14590
14591 “Oh!” said I, poker in hand; “it’s you, is it? How do you do? I was
14592 wondering who it was, who kept the fire off.”
14593
14594 With that, I poked tremendously, and having done so, planted myself side
14595 by side with Mr. Drummle, my shoulders squared and my back to the fire.
14596
14597 “You have just come down?” said Mr. Drummle, edging me a little away
14598 with his shoulder.
14599
14600 “Yes,” said I, edging him a little away with my shoulder.
14601
14602 “Beastly place,” said Drummle. “Your part of the country, I think?”
14603
14604 “Yes,” I assented. “I am told it’s very like your Shropshire.”
14605
14606 “Not in the least like it,” said Drummle.
14607
14608 Here Mr. Drummle looked at his boots and I looked at mine, and then Mr.
14609 Drummle looked at my boots, and I looked at his.
14610
14611 “Have you been here long?” I asked, determined not to yield an inch of
14612 the fire.
14613
14614 “Long enough to be tired of it,” returned Drummle, pretending to yawn,
14615 but equally determined.
14616
14617 “Do you stay here long?”
14618
14619 “Can’t say,” answered Mr. Drummle. “Do you?”
14620
14621 “Can’t say,” said I.
14622
14623 I felt here, through a tingling in my blood, that if Mr. Drummle’s
14624 shoulder had claimed another hair’s breadth of room, I should have
14625 jerked him into the window; equally, that if my own shoulder had urged a
14626 similar claim, Mr. Drummle would have jerked me into the nearest box. He
14627 whistled a little. So did I.
14628
14629 “Large tract of marshes about here, I believe?” said Drummle.
14630
14631 “Yes. What of that?” said I.
14632
14633 Mr. Drummle looked at me, and then at my boots, and then said, “Oh!” and
14634 laughed.
14635
14636 “Are you amused, Mr. Drummle?”
14637
14638 “No,” said he, “not particularly. I am going out for a ride in the
14639 saddle. I mean to explore those marshes for amusement. Out-of-the-way
14640 villages there, they tell me. Curious little public-houses--and
14641 smithies--and that. Waiter!”
14642
14643 “Yes, sir.”
14644
14645 “Is that horse of mine ready?”
14646
14647 “Brought round to the door, sir.”
14648
14649 “I say. Look here, you sir. The lady won’t ride to-day; the weather
14650 won’t do.”
14651
14652 “Very good, sir.”
14653
14654 “And I don’t dine, because I’m going to dine at the lady’s.”
14655
14656 “Very good, sir.”
14657
14658 Then, Drummle glanced at me, with an insolent triumph on his
14659 great-jowled face that cut me to the heart, dull as he was, and so
14660 exasperated me, that I felt inclined to take him in my arms (as the
14661 robber in the story-book is said to have taken the old lady) and seat
14662 him on the fire.
14663
14664 One thing was manifest to both of us, and that was, that until relief
14665 came, neither of us could relinquish the fire. There we stood, well
14666 squared up before it, shoulder to shoulder and foot to foot, with our
14667 hands behind us, not budging an inch. The horse was visible outside in
14668 the drizzle at the door, my breakfast was put on the table, Drummle’s
14669 was cleared away, the waiter invited me to begin, I nodded, we both
14670 stood our ground.
14671
14672 “Have you been to the Grove since?” said Drummle.
14673
14674 “No,” said I, “I had quite enough of the Finches the last time I was
14675 there.”
14676
14677 “Was that when we had a difference of opinion?”
14678
14679 “Yes,” I replied, very shortly.
14680
14681 “Come, come! They let you off easily enough,” sneered Drummle. “You
14682 shouldn’t have lost your temper.”
14683
14684 “Mr. Drummle,” said I, “you are not competent to give advice on that
14685 subject. When I lose my temper (not that I admit having done so on that
14686 occasion), I don’t throw glasses.”
14687
14688 “I do,” said Drummle.
14689
14690 After glancing at him once or twice, in an increased state of
14691 smouldering ferocity, I said,--
14692
14693 “Mr. Drummle, I did not seek this conversation, and I don’t think it an
14694 agreeable one.”
14695
14696 “I am sure it’s not,” said he, superciliously over his shoulder; “I
14697 don’t think anything about it.”
14698
14699 “And therefore,” I went on, “with your leave, I will suggest that we
14700 hold no kind of communication in future.”
14701
14702 “Quite my opinion,” said Drummle, “and what I should have suggested
14703 myself, or done--more likely--without suggesting. But don’t lose your
14704 temper. Haven’t you lost enough without that?”
14705
14706 “What do you mean, sir?”
14707
14708 “Waiter!” said Drummle, by way of answering me.
14709
14710 The waiter reappeared.
14711
14712 “Look here, you sir. You quite understand that the young lady don’t ride
14713 to-day, and that I dine at the young lady’s?”
14714
14715 “Quite so, sir!”
14716
14717 When the waiter had felt my fast-cooling teapot with the palm of his
14718 hand, and had looked imploringly at me, and had gone out, Drummle,
14719 careful not to move the shoulder next me, took a cigar from his pocket
14720 and bit the end off, but showed no sign of stirring. Choking and
14721 boiling as I was, I felt that we could not go a word further, without
14722 introducing Estella’s name, which I could not endure to hear him utter;
14723 and therefore I looked stonily at the opposite wall, as if there were
14724 no one present, and forced myself to silence. How long we might have
14725 remained in this ridiculous position it is impossible to say, but
14726 for the incursion of three thriving farmers--laid on by the waiter, I
14727 think--who came into the coffee-room unbuttoning their great-coats and
14728 rubbing their hands, and before whom, as they charged at the fire, we
14729 were obliged to give way.
14730
14731 I saw him through the window, seizing his horse’s mane, and mounting in
14732 his blundering brutal manner, and sidling and backing away. I thought
14733 he was gone, when he came back, calling for a light for the cigar in his
14734 mouth, which he had forgotten. A man in a dust-colored dress appeared
14735 with what was wanted,--I could not have said from where: whether from
14736 the inn yard, or the street, or where not,--and as Drummle leaned down
14737 from the saddle and lighted his cigar and laughed, with a jerk of his
14738 head towards the coffee-room windows, the slouching shoulders and ragged
14739 hair of this man whose back was towards me reminded me of Orlick.
14740
14741 Too heavily out of sorts to care much at the time whether it were he or
14742 no, or after all to touch the breakfast, I washed the weather and the
14743 journey from my face and hands, and went out to the memorable old house
14744 that it would have been so much the better for me never to have entered,
14745 never to have seen.
14746
14747
14748
14749
14750 Chapter XLIV
14751
14752 In the room where the dressing-table stood, and where the wax-candles
14753 burnt on the wall, I found Miss Havisham and Estella; Miss Havisham
14754 seated on a settee near the fire, and Estella on a cushion at her feet.
14755 Estella was knitting, and Miss Havisham was looking on. They both raised
14756 their eyes as I went in, and both saw an alteration in me. I derived
14757 that, from the look they interchanged.
14758
14759 “And what wind,” said Miss Havisham, “blows you here, Pip?”
14760
14761 Though she looked steadily at me, I saw that she was rather confused.
14762 Estella, pausing a moment in her knitting with her eyes upon me, and
14763 then going on, I fancied that I read in the action of her fingers, as
14764 plainly as if she had told me in the dumb alphabet, that she perceived I
14765 had discovered my real benefactor.
14766
14767 “Miss Havisham,” said I, “I went to Richmond yesterday, to speak to
14768 Estella; and finding that some wind had blown her here, I followed.”
14769
14770 Miss Havisham motioning to me for the third or fourth time to sit down,
14771 I took the chair by the dressing-table, which I had often seen her
14772 occupy. With all that ruin at my feet and about me, it seemed a natural
14773 place for me, that day.
14774
14775 “What I had to say to Estella, Miss Havisham, I will say before you,
14776 presently--in a few moments. It will not surprise you, it will not
14777 displease you. I am as unhappy as you can ever have meant me to be.”
14778
14779 Miss Havisham continued to look steadily at me. I could see in the
14780 action of Estella’s fingers as they worked that she attended to what I
14781 said; but she did not look up.
14782
14783 “I have found out who my patron is. It is not a fortunate discovery,
14784 and is not likely ever to enrich me in reputation, station, fortune,
14785 anything. There are reasons why I must say no more of that. It is not my
14786 secret, but another’s.”
14787
14788 As I was silent for a while, looking at Estella and considering how to
14789 go on, Miss Havisham repeated, “It is not your secret, but another’s.
14790 Well?”
14791
14792 “When you first caused me to be brought here, Miss Havisham, when I
14793 belonged to the village over yonder, that I wish I had never left,
14794 I suppose I did really come here, as any other chance boy might have
14795 come,--as a kind of servant, to gratify a want or a whim, and to be paid
14796 for it?”
14797
14798 “Ay, Pip,” replied Miss Havisham, steadily nodding her head; “you did.”
14799
14800 “And that Mr. Jaggers--”
14801
14802 “Mr. Jaggers,” said Miss Havisham, taking me up in a firm tone, “had
14803 nothing to do with it, and knew nothing of it. His being my lawyer, and
14804 his being the lawyer of your patron is a coincidence. He holds the same
14805 relation towards numbers of people, and it might easily arise. Be that
14806 as it may, it did arise, and was not brought about by any one.”
14807
14808 Any one might have seen in her haggard face that there was no
14809 suppression or evasion so far.
14810
14811 “But when I fell into the mistake I have so long remained in, at least
14812 you led me on?” said I.
14813
14814 “Yes,” she returned, again nodding steadily, “I let you go on.”
14815
14816 “Was that kind?”
14817
14818 “Who am I,” cried Miss Havisham, striking her stick upon the floor
14819 and flashing into wrath so suddenly that Estella glanced up at her in
14820 surprise,--“who am I, for God’s sake, that I should be kind?”
14821
14822 It was a weak complaint to have made, and I had not meant to make it. I
14823 told her so, as she sat brooding after this outburst.
14824
14825 “Well, well, well!” she said. “What else?”
14826
14827 “I was liberally paid for my old attendance here,” I said, to soothe
14828 her, “in being apprenticed, and I have asked these questions only for
14829 my own information. What follows has another (and I hope more
14830 disinterested) purpose. In humoring my mistake, Miss Havisham, you
14831 punished--practised on--perhaps you will supply whatever term expresses
14832 your intention, without offence--your self-seeking relations?”
14833
14834 “I did. Why, they would have it so! So would you. What has been my
14835 history, that I should be at the pains of entreating either them or you
14836 not to have it so! You made your own snares. I never made them.”
14837
14838 Waiting until she was quiet again,--for this, too, flashed out of her in
14839 a wild and sudden way,--I went on.
14840
14841 “I have been thrown among one family of your relations, Miss Havisham,
14842 and have been constantly among them since I went to London. I know them
14843 to have been as honestly under my delusion as I myself. And I should be
14844 false and base if I did not tell you, whether it is acceptable to you or
14845 no, and whether you are inclined to give credence to it or no, that you
14846 deeply wrong both Mr. Matthew Pocket and his son Herbert, if you suppose
14847 them to be otherwise than generous, upright, open, and incapable of
14848 anything designing or mean.”
14849
14850 “They are your friends,” said Miss Havisham.
14851
14852 “They made themselves my friends,” said I, “when they supposed me
14853 to have superseded them; and when Sarah Pocket, Miss Georgiana, and
14854 Mistress Camilla were not my friends, I think.”
14855
14856 This contrasting of them with the rest seemed, I was glad to see, to do
14857 them good with her. She looked at me keenly for a little while, and then
14858 said quietly,--
14859
14860 “What do you want for them?”
14861
14862 “Only,” said I, “that you would not confound them with the others. They
14863 may be of the same blood, but, believe me, they are not of the same
14864 nature.”
14865
14866 Still looking at me keenly, Miss Havisham repeated,--
14867
14868 “What do you want for them?”
14869
14870 “I am not so cunning, you see,” I said, in answer, conscious that I
14871 reddened a little, “as that I could hide from you, even if I desired,
14872 that I do want something. Miss Havisham, if you would spare the money
14873 to do my friend Herbert a lasting service in life, but which from the
14874 nature of the case must be done without his knowledge, I could show you
14875 how.”
14876
14877 “Why must it be done without his knowledge?” she asked, settling her
14878 hands upon her stick, that she might regard me the more attentively.
14879
14880 “Because,” said I, “I began the service myself, more than two years ago,
14881 without his knowledge, and I don’t want to be betrayed. Why I fail in my
14882 ability to finish it, I cannot explain. It is a part of the secret which
14883 is another person’s and not mine.”
14884
14885 She gradually withdrew her eyes from me, and turned them on the fire.
14886 After watching it for what appeared in the silence and by the light
14887 of the slowly wasting candles to be a long time, she was roused by
14888 the collapse of some of the red coals, and looked towards me again--at
14889 first, vacantly--then, with a gradually concentrating attention. All
14890 this time Estella knitted on. When Miss Havisham had fixed her
14891 attention on me, she said, speaking as if there had been no lapse in our
14892 dialogue,--
14893
14894 “What else?”
14895
14896 “Estella,” said I, turning to her now, and trying to command my
14897 trembling voice, “you know I love you. You know that I have loved you
14898 long and dearly.”
14899
14900 She raised her eyes to my face, on being thus addressed, and her fingers
14901 plied their work, and she looked at me with an unmoved countenance. I
14902 saw that Miss Havisham glanced from me to her, and from her to me.
14903
14904 “I should have said this sooner, but for my long mistake. It induced me
14905 to hope that Miss Havisham meant us for one another. While I thought you
14906 could not help yourself, as it were, I refrained from saying it. But I
14907 must say it now.”
14908
14909 Preserving her unmoved countenance, and with her fingers still going,
14910 Estella shook her head.
14911
14912 “I know,” said I, in answer to that action,--“I know. I have no hope
14913 that I shall ever call you mine, Estella. I am ignorant what may become
14914 of me very soon, how poor I may be, or where I may go. Still, I love
14915 you. I have loved you ever since I first saw you in this house.”
14916
14917 Looking at me perfectly unmoved and with her fingers busy, she shook her
14918 head again.
14919
14920 “It would have been cruel in Miss Havisham, horribly cruel, to practise
14921 on the susceptibility of a poor boy, and to torture me through all these
14922 years with a vain hope and an idle pursuit, if she had reflected on the
14923 gravity of what she did. But I think she did not. I think that, in the
14924 endurance of her own trial, she forgot mine, Estella.”
14925
14926 I saw Miss Havisham put her hand to her heart and hold it there, as she
14927 sat looking by turns at Estella and at me.
14928
14929 “It seems,” said Estella, very calmly, “that there are sentiments,
14930 fancies,--I don’t know how to call them,--which I am not able to
14931 comprehend. When you say you love me, I know what you mean, as a form
14932 of words; but nothing more. You address nothing in my breast, you touch
14933 nothing there. I don’t care for what you say at all. I have tried to
14934 warn you of this; now, have I not?”
14935
14936 I said in a miserable manner, “Yes.”
14937
14938 “Yes. But you would not be warned, for you thought I did not mean it.
14939 Now, did you not think so?”
14940
14941 “I thought and hoped you could not mean it. You, so young, untried, and
14942 beautiful, Estella! Surely it is not in Nature.”
14943
14944 “It is in my nature,” she returned. And then she added, with a stress
14945 upon the words, “It is in the nature formed within me. I make a great
14946 difference between you and all other people when I say so much. I can do
14947 no more.”
14948
14949 “Is it not true,” said I, “that Bentley Drummle is in town here, and
14950 pursuing you?”
14951
14952 “It is quite true,” she replied, referring to him with the indifference
14953 of utter contempt.
14954
14955 “That you encourage him, and ride out with him, and that he dines with
14956 you this very day?”
14957
14958 She seemed a little surprised that I should know it, but again replied,
14959 “Quite true.”
14960
14961 “You cannot love him, Estella!”
14962
14963 Her fingers stopped for the first time, as she retorted rather angrily,
14964 “What have I told you? Do you still think, in spite of it, that I do not
14965 mean what I say?”
14966
14967 “You would never marry him, Estella?”
14968
14969 She looked towards Miss Havisham, and considered for a moment with her
14970 work in her hands. Then she said, “Why not tell you the truth? I am
14971 going to be married to him.”
14972
14973 I dropped my face into my hands, but was able to control myself better
14974 than I could have expected, considering what agony it gave me to hear
14975 her say those words. When I raised my face again, there was such a
14976 ghastly look upon Miss Havisham’s, that it impressed me, even in my
14977 passionate hurry and grief.
14978
14979 “Estella, dearest Estella, do not let Miss Havisham lead you into this
14980 fatal step. Put me aside for ever,--you have done so, I well know,--but
14981 bestow yourself on some worthier person than Drummle. Miss Havisham
14982 gives you to him, as the greatest slight and injury that could be done
14983 to the many far better men who admire you, and to the few who truly
14984 love you. Among those few there may be one who loves you even as dearly,
14985 though he has not loved you as long, as I. Take him, and I can bear it
14986 better, for your sake!”
14987
14988 My earnestness awoke a wonder in her that seemed as if it would have
14989 been touched with compassion, if she could have rendered me at all
14990 intelligible to her own mind.
14991
14992 “I am going,” she said again, in a gentler voice, “to be married to
14993 him. The preparations for my marriage are making, and I shall be
14994 married soon. Why do you injuriously introduce the name of my mother by
14995 adoption? It is my own act.”
14996
14997 “Your own act, Estella, to fling yourself away upon a brute?”
14998
14999 “On whom should I fling myself away?” she retorted, with a smile.
15000 “Should I fling myself away upon the man who would the soonest feel (if
15001 people do feel such things) that I took nothing to him? There! It is
15002 done. I shall do well enough, and so will my husband. As to leading
15003 me into what you call this fatal step, Miss Havisham would have had me
15004 wait, and not marry yet; but I am tired of the life I have led, which
15005 has very few charms for me, and I am willing enough to change it. Say no
15006 more. We shall never understand each other.”
15007
15008 “Such a mean brute, such a stupid brute!” I urged, in despair.
15009
15010 “Don’t be afraid of my being a blessing to him,” said Estella; “I shall
15011 not be that. Come! Here is my hand. Do we part on this, you visionary
15012 boy--or man?”
15013
15014 “O Estella!” I answered, as my bitter tears fell fast on her hand, do
15015 what I would to restrain them; “even if I remained in England and could
15016 hold my head up with the rest, how could I see you Drummle’s wife?”
15017
15018 “Nonsense,” she returned,--“nonsense. This will pass in no time.”
15019
15020 “Never, Estella!”
15021
15022 “You will get me out of your thoughts in a week.”
15023
15024 “Out of my thoughts! You are part of my existence, part of myself. You
15025 have been in every line I have ever read since I first came here, the
15026 rough common boy whose poor heart you wounded even then. You have been
15027 in every prospect I have ever seen since,--on the river, on the sails of
15028 the ships, on the marshes, in the clouds, in the light, in the darkness,
15029 in the wind, in the woods, in the sea, in the streets. You have been
15030 the embodiment of every graceful fancy that my mind has ever become
15031 acquainted with. The stones of which the strongest London buildings
15032 are made are not more real, or more impossible to be displaced by your
15033 hands, than your presence and influence have been to me, there and
15034 everywhere, and will be. Estella, to the last hour of my life, you
15035 cannot choose but remain part of my character, part of the little good
15036 in me, part of the evil. But, in this separation, I associate you only
15037 with the good; and I will faithfully hold you to that always, for you
15038 must have done me far more good than harm, let me feel now what sharp
15039 distress I may. O God bless you, God forgive you!”
15040
15041 In what ecstasy of unhappiness I got these broken words out of myself, I
15042 don’t know. The rhapsody welled up within me, like blood from an
15043 inward wound, and gushed out. I held her hand to my lips some lingering
15044 moments, and so I left her. But ever afterwards, I remembered,--and soon
15045 afterwards with stronger reason,--that while Estella looked at me merely
15046 with incredulous wonder, the spectral figure of Miss Havisham, her hand
15047 still covering her heart, seemed all resolved into a ghastly stare of
15048 pity and remorse.
15049
15050 All done, all gone! So much was done and gone, that when I went out at
15051 the gate, the light of the day seemed of a darker color than when I went
15052 in. For a while, I hid myself among some lanes and by-paths, and then
15053 struck off to walk all the way to London. For, I had by that time come
15054 to myself so far as to consider that I could not go back to the inn and
15055 see Drummle there; that I could not bear to sit upon the coach and
15056 be spoken to; that I could do nothing half so good for myself as tire
15057 myself out.
15058
15059 It was past midnight when I crossed London Bridge. Pursuing the narrow
15060 intricacies of the streets which at that time tended westward near the
15061 Middlesex shore of the river, my readiest access to the Temple was
15062 close by the river-side, through Whitefriars. I was not expected till
15063 to-morrow; but I had my keys, and, if Herbert were gone to bed, could
15064 get to bed myself without disturbing him.
15065
15066 As it seldom happened that I came in at that Whitefriars gate after the
15067 Temple was closed, and as I was very muddy and weary, I did not take it
15068 ill that the night-porter examined me with much attention as he held the
15069 gate a little way open for me to pass in. To help his memory I mentioned
15070 my name.
15071
15072 “I was not quite sure, sir, but I thought so. Here’s a note, sir. The
15073 messenger that brought it, said would you be so good as read it by my
15074 lantern?”
15075
15076 Much surprised by the request, I took the note. It was directed to
15077 Philip Pip, Esquire, and on the top of the superscription were the
15078 words, “PLEASE READ THIS, HERE.” I opened it, the watchman holding up
15079 his light, and read inside, in Wemmick’s writing,--
15080
15081 “DON’T GO HOME.”
15082
15083
15084
15085
15086 Chapter XLV
15087
15088 Turning from the Temple gate as soon as I had read the warning, I made
15089 the best of my way to Fleet Street, and there got a late hackney chariot
15090 and drove to the Hummums in Covent Garden. In those times a bed was
15091 always to be got there at any hour of the night, and the chamberlain,
15092 letting me in at his ready wicket, lighted the candle next in order on
15093 his shelf, and showed me straight into the bedroom next in order on his
15094 list. It was a sort of vault on the ground floor at the back, with a
15095 despotic monster of a four-post bedstead in it, straddling over the
15096 whole place, putting one of his arbitrary legs into the fireplace
15097 and another into the doorway, and squeezing the wretched little
15098 washing-stand in quite a Divinely Righteous manner.
15099
15100 As I had asked for a night-light, the chamberlain had brought me in,
15101 before he left me, the good old constitutional rushlight of those
15102 virtuous days--an object like the ghost of a walking-cane, which
15103 instantly broke its back if it were touched, which nothing could ever be
15104 lighted at, and which was placed in solitary confinement at the bottom
15105 of a high tin tower, perforated with round holes that made a staringly
15106 wide-awake pattern on the walls. When I had got into bed, and lay there
15107 footsore, weary, and wretched, I found that I could no more close my own
15108 eyes than I could close the eyes of this foolish Argus. And thus, in the
15109 gloom and death of the night, we stared at one another.
15110
15111 What a doleful night! How anxious, how dismal, how long! There was an
15112 inhospitable smell in the room, of cold soot and hot dust; and, as I
15113 looked up into the corners of the tester over my head, I thought what
15114 a number of blue-bottle flies from the butchers’, and earwigs from the
15115 market, and grubs from the country, must be holding on up there, lying
15116 by for next summer. This led me to speculate whether any of them ever
15117 tumbled down, and then I fancied that I felt light falls on my face,--a
15118 disagreeable turn of thought, suggesting other and more objectionable
15119 approaches up my back. When I had lain awake a little while, those
15120 extraordinary voices with which silence teems began to make themselves
15121 audible. The closet whispered, the fireplace sighed, the little
15122 washing-stand ticked, and one guitar-string played occasionally in the
15123 chest of drawers. At about the same time, the eyes on the wall acquired
15124 a new expression, and in every one of those staring rounds I saw
15125 written, DON’T GO HOME.
15126
15127 Whatever night-fancies and night-noises crowded on me, they never warded
15128 off this DON’T GO HOME. It plaited itself into whatever I thought of,
15129 as a bodily pain would have done. Not long before, I had read in the
15130 newspapers, how a gentleman unknown had come to the Hummums in the
15131 night, and had gone to bed, and had destroyed himself, and had been
15132 found in the morning weltering in blood. It came into my head that he
15133 must have occupied this very vault of mine, and I got out of bed to
15134 assure myself that there were no red marks about; then opened the door
15135 to look out into the passages, and cheer myself with the companionship
15136 of a distant light, near which I knew the chamberlain to be dozing. But
15137 all this time, why I was not to go home, and what had happened at home,
15138 and when I should go home, and whether Provis was safe at home, were
15139 questions occupying my mind so busily, that one might have supposed
15140 there could be no more room in it for any other theme. Even when I
15141 thought of Estella, and how we had parted that day forever, and when
15142 I recalled all the circumstances of our parting, and all her looks and
15143 tones, and the action of her fingers while she knitted,--even then I
15144 was pursuing, here and there and everywhere, the caution, Don’t go home.
15145 When at last I dozed, in sheer exhaustion of mind and body, it became
15146 a vast shadowy verb which I had to conjugate. Imperative mood, present
15147 tense: Do not thou go home, let him not go home, let us not go home, do
15148 not ye or you go home, let not them go home. Then potentially: I may not
15149 and I cannot go home; and I might not, could not, would not, and should
15150 not go home; until I felt that I was going distracted, and rolled over
15151 on the pillow, and looked at the staring rounds upon the wall again.
15152
15153 I had left directions that I was to be called at seven; for it was plain
15154 that I must see Wemmick before seeing any one else, and equally plain
15155 that this was a case in which his Walworth sentiments only could be
15156 taken. It was a relief to get out of the room where the night had been
15157 so miserable, and I needed no second knocking at the door to startle me
15158 from my uneasy bed.
15159
15160 The Castle battlements arose upon my view at eight o’clock. The little
15161 servant happening to be entering the fortress with two hot rolls, I
15162 passed through the postern and crossed the drawbridge in her company,
15163 and so came without announcement into the presence of Wemmick as he was
15164 making tea for himself and the Aged. An open door afforded a perspective
15165 view of the Aged in bed.
15166
15167 “Halloa, Mr. Pip!” said Wemmick. “You did come home, then?”
15168
15169 “Yes,” I returned; “but I didn’t go home.”
15170
15171 “That’s all right,” said he, rubbing his hands. “I left a note for you
15172 at each of the Temple gates, on the chance. Which gate did you come to?”
15173
15174 I told him.
15175
15176 “I’ll go round to the others in the course of the day and destroy the
15177 notes,” said Wemmick; “it’s a good rule never to leave documentary
15178 evidence if you can help it, because you don’t know when it may be put
15179 in. I’m going to take a liberty with you. Would you mind toasting this
15180 sausage for the Aged P.?”
15181
15182 I said I should be delighted to do it.
15183
15184 “Then you can go about your work, Mary Anne,” said Wemmick to the little
15185 servant; “which leaves us to ourselves, don’t you see, Mr. Pip?” he
15186 added, winking, as she disappeared.
15187
15188 I thanked him for his friendship and caution, and our discourse
15189 proceeded in a low tone, while I toasted the Aged’s sausage and he
15190 buttered the crumb of the Aged’s roll.
15191
15192 “Now, Mr. Pip, you know,” said Wemmick, “you and I understand one
15193 another. We are in our private and personal capacities, and we have been
15194 engaged in a confidential transaction before to-day. Official sentiments
15195 are one thing. We are extra official.”
15196
15197 I cordially assented. I was so very nervous, that I had already lighted
15198 the Aged’s sausage like a torch, and been obliged to blow it out.
15199
15200 “I accidentally heard, yesterday morning,” said Wemmick, “being in a
15201 certain place where I once took you,--even between you and me, it’s as
15202 well not to mention names when avoidable--”
15203
15204 “Much better not,” said I. “I understand you.”
15205
15206 “I heard there by chance, yesterday morning,” said Wemmick, “that
15207 a certain person not altogether of uncolonial pursuits, and not
15208 unpossessed of portable property,--I don’t know who it may really
15209 be,--we won’t name this person--”
15210
15211 “Not necessary,” said I.
15212
15213 “--Had made some little stir in a certain part of the world where a good
15214 many people go, not always in gratification of their own inclinations,
15215 and not quite irrespective of the government expense--”
15216
15217 In watching his face, I made quite a firework of the Aged’s sausage,
15218 and greatly discomposed both my own attention and Wemmick’s; for which I
15219 apologized.
15220
15221 “--By disappearing from such place, and being no more heard of
15222 thereabouts. From which,” said Wemmick, “conjectures had been raised and
15223 theories formed. I also heard that you at your chambers in Garden Court,
15224 Temple, had been watched, and might be watched again.”
15225
15226 “By whom?” said I.
15227
15228 “I wouldn’t go into that,” said Wemmick, evasively, “it might clash with
15229 official responsibilities. I heard it, as I have in my time heard other
15230 curious things in the same place. I don’t tell it you on information
15231 received. I heard it.”
15232
15233 He took the toasting-fork and sausage from me as he spoke, and set forth
15234 the Aged’s breakfast neatly on a little tray. Previous to placing it
15235 before him, he went into the Aged’s room with a clean white cloth, and
15236 tied the same under the old gentleman’s chin, and propped him up, and
15237 put his nightcap on one side, and gave him quite a rakish air. Then he
15238 placed his breakfast before him with great care, and said, “All right,
15239 ain’t you, Aged P.?” To which the cheerful Aged replied, “All right,
15240 John, my boy, all right!” As there seemed to be a tacit understanding
15241 that the Aged was not in a presentable state, and was therefore to be
15242 considered invisible, I made a pretence of being in complete ignorance
15243 of these proceedings.
15244
15245 “This watching of me at my chambers (which I have once had reason to
15246 suspect),” I said to Wemmick when he came back, “is inseparable from the
15247 person to whom you have adverted; is it?”
15248
15249 Wemmick looked very serious. “I couldn’t undertake to say that, of my
15250 own knowledge. I mean, I couldn’t undertake to say it was at first. But
15251 it either is, or it will be, or it’s in great danger of being.”
15252
15253 As I saw that he was restrained by fealty to Little Britain from saying
15254 as much as he could, and as I knew with thankfulness to him how far out
15255 of his way he went to say what he did, I could not press him. But I told
15256 him, after a little meditation over the fire, that I would like to ask
15257 him a question, subject to his answering or not answering, as he
15258 deemed right, and sure that his course would be right. He paused in his
15259 breakfast, and crossing his arms, and pinching his shirt-sleeves (his
15260 notion of in-door comfort was to sit without any coat), he nodded to me
15261 once, to put my question.
15262
15263 “You have heard of a man of bad character, whose true name is
15264 Compeyson?”
15265
15266 He answered with one other nod.
15267
15268 “Is he living?”
15269
15270 One other nod.
15271
15272 “Is he in London?”
15273
15274 He gave me one other nod, compressed the post-office exceedingly, gave
15275 me one last nod, and went on with his breakfast.
15276
15277 “Now,” said Wemmick, “questioning being over,” which he emphasized and
15278 repeated for my guidance, “I come to what I did, after hearing what I
15279 heard. I went to Garden Court to find you; not finding you, I went to
15280 Clarriker’s to find Mr. Herbert.”
15281
15282 “And him you found?” said I, with great anxiety.
15283
15284 “And him I found. Without mentioning any names or going into any
15285 details, I gave him to understand that if he was aware of anybody--Tom,
15286 Jack, or Richard--being about the chambers, or about the immediate
15287 neighborhood, he had better get Tom, Jack, or Richard out of the way
15288 while you were out of the way.”
15289
15290 “He would be greatly puzzled what to do?”
15291
15292 “He was puzzled what to do; not the less, because I gave him my opinion
15293 that it was not safe to try to get Tom, Jack, or Richard too far out
15294 of the way at present. Mr. Pip, I’ll tell you something. Under existing
15295 circumstances, there is no place like a great city when you are once
15296 in it. Don’t break cover too soon. Lie close. Wait till things slacken,
15297 before you try the open, even for foreign air.”
15298
15299 I thanked him for his valuable advice, and asked him what Herbert had
15300 done?
15301
15302 “Mr. Herbert,” said Wemmick, “after being all of a heap for half an
15303 hour, struck out a plan. He mentioned to me as a secret, that he is
15304 courting a young lady who has, as no doubt you are aware, a bedridden
15305 Pa. Which Pa, having been in the Purser line of life, lies a-bed in a
15306 bow-window where he can see the ships sail up and down the river. You
15307 are acquainted with the young lady, most probably?”
15308
15309 “Not personally,” said I.
15310
15311 The truth was, that she had objected to me as an expensive companion
15312 who did Herbert no good, and that, when Herbert had first proposed to
15313 present me to her, she had received the proposal with such very moderate
15314 warmth, that Herbert had felt himself obliged to confide the state of
15315 the case to me, with a view to the lapse of a little time before I made
15316 her acquaintance. When I had begun to advance Herbert’s prospects by
15317 stealth, I had been able to bear this with cheerful philosophy: he and
15318 his affianced, for their part, had naturally not been very anxious to
15319 introduce a third person into their interviews; and thus, although I was
15320 assured that I had risen in Clara’s esteem, and although the young
15321 lady and I had long regularly interchanged messages and remembrances by
15322 Herbert, I had never seen her. However, I did not trouble Wemmick with
15323 these particulars.
15324
15325 “The house with the bow-window,” said Wemmick, “being by the river-side,
15326 down the Pool there between Limehouse and Greenwich, and being kept, it
15327 seems, by a very respectable widow who has a furnished upper floor to
15328 let, Mr. Herbert put it to me, what did I think of that as a temporary
15329 tenement for Tom, Jack, or Richard? Now, I thought very well of it, for
15330 three reasons I’ll give you. That is to say: Firstly. It’s altogether
15331 out of all your beats, and is well away from the usual heap of streets
15332 great and small. Secondly. Without going near it yourself, you could
15333 always hear of the safety of Tom, Jack, or Richard, through Mr. Herbert.
15334 Thirdly. After a while and when it might be prudent, if you should want
15335 to slip Tom, Jack, or Richard on board a foreign packet-boat, there he
15336 is--ready.”
15337
15338 Much comforted by these considerations, I thanked Wemmick again and
15339 again, and begged him to proceed.
15340
15341 “Well, sir! Mr. Herbert threw himself into the business with a will, and
15342 by nine o’clock last night he housed Tom, Jack, or Richard,--whichever
15343 it may be,--you and I don’t want to know,--quite successfully. At the
15344 old lodgings it was understood that he was summoned to Dover, and, in
15345 fact, he was taken down the Dover road and cornered out of it. Now,
15346 another great advantage of all this is, that it was done without you,
15347 and when, if any one was concerning himself about your movements, you
15348 must be known to be ever so many miles off and quite otherwise engaged.
15349 This diverts suspicion and confuses it; and for the same reason I
15350 recommended that, even if you came back last night, you should not go
15351 home. It brings in more confusion, and you want confusion.”
15352
15353 Wemmick, having finished his breakfast, here looked at his watch, and
15354 began to get his coat on.
15355
15356 “And now, Mr. Pip,” said he, with his hands still in the sleeves, “I
15357 have probably done the most I can do; but if I can ever do more,--from
15358 a Walworth point of view, and in a strictly private and personal
15359 capacity,--I shall be glad to do it. Here’s the address. There can be
15360 no harm in your going here to-night, and seeing for yourself that all is
15361 well with Tom, Jack, or Richard, before you go home,--which is another
15362 reason for your not going home last night. But, after you have gone
15363 home, don’t go back here. You are very welcome, I am sure, Mr. Pip”; his
15364 hands were now out of his sleeves, and I was shaking them; “and let me
15365 finally impress one important point upon you.” He laid his hands upon
15366 my shoulders, and added in a solemn whisper: “Avail yourself of this
15367 evening to lay hold of his portable property. You don’t know what may
15368 happen to him. Don’t let anything happen to the portable property.”
15369
15370 Quite despairing of making my mind clear to Wemmick on this point, I
15371 forbore to try.
15372
15373 “Time’s up,” said Wemmick, “and I must be off. If you had nothing more
15374 pressing to do than to keep here till dark, that’s what I should advise.
15375 You look very much worried, and it would do you good to have a perfectly
15376 quiet day with the Aged,--he’ll be up presently,--and a little bit
15377 of--you remember the pig?”
15378
15379 “Of course,” said I.
15380
15381 “Well; and a little bit of him. That sausage you toasted was his, and
15382 he was in all respects a first-rater. Do try him, if it is only for old
15383 acquaintance sake. Good-bye, Aged Parent!” in a cheery shout.
15384
15385 “All right, John; all right, my boy!” piped the old man from within.
15386
15387 I soon fell asleep before Wemmick’s fire, and the Aged and I enjoyed one
15388 another’s society by falling asleep before it more or less all day.
15389 We had loin of pork for dinner, and greens grown on the estate; and
15390 I nodded at the Aged with a good intention whenever I failed to do it
15391 drowsily. When it was quite dark, I left the Aged preparing the fire for
15392 toast; and I inferred from the number of teacups, as well as from his
15393 glances at the two little doors in the wall, that Miss Skiffins was
15394 expected.
15395
15396
15397
15398
15399 Chapter XLVI
15400
15401 Eight o’clock had struck before I got into the air, that was scented,
15402 not disagreeably, by the chips and shavings of the long-shore
15403 boat-builders, and mast, oar, and block makers. All that water-side
15404 region of the upper and lower Pool below Bridge was unknown ground to
15405 me; and when I struck down by the river, I found that the spot I wanted
15406 was not where I had supposed it to be, and was anything but easy to
15407 find. It was called Mill Pond Bank, Chinks’s Basin; and I had no other
15408 guide to Chinks’s Basin than the Old Green Copper Rope-walk.
15409
15410 It matters not what stranded ships repairing in dry docks I lost myself
15411 among, what old hulls of ships in course of being knocked to pieces,
15412 what ooze and slime and other dregs of tide, what yards of ship-builders
15413 and ship-breakers, what rusty anchors blindly biting into the ground,
15414 though for years off duty, what mountainous country of accumulated casks
15415 and timber, how many rope-walks that were not the Old Green Copper. After
15416 several times falling short of my destination and as often overshooting
15417 it, I came unexpectedly round a corner, upon Mill Pond Bank. It was a
15418 fresh kind of place, all circumstances considered, where the wind from
15419 the river had room to turn itself round; and there were two or three
15420 trees in it, and there was the stump of a ruined windmill, and there
15421 was the Old Green Copper Rope-walk,--whose long and narrow vista I could
15422 trace in the moonlight, along a series of wooden frames set in the
15423 ground, that looked like superannuated haymaking-rakes which had grown
15424 old and lost most of their teeth.
15425
15426 Selecting from the few queer houses upon Mill Pond Bank a house with a
15427 wooden front and three stories of bow-window (not bay-window, which is
15428 another thing), I looked at the plate upon the door, and read there,
15429 Mrs. Whimple. That being the name I wanted, I knocked, and an elderly
15430 woman of a pleasant and thriving appearance responded. She was
15431 immediately deposed, however, by Herbert, who silently led me into
15432 the parlor and shut the door. It was an odd sensation to see his very
15433 familiar face established quite at home in that very unfamiliar room
15434 and region; and I found myself looking at him, much as I looked at
15435 the corner-cupboard with the glass and china, the shells upon the
15436 chimney-piece, and the colored engravings on the wall, representing the
15437 death of Captain Cook, a ship-launch, and his Majesty King George the
15438 Third in a state coachman’s wig, leather-breeches, and top-boots, on the
15439 terrace at Windsor.
15440
15441 “All is well, Handel,” said Herbert, “and he is quite satisfied, though
15442 eager to see you. My dear girl is with her father; and if you’ll wait
15443 till she comes down, I’ll make you known to her, and then we’ll go upstairs.
15444 That’s her father.”
15445
15446 I had become aware of an alarming growling overhead, and had probably
15447 expressed the fact in my countenance.
15448
15449 “I am afraid he is a sad old rascal,” said Herbert, smiling, “but I have
15450 never seen him. Don’t you smell rum? He is always at it.”
15451
15452 “At rum?” said I.
15453
15454 “Yes,” returned Herbert, “and you may suppose how mild it makes his
15455 gout. He persists, too, in keeping all the provisions upstairs in his
15456 room, and serving them out. He keeps them on shelves over his head, and
15457 will weigh them all. His room must be like a chandler’s shop.”
15458
15459 While he thus spoke, the growling noise became a prolonged roar, and
15460 then died away.
15461
15462 “What else can be the consequence,” said Herbert, in explanation, “if
15463 he will cut the cheese? A man with the gout in his right hand--and
15464 everywhere else--can’t expect to get through a Double Gloucester without
15465 hurting himself.”
15466
15467 He seemed to have hurt himself very much, for he gave another furious
15468 roar.
15469
15470 “To have Provis for an upper lodger is quite a godsend to Mrs. Whimple,”
15471 said Herbert, “for of course people in general won’t stand that noise. A
15472 curious place, Handel; isn’t it?”
15473
15474 It was a curious place, indeed; but remarkably well kept and clean.
15475
15476 “Mrs. Whimple,” said Herbert, when I told him so, “is the best of
15477 housewives, and I really do not know what my Clara would do without
15478 her motherly help. For, Clara has no mother of her own, Handel, and no
15479 relation in the world but old Gruffandgrim.”
15480
15481 “Surely that’s not his name, Herbert?”
15482
15483 “No, no,” said Herbert, “that’s my name for him. His name is Mr. Barley.
15484 But what a blessing it is for the son of my father and mother to love a
15485 girl who has no relations, and who can never bother herself or anybody
15486 else about her family!”
15487
15488 Herbert had told me on former occasions, and now reminded me, that he
15489 first knew Miss Clara Barley when she was completing her education at
15490 an establishment at Hammersmith, and that on her being recalled home
15491 to nurse her father, he and she had confided their affection to the
15492 motherly Mrs. Whimple, by whom it had been fostered and regulated
15493 with equal kindness and discretion, ever since. It was understood that
15494 nothing of a tender nature could possibly be confided to old Barley, by
15495 reason of his being totally unequal to the consideration of any subject
15496 more psychological than Gout, Rum, and Purser’s stores.
15497
15498 As we were thus conversing in a low tone while Old Barley’s sustained
15499 growl vibrated in the beam that crossed the ceiling, the room door
15500 opened, and a very pretty, slight, dark-eyed girl of twenty or so came
15501 in with a basket in her hand: whom Herbert tenderly relieved of the
15502 basket, and presented, blushing, as “Clara.” She really was a most
15503 charming girl, and might have passed for a captive fairy, whom that
15504 truculent Ogre, Old Barley, had pressed into his service.
15505
15506 “Look here,” said Herbert, showing me the basket, with a compassionate
15507 and tender smile, after we had talked a little; “here’s poor Clara’s
15508 supper, served out every night. Here’s her allowance of bread, and
15509 here’s her slice of cheese, and here’s her rum,--which I drink. This
15510 is Mr. Barley’s breakfast for to-morrow, served out to be cooked. Two
15511 mutton-chops, three potatoes, some split peas, a little flour, two
15512 ounces of butter, a pinch of salt, and all this black pepper. It’s
15513 stewed up together, and taken hot, and it’s a nice thing for the gout, I
15514 should think!”
15515
15516 There was something so natural and winning in Clara’s resigned way of
15517 looking at these stores in detail, as Herbert pointed them out; and
15518 something so confiding, loving, and innocent in her modest manner of
15519 yielding herself to Herbert’s embracing arm; and something so gentle in
15520 her, so much needing protection on Mill Pond Bank, by Chinks’s Basin,
15521 and the Old Green Copper Rope-walk, with Old Barley growling in the
15522 beam,--that I would not have undone the engagement between her and
15523 Herbert for all the money in the pocket-book I had never opened.
15524
15525 I was looking at her with pleasure and admiration, when suddenly the
15526 growl swelled into a roar again, and a frightful bumping noise was heard
15527 above, as if a giant with a wooden leg were trying to bore it through
15528 the ceiling to come at us. Upon this Clara said to Herbert, “Papa wants
15529 me, darling!” and ran away.
15530
15531 “There is an unconscionable old shark for you!” said Herbert. “What do
15532 you suppose he wants now, Handel?”
15533
15534 “I don’t know,” said I. “Something to drink?”
15535
15536 “That’s it!” cried Herbert, as if I had made a guess of extraordinary
15537 merit. “He keeps his grog ready mixed in a little tub on the table.
15538 Wait a moment, and you’ll hear Clara lift him up to take some. There
15539 he goes!” Another roar, with a prolonged shake at the end. “Now,” said
15540 Herbert, as it was succeeded by silence, “he’s drinking. Now,” said
15541 Herbert, as the growl resounded in the beam once more, “he’s down again
15542 on his back!”
15543
15544 Clara returned soon afterwards, and Herbert accompanied me upstairs to
15545 see our charge. As we passed Mr. Barley’s door, he was heard hoarsely
15546 muttering within, in a strain that rose and fell like wind, the
15547 following Refrain, in which I substitute good wishes for something quite
15548 the reverse:--
15549
15550 “Ahoy! Bless your eyes, here’s old Bill Barley. Here’s old Bill Barley,
15551 bless your eyes. Here’s old Bill Barley on the flat of his back, by the
15552 Lord. Lying on the flat of his back like a drifting old dead flounder,
15553 here’s your old Bill Barley, bless your eyes. Ahoy! Bless you.”
15554
15555 In this strain of consolation, Herbert informed me the invisible Barley
15556 would commune with himself by the day and night together; Often, while
15557 it was light, having, at the same time, one eye at a telescope which was
15558 fitted on his bed for the convenience of sweeping the river.
15559
15560 In his two cabin rooms at the top of the house, which were fresh and
15561 airy, and in which Mr. Barley was less audible than below, I found
15562 Provis comfortably settled. He expressed no alarm, and seemed to
15563 feel none that was worth mentioning; but it struck me that he was
15564 softened,--indefinably, for I could not have said how, and could never
15565 afterwards recall how when I tried, but certainly.
15566
15567 The opportunity that the day’s rest had given me for reflection had
15568 resulted in my fully determining to say nothing to him respecting
15569 Compeyson. For anything I knew, his animosity towards the man
15570 might otherwise lead to his seeking him out and rushing on his own
15571 destruction. Therefore, when Herbert and I sat down with him by his
15572 fire, I asked him first of all whether he relied on Wemmick’s judgment
15573 and sources of information?
15574
15575 “Ay, ay, dear boy!” he answered, with a grave nod, “Jaggers knows.”
15576
15577 “Then, I have talked with Wemmick,” said I, “and have come to tell you
15578 what caution he gave me and what advice.”
15579
15580 This I did accurately, with the reservation just mentioned; and I told
15581 him how Wemmick had heard, in Newgate prison (whether from officers or
15582 prisoners I could not say), that he was under some suspicion, and that
15583 my chambers had been watched; how Wemmick had recommended his keeping
15584 close for a time, and my keeping away from him; and what Wemmick had
15585 said about getting him abroad. I added, that of course, when the time
15586 came, I should go with him, or should follow close upon him, as might
15587 be safest in Wemmick’s judgment. What was to follow that I did not touch
15588 upon; neither, indeed, was I at all clear or comfortable about it in my
15589 own mind, now that I saw him in that softer condition, and in declared
15590 peril for my sake. As to altering my way of living by enlarging my
15591 expenses, I put it to him whether in our present unsettled and difficult
15592 circumstances, it would not be simply ridiculous, if it were no worse?
15593
15594 He could not deny this, and indeed was very reasonable throughout. His
15595 coming back was a venture, he said, and he had always known it to be a
15596 venture. He would do nothing to make it a desperate venture, and he had
15597 very little fear of his safety with such good help.
15598
15599 Herbert, who had been looking at the fire and pondering, here said
15600 that something had come into his thoughts arising out of Wemmick’s
15601 suggestion, which it might be worth while to pursue. “We are both good
15602 watermen, Handel, and could take him down the river ourselves when the
15603 right time comes. No boat would then be hired for the purpose, and no
15604 boatmen; that would save at least a chance of suspicion, and any chance
15605 is worth saving. Never mind the season; don’t you think it might be a
15606 good thing if you began at once to keep a boat at the Temple stairs, and
15607 were in the habit of rowing up and down the river? You fall into that
15608 habit, and then who notices or minds? Do it twenty or fifty times,
15609 and there is nothing special in your doing it the twenty-first or
15610 fifty-first.”
15611
15612 I liked this scheme, and Provis was quite elated by it. We agreed
15613 that it should be carried into execution, and that Provis should never
15614 recognize us if we came below Bridge, and rowed past Mill Pond Bank. But
15615 we further agreed that he should pull down the blind in that part of his
15616 window which gave upon the east, whenever he saw us and all was right.
15617
15618 Our conference being now ended, and everything arranged, I rose to go;
15619 remarking to Herbert that he and I had better not go home together, and
15620 that I would take half an hour’s start of him. “I don’t like to leave
15621 you here,” I said to Provis, “though I cannot doubt your being safer
15622 here than near me. Good-bye!”
15623
15624 “Dear boy,” he answered, clasping my hands, “I don’t know when we may
15625 meet again, and I don’t like good-bye. Say good night!”
15626
15627 “Good night! Herbert will go regularly between us, and when the time
15628 comes you may be certain I shall be ready. Good night, good night!”
15629
15630 We thought it best that he should stay in his own rooms; and we left him
15631 on the landing outside his door, holding a light over the stair-rail to
15632 light us downstairs. Looking back at him, I thought of the first night
15633 of his return, when our positions were reversed, and when I little
15634 supposed my heart could ever be as heavy and anxious at parting from him
15635 as it was now.
15636
15637 Old Barley was growling and swearing when we repassed his door, with no
15638 appearance of having ceased or of meaning to cease. When we got to the
15639 foot of the stairs, I asked Herbert whether he had preserved the name of
15640 Provis. He replied, certainly not, and that the lodger was Mr. Campbell.
15641 He also explained that the utmost known of Mr. Campbell there was,
15642 that he (Herbert) had Mr. Campbell consigned to him, and felt a strong
15643 personal interest in his being well cared for, and living a secluded
15644 life. So, when we went into the parlor where Mrs. Whimple and Clara were
15645 seated at work, I said nothing of my own interest in Mr. Campbell, but
15646 kept it to myself.
15647
15648 When I had taken leave of the pretty, gentle, dark-eyed girl, and of the
15649 motherly woman who had not outlived her honest sympathy with a little
15650 affair of true love, I felt as if the Old Green Copper Rope-walk had
15651 grown quite a different place. Old Barley might be as old as the hills,
15652 and might swear like a whole field of troopers, but there were redeeming
15653 youth and trust and hope enough in Chinks’s Basin to fill it to
15654 overflowing. And then I thought of Estella, and of our parting, and went
15655 home very sadly.
15656
15657 All things were as quiet in the Temple as ever I had seen them. The
15658 windows of the rooms on that side, lately occupied by Provis, were dark
15659 and still, and there was no lounger in Garden Court. I walked past the
15660 fountain twice or thrice before I descended the steps that were between
15661 me and my rooms, but I was quite alone. Herbert, coming to my
15662 bedside when he came in,--for I went straight to bed, dispirited and
15663 fatigued,--made the same report. Opening one of the windows after that,
15664 he looked out into the moonlight, and told me that the pavement was as
15665 solemnly empty as the pavement of any cathedral at that same hour.
15666
15667 Next day I set myself to get the boat. It was soon done, and the boat
15668 was brought round to the Temple stairs, and lay where I could reach
15669 her within a minute or two. Then, I began to go out as for training and
15670 practice: sometimes alone, sometimes with Herbert. I was often out in
15671 cold, rain, and sleet, but nobody took much note of me after I had been
15672 out a few times. At first, I kept above Blackfriars Bridge; but as the
15673 hours of the tide changed, I took towards London Bridge. It was Old
15674 London Bridge in those days, and at certain states of the tide there
15675 was a race and fall of water there which gave it a bad reputation. But I
15676 knew well enough how to ‘shoot’ the bridge after seeing it done, and so
15677 began to row about among the shipping in the Pool, and down to Erith.
15678 The first time I passed Mill Pond Bank, Herbert and I were pulling a
15679 pair of oars; and, both in going and returning, we saw the blind towards
15680 the east come down. Herbert was rarely there less frequently than three
15681 times in a week, and he never brought me a single word of intelligence
15682 that was at all alarming. Still, I knew that there was cause for alarm,
15683 and I could not get rid of the notion of being watched. Once received,
15684 it is a haunting idea; how many undesigning persons I suspected of
15685 watching me, it would be hard to calculate.
15686
15687 In short, I was always full of fears for the rash man who was in hiding.
15688 Herbert had sometimes said to me that he found it pleasant to stand at
15689 one of our windows after dark, when the tide was running down, and to
15690 think that it was flowing, with everything it bore, towards Clara. But
15691 I thought with dread that it was flowing towards Magwitch, and that
15692 any black mark on its surface might be his pursuers, going swiftly,
15693 silently, and surely, to take him.
15694
15695
15696
15697
15698 Chapter XLVII
15699
15700 Some weeks passed without bringing any change. We waited for Wemmick,
15701 and he made no sign. If I had never known him out of Little Britain, and
15702 had never enjoyed the privilege of being on a familiar footing at the
15703 Castle, I might have doubted him; not so for a moment, knowing him as I
15704 did.
15705
15706 My worldly affairs began to wear a gloomy appearance, and I was pressed
15707 for money by more than one creditor. Even I myself began to know the
15708 want of money (I mean of ready money in my own pocket), and to relieve
15709 it by converting some easily spared articles of jewelery into cash. But
15710 I had quite determined that it would be a heartless fraud to take more
15711 money from my patron in the existing state of my uncertain thoughts and
15712 plans. Therefore, I had sent him the unopened pocket-book by Herbert, to
15713 hold in his own keeping, and I felt a kind of satisfaction--whether it
15714 was a false kind or a true, I hardly know--in not having profited by his
15715 generosity since his revelation of himself.
15716
15717 As the time wore on, an impression settled heavily upon me that Estella
15718 was married. Fearful of having it confirmed, though it was all but a
15719 conviction, I avoided the newspapers, and begged Herbert (to whom I had
15720 confided the circumstances of our last interview) never to speak of her
15721 to me. Why I hoarded up this last wretched little rag of the robe of
15722 hope that was rent and given to the winds, how do I know? Why did you
15723 who read this, commit that not dissimilar inconsistency of your own last
15724 year, last month, last week?
15725
15726 It was an unhappy life that I lived; and its one dominant anxiety,
15727 towering over all its other anxieties, like a high mountain above a
15728 range of mountains, never disappeared from my view. Still, no new cause
15729 for fear arose. Let me start from my bed as I would, with the terror
15730 fresh upon me that he was discovered; let me sit listening, as I would
15731 with dread, for Herbert’s returning step at night, lest it should be
15732 fleeter than ordinary, and winged with evil news,--for all that, and
15733 much more to like purpose, the round of things went on. Condemned to
15734 inaction and a state of constant restlessness and suspense, I rowed
15735 about in my boat, and waited, waited, waited, as I best could.
15736
15737 There were states of the tide when, having been down the river, I could
15738 not get back through the eddy-chafed arches and starlings of old London
15739 Bridge; then, I left my boat at a wharf near the Custom House, to be
15740 brought up afterwards to the Temple stairs. I was not averse to doing
15741 this, as it served to make me and my boat a commoner incident among the
15742 water-side people there. From this slight occasion sprang two meetings
15743 that I have now to tell of.
15744
15745 One afternoon, late in the month of February, I came ashore at the wharf
15746 at dusk. I had pulled down as far as Greenwich with the ebb tide, and
15747 had turned with the tide. It had been a fine bright day, but had become
15748 foggy as the sun dropped, and I had had to feel my way back among the
15749 shipping, pretty carefully. Both in going and returning, I had seen the
15750 signal in his window, All well.
15751
15752 As it was a raw evening, and I was cold, I thought I would comfort
15753 myself with dinner at once; and as I had hours of dejection and solitude
15754 before me if I went home to the Temple, I thought I would afterwards go
15755 to the play. The theatre where Mr. Wopsle had achieved his questionable
15756 triumph was in that water-side neighborhood (it is nowhere now), and
15757 to that theatre I resolved to go. I was aware that Mr. Wopsle had
15758 not succeeded in reviving the Drama, but, on the contrary, had rather
15759 partaken of its decline. He had been ominously heard of, through the
15760 play-bills, as a faithful Black, in connection with a little girl of
15761 noble birth, and a monkey. And Herbert had seen him as a predatory
15762 Tartar of comic propensities, with a face like a red brick, and an
15763 outrageous hat all over bells.
15764
15765 I dined at what Herbert and I used to call a geographical chop-house,
15766 where there were maps of the world in porter-pot rims on every half-yard
15767 of the tablecloths, and charts of gravy on every one of the knives,--to
15768 this day there is scarcely a single chop-house within the Lord Mayor’s
15769 dominions which is not geographical,--and wore out the time in dozing
15770 over crumbs, staring at gas, and baking in a hot blast of dinners. By
15771 and by, I roused myself, and went to the play.
15772
15773 There, I found a virtuous boatswain in His Majesty’s service,--a most
15774 excellent man, though I could have wished his trousers not quite so
15775 tight in some places, and not quite so loose in others,--who knocked all
15776 the little men’s hats over their eyes, though he was very generous and
15777 brave, and who wouldn’t hear of anybody’s paying taxes, though he was
15778 very patriotic. He had a bag of money in his pocket, like a pudding in
15779 the cloth, and on that property married a young person in bed-furniture,
15780 with great rejoicings; the whole population of Portsmouth (nine in
15781 number at the last census) turning out on the beach to rub their own
15782 hands and shake everybody else’s, and sing “Fill, fill!” A certain
15783 dark-complexioned Swab, however, who wouldn’t fill, or do anything else
15784 that was proposed to him, and whose heart was openly stated (by the
15785 boatswain) to be as black as his figure-head, proposed to two other
15786 Swabs to get all mankind into difficulties; which was so effectually
15787 done (the Swab family having considerable political influence) that it
15788 took half the evening to set things right, and then it was only brought
15789 about through an honest little grocer with a white hat, black gaiters,
15790 and red nose, getting into a clock, with a gridiron, and listening, and
15791 coming out, and knocking everybody down from behind with the gridiron
15792 whom he couldn’t confute with what he had overheard. This led to Mr.
15793 Wopsle’s (who had never been heard of before) coming in with a star
15794 and garter on, as a plenipotentiary of great power direct from the
15795 Admiralty, to say that the Swabs were all to go to prison on the spot,
15796 and that he had brought the boatswain down the Union Jack, as a slight
15797 acknowledgment of his public services. The boatswain, unmanned for the
15798 first time, respectfully dried his eyes on the Jack, and then cheering
15799 up, and addressing Mr. Wopsle as Your Honor, solicited permission to
15800 take him by the fin. Mr. Wopsle, conceding his fin with a gracious
15801 dignity, was immediately shoved into a dusty corner, while everybody
15802 danced a hornpipe; and from that corner, surveying the public with a
15803 discontented eye, became aware of me.
15804
15805 The second piece was the last new grand comic Christmas pantomime, in
15806 the first scene of which, it pained me to suspect that I detected
15807 Mr. Wopsle with red worsted legs under a highly magnified phosphoric
15808 countenance and a shock of red curtain-fringe for his hair, engaged
15809 in the manufacture of thunderbolts in a mine, and displaying great
15810 cowardice when his gigantic master came home (very hoarse) to dinner.
15811 But he presently presented himself under worthier circumstances; for,
15812 the Genius of Youthful Love being in want of assistance,--on account of
15813 the parental brutality of an ignorant farmer who opposed the choice
15814 of his daughter’s heart, by purposely falling upon the object, in a
15815 flour-sack, out of the first-floor window,--summoned a sententious
15816 Enchanter; and he, coming up from the antipodes rather unsteadily, after
15817 an apparently violent journey, proved to be Mr. Wopsle in a high-crowned
15818 hat, with a necromantic work in one volume under his arm. The business
15819 of this enchanter on earth being principally to be talked at, sung at,
15820 butted at, danced at, and flashed at with fires of various colors,
15821 he had a good deal of time on his hands. And I observed, with great
15822 surprise, that he devoted it to staring in my direction as if he were
15823 lost in amazement.
15824
15825 There was something so remarkable in the increasing glare of Mr.
15826 Wopsle’s eye, and he seemed to be turning so many things over in his
15827 mind and to grow so confused, that I could not make it out. I sat
15828 thinking of it long after he had ascended to the clouds in a large
15829 watch-case, and still I could not make it out. I was still thinking
15830 of it when I came out of the theatre an hour afterwards, and found him
15831 waiting for me near the door.
15832
15833 “How do you do?” said I, shaking hands with him as we turned down the
15834 street together. “I saw that you saw me.”
15835
15836 “Saw you, Mr. Pip!” he returned. “Yes, of course I saw you. But who else
15837 was there?”
15838
15839 “Who else?”
15840
15841 “It is the strangest thing,” said Mr. Wopsle, drifting into his lost
15842 look again; “and yet I could swear to him.”
15843
15844 Becoming alarmed, I entreated Mr. Wopsle to explain his meaning.
15845
15846 “Whether I should have noticed him at first but for your being there,”
15847 said Mr. Wopsle, going on in the same lost way, “I can’t be positive;
15848 yet I think I should.”
15849
15850 Involuntarily I looked round me, as I was accustomed to look round me
15851 when I went home; for these mysterious words gave me a chill.
15852
15853 “Oh! He can’t be in sight,” said Mr. Wopsle. “He went out before I went
15854 off. I saw him go.”
15855
15856 Having the reason that I had for being suspicious, I even suspected
15857 this poor actor. I mistrusted a design to entrap me into some admission.
15858 Therefore I glanced at him as we walked on together, but said nothing.
15859
15860 “I had a ridiculous fancy that he must be with you, Mr. Pip, till I saw
15861 that you were quite unconscious of him, sitting behind you there like a
15862 ghost.”
15863
15864 My former chill crept over me again, but I was resolved not to speak
15865 yet, for it was quite consistent with his words that he might be set on
15866 to induce me to connect these references with Provis. Of course, I was
15867 perfectly sure and safe that Provis had not been there.
15868
15869 “I dare say you wonder at me, Mr. Pip; indeed, I see you do. But it is
15870 so very strange! You’ll hardly believe what I am going to tell you. I
15871 could hardly believe it myself, if you told me.”
15872
15873 “Indeed?” said I.
15874
15875 “No, indeed. Mr. Pip, you remember in old times a certain Christmas Day,
15876 when you were quite a child, and I dined at Gargery’s, and some soldiers
15877 came to the door to get a pair of handcuffs mended?”
15878
15879 “I remember it very well.”
15880
15881 “And you remember that there was a chase after two convicts, and that we
15882 joined in it, and that Gargery took you on his back, and that I took the
15883 lead, and you kept up with me as well as you could?”
15884
15885 “I remember it all very well.” Better than he thought,--except the last
15886 clause.
15887
15888 “And you remember that we came up with the two in a ditch, and that
15889 there was a scuffle between them, and that one of them had been severely
15890 handled and much mauled about the face by the other?”
15891
15892 “I see it all before me.”
15893
15894 “And that the soldiers lighted torches, and put the two in the centre,
15895 and that we went on to see the last of them, over the black marshes,
15896 with the torchlight shining on their faces,--I am particular about
15897 that,--with the torchlight shining on their faces, when there was an
15898 outer ring of dark night all about us?”
15899
15900 “Yes,” said I. “I remember all that.”
15901
15902 “Then, Mr. Pip, one of those two prisoners sat behind you tonight. I saw
15903 him over your shoulder.”
15904
15905 “Steady!” I thought. I asked him then, “Which of the two do you suppose
15906 you saw?”
15907
15908 “The one who had been mauled,” he answered readily, “and I’ll swear I
15909 saw him! The more I think of him, the more certain I am of him.”
15910
15911 “This is very curious!” said I, with the best assumption I could put on
15912 of its being nothing more to me. “Very curious indeed!”
15913
15914 I cannot exaggerate the enhanced disquiet into which this conversation
15915 threw me, or the special and peculiar terror I felt at Compeyson’s
15916 having been behind me “like a ghost.” For if he had ever been out of my
15917 thoughts for a few moments together since the hiding had begun, it was
15918 in those very moments when he was closest to me; and to think that I
15919 should be so unconscious and off my guard after all my care was as if
15920 I had shut an avenue of a hundred doors to keep him out, and then had
15921 found him at my elbow. I could not doubt, either, that he was there,
15922 because I was there, and that, however slight an appearance of danger
15923 there might be about us, danger was always near and active.
15924
15925 I put such questions to Mr. Wopsle as, When did the man come in? He
15926 could not tell me that; he saw me, and over my shoulder he saw the man.
15927 It was not until he had seen him for some time that he began to identify
15928 him; but he had from the first vaguely associated him with me, and
15929 known him as somehow belonging to me in the old village time. How was
15930 he dressed? Prosperously, but not noticeably otherwise; he thought, in
15931 black. Was his face at all disfigured? No, he believed not. I believed
15932 not too, for, although in my brooding state I had taken no especial
15933 notice of the people behind me, I thought it likely that a face at all
15934 disfigured would have attracted my attention.
15935
15936 When Mr. Wopsle had imparted to me all that he could recall or I
15937 extract, and when I had treated him to a little appropriate refreshment,
15938 after the fatigues of the evening, we parted. It was between twelve and
15939 one o’clock when I reached the Temple, and the gates were shut. No one
15940 was near me when I went in and went home.
15941
15942 Herbert had come in, and we held a very serious council by the fire. But
15943 there was nothing to be done, saving to communicate to Wemmick what I
15944 had that night found out, and to remind him that we waited for his hint.
15945 As I thought that I might compromise him if I went too often to the
15946 Castle, I made this communication by letter. I wrote it before I went to
15947 bed, and went out and posted it; and again no one was near me. Herbert
15948 and I agreed that we could do nothing else but be very cautious. And
15949 we were very cautious indeed,--more cautious than before, if that were
15950 possible,--and I for my part never went near Chinks’s Basin, except
15951 when I rowed by, and then I only looked at Mill Pond Bank as I looked at
15952 anything else.
15953
15954
15955
15956
15957 Chapter XLVIII
15958
15959 The second of the two meetings referred to in the last chapter occurred
15960 about a week after the first. I had again left my boat at the wharf
15961 below Bridge; the time was an hour earlier in the afternoon; and,
15962 undecided where to dine, I had strolled up into Cheapside, and was
15963 strolling along it, surely the most unsettled person in all the busy
15964 concourse, when a large hand was laid upon my shoulder by some one
15965 overtaking me. It was Mr. Jaggers’s hand, and he passed it through my
15966 arm.
15967
15968 “As we are going in the same direction, Pip, we may walk together. Where
15969 are you bound for?”
15970
15971 “For the Temple, I think,” said I.
15972
15973 “Don’t you know?” said Mr. Jaggers.
15974
15975 “Well,” I returned, glad for once to get the better of him in
15976 cross-examination, “I do not know, for I have not made up my mind.”
15977
15978 “You are going to dine?” said Mr. Jaggers. “You don’t mind admitting
15979 that, I suppose?”
15980
15981 “No,” I returned, “I don’t mind admitting that.”
15982
15983 “And are not engaged?”
15984
15985 “I don’t mind admitting also that I am not engaged.”
15986
15987 “Then,” said Mr. Jaggers, “come and dine with me.”
15988
15989 I was going to excuse myself, when he added, “Wemmick’s coming.” So
15990 I changed my excuse into an acceptance,--the few words I had uttered,
15991 serving for the beginning of either,--and we went along Cheapside
15992 and slanted off to Little Britain, while the lights were springing up
15993 brilliantly in the shop windows, and the street lamp-lighters, scarcely
15994 finding ground enough to plant their ladders on in the midst of the
15995 afternoon’s bustle, were skipping up and down and running in and out,
15996 opening more red eyes in the gathering fog than my rushlight tower at
15997 the Hummums had opened white eyes in the ghostly wall.
15998
15999 At the office in Little Britain there was the usual letter-writing,
16000 hand-washing, candle-snuffing, and safe-locking, that closed the
16001 business of the day. As I stood idle by Mr. Jaggers’s fire, its rising
16002 and falling flame made the two casts on the shelf look as if they were
16003 playing a diabolical game at bo-peep with me; while the pair of coarse,
16004 fat office candles that dimly lighted Mr. Jaggers as he wrote in a
16005 corner were decorated with dirty winding-sheets, as if in remembrance of
16006 a host of hanged clients.
16007
16008 We went to Gerrard Street, all three together, in a hackney-coach: And,
16009 as soon as we got there, dinner was served. Although I should not have
16010 thought of making, in that place, the most distant reference by so much
16011 as a look to Wemmick’s Walworth sentiments, yet I should have had no
16012 objection to catching his eye now and then in a friendly way. But it
16013 was not to be done. He turned his eyes on Mr. Jaggers whenever he raised
16014 them from the table, and was as dry and distant to me as if there were
16015 twin Wemmicks, and this was the wrong one.
16016
16017 “Did you send that note of Miss Havisham’s to Mr. Pip, Wemmick?” Mr.
16018 Jaggers asked, soon after we began dinner.
16019
16020 “No, sir,” returned Wemmick; “it was going by post, when you brought Mr.
16021 Pip into the office. Here it is.” He handed it to his principal instead
16022 of to me.
16023
16024 “It’s a note of two lines, Pip,” said Mr. Jaggers, handing it on, “sent
16025 up to me by Miss Havisham on account of her not being sure of your
16026 address. She tells me that she wants to see you on a little matter of
16027 business you mentioned to her. You’ll go down?”
16028
16029 “Yes,” said I, casting my eyes over the note, which was exactly in those
16030 terms.
16031
16032 “When do you think of going down?”
16033
16034 “I have an impending engagement,” said I, glancing at Wemmick, who was
16035 putting fish into the post-office, “that renders me rather uncertain of
16036 my time. At once, I think.”
16037
16038 “If Mr. Pip has the intention of going at once,” said Wemmick to Mr.
16039 Jaggers, “he needn’t write an answer, you know.”
16040
16041 Receiving this as an intimation that it was best not to delay, I settled
16042 that I would go to-morrow, and said so. Wemmick drank a glass of wine,
16043 and looked with a grimly satisfied air at Mr. Jaggers, but not at me.
16044
16045 “So, Pip! Our friend the Spider,” said Mr. Jaggers, “has played his
16046 cards. He has won the pool.”
16047
16048 It was as much as I could do to assent.
16049
16050 “Hah! He is a promising fellow--in his way--but he may not have it all
16051 his own way. The stronger will win in the end, but the stronger has to
16052 be found out first. If he should turn to, and beat her--”
16053
16054 “Surely,” I interrupted, with a burning face and heart, “you do not
16055 seriously think that he is scoundrel enough for that, Mr. Jaggers?”
16056
16057 “I didn’t say so, Pip. I am putting a case. If he should turn to and
16058 beat her, he may possibly get the strength on his side; if it should be
16059 a question of intellect, he certainly will not. It would be chance
16060 work to give an opinion how a fellow of that sort will turn out in such
16061 circumstances, because it’s a toss-up between two results.”
16062
16063 “May I ask what they are?”
16064
16065 “A fellow like our friend the Spider,” answered Mr. Jaggers, “either
16066 beats or cringes. He may cringe and growl, or cringe and not growl; but
16067 he either beats or cringes. Ask Wemmick his opinion.”
16068
16069 “Either beats or cringes,” said Wemmick, not at all addressing himself
16070 to me.
16071
16072 “So here’s to Mrs. Bentley Drummle,” said Mr. Jaggers, taking a decanter
16073 of choicer wine from his dumb-waiter, and filling for each of us and
16074 for himself, “and may the question of supremacy be settled to the lady’s
16075 satisfaction! To the satisfaction of the lady and the gentleman,
16076 it never will be. Now, Molly, Molly, Molly, Molly, how slow you are
16077 to-day!”
16078
16079 She was at his elbow when he addressed her, putting a dish upon the
16080 table. As she withdrew her hands from it, she fell back a step or two,
16081 nervously muttering some excuse. And a certain action of her fingers, as
16082 she spoke, arrested my attention.
16083
16084 “What’s the matter?” said Mr. Jaggers.
16085
16086 “Nothing. Only the subject we were speaking of,” said I, “was rather
16087 painful to me.”
16088
16089 The action of her fingers was like the action of knitting. She stood
16090 looking at her master, not understanding whether she was free to go, or
16091 whether he had more to say to her and would call her back if she did go.
16092 Her look was very intent. Surely, I had seen exactly such eyes and such
16093 hands on a memorable occasion very lately!
16094
16095 He dismissed her, and she glided out of the room. But she remained
16096 before me as plainly as if she were still there. I looked at those
16097 hands, I looked at those eyes, I looked at that flowing hair; and I
16098 compared them with other hands, other eyes, other hair, that I knew of,
16099 and with what those might be after twenty years of a brutal husband
16100 and a stormy life. I looked again at those hands and eyes of the
16101 housekeeper, and thought of the inexplicable feeling that had come over
16102 me when I last walked--not alone--in the ruined garden, and through the
16103 deserted brewery. I thought how the same feeling had come back when I
16104 saw a face looking at me, and a hand waving to me from a stage-coach
16105 window; and how it had come back again and had flashed about me like
16106 lightning, when I had passed in a carriage--not alone--through a sudden
16107 glare of light in a dark street. I thought how one link of association
16108 had helped that identification in the theatre, and how such a link,
16109 wanting before, had been riveted for me now, when I had passed by a
16110 chance swift from Estella’s name to the fingers with their knitting
16111 action, and the attentive eyes. And I felt absolutely certain that this
16112 woman was Estella’s mother.
16113
16114 Mr. Jaggers had seen me with Estella, and was not likely to have missed
16115 the sentiments I had been at no pains to conceal. He nodded when I said
16116 the subject was painful to me, clapped me on the back, put round the
16117 wine again, and went on with his dinner.
16118
16119 Only twice more did the housekeeper reappear, and then her stay in the
16120 room was very short, and Mr. Jaggers was sharp with her. But her hands
16121 were Estella’s hands, and her eyes were Estella’s eyes, and if she had
16122 reappeared a hundred times I could have been neither more sure nor less
16123 sure that my conviction was the truth.
16124
16125 It was a dull evening, for Wemmick drew his wine, when it came round,
16126 quite as a matter of business,--just as he might have drawn his salary
16127 when that came round,--and with his eyes on his chief, sat in a state of
16128 perpetual readiness for cross-examination. As to the quantity of wine,
16129 his post-office was as indifferent and ready as any other post-office
16130 for its quantity of letters. From my point of view, he was the wrong
16131 twin all the time, and only externally like the Wemmick of Walworth.
16132
16133 We took our leave early, and left together. Even when we were groping
16134 among Mr. Jaggers’s stock of boots for our hats, I felt that the right
16135 twin was on his way back; and we had not gone half a dozen yards down
16136 Gerrard Street in the Walworth direction, before I found that I was
16137 walking arm in arm with the right twin, and that the wrong twin had
16138 evaporated into the evening air.
16139
16140 “Well!” said Wemmick, “that’s over! He’s a wonderful man, without his
16141 living likeness; but I feel that I have to screw myself up when I dine
16142 with him,--and I dine more comfortably unscrewed.”
16143
16144 I felt that this was a good statement of the case, and told him so.
16145
16146 “Wouldn’t say it to anybody but yourself,” he answered. “I know that
16147 what is said between you and me goes no further.”
16148
16149 I asked him if he had ever seen Miss Havisham’s adopted daughter, Mrs.
16150 Bentley Drummle. He said no. To avoid being too abrupt, I then spoke
16151 of the Aged and of Miss Skiffins. He looked rather sly when I mentioned
16152 Miss Skiffins, and stopped in the street to blow his nose, with a roll
16153 of the head, and a flourish not quite free from latent boastfulness.
16154
16155 “Wemmick,” said I, “do you remember telling me, before I first went to
16156 Mr. Jaggers’s private house, to notice that housekeeper?”
16157
16158 “Did I?” he replied. “Ah, I dare say I did. Deuce take me,” he added,
16159 suddenly, “I know I did. I find I am not quite unscrewed yet.”
16160
16161 “A wild beast tamed, you called her.”
16162
16163 “And what do you call her?”
16164
16165 “The same. How did Mr. Jaggers tame her, Wemmick?”
16166
16167 “That’s his secret. She has been with him many a long year.”
16168
16169 “I wish you would tell me her story. I feel a particular interest in
16170 being acquainted with it. You know that what is said between you and me
16171 goes no further.”
16172
16173 “Well!” Wemmick replied, “I don’t know her story,--that is, I don’t know
16174 all of it. But what I do know I’ll tell you. We are in our private and
16175 personal capacities, of course.”
16176
16177 “Of course.”
16178
16179 “A score or so of years ago, that woman was tried at the Old Bailey for
16180 murder, and was acquitted. She was a very handsome young woman, and I
16181 believe had some gypsy blood in her. Anyhow, it was hot enough when it
16182 was up, as you may suppose.”
16183
16184 “But she was acquitted.”
16185
16186 “Mr. Jaggers was for her,” pursued Wemmick, with a look full of meaning,
16187 “and worked the case in a way quite astonishing. It was a desperate
16188 case, and it was comparatively early days with him then, and he worked
16189 it to general admiration; in fact, it may almost be said to have made
16190 him. He worked it himself at the police-office, day after day for many
16191 days, contending against even a committal; and at the trial where he
16192 couldn’t work it himself, sat under counsel, and--every one knew--put
16193 in all the salt and pepper. The murdered person was a woman,--a woman a
16194 good ten years older, very much larger, and very much stronger. It was
16195 a case of jealousy. They both led tramping lives, and this woman in
16196 Gerrard Street here had been married very young, over the broomstick (as
16197 we say), to a tramping man, and was a perfect fury in point of jealousy.
16198 The murdered woman,--more a match for the man, certainly, in point of
16199 years--was found dead in a barn near Hounslow Heath. There had been a
16200 violent struggle, perhaps a fight. She was bruised and scratched and
16201 torn, and had been held by the throat, at last, and choked. Now, there
16202 was no reasonable evidence to implicate any person but this woman, and
16203 on the improbabilities of her having been able to do it Mr. Jaggers
16204 principally rested his case. You may be sure,” said Wemmick, touching me
16205 on the sleeve, “that he never dwelt upon the strength of her hands then,
16206 though he sometimes does now.”
16207
16208 I had told Wemmick of his showing us her wrists, that day of the dinner
16209 party.
16210
16211 “Well, sir!” Wemmick went on; “it happened--happened, don’t you
16212 see?--that this woman was so very artfully dressed from the time of
16213 her apprehension, that she looked much slighter than she really was; in
16214 particular, her sleeves are always remembered to have been so skilfully
16215 contrived that her arms had quite a delicate look. She had only a bruise
16216 or two about her,--nothing for a tramp,--but the backs of her hands
16217 were lacerated, and the question was, Was it with finger-nails? Now, Mr.
16218 Jaggers showed that she had struggled through a great lot of brambles
16219 which were not as high as her face; but which she could not have got
16220 through and kept her hands out of; and bits of those brambles were
16221 actually found in her skin and put in evidence, as well as the fact that
16222 the brambles in question were found on examination to have been broken
16223 through, and to have little shreds of her dress and little spots of
16224 blood upon them here and there. But the boldest point he made was this:
16225 it was attempted to be set up, in proof of her jealousy, that she was
16226 under strong suspicion of having, at about the time of the murder,
16227 frantically destroyed her child by this man--some three years old--to
16228 revenge herself upon him. Mr. Jaggers worked that in this way: “We say
16229 these are not marks of finger-nails, but marks of brambles, and we show
16230 you the brambles. You say they are marks of finger-nails, and you set
16231 up the hypothesis that she destroyed her child. You must accept all
16232 consequences of that hypothesis. For anything we know, she may have
16233 destroyed her child, and the child in clinging to her may have scratched
16234 her hands. What then? You are not trying her for the murder of her
16235 child; why don’t you? As to this case, if you will have scratches,
16236 we say that, for anything we know, you may have accounted for them,
16237 assuming for the sake of argument that you have not invented them?” “To
16238 sum up, sir,” said Wemmick, “Mr. Jaggers was altogether too many for the
16239 jury, and they gave in.”
16240
16241 “Has she been in his service ever since?”
16242
16243 “Yes; but not only that,” said Wemmick, “she went into his service
16244 immediately after her acquittal, tamed as she is now. She has since been
16245 taught one thing and another in the way of her duties, but she was tamed
16246 from the beginning.”
16247
16248 “Do you remember the sex of the child?”
16249
16250 “Said to have been a girl.”
16251
16252 “You have nothing more to say to me to-night?”
16253
16254 “Nothing. I got your letter and destroyed it. Nothing.”
16255
16256 We exchanged a cordial good-night, and I went home, with new matter for
16257 my thoughts, though with no relief from the old.
16258
16259
16260
16261
16262 Chapter XLIX
16263
16264 Putting Miss Havisham’s note in my pocket, that it might serve as
16265 my credentials for so soon reappearing at Satis House, in case her
16266 waywardness should lead her to express any surprise at seeing me, I went
16267 down again by the coach next day. But I alighted at the Halfway House,
16268 and breakfasted there, and walked the rest of the distance; for I sought
16269 to get into the town quietly by the unfrequented ways, and to leave it
16270 in the same manner.
16271
16272 The best light of the day was gone when I passed along the quiet echoing
16273 courts behind the High Street. The nooks of ruin where the old monks had
16274 once had their refectories and gardens, and where the strong walls were
16275 now pressed into the service of humble sheds and stables, were almost
16276 as silent as the old monks in their graves. The cathedral chimes had at
16277 once a sadder and a more remote sound to me, as I hurried on avoiding
16278 observation, than they had ever had before; so, the swell of the old
16279 organ was borne to my ears like funeral music; and the rooks, as they
16280 hovered about the gray tower and swung in the bare high trees of the
16281 priory garden, seemed to call to me that the place was changed, and that
16282 Estella was gone out of it for ever.
16283
16284 An elderly woman, whom I had seen before as one of the servants who
16285 lived in the supplementary house across the back courtyard, opened the
16286 gate. The lighted candle stood in the dark passage within, as of old,
16287 and I took it up and ascended the staircase alone. Miss Havisham was not
16288 in her own room, but was in the larger room across the landing. Looking
16289 in at the door, after knocking in vain, I saw her sitting on the hearth
16290 in a ragged chair, close before, and lost in the contemplation of, the
16291 ashy fire.
16292
16293 Doing as I had often done, I went in, and stood touching the old
16294 chimney-piece, where she could see me when she raised her eyes. There
16295 was an air of utter loneliness upon her, that would have moved me to
16296 pity though she had wilfully done me a deeper injury than I could charge
16297 her with. As I stood compassionating her, and thinking how, in the
16298 progress of time, I too had come to be a part of the wrecked fortunes of
16299 that house, her eyes rested on me. She stared, and said in a low voice,
16300 “Is it real?”
16301
16302 “It is I, Pip. Mr. Jaggers gave me your note yesterday, and I have lost
16303 no time.”
16304
16305 “Thank you. Thank you.”
16306
16307 As I brought another of the ragged chairs to the hearth and sat down, I
16308 remarked a new expression on her face, as if she were afraid of me.
16309
16310 “I want,” she said, “to pursue that subject you mentioned to me when you
16311 were last here, and to show you that I am not all stone. But perhaps you
16312 can never believe, now, that there is anything human in my heart?”
16313
16314 When I said some reassuring words, she stretched out her tremulous right
16315 hand, as though she was going to touch me; but she recalled it again
16316 before I understood the action, or knew how to receive it.
16317
16318 “You said, speaking for your friend, that you could tell me how to do
16319 something useful and good. Something that you would like done, is it
16320 not?”
16321
16322 “Something that I would like done very much.”
16323
16324 “What is it?”
16325
16326 I began explaining to her that secret history of the partnership. I had
16327 not got far into it, when I judged from her looks that she was thinking
16328 in a discursive way of me, rather than of what I said. It seemed to be
16329 so; for, when I stopped speaking, many moments passed before she showed
16330 that she was conscious of the fact.
16331
16332 “Do you break off,” she asked then, with her former air of being afraid
16333 of me, “because you hate me too much to bear to speak to me?”
16334
16335 “No, no,” I answered, “how can you think so, Miss Havisham! I stopped
16336 because I thought you were not following what I said.”
16337
16338 “Perhaps I was not,” she answered, putting a hand to her head. “Begin
16339 again, and let me look at something else. Stay! Now tell me.”
16340
16341 She set her hand upon her stick in the resolute way that sometimes was
16342 habitual to her, and looked at the fire with a strong expression of
16343 forcing herself to attend. I went on with my explanation, and told her
16344 how I had hoped to complete the transaction out of my means, but how
16345 in this I was disappointed. That part of the subject (I reminded her)
16346 involved matters which could form no part of my explanation, for they
16347 were the weighty secrets of another.
16348
16349 “So!” said she, assenting with her head, but not looking at me. “And how
16350 much money is wanting to complete the purchase?”
16351
16352 I was rather afraid of stating it, for it sounded a large sum. “Nine
16353 hundred pounds.”
16354
16355 “If I give you the money for this purpose, will you keep my secret as
16356 you have kept your own?”
16357
16358 “Quite as faithfully.”
16359
16360 “And your mind will be more at rest?”
16361
16362 “Much more at rest.”
16363
16364 “Are you very unhappy now?”
16365
16366 She asked this question, still without looking at me, but in an unwonted
16367 tone of sympathy. I could not reply at the moment, for my voice failed
16368 me. She put her left arm across the head of her stick, and softly laid
16369 her forehead on it.
16370
16371 “I am far from happy, Miss Havisham; but I have other causes of disquiet
16372 than any you know of. They are the secrets I have mentioned.”
16373
16374 After a little while, she raised her head, and looked at the fire again.
16375
16376 “It is noble in you to tell me that you have other causes of
16377 unhappiness. Is it true?”
16378
16379 “Too true.”
16380
16381 “Can I only serve you, Pip, by serving your friend? Regarding that as
16382 done, is there nothing I can do for you yourself?”
16383
16384 “Nothing. I thank you for the question. I thank you even more for the
16385 tone of the question. But there is nothing.”
16386
16387 She presently rose from her seat, and looked about the blighted room
16388 for the means of writing. There were none there, and she took from her
16389 pocket a yellow set of ivory tablets, mounted in tarnished gold, and
16390 wrote upon them with a pencil in a case of tarnished gold that hung from
16391 her neck.
16392
16393 “You are still on friendly terms with Mr. Jaggers?”
16394
16395 “Quite. I dined with him yesterday.”
16396
16397 “This is an authority to him to pay you that money, to lay out at your
16398 irresponsible discretion for your friend. I keep no money here; but if
16399 you would rather Mr. Jaggers knew nothing of the matter, I will send it
16400 to you.”
16401
16402 “Thank you, Miss Havisham; I have not the least objection to receiving
16403 it from him.”
16404
16405 She read me what she had written; and it was direct and clear, and
16406 evidently intended to absolve me from any suspicion of profiting by the
16407 receipt of the money. I took the tablets from her hand, and it trembled
16408 again, and it trembled more as she took off the chain to which the
16409 pencil was attached, and put it in mine. All this she did without
16410 looking at me.
16411
16412 “My name is on the first leaf. If you can ever write under my name, “I
16413 forgive her,” though ever so long after my broken heart is dust pray do
16414 it!”
16415
16416 “O Miss Havisham,” said I, “I can do it now. There have been sore
16417 mistakes; and my life has been a blind and thankless one; and I want
16418 forgiveness and direction far too much, to be bitter with you.”
16419
16420 She turned her face to me for the first time since she had averted it,
16421 and, to my amazement, I may even add to my terror, dropped on her knees
16422 at my feet; with her folded hands raised to me in the manner in which,
16423 when her poor heart was young and fresh and whole, they must often have
16424 been raised to heaven from her mother’s side.
16425
16426 To see her with her white hair and her worn face kneeling at my feet
16427 gave me a shock through all my frame. I entreated her to rise, and got
16428 my arms about her to help her up; but she only pressed that hand of mine
16429 which was nearest to her grasp, and hung her head over it and wept. I
16430 had never seen her shed a tear before, and, in the hope that the
16431 relief might do her good, I bent over her without speaking. She was not
16432 kneeling now, but was down upon the ground.
16433
16434 “O!” she cried, despairingly. “What have I done! What have I done!”
16435
16436 “If you mean, Miss Havisham, what have you done to injure me, let me
16437 answer. Very little. I should have loved her under any circumstances. Is
16438 she married?”
16439
16440 “Yes.”
16441
16442 It was a needless question, for a new desolation in the desolate house
16443 had told me so.
16444
16445 “What have I done! What have I done!” She wrung her hands, and crushed
16446 her white hair, and returned to this cry over and over again. “What have
16447 I done!”
16448
16449 I knew not how to answer, or how to comfort her. That she had done a
16450 grievous thing in taking an impressionable child to mould into the form
16451 that her wild resentment, spurned affection, and wounded pride found
16452 vengeance in, I knew full well. But that, in shutting out the light
16453 of day, she had shut out infinitely more; that, in seclusion, she had
16454 secluded herself from a thousand natural and healing influences; that,
16455 her mind, brooding solitary, had grown diseased, as all minds do and
16456 must and will that reverse the appointed order of their Maker, I knew
16457 equally well. And could I look upon her without compassion, seeing her
16458 punishment in the ruin she was, in her profound unfitness for this earth
16459 on which she was placed, in the vanity of sorrow which had become a
16460 master mania, like the vanity of penitence, the vanity of remorse, the
16461 vanity of unworthiness, and other monstrous vanities that have been
16462 curses in this world?
16463
16464 “Until you spoke to her the other day, and until I saw in you a
16465 looking-glass that showed me what I once felt myself, I did not know
16466 what I had done. What have I done! What have I done!” And so again,
16467 twenty, fifty times over, What had she done!
16468
16469 “Miss Havisham,” I said, when her cry had died away, “you may dismiss me
16470 from your mind and conscience. But Estella is a different case, and if
16471 you can ever undo any scrap of what you have done amiss in keeping a
16472 part of her right nature away from her, it will be better to do that
16473 than to bemoan the past through a hundred years.”
16474
16475 “Yes, yes, I know it. But, Pip--my dear!” There was an earnest womanly
16476 compassion for me in her new affection. “My dear! Believe this: when she
16477 first came to me, I meant to save her from misery like my own. At first,
16478 I meant no more.”
16479
16480 “Well, well!” said I. “I hope so.”
16481
16482 “But as she grew, and promised to be very beautiful, I gradually did
16483 worse, and with my praises, and with my jewels, and with my teachings,
16484 and with this figure of myself always before her, a warning to back and
16485 point my lessons, I stole her heart away, and put ice in its place.”
16486
16487 “Better,” I could not help saying, “to have left her a natural heart,
16488 even to be bruised or broken.”
16489
16490 With that, Miss Havisham looked distractedly at me for a while, and then
16491 burst out again, What had she done!
16492
16493 “If you knew all my story,” she pleaded, “you would have some compassion
16494 for me and a better understanding of me.”
16495
16496 “Miss Havisham,” I answered, as delicately as I could, “I believe I may
16497 say that I do know your story, and have known it ever since I first left
16498 this neighborhood. It has inspired me with great commiseration, and I
16499 hope I understand it and its influences. Does what has passed between us
16500 give me any excuse for asking you a question relative to Estella? Not as
16501 she is, but as she was when she first came here?”
16502
16503 She was seated on the ground, with her arms on the ragged chair, and
16504 her head leaning on them. She looked full at me when I said this, and
16505 replied, “Go on.”
16506
16507 “Whose child was Estella?”
16508
16509 She shook her head.
16510
16511 “You don’t know?”
16512
16513 She shook her head again.
16514
16515 “But Mr. Jaggers brought her here, or sent her here?”
16516
16517 “Brought her here.”
16518
16519 “Will you tell me how that came about?”
16520
16521 She answered in a low whisper and with caution: “I had been shut up in
16522 these rooms a long time (I don’t know how long; you know what time the
16523 clocks keep here), when I told him that I wanted a little girl to rear
16524 and love, and save from my fate. I had first seen him when I sent
16525 for him to lay this place waste for me; having read of him in the
16526 newspapers, before I and the world parted. He told me that he would
16527 look about him for such an orphan child. One night he brought her here
16528 asleep, and I called her Estella.”
16529
16530 “Might I ask her age then?”
16531
16532 “Two or three. She herself knows nothing, but that she was left an
16533 orphan and I adopted her.”
16534
16535 So convinced I was of that woman’s being her mother, that I wanted
16536 no evidence to establish the fact in my own mind. But, to any mind, I
16537 thought, the connection here was clear and straight.
16538
16539 What more could I hope to do by prolonging the interview? I had
16540 succeeded on behalf of Herbert, Miss Havisham had told me all she knew
16541 of Estella, I had said and done what I could to ease her mind. No matter
16542 with what other words we parted; we parted.
16543
16544 Twilight was closing in when I went downstairs into the natural air. I
16545 called to the woman who had opened the gate when I entered, that I would
16546 not trouble her just yet, but would walk round the place before leaving.
16547 For I had a presentiment that I should never be there again, and I felt
16548 that the dying light was suited to my last view of it.
16549
16550 By the wilderness of casks that I had walked on long ago, and on which
16551 the rain of years had fallen since, rotting them in many places, and
16552 leaving miniature swamps and pools of water upon those that stood on
16553 end, I made my way to the ruined garden. I went all round it; round by
16554 the corner where Herbert and I had fought our battle; round by the paths
16555 where Estella and I had walked. So cold, so lonely, so dreary all!
16556
16557 Taking the brewery on my way back, I raised the rusty latch of a little
16558 door at the garden end of it, and walked through. I was going out at the
16559 opposite door,--not easy to open now, for the damp wood had started and
16560 swelled, and the hinges were yielding, and the threshold was encumbered
16561 with a growth of fungus,--when I turned my head to look back. A childish
16562 association revived with wonderful force in the moment of the slight
16563 action, and I fancied that I saw Miss Havisham hanging to the beam. So
16564 strong was the impression, that I stood under the beam shuddering from
16565 head to foot before I knew it was a fancy,--though to be sure I was
16566 there in an instant.
16567
16568 The mournfulness of the place and time, and the great terror of
16569 this illusion, though it was but momentary, caused me to feel an
16570 indescribable awe as I came out between the open wooden gates where I
16571 had once wrung my hair after Estella had wrung my heart. Passing on into
16572 the front courtyard, I hesitated whether to call the woman to let me out
16573 at the locked gate of which she had the key, or first to go upstairs
16574 and assure myself that Miss Havisham was as safe and well as I had left
16575 her. I took the latter course and went up.
16576
16577 I looked into the room where I had left her, and I saw her seated in the
16578 ragged chair upon the hearth close to the fire, with her back towards
16579 me. In the moment when I was withdrawing my head to go quietly away,
16580 I saw a great flaming light spring up. In the same moment I saw her
16581 running at me, shrieking, with a whirl of fire blazing all about her,
16582 and soaring at least as many feet above her head as she was high.
16583
16584 I had a double-caped great-coat on, and over my arm another thick coat.
16585 That I got them off, closed with her, threw her down, and got them over
16586 her; that I dragged the great cloth from the table for the same purpose,
16587 and with it dragged down the heap of rottenness in the midst, and
16588 all the ugly things that sheltered there; that we were on the ground
16589 struggling like desperate enemies, and that the closer I covered her,
16590 the more wildly she shrieked and tried to free herself,--that this
16591 occurred I knew through the result, but not through anything I felt, or
16592 thought, or knew I did. I knew nothing until I knew that we were on the
16593 floor by the great table, and that patches of tinder yet alight were
16594 floating in the smoky air, which, a moment ago, had been her faded
16595 bridal dress.
16596
16597 Then, I looked round and saw the disturbed beetles and spiders running
16598 away over the floor, and the servants coming in with breathless cries
16599 at the door. I still held her forcibly down with all my strength, like
16600 a prisoner who might escape; and I doubt if I even knew who she was, or
16601 why we had struggled, or that she had been in flames, or that the flames
16602 were out, until I saw the patches of tinder that had been her garments
16603 no longer alight but falling in a black shower around us.
16604
16605 She was insensible, and I was afraid to have her moved, or even
16606 touched. Assistance was sent for, and I held her until it came, as if
16607 I unreasonably fancied (I think I did) that, if I let her go, the fire
16608 would break out again and consume her. When I got up, on the surgeon’s
16609 coming to her with other aid, I was astonished to see that both my hands
16610 were burnt; for, I had no knowledge of it through the sense of feeling.
16611
16612 On examination it was pronounced that she had received serious hurts,
16613 but that they of themselves were far from hopeless; the danger lay
16614 mainly in the nervous shock. By the surgeon’s directions, her bed was
16615 carried into that room and laid upon the great table, which happened to
16616 be well suited to the dressing of her injuries. When I saw her again, an
16617 hour afterwards, she lay, indeed, where I had seen her strike her stick,
16618 and had heard her say that she would lie one day.
16619
16620 Though every vestige of her dress was burnt, as they told me, she
16621 still had something of her old ghastly bridal appearance; for, they had
16622 covered her to the throat with white cotton-wool, and as she lay with
16623 a white sheet loosely overlying that, the phantom air of something that
16624 had been and was changed was still upon her.
16625
16626 I found, on questioning the servants, that Estella was in Paris, and I
16627 got a promise from the surgeon that he would write to her by the
16628 next post. Miss Havisham’s family I took upon myself; intending to
16629 communicate with Mr. Matthew Pocket only, and leave him to do as he
16630 liked about informing the rest. This I did next day, through Herbert, as
16631 soon as I returned to town.
16632
16633 There was a stage, that evening, when she spoke collectedly of what had
16634 happened, though with a certain terrible vivacity. Towards midnight she
16635 began to wander in her speech; and after that it gradually set in that
16636 she said innumerable times in a low solemn voice, “What have I done!”
16637 And then, “When she first came, I meant to save her from misery like
16638 mine.” And then, “Take the pencil and write under my name, ‘I forgive
16639 her!’” She never changed the order of these three sentences, but she
16640 sometimes left out a word in one or other of them; never putting in
16641 another word, but always leaving a blank and going on to the next word.
16642
16643 As I could do no service there, and as I had, nearer home, that pressing
16644 reason for anxiety and fear which even her wanderings could not drive
16645 out of my mind, I decided, in the course of the night that I would
16646 return by the early morning coach, walking on a mile or so, and being
16647 taken up clear of the town. At about six o’clock of the morning,
16648 therefore, I leaned over her and touched her lips with mine, just as
16649 they said, not stopping for being touched, “Take the pencil and write
16650 under my name, ‘I forgive her.’”
16651
16652
16653
16654
16655 Chapter L
16656
16657 My hands had been dressed twice or thrice in the night, and again in
16658 the morning. My left arm was a good deal burned to the elbow, and, less
16659 severely, as high as the shoulder; it was very painful, but the flames
16660 had set in that direction, and I felt thankful it was no worse. My right
16661 hand was not so badly burnt but that I could move the fingers. It was
16662 bandaged, of course, but much less inconveniently than my left hand and
16663 arm; those I carried in a sling; and I could only wear my coat like a
16664 cloak, loose over my shoulders and fastened at the neck. My hair had
16665 been caught by the fire, but not my head or face.
16666
16667 When Herbert had been down to Hammersmith and seen his father, he came
16668 back to me at our chambers, and devoted the day to attending on me. He
16669 was the kindest of nurses, and at stated times took off the bandages,
16670 and steeped them in the cooling liquid that was kept ready, and put them
16671 on again, with a patient tenderness that I was deeply grateful for.
16672
16673 At first, as I lay quiet on the sofa, I found it painfully difficult, I
16674 might say impossible, to get rid of the impression of the glare of the
16675 flames, their hurry and noise, and the fierce burning smell. If I
16676 dozed for a minute, I was awakened by Miss Havisham’s cries, and by her
16677 running at me with all that height of fire above her head. This pain
16678 of the mind was much harder to strive against than any bodily pain I
16679 suffered; and Herbert, seeing that, did his utmost to hold my attention
16680 engaged.
16681
16682 Neither of us spoke of the boat, but we both thought of it. That
16683 was made apparent by our avoidance of the subject, and by our
16684 agreeing--without agreement--to make my recovery of the use of my hands
16685 a question of so many hours, not of so many weeks.
16686
16687 My first question when I saw Herbert had been of course, whether all
16688 was well down the river? As he replied in the affirmative, with perfect
16689 confidence and cheerfulness, we did not resume the subject until the day
16690 was wearing away. But then, as Herbert changed the bandages, more by
16691 the light of the fire than by the outer light, he went back to it
16692 spontaneously.
16693
16694 “I sat with Provis last night, Handel, two good hours.”
16695
16696 “Where was Clara?”
16697
16698 “Dear little thing!” said Herbert. “She was up and down with
16699 Gruffandgrim all the evening. He was perpetually pegging at the floor
16700 the moment she left his sight. I doubt if he can hold out long, though.
16701 What with rum and pepper,--and pepper and rum,--I should think his
16702 pegging must be nearly over.”
16703
16704 “And then you will be married, Herbert?”
16705
16706 “How can I take care of the dear child otherwise?--Lay your arm out upon
16707 the back of the sofa, my dear boy, and I’ll sit down here, and get the
16708 bandage off so gradually that you shall not know when it comes. I was
16709 speaking of Provis. Do you know, Handel, he improves?”
16710
16711 “I said to you I thought he was softened when I last saw him.”
16712
16713 “So you did. And so he is. He was very communicative last night, and
16714 told me more of his life. You remember his breaking off here about some
16715 woman that he had had great trouble with.--Did I hurt you?”
16716
16717 I had started, but not under his touch. His words had given me a start.
16718
16719 “I had forgotten that, Herbert, but I remember it now you speak of it.”
16720
16721 “Well! He went into that part of his life, and a dark wild part it is.
16722 Shall I tell you? Or would it worry you just now?”
16723
16724 “Tell me by all means. Every word.”
16725
16726 Herbert bent forward to look at me more nearly, as if my reply had been
16727 rather more hurried or more eager than he could quite account for. “Your
16728 head is cool?” he said, touching it.
16729
16730 “Quite,” said I. “Tell me what Provis said, my dear Herbert.”
16731
16732 “It seems,” said Herbert, “--there’s a bandage off most charmingly, and
16733 now comes the cool one,--makes you shrink at first, my poor dear fellow,
16734 don’t it? but it will be comfortable presently,--it seems that the
16735 woman was a young woman, and a jealous woman, and a revengeful woman;
16736 revengeful, Handel, to the last degree.”
16737
16738 “To what last degree?”
16739
16740 “Murder.--Does it strike too cold on that sensitive place?”
16741
16742 “I don’t feel it. How did she murder? Whom did she murder?”
16743
16744 “Why, the deed may not have merited quite so terrible a name,”
16745 said Herbert, “but, she was tried for it, and Mr. Jaggers defended
16746 her, and the reputation of that defence first made his name known
16747 to Provis. It was another and a stronger woman who was the victim,
16748 and there had been a struggle--in a barn. Who began it, or how fair
16749 it was, or how unfair, may be doubtful; but how it ended is
16750 certainly not doubtful, for the victim was found throttled.”
16751
16752 “Was the woman brought in guilty?”
16753
16754 “No; she was acquitted.--My poor Handel, I hurt you!”
16755
16756 “It is impossible to be gentler, Herbert. Yes? What else?”
16757
16758 “This acquitted young woman and Provis had a little child; a little
16759 child of whom Provis was exceedingly fond. On the evening of the very
16760 night when the object of her jealousy was strangled as I tell you, the
16761 young woman presented herself before Provis for one moment, and swore
16762 that she would destroy the child (which was in her possession), and he
16763 should never see it again; then she vanished.--There’s the worst arm
16764 comfortably in the sling once more, and now there remains but the right
16765 hand, which is a far easier job. I can do it better by this light
16766 than by a stronger, for my hand is steadiest when I don’t see the poor
16767 blistered patches too distinctly.--You don’t think your breathing is
16768 affected, my dear boy? You seem to breathe quickly.”
16769
16770 “Perhaps I do, Herbert. Did the woman keep her oath?”
16771
16772 “There comes the darkest part of Provis’s life. She did.”
16773
16774 “That is, he says she did.”
16775
16776 “Why, of course, my dear boy,” returned Herbert, in a tone of surprise,
16777 and again bending forward to get a nearer look at me. “He says it all. I
16778 have no other information.”
16779
16780 “No, to be sure.”
16781
16782 “Now, whether,” pursued Herbert, “he had used the child’s mother ill, or
16783 whether he had used the child’s mother well, Provis doesn’t say; but she
16784 had shared some four or five years of the wretched life he described
16785 to us at this fireside, and he seems to have felt pity for her, and
16786 forbearance towards her. Therefore, fearing he should be called upon to
16787 depose about this destroyed child, and so be the cause of her death, he
16788 hid himself (much as he grieved for the child), kept himself dark, as he
16789 says, out of the way and out of the trial, and was only vaguely talked
16790 of as a certain man called Abel, out of whom the jealousy arose. After
16791 the acquittal she disappeared, and thus he lost the child and the
16792 child’s mother.”
16793
16794 “I want to ask--”
16795
16796 “A moment, my dear boy, and I have done. That evil genius, Compeyson,
16797 the worst of scoundrels among many scoundrels, knowing of his keeping
16798 out of the way at that time and of his reasons for doing so, of course
16799 afterwards held the knowledge over his head as a means of keeping him
16800 poorer and working him harder. It was clear last night that this barbed
16801 the point of Provis’s animosity.”
16802
16803 “I want to know,” said I, “and particularly, Herbert, whether he told
16804 you when this happened?”
16805
16806 “Particularly? Let me remember, then, what he said as to that. His
16807 expression was, ‘a round score o’ year ago, and a’most directly after I
16808 took up wi’ Compeyson.’ How old were you when you came upon him in the
16809 little churchyard?”
16810
16811 “I think in my seventh year.”
16812
16813 “Ay. It had happened some three or four years then, he said, and you
16814 brought into his mind the little girl so tragically lost, who would have
16815 been about your age.”
16816
16817 “Herbert,” said I, after a short silence, in a hurried way, “can you see
16818 me best by the light of the window, or the light of the fire?”
16819
16820 “By the firelight,” answered Herbert, coming close again.
16821
16822 “Look at me.”
16823
16824 “I do look at you, my dear boy.”
16825
16826 “Touch me.”
16827
16828 “I do touch you, my dear boy.”
16829
16830 “You are not afraid that I am in any fever, or that my head is much
16831 disordered by the accident of last night?”
16832
16833 “N-no, my dear boy,” said Herbert, after taking time to examine me. “You
16834 are rather excited, but you are quite yourself.”
16835
16836 “I know I am quite myself. And the man we have in hiding down the river,
16837 is Estella’s Father.”
16838
16839
16840
16841
16842 Chapter LI
16843
16844 What purpose I had in view when I was hot on tracing out and proving
16845 Estella’s parentage, I cannot say. It will presently be seen that the
16846 question was not before me in a distinct shape until it was put before
16847 me by a wiser head than my own.
16848
16849 But when Herbert and I had held our momentous conversation, I was seized
16850 with a feverish conviction that I ought to hunt the matter down,--that I
16851 ought not to let it rest, but that I ought to see Mr. Jaggers, and come
16852 at the bare truth. I really do not know whether I felt that I did this
16853 for Estella’s sake, or whether I was glad to transfer to the man in
16854 whose preservation I was so much concerned some rays of the romantic
16855 interest that had so long surrounded me. Perhaps the latter possibility
16856 may be the nearer to the truth.
16857
16858 Any way, I could scarcely be withheld from going out to Gerrard Street
16859 that night. Herbert’s representations that, if I did, I should probably
16860 be laid up and stricken useless, when our fugitive’s safety would depend
16861 upon me, alone restrained my impatience. On the understanding, again
16862 and again reiterated, that, come what would, I was to go to Mr. Jaggers
16863 to-morrow, I at length submitted to keep quiet, and to have my hurts
16864 looked after, and to stay at home. Early next morning we went out
16865 together, and at the corner of Giltspur Street by Smithfield, I left
16866 Herbert to go his way into the City, and took my way to Little Britain.
16867
16868 There were periodical occasions when Mr. Jaggers and Wemmick went over
16869 the office accounts, and checked off the vouchers, and put all things
16870 straight. On these occasions, Wemmick took his books and papers into Mr.
16871 Jaggers’s room, and one of the upstairs clerks came down into the outer
16872 office. Finding such clerk on Wemmick’s post that morning, I knew
16873 what was going on; but I was not sorry to have Mr. Jaggers and Wemmick
16874 together, as Wemmick would then hear for himself that I said nothing to
16875 compromise him.
16876
16877 My appearance, with my arm bandaged and my coat loose over my shoulders,
16878 favored my object. Although I had sent Mr. Jaggers a brief account of
16879 the accident as soon as I had arrived in town, yet I had to give him all
16880 the details now; and the speciality of the occasion caused our talk
16881 to be less dry and hard, and less strictly regulated by the rules of
16882 evidence, than it had been before. While I described the disaster, Mr.
16883 Jaggers stood, according to his wont, before the fire. Wemmick leaned
16884 back in his chair, staring at me, with his hands in the pockets of his
16885 trousers, and his pen put horizontally into the post. The two brutal
16886 casts, always inseparable in my mind from the official proceedings,
16887 seemed to be congestively considering whether they didn’t smell fire at
16888 the present moment.
16889
16890 My narrative finished, and their questions exhausted, I then produced
16891 Miss Havisham’s authority to receive the nine hundred pounds for
16892 Herbert. Mr. Jaggers’s eyes retired a little deeper into his head when
16893 I handed him the tablets, but he presently handed them over to Wemmick,
16894 with instructions to draw the check for his signature. While that was
16895 in course of being done, I looked on at Wemmick as he wrote, and Mr.
16896 Jaggers, poising and swaying himself on his well-polished boots, looked
16897 on at me. “I am sorry, Pip,” said he, as I put the check in my pocket,
16898 when he had signed it, “that we do nothing for you.”
16899
16900 “Miss Havisham was good enough to ask me,” I returned, “whether she
16901 could do nothing for me, and I told her No.”
16902
16903 “Everybody should know his own business,” said Mr. Jaggers. And I saw
16904 Wemmick’s lips form the words “portable property.”
16905
16906 “I should not have told her No, if I had been you,” said Mr Jaggers;
16907 “but every man ought to know his own business best.”
16908
16909 “Every man’s business,” said Wemmick, rather reproachfully towards me,
16910 “is portable property.”
16911
16912 As I thought the time was now come for pursuing the theme I had at
16913 heart, I said, turning on Mr. Jaggers:--
16914
16915 “I did ask something of Miss Havisham, however, sir. I asked her to give
16916 me some information relative to her adopted daughter, and she gave me
16917 all she possessed.”
16918
16919 “Did she?” said Mr. Jaggers, bending forward to look at his boots and
16920 then straightening himself. “Hah! I don’t think I should have done so,
16921 if I had been Miss Havisham. But she ought to know her own business
16922 best.”
16923
16924 “I know more of the history of Miss Havisham’s adopted child than Miss
16925 Havisham herself does, sir. I know her mother.”
16926
16927 Mr. Jaggers looked at me inquiringly, and repeated “Mother?”
16928
16929 “I have seen her mother within these three days.”
16930
16931 “Yes?” said Mr. Jaggers.
16932
16933 “And so have you, sir. And you have seen her still more recently.”
16934
16935 “Yes?” said Mr. Jaggers.
16936
16937 “Perhaps I know more of Estella’s history than even you do,” said I. “I
16938 know her father too.”
16939
16940 A certain stop that Mr. Jaggers came to in his manner--he was too
16941 self-possessed to change his manner, but he could not help its being
16942 brought to an indefinably attentive stop--assured me that he did not
16943 know who her father was. This I had strongly suspected from Provis’s
16944 account (as Herbert had repeated it) of his having kept himself dark;
16945 which I pieced on to the fact that he himself was not Mr. Jaggers’s
16946 client until some four years later, and when he could have no reason for
16947 claiming his identity. But, I could not be sure of this unconsciousness
16948 on Mr. Jaggers’s part before, though I was quite sure of it now.
16949
16950 “So! You know the young lady’s father, Pip?” said Mr. Jaggers.
16951
16952 “Yes,” I replied, “and his name is Provis--from New South Wales.”
16953
16954 Even Mr. Jaggers started when I said those words. It was the slightest
16955 start that could escape a man, the most carefully repressed and the
16956 sooner checked, but he did start, though he made it a part of the
16957 action of taking out his pocket-handkerchief. How Wemmick received the
16958 announcement I am unable to say; for I was afraid to look at him just
16959 then, lest Mr. Jaggers’s sharpness should detect that there had been
16960 some communication unknown to him between us.
16961
16962 “And on what evidence, Pip,” asked Mr. Jaggers, very coolly, as he
16963 paused with his handkerchief half way to his nose, “does Provis make
16964 this claim?”
16965
16966 “He does not make it,” said I, “and has never made it, and has no
16967 knowledge or belief that his daughter is in existence.”
16968
16969 For once, the powerful pocket-handkerchief failed. My reply was so
16970 unexpected, that Mr. Jaggers put the handkerchief back into his pocket
16971 without completing the usual performance, folded his arms, and looked
16972 with stern attention at me, though with an immovable face.
16973
16974 Then I told him all I knew, and how I knew it; with the one reservation
16975 that I left him to infer that I knew from Miss Havisham what I in fact
16976 knew from Wemmick. I was very careful indeed as to that. Nor did I look
16977 towards Wemmick until I had finished all I had to tell, and had been for
16978 some time silently meeting Mr. Jaggers’s look. When I did at last turn
16979 my eyes in Wemmick’s direction, I found that he had unposted his pen,
16980 and was intent upon the table before him.
16981
16982 “Hah!” said Mr. Jaggers at last, as he moved towards the papers on the
16983 table. “What item was it you were at, Wemmick, when Mr. Pip came in?”
16984
16985 But I could not submit to be thrown off in that way, and I made a
16986 passionate, almost an indignant appeal, to him to be more frank and
16987 manly with me. I reminded him of the false hopes into which I had
16988 lapsed, the length of time they had lasted, and the discovery I had
16989 made: and I hinted at the danger that weighed upon my spirits. I
16990 represented myself as being surely worthy of some little confidence from
16991 him, in return for the confidence I had just now imparted. I said that
16992 I did not blame him, or suspect him, or mistrust him, but I wanted
16993 assurance of the truth from him. And if he asked me why I wanted it,
16994 and why I thought I had any right to it, I would tell him, little as he
16995 cared for such poor dreams, that I had loved Estella dearly and long,
16996 and that although I had lost her, and must live a bereaved life,
16997 whatever concerned her was still nearer and dearer to me than anything
16998 else in the world. And seeing that Mr. Jaggers stood quite still and
16999 silent, and apparently quite obdurate, under this appeal, I turned to
17000 Wemmick, and said, “Wemmick, I know you to be a man with a gentle
17001 heart. I have seen your pleasant home, and your old father, and all the
17002 innocent, cheerful playful ways with which you refresh your business
17003 life. And I entreat you to say a word for me to Mr. Jaggers, and to
17004 represent to him that, all circumstances considered, he ought to be more
17005 open with me!”
17006
17007 I have never seen two men look more oddly at one another than Mr.
17008 Jaggers and Wemmick did after this apostrophe. At first, a misgiving
17009 crossed me that Wemmick would be instantly dismissed from his
17010 employment; but it melted as I saw Mr. Jaggers relax into something like
17011 a smile, and Wemmick become bolder.
17012
17013 “What’s all this?” said Mr. Jaggers. “You with an old father, and you
17014 with pleasant and playful ways?”
17015
17016 “Well!” returned Wemmick. “If I don’t bring ‘em here, what does it
17017 matter?”
17018
17019 “Pip,” said Mr. Jaggers, laying his hand upon my arm, and smiling
17020 openly, “this man must be the most cunning impostor in all London.”
17021
17022 “Not a bit of it,” returned Wemmick, growing bolder and bolder. “I think
17023 you’re another.”
17024
17025 Again they exchanged their former odd looks, each apparently still
17026 distrustful that the other was taking him in.
17027
17028 “You with a pleasant home?” said Mr. Jaggers.
17029
17030 “Since it don’t interfere with business,” returned Wemmick, “let it be
17031 so. Now, I look at you, sir, I shouldn’t wonder if you might be planning
17032 and contriving to have a pleasant home of your own one of these days,
17033 when you’re tired of all this work.”
17034
17035 Mr. Jaggers nodded his head retrospectively two or three times, and
17036 actually drew a sigh. “Pip,” said he, “we won’t talk about ‘poor
17037 dreams;’ you know more about such things than I, having much fresher
17038 experience of that kind. But now about this other matter. I’ll put a
17039 case to you. Mind! I admit nothing.”
17040
17041 He waited for me to declare that I quite understood that he expressly
17042 said that he admitted nothing.
17043
17044 “Now, Pip,” said Mr. Jaggers, “put this case. Put the case that a
17045 woman, under such circumstances as you have mentioned, held her child
17046 concealed, and was obliged to communicate the fact to her legal adviser,
17047 on his representing to her that he must know, with an eye to the
17048 latitude of his defence, how the fact stood about that child. Put the
17049 case that, at the same time he held a trust to find a child for an
17050 eccentric rich lady to adopt and bring up.”
17051
17052 “I follow you, sir.”
17053
17054 “Put the case that he lived in an atmosphere of evil, and that all he
17055 saw of children was their being generated in great numbers for certain
17056 destruction. Put the case that he often saw children solemnly tried at
17057 a criminal bar, where they were held up to be seen; put the case that
17058 he habitually knew of their being imprisoned, whipped, transported,
17059 neglected, cast out, qualified in all ways for the hangman, and growing
17060 up to be hanged. Put the case that pretty nigh all the children he saw
17061 in his daily business life he had reason to look upon as so much
17062 spawn, to develop into the fish that were to come to his net,--to be
17063 prosecuted, defended, forsworn, made orphans, bedevilled somehow.”
17064
17065 “I follow you, sir.”
17066
17067 “Put the case, Pip, that here was one pretty little child out of the
17068 heap who could be saved; whom the father believed dead, and dared make
17069 no stir about; as to whom, over the mother, the legal adviser had this
17070 power: “I know what you did, and how you did it. You came so and so, you
17071 did such and such things to divert suspicion. I have tracked you through
17072 it all, and I tell it you all. Part with the child, unless it should
17073 be necessary to produce it to clear you, and then it shall be produced.
17074 Give the child into my hands, and I will do my best to bring you off. If
17075 you are saved, your child is saved too; if you are lost, your child is
17076 still saved.” Put the case that this was done, and that the woman was
17077 cleared.”
17078
17079 “I understand you perfectly.”
17080
17081 “But that I make no admissions?”
17082
17083 “That you make no admissions.” And Wemmick repeated, “No admissions.”
17084
17085 “Put the case, Pip, that passion and the terror of death had a little
17086 shaken the woman’s intellects, and that when she was set at liberty,
17087 she was scared out of the ways of the world, and went to him to be
17088 sheltered. Put the case that he took her in, and that he kept down the
17089 old, wild, violent nature whenever he saw an inkling of its breaking
17090 out, by asserting his power over her in the old way. Do you comprehend
17091 the imaginary case?”
17092
17093 “Quite.”
17094
17095 “Put the case that the child grew up, and was married for money. That
17096 the mother was still living. That the father was still living. That the
17097 mother and father, unknown to one another, were dwelling within so many
17098 miles, furlongs, yards if you like, of one another. That the secret was
17099 still a secret, except that you had got wind of it. Put that last case
17100 to yourself very carefully.”
17101
17102 “I do.”
17103
17104 “I ask Wemmick to put it to himself very carefully.”
17105
17106 And Wemmick said, “I do.”
17107
17108 “For whose sake would you reveal the secret? For the father’s? I think
17109 he would not be much the better for the mother. For the mother’s? I
17110 think if she had done such a deed she would be safer where she was.
17111 For the daughter’s? I think it would hardly serve her to establish her
17112 parentage for the information of her husband, and to drag her back to
17113 disgrace, after an escape of twenty years, pretty secure to last for
17114 life. But add the case that you had loved her, Pip, and had made her the
17115 subject of those ‘poor dreams’ which have, at one time or another, been
17116 in the heads of more men than you think likely, then I tell you that you
17117 had better--and would much sooner when you had thought well of it--chop
17118 off that bandaged left hand of yours with your bandaged right hand, and
17119 then pass the chopper on to Wemmick there, to cut that off too.”
17120
17121 I looked at Wemmick, whose face was very grave. He gravely touched his
17122 lips with his forefinger. I did the same. Mr. Jaggers did the same.
17123 “Now, Wemmick,” said the latter then, resuming his usual manner, “what
17124 item was it you were at when Mr. Pip came in?”
17125
17126 Standing by for a little, while they were at work, I observed that the
17127 odd looks they had cast at one another were repeated several times: with
17128 this difference now, that each of them seemed suspicious, not to say
17129 conscious, of having shown himself in a weak and unprofessional light to
17130 the other. For this reason, I suppose, they were now inflexible with one
17131 another; Mr. Jaggers being highly dictatorial, and Wemmick obstinately
17132 justifying himself whenever there was the smallest point in abeyance for
17133 a moment. I had never seen them on such ill terms; for generally they
17134 got on very well indeed together.
17135
17136 But they were both happily relieved by the opportune appearance of Mike,
17137 the client with the fur cap and the habit of wiping his nose on his
17138 sleeve, whom I had seen on the very first day of my appearance within
17139 those walls. This individual, who, either in his own person or in that
17140 of some member of his family, seemed to be always in trouble (which in
17141 that place meant Newgate), called to announce that his eldest daughter
17142 was taken up on suspicion of shoplifting. As he imparted this melancholy
17143 circumstance to Wemmick, Mr. Jaggers standing magisterially before the
17144 fire and taking no share in the proceedings, Mike’s eye happened to
17145 twinkle with a tear.
17146
17147 “What are you about?” demanded Wemmick, with the utmost indignation.
17148 “What do you come snivelling here for?”
17149
17150 “I didn’t go to do it, Mr. Wemmick.”
17151
17152 “You did,” said Wemmick. “How dare you? You’re not in a fit state to
17153 come here, if you can’t come here without spluttering like a bad pen.
17154 What do you mean by it?”
17155
17156 “A man can’t help his feelings, Mr. Wemmick,” pleaded Mike.
17157
17158 “His what?” demanded Wemmick, quite savagely. “Say that again!”
17159
17160 “Now look here my man,” said Mr. Jaggers, advancing a step, and pointing
17161 to the door. “Get out of this office. I’ll have no feelings here. Get
17162 out.”
17163
17164 “It serves you right,” said Wemmick, “Get out.”
17165
17166 So, the unfortunate Mike very humbly withdrew, and Mr. Jaggers and
17167 Wemmick appeared to have re-established their good understanding, and
17168 went to work again with an air of refreshment upon them as if they had
17169 just had lunch.
17170
17171
17172
17173
17174 Chapter LII
17175
17176
17177 From Little Britain I went, with my check in my pocket, to Miss
17178 Skiffins’s brother, the accountant; and Miss Skiffins’s brother, the
17179 accountant, going straight to Clarriker’s and bringing Clarriker to me,
17180 I had the great satisfaction of concluding that arrangement. It was the
17181 only good thing I had done, and the only completed thing I had done,
17182 since I was first apprised of my great expectations.
17183
17184 Clarriker informing me on that occasion that the affairs of the House
17185 were steadily progressing, that he would now be able to establish a
17186 small branch-house in the East which was much wanted for the extension
17187 of the business, and that Herbert in his new partnership capacity would
17188 go out and take charge of it, I found that I must have prepared for
17189 a separation from my friend, even though my own affairs had been more
17190 settled. And now, indeed, I felt as if my last anchor were loosening its
17191 hold, and I should soon be driving with the winds and waves.
17192
17193 But there was recompense in the joy with which Herbert would come home
17194 of a night and tell me of these changes, little imagining that he told
17195 me no news, and would sketch airy pictures of himself conducting Clara
17196 Barley to the land of the Arabian Nights, and of me going out to join
17197 them (with a caravan of camels, I believe), and of our all going up the
17198 Nile and seeing wonders. Without being sanguine as to my own part in
17199 those bright plans, I felt that Herbert’s way was clearing fast, and
17200 that old Bill Barley had but to stick to his pepper and rum, and his
17201 daughter would soon be happily provided for.
17202
17203 We had now got into the month of March. My left arm, though it presented
17204 no bad symptoms, took, in the natural course, so long to heal that I
17205 was still unable to get a coat on. My right arm was tolerably restored;
17206 disfigured, but fairly serviceable.
17207
17208 On a Monday morning, when Herbert and I were at breakfast, I received
17209 the following letter from Wemmick by the post.
17210
17211 “Walworth. Burn this as soon as read. Early in the week, or say
17212 Wednesday, you might do what you know of, if you felt disposed to try
17213 it. Now burn.”
17214
17215 When I had shown this to Herbert and had put it in the fire--but not
17216 before we had both got it by heart--we considered what to do. For, of
17217 course my being disabled could now be no longer kept out of view.
17218
17219 “I have thought it over again and again,” said Herbert, “and I think I
17220 know a better course than taking a Thames waterman. Take Startop. A good
17221 fellow, a skilled hand, fond of us, and enthusiastic and honorable.”
17222
17223 I had thought of him more than once.
17224
17225 “But how much would you tell him, Herbert?”
17226
17227 “It is necessary to tell him very little. Let him suppose it a mere
17228 freak, but a secret one, until the morning comes: then let him know that
17229 there is urgent reason for your getting Provis aboard and away. You go
17230 with him?”
17231
17232 “No doubt.”
17233
17234 “Where?”
17235
17236 It had seemed to me, in the many anxious considerations I had given the
17237 point, almost indifferent what port we made for,--Hamburg, Rotterdam,
17238 Antwerp,--the place signified little, so that he was out of England. Any
17239 foreign steamer that fell in our way and would take us up would do.
17240 I had always proposed to myself to get him well down the river in the
17241 boat; certainly well beyond Gravesend, which was a critical place for
17242 search or inquiry if suspicion were afoot. As foreign steamers would
17243 leave London at about the time of high-water, our plan would be to get
17244 down the river by a previous ebb-tide, and lie by in some quiet spot
17245 until we could pull off to one. The time when one would be due where we
17246 lay, wherever that might be, could be calculated pretty nearly, if we
17247 made inquiries beforehand.
17248
17249 Herbert assented to all this, and we went out immediately after
17250 breakfast to pursue our investigations. We found that a steamer for
17251 Hamburg was likely to suit our purpose best, and we directed our
17252 thoughts chiefly to that vessel. But we noted down what other foreign
17253 steamers would leave London with the same tide, and we satisfied
17254 ourselves that we knew the build and color of each. We then separated
17255 for a few hours: I, to get at once such passports as were necessary;
17256 Herbert, to see Startop at his lodgings. We both did what we had to do
17257 without any hindrance, and when we met again at one o’clock reported
17258 it done. I, for my part, was prepared with passports; Herbert had seen
17259 Startop, and he was more than ready to join.
17260
17261 Those two should pull a pair of oars, we settled, and I would steer; our
17262 charge would be sitter, and keep quiet; as speed was not our object, we
17263 should make way enough. We arranged that Herbert should not come home to
17264 dinner before going to Mill Pond Bank that evening; that he should
17265 not go there at all to-morrow evening, Tuesday; that he should prepare
17266 Provis to come down to some stairs hard by the house, on Wednesday, when
17267 he saw us approach, and not sooner; that all the arrangements with
17268 him should be concluded that Monday night; and that he should be
17269 communicated with no more in any way, until we took him on board.
17270
17271 These precautions well understood by both of us, I went home.
17272
17273 On opening the outer door of our chambers with my key, I found a letter
17274 in the box, directed to me; a very dirty letter, though not ill-written.
17275 It had been delivered by hand (of course, since I left home), and its
17276 contents were these:--
17277
17278 “If you are not afraid to come to the old marshes to-night or to-morrow
17279 night at nine, and to come to the little sluice-house by the limekiln,
17280 you had better come. If you want information regarding your uncle
17281 Provis, you had much better come and tell no one, and lose no time. You
17282 must come alone. Bring this with you.”
17283
17284 I had had load enough upon my mind before the receipt of this strange
17285 letter. What to do now, I could not tell. And the worst was, that I must
17286 decide quickly, or I should miss the afternoon coach, which would take
17287 me down in time for to-night. To-morrow night I could not think of
17288 going, for it would be too close upon the time of the flight. And again,
17289 for anything I knew, the proffered information might have some important
17290 bearing on the flight itself.
17291
17292 If I had had ample time for consideration, I believe I should still have
17293 gone. Having hardly any time for consideration,--my watch showing me
17294 that the coach started within half an hour,--I resolved to go. I should
17295 certainly not have gone, but for the reference to my Uncle Provis. That,
17296 coming on Wemmick’s letter and the morning’s busy preparation, turned
17297 the scale.
17298
17299 It is so difficult to become clearly possessed of the contents of almost
17300 any letter, in a violent hurry, that I had to read this mysterious
17301 epistle again twice, before its injunction to me to be secret got
17302 mechanically into my mind. Yielding to it in the same mechanical kind of
17303 way, I left a note in pencil for Herbert, telling him that as I should
17304 be so soon going away, I knew not for how long, I had decided to hurry
17305 down and back, to ascertain for myself how Miss Havisham was faring.
17306 I had then barely time to get my great-coat, lock up the chambers,
17307 and make for the coach-office by the short by-ways. If I had taken a
17308 hackney-chariot and gone by the streets, I should have missed my aim;
17309 going as I did, I caught the coach just as it came out of the yard. I
17310 was the only inside passenger, jolting away knee-deep in straw, when I
17311 came to myself.
17312
17313 For I really had not been myself since the receipt of the letter; it had
17314 so bewildered me, ensuing on the hurry of the morning. The morning hurry
17315 and flutter had been great; for, long and anxiously as I had waited for
17316 Wemmick, his hint had come like a surprise at last. And now I began
17317 to wonder at myself for being in the coach, and to doubt whether I had
17318 sufficient reason for being there, and to consider whether I should
17319 get out presently and go back, and to argue against ever heeding an
17320 anonymous communication, and, in short, to pass through all those phases
17321 of contradiction and indecision to which I suppose very few hurried
17322 people are strangers. Still, the reference to Provis by name mastered
17323 everything. I reasoned as I had reasoned already without knowing it,--if
17324 that be reasoning,--in case any harm should befall him through my not
17325 going, how could I ever forgive myself!
17326
17327 It was dark before we got down, and the journey seemed long and dreary
17328 to me, who could see little of it inside, and who could not go outside
17329 in my disabled state. Avoiding the Blue Boar, I put up at an inn of
17330 minor reputation down the town, and ordered some dinner. While it was
17331 preparing, I went to Satis House and inquired for Miss Havisham; she was
17332 still very ill, though considered something better.
17333
17334 My inn had once been a part of an ancient ecclesiastical house, and I
17335 dined in a little octagonal common-room, like a font. As I was not able
17336 to cut my dinner, the old landlord with a shining bald head did it for
17337 me. This bringing us into conversation, he was so good as to entertain
17338 me with my own story,--of course with the popular feature that
17339 Pumblechook was my earliest benefactor and the founder of my fortunes.
17340
17341 “Do you know the young man?” said I.
17342
17343 “Know him!” repeated the landlord. “Ever since he was--no height at
17344 all.”
17345
17346 “Does he ever come back to this neighborhood?”
17347
17348 “Ay, he comes back,” said the landlord, “to his great friends, now and
17349 again, and gives the cold shoulder to the man that made him.”
17350
17351 “What man is that?”
17352
17353 “Him that I speak of,” said the landlord. “Mr. Pumblechook.”
17354
17355 “Is he ungrateful to no one else?”
17356
17357 “No doubt he would be, if he could,” returned the landlord, “but he
17358 can’t. And why? Because Pumblechook done everything for him.”
17359
17360 “Does Pumblechook say so?”
17361
17362 “Say so!” replied the landlord. “He han’t no call to say so.”
17363
17364 “But does he say so?”
17365
17366 “It would turn a man’s blood to white wine winegar to hear him tell of
17367 it, sir,” said the landlord.
17368
17369 I thought, “Yet Joe, dear Joe, you never tell of it. Long-suffering and
17370 loving Joe, you never complain. Nor you, sweet-tempered Biddy!”
17371
17372 “Your appetite’s been touched like by your accident,” said the landlord,
17373 glancing at the bandaged arm under my coat. “Try a tenderer bit.”
17374
17375 “No, thank you,” I replied, turning from the table to brood over the
17376 fire. “I can eat no more. Please take it away.”
17377
17378 I had never been struck at so keenly, for my thanklessness to Joe, as
17379 through the brazen impostor Pumblechook. The falser he, the truer Joe;
17380 the meaner he, the nobler Joe.
17381
17382 My heart was deeply and most deservedly humbled as I mused over the fire
17383 for an hour or more. The striking of the clock aroused me, but not from
17384 my dejection or remorse, and I got up and had my coat fastened round
17385 my neck, and went out. I had previously sought in my pockets for the
17386 letter, that I might refer to it again; but I could not find it, and
17387 was uneasy to think that it must have been dropped in the straw of
17388 the coach. I knew very well, however, that the appointed place was the
17389 little sluice-house by the limekiln on the marshes, and the hour nine.
17390 Towards the marshes I now went straight, having no time to spare.
17391
17392
17393
17394
17395 Chapter LIII
17396
17397 It was a dark night, though the full moon rose as I left the enclosed
17398 lands, and passed out upon the marshes. Beyond their dark line there was
17399 a ribbon of clear sky, hardly broad enough to hold the red large moon.
17400 In a few minutes she had ascended out of that clear field, in among the
17401 piled mountains of cloud.
17402
17403 There was a melancholy wind, and the marshes were very dismal. A
17404 stranger would have found them insupportable, and even to me they were
17405 so oppressive that I hesitated, half inclined to go back. But I knew
17406 them well, and could have found my way on a far darker night, and had
17407 no excuse for returning, being there. So, having come there against my
17408 inclination, I went on against it.
17409
17410 The direction that I took was not that in which my old home lay, nor
17411 that in which we had pursued the convicts. My back was turned towards
17412 the distant Hulks as I walked on, and, though I could see the old lights
17413 away on the spits of sand, I saw them over my shoulder. I knew the
17414 limekiln as well as I knew the old Battery, but they were miles apart;
17415 so that, if a light had been burning at each point that night, there
17416 would have been a long strip of the blank horizon between the two bright
17417 specks.
17418
17419 At first, I had to shut some gates after me, and now and then to stand
17420 still while the cattle that were lying in the banked-up pathway arose
17421 and blundered down among the grass and reeds. But after a little while I
17422 seemed to have the whole flats to myself.
17423
17424 It was another half-hour before I drew near to the kiln. The lime was
17425 burning with a sluggish stifling smell, but the fires were made up and
17426 left, and no workmen were visible. Hard by was a small stone-quarry. It
17427 lay directly in my way, and had been worked that day, as I saw by the
17428 tools and barrows that were lying about.
17429
17430 Coming up again to the marsh level out of this excavation,--for the rude
17431 path lay through it,--I saw a light in the old sluice-house. I quickened
17432 my pace, and knocked at the door with my hand. Waiting for some reply,
17433 I looked about me, noticing how the sluice was abandoned and broken, and
17434 how the house--of wood with a tiled roof--would not be proof against the
17435 weather much longer, if it were so even now, and how the mud and ooze
17436 were coated with lime, and how the choking vapor of the kiln crept in a
17437 ghostly way towards me. Still there was no answer, and I knocked again.
17438 No answer still, and I tried the latch.
17439
17440 It rose under my hand, and the door yielded. Looking in, I saw a lighted
17441 candle on a table, a bench, and a mattress on a truckle bedstead. As
17442 there was a loft above, I called, “Is there any one here?” but no voice
17443 answered. Then I looked at my watch, and, finding that it was past nine,
17444 called again, “Is there any one here?” There being still no answer, I
17445 went out at the door, irresolute what to do.
17446
17447 It was beginning to rain fast. Seeing nothing save what I had seen
17448 already, I turned back into the house, and stood just within the shelter
17449 of the doorway, looking out into the night. While I was considering that
17450 some one must have been there lately and must soon be coming back, or
17451 the candle would not be burning, it came into my head to look if the
17452 wick were long. I turned round to do so, and had taken up the candle in
17453 my hand, when it was extinguished by some violent shock; and the next
17454 thing I comprehended was, that I had been caught in a strong running
17455 noose, thrown over my head from behind.
17456
17457 “Now,” said a suppressed voice with an oath, “I’ve got you!”
17458
17459 “What is this?” I cried, struggling. “Who is it? Help, help, help!”
17460
17461 Not only were my arms pulled close to my sides, but the pressure on
17462 my bad arm caused me exquisite pain. Sometimes, a strong man’s hand,
17463 sometimes a strong man’s breast, was set against my mouth to deaden
17464 my cries, and with a hot breath always close to me, I struggled
17465 ineffectually in the dark, while I was fastened tight to the wall. “And
17466 now,” said the suppressed voice with another oath, “call out again, and
17467 I’ll make short work of you!”
17468
17469 Faint and sick with the pain of my injured arm, bewildered by the
17470 surprise, and yet conscious how easily this threat could be put in
17471 execution, I desisted, and tried to ease my arm were it ever so little.
17472 But, it was bound too tight for that. I felt as if, having been burnt
17473 before, it were now being boiled.
17474
17475 The sudden exclusion of the night, and the substitution of black
17476 darkness in its place, warned me that the man had closed a shutter.
17477 After groping about for a little, he found the flint and steel he
17478 wanted, and began to strike a light. I strained my sight upon the sparks
17479 that fell among the tinder, and upon which he breathed and breathed,
17480 match in hand, but I could only see his lips, and the blue point of
17481 the match; even those but fitfully. The tinder was damp,--no wonder
17482 there,--and one after another the sparks died out.
17483
17484 The man was in no hurry, and struck again with the flint and steel. As
17485 the sparks fell thick and bright about him, I could see his hands, and
17486 touches of his face, and could make out that he was seated and bending
17487 over the table; but nothing more. Presently I saw his blue lips again,
17488 breathing on the tinder, and then a flare of light flashed up, and
17489 showed me Orlick.
17490
17491 Whom I had looked for, I don’t know. I had not looked for him. Seeing
17492 him, I felt that I was in a dangerous strait indeed, and I kept my eyes
17493 upon him.
17494
17495 He lighted the candle from the flaring match with great deliberation,
17496 and dropped the match, and trod it out. Then he put the candle away from
17497 him on the table, so that he could see me, and sat with his arms folded
17498 on the table and looked at me. I made out that I was fastened to a stout
17499 perpendicular ladder a few inches from the wall,--a fixture there,--the
17500 means of ascent to the loft above.
17501
17502 “Now,” said he, when we had surveyed one another for some time, “I’ve
17503 got you.”
17504
17505 “Unbind me. Let me go!”
17506
17507 “Ah!” he returned, “I’ll let you go. I’ll let you go to the moon, I’ll
17508 let you go to the stars. All in good time.”
17509
17510 “Why have you lured me here?”
17511
17512 “Don’t you know?” said he, with a deadly look.
17513
17514 “Why have you set upon me in the dark?”
17515
17516 “Because I mean to do it all myself. One keeps a secret better than two.
17517 O you enemy, you enemy!”
17518
17519 His enjoyment of the spectacle I furnished, as he sat with his arms
17520 folded on the table, shaking his head at me and hugging himself, had a
17521 malignity in it that made me tremble. As I watched him in silence,
17522 he put his hand into the corner at his side, and took up a gun with a
17523 brass-bound stock.
17524
17525 “Do you know this?” said he, making as if he would take aim at me. “Do
17526 you know where you saw it afore? Speak, wolf!”
17527
17528 “Yes,” I answered.
17529
17530 “You cost me that place. You did. Speak!”
17531
17532 “What else could I do?”
17533
17534 “You did that, and that would be enough, without more. How dared you to
17535 come betwixt me and a young woman I liked?”
17536
17537 “When did I?”
17538
17539 “When didn’t you? It was you as always give Old Orlick a bad name to
17540 her.”
17541
17542 “You gave it to yourself; you gained it for yourself. I could have done
17543 you no harm, if you had done yourself none.”
17544
17545 “You’re a liar. And you’ll take any pains, and spend any money, to drive
17546 me out of this country, will you?” said he, repeating my words to Biddy
17547 in the last interview I had with her. “Now, I’ll tell you a piece of
17548 information. It was never so well worth your while to get me out of this
17549 country as it is to-night. Ah! If it was all your money twenty times
17550 told, to the last brass farden!” As he shook his heavy hand at me, with
17551 his mouth snarling like a tiger’s, I felt that it was true.
17552
17553 “What are you going to do to me?”
17554
17555 “I’m a going,” said he, bringing his fist down upon the table with a
17556 heavy blow, and rising as the blow fell to give it greater force,--“I’m
17557 a going to have your life!”
17558
17559 He leaned forward staring at me, slowly unclenched his hand and drew it
17560 across his mouth as if his mouth watered for me, and sat down again.
17561
17562 “You was always in Old Orlick’s way since ever you was a child. You goes
17563 out of his way this present night. He’ll have no more on you. You’re
17564 dead.”
17565
17566 I felt that I had come to the brink of my grave. For a moment I looked
17567 wildly round my trap for any chance of escape; but there was none.
17568
17569 “More than that,” said he, folding his arms on the table again, “I won’t
17570 have a rag of you, I won’t have a bone of you, left on earth. I’ll put
17571 your body in the kiln,--I’d carry two such to it, on my Shoulders,--and,
17572 let people suppose what they may of you, they shall never know nothing.”
17573
17574 My mind, with inconceivable rapidity followed out all the consequences
17575 of such a death. Estella’s father would believe I had deserted him,
17576 would be taken, would die accusing me; even Herbert would doubt me,
17577 when he compared the letter I had left for him with the fact that I had
17578 called at Miss Havisham’s gate for only a moment; Joe and Biddy would
17579 never know how sorry I had been that night, none would ever know what
17580 I had suffered, how true I had meant to be, what an agony I had passed
17581 through. The death close before me was terrible, but far more terrible
17582 than death was the dread of being misremembered after death. And
17583 so quick were my thoughts, that I saw myself despised by unborn
17584 generations,--Estella’s children, and their children,--while the
17585 wretch’s words were yet on his lips.
17586
17587 “Now, wolf,” said he, “afore I kill you like any other beast,--which is
17588 wot I mean to do and wot I have tied you up for,--I’ll have a good look
17589 at you and a good goad at you. O you enemy!”
17590
17591 It had passed through my thoughts to cry out for help again; though
17592 few could know better than I, the solitary nature of the spot, and the
17593 hopelessness of aid. But as he sat gloating over me, I was supported by
17594 a scornful detestation of him that sealed my lips. Above all things, I
17595 resolved that I would not entreat him, and that I would die making some
17596 last poor resistance to him. Softened as my thoughts of all the rest of
17597 men were in that dire extremity; humbly beseeching pardon, as I did, of
17598 Heaven; melted at heart, as I was, by the thought that I had taken no
17599 farewell, and never now could take farewell of those who were dear to
17600 me, or could explain myself to them, or ask for their compassion on my
17601 miserable errors,--still, if I could have killed him, even in dying, I
17602 would have done it.
17603
17604 He had been drinking, and his eyes were red and bloodshot. Around his
17605 neck was slung a tin bottle, as I had often seen his meat and drink
17606 slung about him in other days. He brought the bottle to his lips, and
17607 took a fiery drink from it; and I smelt the strong spirits that I saw
17608 flash into his face.
17609
17610 “Wolf!” said he, folding his arms again, “Old Orlick’s a going to tell
17611 you somethink. It was you as did for your shrew sister.”
17612
17613 Again my mind, with its former inconceivable rapidity, had exhausted the
17614 whole subject of the attack upon my sister, her illness, and her death,
17615 before his slow and hesitating speech had formed these words.
17616
17617 “It was you, villain,” said I.
17618
17619 “I tell you it was your doing,--I tell you it was done through you,” he
17620 retorted, catching up the gun, and making a blow with the stock at the
17621 vacant air between us. “I come upon her from behind, as I come upon you
17622 to-night. I giv’ it her! I left her for dead, and if there had been a
17623 limekiln as nigh her as there is now nigh you, she shouldn’t have come
17624 to life again. But it warn’t Old Orlick as did it; it was you. You was
17625 favored, and he was bullied and beat. Old Orlick bullied and beat, eh?
17626 Now you pays for it. You done it; now you pays for it.”
17627
17628 He drank again, and became more ferocious. I saw by his tilting of
17629 the bottle that there was no great quantity left in it. I distinctly
17630 understood that he was working himself up with its contents to make an
17631 end of me. I knew that every drop it held was a drop of my life. I knew
17632 that when I was changed into a part of the vapor that had crept towards
17633 me but a little while before, like my own warning ghost, he would do
17634 as he had done in my sister’s case,--make all haste to the town, and
17635 be seen slouching about there drinking at the alehouses. My rapid mind
17636 pursued him to the town, made a picture of the street with him in it,
17637 and contrasted its lights and life with the lonely marsh and the white
17638 vapor creeping over it, into which I should have dissolved.
17639
17640 It was not only that I could have summed up years and years and years
17641 while he said a dozen words, but that what he did say presented pictures
17642 to me, and not mere words. In the excited and exalted state of my brain,
17643 I could not think of a place without seeing it, or of persons without
17644 seeing them. It is impossible to overstate the vividness of these
17645 images, and yet I was so intent, all the time, upon him himself,--who
17646 would not be intent on the tiger crouching to spring!--that I knew of
17647 the slightest action of his fingers.
17648
17649 When he had drunk this second time, he rose from the bench on which
17650 he sat, and pushed the table aside. Then, he took up the candle, and,
17651 shading it with his murderous hand so as to throw its light on me, stood
17652 before me, looking at me and enjoying the sight.
17653
17654 “Wolf, I’ll tell you something more. It was Old Orlick as you tumbled
17655 over on your stairs that night.”
17656
17657 I saw the staircase with its extinguished lamps. I saw the shadows of
17658 the heavy stair-rails, thrown by the watchman’s lantern on the wall.
17659 I saw the rooms that I was never to see again; here, a door half open;
17660 there, a door closed; all the articles of furniture around.
17661
17662 “And why was Old Orlick there? I’ll tell you something more, wolf.
17663 You and her have pretty well hunted me out of this country, so far as
17664 getting a easy living in it goes, and I’ve took up with new companions,
17665 and new masters. Some of ‘em writes my letters when I wants ‘em
17666 wrote,--do you mind?--writes my letters, wolf! They writes fifty hands;
17667 they’re not like sneaking you, as writes but one. I’ve had a firm mind
17668 and a firm will to have your life, since you was down here at your
17669 sister’s burying. I han’t seen a way to get you safe, and I’ve looked
17670 arter you to know your ins and outs. For, says Old Orlick to himself,
17671 ‘Somehow or another I’ll have him!’ What! When I looks for you, I finds
17672 your uncle Provis, eh?”
17673
17674 Mill Pond Bank, and Chinks’s Basin, and the Old Green Copper Rope-walk,
17675 all so clear and plain! Provis in his rooms, the signal whose use was
17676 over, pretty Clara, the good motherly woman, old Bill Barley on his
17677 back, all drifting by, as on the swift stream of my life fast running
17678 out to sea!
17679
17680 “You with a uncle too! Why, I know’d you at Gargery’s when you was so
17681 small a wolf that I could have took your weazen betwixt this finger and
17682 thumb and chucked you away dead (as I’d thoughts o’ doing, odd times,
17683 when I see you loitering amongst the pollards on a Sunday), and you
17684 hadn’t found no uncles then. No, not you! But when Old Orlick come for
17685 to hear that your uncle Provis had most like wore the leg-iron wot Old
17686 Orlick had picked up, filed asunder, on these meshes ever so many year
17687 ago, and wot he kep by him till he dropped your sister with it, like
17688 a bullock, as he means to drop you--hey?--when he come for to hear
17689 that--hey?”
17690
17691 In his savage taunting, he flared the candle so close at me that I
17692 turned my face aside to save it from the flame.
17693
17694 “Ah!” he cried, laughing, after doing it again, “the burnt child dreads
17695 the fire! Old Orlick knowed you was burnt, Old Orlick knowed you was
17696 smuggling your uncle Provis away, Old Orlick’s a match for you and
17697 know’d you’d come to-night! Now I’ll tell you something more, wolf, and
17698 this ends it. There’s them that’s as good a match for your uncle Provis
17699 as Old Orlick has been for you. Let him ‘ware them, when he’s lost his
17700 nevvy! Let him ‘ware them, when no man can’t find a rag of his dear
17701 relation’s clothes, nor yet a bone of his body. There’s them that can’t
17702 and that won’t have Magwitch,--yes, I know the name!--alive in the same
17703 land with them, and that’s had such sure information of him when he
17704 was alive in another land, as that he couldn’t and shouldn’t leave it
17705 unbeknown and put them in danger. P’raps it’s them that writes fifty
17706 hands, and that’s not like sneaking you as writes but one. ‘Ware
17707 Compeyson, Magwitch, and the gallows!”
17708
17709 He flared the candle at me again, smoking my face and hair, and for an
17710 instant blinding me, and turned his powerful back as he replaced the
17711 light on the table. I had thought a prayer, and had been with Joe and
17712 Biddy and Herbert, before he turned towards me again.
17713
17714 There was a clear space of a few feet between the table and the opposite
17715 wall. Within this space, he now slouched backwards and forwards. His
17716 great strength seemed to sit stronger upon him than ever before, as he
17717 did this with his hands hanging loose and heavy at his sides, and with
17718 his eyes scowling at me. I had no grain of hope left. Wild as my inward
17719 hurry was, and wonderful the force of the pictures that rushed by me
17720 instead of thoughts, I could yet clearly understand that, unless he had
17721 resolved that I was within a few moments of surely perishing out of all
17722 human knowledge, he would never have told me what he had told.
17723
17724 Of a sudden, he stopped, took the cork out of his bottle, and tossed
17725 it away. Light as it was, I heard it fall like a plummet. He swallowed
17726 slowly, tilting up the bottle by little and little, and now he looked at
17727 me no more. The last few drops of liquor he poured into the palm of his
17728 hand, and licked up. Then, with a sudden hurry of violence and swearing
17729 horribly, he threw the bottle from him, and stooped; and I saw in his
17730 hand a stone-hammer with a long heavy handle.
17731
17732 The resolution I had made did not desert me, for, without uttering
17733 one vain word of appeal to him, I shouted out with all my might, and
17734 struggled with all my might. It was only my head and my legs that I
17735 could move, but to that extent I struggled with all the force, until
17736 then unknown, that was within me. In the same instant I heard responsive
17737 shouts, saw figures and a gleam of light dash in at the door, heard
17738 voices and tumult, and saw Orlick emerge from a struggle of men, as if
17739 it were tumbling water, clear the table at a leap, and fly out into the
17740 night.
17741
17742 After a blank, I found that I was lying unbound, on the floor, in the
17743 same place, with my head on some one’s knee. My eyes were fixed on the
17744 ladder against the wall, when I came to myself,--had opened on it before
17745 my mind saw it,--and thus as I recovered consciousness, I knew that I
17746 was in the place where I had lost it.
17747
17748 Too indifferent at first, even to look round and ascertain who supported
17749 me, I was lying looking at the ladder, when there came between me and it
17750 a face. The face of Trabb’s boy!
17751
17752 “I think he’s all right!” said Trabb’s boy, in a sober voice; “but ain’t
17753 he just pale though!”
17754
17755 At these words, the face of him who supported me looked over into mine,
17756 and I saw my supporter to be--
17757
17758 “Herbert! Great Heaven!”
17759
17760 “Softly,” said Herbert. “Gently, Handel. Don’t be too eager.”
17761
17762 “And our old comrade, Startop!” I cried, as he too bent over me.
17763
17764 “Remember what he is going to assist us in,” said Herbert, “and be
17765 calm.”
17766
17767 The allusion made me spring up; though I dropped again from the pain
17768 in my arm. “The time has not gone by, Herbert, has it? What night is
17769 to-night? How long have I been here?” For, I had a strange and
17770 strong misgiving that I had been lying there a long time--a day and a
17771 night,--two days and nights,--more.
17772
17773 “The time has not gone by. It is still Monday night.”
17774
17775 “Thank God!”
17776
17777 “And you have all to-morrow, Tuesday, to rest in,” said Herbert. “But
17778 you can’t help groaning, my dear Handel. What hurt have you got? Can you
17779 stand?”
17780
17781 “Yes, yes,” said I, “I can walk. I have no hurt but in this throbbing
17782 arm.”
17783
17784 They laid it bare, and did what they could. It was violently swollen and
17785 inflamed, and I could scarcely endure to have it touched. But, they tore
17786 up their handkerchiefs to make fresh bandages, and carefully replaced
17787 it in the sling, until we could get to the town and obtain some cooling
17788 lotion to put upon it. In a little while we had shut the door of the
17789 dark and empty sluice-house, and were passing through the quarry on our
17790 way back. Trabb’s boy--Trabb’s overgrown young man now--went before us
17791 with a lantern, which was the light I had seen come in at the door. But,
17792 the moon was a good two hours higher than when I had last seen the sky,
17793 and the night, though rainy, was much lighter. The white vapor of the
17794 kiln was passing from us as we went by, and as I had thought a prayer
17795 before, I thought a thanksgiving now.
17796
17797 Entreating Herbert to tell me how he had come to my rescue,--which at
17798 first he had flatly refused to do, but had insisted on my remaining
17799 quiet,--I learnt that I had in my hurry dropped the letter, open, in our
17800 chambers, where he, coming home to bring with him Startop whom he had
17801 met in the street on his way to me, found it, very soon after I
17802 was gone. Its tone made him uneasy, and the more so because of the
17803 inconsistency between it and the hasty letter I had left for him. His
17804 uneasiness increasing instead of subsiding, after a quarter of an
17805 hour’s consideration, he set off for the coach-office with Startop, who
17806 volunteered his company, to make inquiry when the next coach went
17807 down. Finding that the afternoon coach was gone, and finding that his
17808 uneasiness grew into positive alarm, as obstacles came in his way, he
17809 resolved to follow in a post-chaise. So he and Startop arrived at the
17810 Blue Boar, fully expecting there to find me, or tidings of me; but,
17811 finding neither, went on to Miss Havisham’s, where they lost me.
17812 Hereupon they went back to the hotel (doubtless at about the time when
17813 I was hearing the popular local version of my own story) to refresh
17814 themselves and to get some one to guide them out upon the marshes. Among
17815 the loungers under the Boar’s archway happened to be Trabb’s Boy,--true
17816 to his ancient habit of happening to be everywhere where he had no
17817 business,--and Trabb’s boy had seen me passing from Miss Havisham’s in
17818 the direction of my dining-place. Thus Trabb’s boy became their guide,
17819 and with him they went out to the sluice-house, though by the town way
17820 to the marshes, which I had avoided. Now, as they went along, Herbert
17821 reflected, that I might, after all, have been brought there on some
17822 genuine and serviceable errand tending to Provis’s safety, and,
17823 bethinking himself that in that case interruption must be mischievous,
17824 left his guide and Startop on the edge of the quarry, and went on by
17825 himself, and stole round the house two or three times, endeavouring to
17826 ascertain whether all was right within. As he could hear nothing but
17827 indistinct sounds of one deep rough voice (this was while my mind was so
17828 busy), he even at last began to doubt whether I was there, when suddenly
17829 I cried out loudly, and he answered the cries, and rushed in, closely
17830 followed by the other two.
17831
17832 When I told Herbert what had passed within the house, he was for our
17833 immediately going before a magistrate in the town, late at night as it
17834 was, and getting out a warrant. But, I had already considered that such
17835 a course, by detaining us there, or binding us to come back, might
17836 be fatal to Provis. There was no gainsaying this difficulty, and we
17837 relinquished all thoughts of pursuing Orlick at that time. For the
17838 present, under the circumstances, we deemed it prudent to make rather
17839 light of the matter to Trabb’s boy; who, I am convinced, would have been
17840 much affected by disappointment, if he had known that his intervention
17841 saved me from the limekiln. Not that Trabb’s boy was of a malignant
17842 nature, but that he had too much spare vivacity, and that it was in his
17843 constitution to want variety and excitement at anybody’s expense. When
17844 we parted, I presented him with two guineas (which seemed to meet his
17845 views), and told him that I was sorry ever to have had an ill opinion of
17846 him (which made no impression on him at all).
17847
17848 Wednesday being so close upon us, we determined to go back to London
17849 that night, three in the post-chaise; the rather, as we should then be
17850 clear away before the night’s adventure began to be talked of. Herbert
17851 got a large bottle of stuff for my arm; and by dint of having this stuff
17852 dropped over it all the night through, I was just able to bear its pain
17853 on the journey. It was daylight when we reached the Temple, and I went
17854 at once to bed, and lay in bed all day.
17855
17856 My terror, as I lay there, of falling ill, and being unfitted for
17857 to-morrow, was so besetting, that I wonder it did not disable me of
17858 itself. It would have done so, pretty surely, in conjunction with the
17859 mental wear and tear I had suffered, but for the unnatural strain upon
17860 me that to-morrow was. So anxiously looked forward to, charged with such
17861 consequences, its results so impenetrably hidden, though so near.
17862
17863 No precaution could have been more obvious than our refraining
17864 from communication with him that day; yet this again increased my
17865 restlessness. I started at every footstep and every sound, believing
17866 that he was discovered and taken, and this was the messenger to tell
17867 me so. I persuaded myself that I knew he was taken; that there was
17868 something more upon my mind than a fear or a presentiment; that the fact
17869 had occurred, and I had a mysterious knowledge of it. As the days wore
17870 on, and no ill news came, as the day closed in and darkness fell,
17871 my overshadowing dread of being disabled by illness before to-morrow
17872 morning altogether mastered me. My burning arm throbbed, and my burning
17873 head throbbed, and I fancied I was beginning to wander. I counted up to
17874 high numbers, to make sure of myself, and repeated passages that I knew
17875 in prose and verse. It happened sometimes that in the mere escape of a
17876 fatigued mind, I dozed for some moments or forgot; then I would say to
17877 myself with a start, “Now it has come, and I am turning delirious!”
17878
17879 They kept me very quiet all day, and kept my arm constantly dressed, and
17880 gave me cooling drinks. Whenever I fell asleep, I awoke with the notion
17881 I had had in the sluice-house, that a long time had elapsed and the
17882 opportunity to save him was gone. About midnight I got out of bed
17883 and went to Herbert, with the conviction that I had been asleep for
17884 four-and-twenty hours, and that Wednesday was past. It was the last
17885 self-exhausting effort of my fretfulness, for after that I slept
17886 soundly.
17887
17888 Wednesday morning was dawning when I looked out of window. The winking
17889 lights upon the bridges were already pale, the coming sun was like a
17890 marsh of fire on the horizon. The river, still dark and mysterious, was
17891 spanned by bridges that were turning coldly gray, with here and there
17892 at top a warm touch from the burning in the sky. As I looked along
17893 the clustered roofs, with church-towers and spires shooting into the
17894 unusually clear air, the sun rose up, and a veil seemed to be drawn from
17895 the river, and millions of sparkles burst out upon its waters. From me
17896 too, a veil seemed to be drawn, and I felt strong and well.
17897
17898 Herbert lay asleep in his bed, and our old fellow-student lay asleep on
17899 the sofa. I could not dress myself without help; but I made up the fire,
17900 which was still burning, and got some coffee ready for them. In good
17901 time they too started up strong and well, and we admitted the sharp
17902 morning air at the windows, and looked at the tide that was still
17903 flowing towards us.
17904
17905 “When it turns at nine o’clock,” said Herbert, cheerfully, “look out for
17906 us, and stand ready, you over there at Mill Pond Bank!”
17907
17908
17909
17910
17911 Chapter LIV
17912
17913 It was one of those March days when the sun shines hot and the wind
17914 blows cold: when it is summer in the light, and winter in the shade.
17915 We had our pea-coats with us, and I took a bag. Of all my worldly
17916 possessions I took no more than the few necessaries that filled the
17917 bag. Where I might go, what I might do, or when I might return, were
17918 questions utterly unknown to me; nor did I vex my mind with them, for
17919 it was wholly set on Provis’s safety. I only wondered for the passing
17920 moment, as I stopped at the door and looked back, under what altered
17921 circumstances I should next see those rooms, if ever.
17922
17923 We loitered down to the Temple stairs, and stood loitering there, as if
17924 we were not quite decided to go upon the water at all. Of course, I had
17925 taken care that the boat should be ready and everything in order. After
17926 a little show of indecision, which there were none to see but the two
17927 or three amphibious creatures belonging to our Temple stairs, we went
17928 on board and cast off; Herbert in the bow, I steering. It was then about
17929 high-water,--half-past eight.
17930
17931 Our plan was this. The tide, beginning to run down at nine, and being
17932 with us until three, we intended still to creep on after it had turned,
17933 and row against it until dark. We should then be well in those long
17934 reaches below Gravesend, between Kent and Essex, where the river is
17935 broad and solitary, where the water-side inhabitants are very few, and
17936 where lone public-houses are scattered here and there, of which we could
17937 choose one for a resting-place. There, we meant to lie by all night.
17938 The steamer for Hamburg and the steamer for Rotterdam would start from
17939 London at about nine on Thursday morning. We should know at what time
17940 to expect them, according to where we were, and would hail the first;
17941 so that, if by any accident we were not taken abroad, we should have
17942 another chance. We knew the distinguishing marks of each vessel.
17943
17944 The relief of being at last engaged in the execution of the purpose
17945 was so great to me that I felt it difficult to realize the condition in
17946 which I had been a few hours before. The crisp air, the sunlight, the
17947 movement on the river, and the moving river itself,--the road that ran
17948 with us, seeming to sympathize with us, animate us, and encourage us
17949 on,--freshened me with new hope. I felt mortified to be of so little use
17950 in the boat; but, there were few better oarsmen than my two friends, and
17951 they rowed with a steady stroke that was to last all day.
17952
17953 At that time, the steam-traffic on the Thames was far below its present
17954 extent, and watermen’s boats were far more numerous. Of barges, sailing
17955 colliers, and coasting-traders, there were perhaps, as many as now;
17956 but of steam-ships, great and small, not a tithe or a twentieth part
17957 so many. Early as it was, there were plenty of scullers going here and
17958 there that morning, and plenty of barges dropping down with the tide;
17959 the navigation of the river between bridges, in an open boat, was a much
17960 easier and commoner matter in those days than it is in these; and we
17961 went ahead among many skiffs and wherries briskly.
17962
17963 Old London Bridge was soon passed, and old Billingsgate Market with its
17964 oyster-boats and Dutchmen, and the White Tower and Traitor’s Gate, and
17965 we were in among the tiers of shipping. Here were the Leith, Aberdeen,
17966 and Glasgow steamers, loading and unloading goods, and looking immensely
17967 high out of the water as we passed alongside; here, were colliers by the
17968 score and score, with the coal-whippers plunging off stages on deck, as
17969 counterweights to measures of coal swinging up, which were then rattled
17970 over the side into barges; here, at her moorings was to-morrow’s steamer
17971 for Rotterdam, of which we took good notice; and here to-morrow’s for
17972 Hamburg, under whose bowsprit we crossed. And now I, sitting in the
17973 stern, could see, with a faster beating heart, Mill Pond Bank and Mill
17974 Pond stairs.
17975
17976 “Is he there?” said Herbert.
17977
17978 “Not yet.”
17979
17980 “Right! He was not to come down till he saw us. Can you see his signal?”
17981
17982 “Not well from here; but I think I see it.--Now I see him! Pull both.
17983 Easy, Herbert. Oars!”
17984
17985 We touched the stairs lightly for a single moment, and he was on board,
17986 and we were off again. He had a boat-cloak with him, and a black canvas
17987 bag; and he looked as like a river-pilot as my heart could have wished.
17988
17989 “Dear boy!” he said, putting his arm on my shoulder, as he took his
17990 seat. “Faithful dear boy, well done. Thankye, thankye!”
17991
17992 Again among the tiers of shipping, in and out, avoiding rusty
17993 chain-cables frayed hempen hawsers and bobbing buoys, sinking for the
17994 moment floating broken baskets, scattering floating chips of wood
17995 and shaving, cleaving floating scum of coal, in and out, under the
17996 figure-head of the John of Sunderland making a speech to the winds (as
17997 is done by many Johns), and the Betsy of Yarmouth with a firm formality
17998 of bosom and her knobby eyes starting two inches out of her head; in
17999 and out, hammers going in ship-builders’ yards, saws going at timber,
18000 clashing engines going at things unknown, pumps going in leaky ships,
18001 capstans going, ships going out to sea, and unintelligible sea-creatures
18002 roaring curses over the bulwarks at respondent lightermen, in and
18003 out,--out at last upon the clearer river, where the ships’ boys might
18004 take their fenders in, no longer fishing in troubled waters with them
18005 over the side, and where the festooned sails might fly out to the wind.
18006
18007 At the stairs where we had taken him abroad, and ever since, I had
18008 looked warily for any token of our being suspected. I had seen none. We
18009 certainly had not been, and at that time as certainly we were not either
18010 attended or followed by any boat. If we had been waited on by any boat,
18011 I should have run in to shore, and have obliged her to go on, or to
18012 make her purpose evident. But we held our own without any appearance of
18013 molestation.
18014
18015 He had his boat-cloak on him, and looked, as I have said, a natural part
18016 of the scene. It was remarkable (but perhaps the wretched life he had
18017 led accounted for it) that he was the least anxious of any of us. He
18018 was not indifferent, for he told me that he hoped to live to see his
18019 gentleman one of the best of gentlemen in a foreign country; he was not
18020 disposed to be passive or resigned, as I understood it; but he had no
18021 notion of meeting danger half way. When it came upon him, he confronted
18022 it, but it must come before he troubled himself.
18023
18024 “If you knowed, dear boy,” he said to me, “what it is to sit here
18025 alonger my dear boy and have my smoke, arter having been day by day
18026 betwixt four walls, you’d envy me. But you don’t know what it is.”
18027
18028 “I think I know the delights of freedom,” I answered.
18029
18030 “Ah,” said he, shaking his head gravely. “But you don’t know it equal to
18031 me. You must have been under lock and key, dear boy, to know it equal to
18032 me,--but I ain’t a going to be low.”
18033
18034 It occurred to me as inconsistent, that, for any mastering idea, he
18035 should have endangered his freedom, and even his life. But I reflected
18036 that perhaps freedom without danger was too much apart from all the
18037 habit of his existence to be to him what it would be to another man. I
18038 was not far out, since he said, after smoking a little:--
18039
18040 “You see, dear boy, when I was over yonder, t’other side the world, I
18041 was always a looking to this side; and it come flat to be there, for
18042 all I was a growing rich. Everybody knowed Magwitch, and Magwitch could
18043 come, and Magwitch could go, and nobody’s head would be troubled about
18044 him. They ain’t so easy concerning me here, dear boy,--wouldn’t be,
18045 leastwise, if they knowed where I was.”
18046
18047 “If all goes well,” said I, “you will be perfectly free and safe again
18048 within a few hours.”
18049
18050 “Well,” he returned, drawing a long breath, “I hope so.”
18051
18052 “And think so?”
18053
18054 He dipped his hand in the water over the boat’s gunwale, and said,
18055 smiling with that softened air upon him which was not new to me:--
18056
18057 “Ay, I s’pose I think so, dear boy. We’d be puzzled to be more quiet
18058 and easy-going than we are at present. But--it’s a flowing so soft
18059 and pleasant through the water, p’raps, as makes me think it--I was
18060 a thinking through my smoke just then, that we can no more see to the
18061 bottom of the next few hours than we can see to the bottom of this river
18062 what I catches hold of. Nor yet we can’t no more hold their tide than
18063 I can hold this. And it’s run through my fingers and gone, you see!”
18064 holding up his dripping hand.
18065
18066 “But for your face I should think you were a little despondent,” said I.
18067
18068 “Not a bit on it, dear boy! It comes of flowing on so quiet, and of that
18069 there rippling at the boat’s head making a sort of a Sunday tune. Maybe
18070 I’m a growing a trifle old besides.”
18071
18072 He put his pipe back in his mouth with an undisturbed expression of
18073 face, and sat as composed and contented as if we were already out of
18074 England. Yet he was as submissive to a word of advice as if he had been
18075 in constant terror; for, when we ran ashore to get some bottles of beer
18076 into the boat, and he was stepping out, I hinted that I thought he would
18077 be safest where he was, and he said. “Do you, dear boy?” and quietly sat
18078 down again.
18079
18080 The air felt cold upon the river, but it was a bright day, and the
18081 sunshine was very cheering. The tide ran strong, I took care to lose
18082 none of it, and our steady stroke carried us on thoroughly well. By
18083 imperceptible degrees, as the tide ran out, we lost more and more of the
18084 nearer woods and hills, and dropped lower and lower between the muddy
18085 banks, but the tide was yet with us when we were off Gravesend. As our
18086 charge was wrapped in his cloak, I purposely passed within a boat or
18087 two’s length of the floating Custom House, and so out to catch the
18088 stream, alongside of two emigrant ships, and under the bows of a large
18089 transport with troops on the forecastle looking down at us. And soon
18090 the tide began to slacken, and the craft lying at anchor to swing,
18091 and presently they had all swung round, and the ships that were taking
18092 advantage of the new tide to get up to the Pool began to crowd upon us
18093 in a fleet, and we kept under the shore, as much out of the strength of
18094 the tide now as we could, standing carefully off from low shallows and
18095 mudbanks.
18096
18097 Our oarsmen were so fresh, by dint of having occasionally let her drive
18098 with the tide for a minute or two, that a quarter of an hour’s rest
18099 proved full as much as they wanted. We got ashore among some slippery
18100 stones while we ate and drank what we had with us, and looked about.
18101 It was like my own marsh country, flat and monotonous, and with a
18102 dim horizon; while the winding river turned and turned, and the great
18103 floating buoys upon it turned and turned, and everything else seemed
18104 stranded and still. For now the last of the fleet of ships was round
18105 the last low point we had headed; and the last green barge, straw-laden,
18106 with a brown sail, had followed; and some ballast-lighters, shaped like
18107 a child’s first rude imitation of a boat, lay low in the mud; and a
18108 little squat shoal-lighthouse on open piles stood crippled in the mud
18109 on stilts and crutches; and slimy stakes stuck out of the mud, and slimy
18110 stones stuck out of the mud, and red landmarks and tidemarks stuck
18111 out of the mud, and an old landing-stage and an old roofless building
18112 slipped into the mud, and all about us was stagnation and mud.
18113
18114 We pushed off again, and made what way we could. It was much harder work
18115 now, but Herbert and Startop persevered, and rowed and rowed and rowed
18116 until the sun went down. By that time the river had lifted us a little,
18117 so that we could see above the bank. There was the red sun, on the low
18118 level of the shore, in a purple haze, fast deepening into black; and
18119 there was the solitary flat marsh; and far away there were the rising
18120 grounds, between which and us there seemed to be no life, save here and
18121 there in the foreground a melancholy gull.
18122
18123 As the night was fast falling, and as the moon, being past the full,
18124 would not rise early, we held a little council; a short one, for clearly
18125 our course was to lie by at the first lonely tavern we could find. So,
18126 they plied their oars once more, and I looked out for anything like a
18127 house. Thus we held on, speaking little, for four or five dull miles. It
18128 was very cold, and, a collier coming by us, with her galley-fire smoking
18129 and flaring, looked like a comfortable home. The night was as dark by
18130 this time as it would be until morning; and what light we had, seemed
18131 to come more from the river than the sky, as the oars in their dipping
18132 struck at a few reflected stars.
18133
18134 At this dismal time we were evidently all possessed by the idea that
18135 we were followed. As the tide made, it flapped heavily at irregular
18136 intervals against the shore; and whenever such a sound came, one or
18137 other of us was sure to start, and look in that direction. Here and
18138 there, the set of the current had worn down the bank into a little
18139 creek, and we were all suspicious of such places, and eyed them
18140 nervously. Sometimes, “What was that ripple?” one of us would say in a
18141 low voice. Or another, “Is that a boat yonder?” And afterwards we would
18142 fall into a dead silence, and I would sit impatiently thinking with what
18143 an unusual amount of noise the oars worked in the thowels.
18144
18145 At length we descried a light and a roof, and presently afterwards ran
18146 alongside a little causeway made of stones that had been picked up hard
18147 by. Leaving the rest in the boat, I stepped ashore, and found the light
18148 to be in a window of a public-house. It was a dirty place enough, and I
18149 dare say not unknown to smuggling adventurers; but there was a good
18150 fire in the kitchen, and there were eggs and bacon to eat, and various
18151 liquors to drink. Also, there were two double-bedded rooms,--“such as
18152 they were,” the landlord said. No other company was in the house than
18153 the landlord, his wife, and a grizzled male creature, the “Jack” of the
18154 little causeway, who was as slimy and smeary as if he had been low-water
18155 mark too.
18156
18157 With this assistant, I went down to the boat again, and we all came
18158 ashore, and brought out the oars, and rudder and boat-hook, and all
18159 else, and hauled her up for the night. We made a very good meal by the
18160 kitchen fire, and then apportioned the bedrooms: Herbert and Startop
18161 were to occupy one; I and our charge the other. We found the air as
18162 carefully excluded from both, as if air were fatal to life; and there
18163 were more dirty clothes and bandboxes under the beds than I should have
18164 thought the family possessed. But we considered ourselves well off,
18165 notwithstanding, for a more solitary place we could not have found.
18166
18167 While we were comforting ourselves by the fire after our meal, the
18168 Jack--who was sitting in a corner, and who had a bloated pair of shoes
18169 on, which he had exhibited while we were eating our eggs and bacon, as
18170 interesting relics that he had taken a few days ago from the feet of
18171 a drowned seaman washed ashore--asked me if we had seen a four-oared
18172 galley going up with the tide? When I told him No, he said she must have
18173 gone down then, and yet she “took up too,” when she left there.
18174
18175 “They must ha’ thought better on’t for some reason or another,” said the
18176 Jack, “and gone down.”
18177
18178 “A four-oared galley, did you say?” said I.
18179
18180 “A four,” said the Jack, “and two sitters.”
18181
18182 “Did they come ashore here?”
18183
18184 “They put in with a stone two-gallon jar for some beer. I’d ha’ been
18185 glad to pison the beer myself,” said the Jack, “or put some rattling
18186 physic in it.”
18187
18188 “Why?”
18189
18190 “I know why,” said the Jack. He spoke in a slushy voice, as if much mud
18191 had washed into his throat.
18192
18193 “He thinks,” said the landlord, a weakly meditative man with a pale eye,
18194 who seemed to rely greatly on his Jack,--“he thinks they was, what they
18195 wasn’t.”
18196
18197 “I knows what I thinks,” observed the Jack.
18198
18199 “You thinks Custum ‘Us, Jack?” said the landlord.
18200
18201 “I do,” said the Jack.
18202
18203 “Then you’re wrong, Jack.”
18204
18205 “AM I!”
18206
18207 In the infinite meaning of his reply and his boundless confidence in
18208 his views, the Jack took one of his bloated shoes off, looked into
18209 it, knocked a few stones out of it on the kitchen floor, and put it on
18210 again. He did this with the air of a Jack who was so right that he could
18211 afford to do anything.
18212
18213 “Why, what do you make out that they done with their buttons then,
18214 Jack?” asked the landlord, vacillating weakly.
18215
18216 “Done with their buttons?” returned the Jack. “Chucked ‘em overboard.
18217 Swallered ‘em. Sowed ‘em, to come up small salad. Done with their
18218 buttons!”
18219
18220 “Don’t be cheeky, Jack,” remonstrated the landlord, in a melancholy and
18221 pathetic way.
18222
18223 “A Custum ‘Us officer knows what to do with his Buttons,” said the Jack,
18224 repeating the obnoxious word with the greatest contempt, “when they
18225 comes betwixt him and his own light. A four and two sitters don’t go
18226 hanging and hovering, up with one tide and down with another, and both
18227 with and against another, without there being Custum ‘Us at the bottom
18228 of it.” Saying which he went out in disdain; and the landlord, having no
18229 one to reply upon, found it impracticable to pursue the subject.
18230
18231 This dialogue made us all uneasy, and me very uneasy. The dismal wind
18232 was muttering round the house, the tide was flapping at the shore, and
18233 I had a feeling that we were caged and threatened. A four-oared galley
18234 hovering about in so unusual a way as to attract this notice was an ugly
18235 circumstance that I could not get rid of. When I had induced Provis to
18236 go up to bed, I went outside with my two companions (Startop by this
18237 time knew the state of the case), and held another council. Whether we
18238 should remain at the house until near the steamer’s time, which would
18239 be about one in the afternoon, or whether we should put off early in the
18240 morning, was the question we discussed. On the whole we deemed it the
18241 better course to lie where we were, until within an hour or so of the
18242 steamer’s time, and then to get out in her track, and drift easily with
18243 the tide. Having settled to do this, we returned into the house and went
18244 to bed.
18245
18246 I lay down with the greater part of my clothes on, and slept well for a
18247 few hours. When I awoke, the wind had risen, and the sign of the house
18248 (the Ship) was creaking and banging about, with noises that startled
18249 me. Rising softly, for my charge lay fast asleep, I looked out of the
18250 window. It commanded the causeway where we had hauled up our boat, and,
18251 as my eyes adapted themselves to the light of the clouded moon, I saw
18252 two men looking into her. They passed by under the window, looking at
18253 nothing else, and they did not go down to the landing-place which I
18254 could discern to be empty, but struck across the marsh in the direction
18255 of the Nore.
18256
18257 My first impulse was to call up Herbert, and show him the two men going
18258 away. But reflecting, before I got into his room, which was at the back
18259 of the house and adjoined mine, that he and Startop had had a harder day
18260 than I, and were fatigued, I forbore. Going back to my window, I could
18261 see the two men moving over the marsh. In that light, however, I soon
18262 lost them, and, feeling very cold, lay down to think of the matter, and
18263 fell asleep again.
18264
18265 We were up early. As we walked to and fro, all four together, before
18266 breakfast, I deemed it right to recount what I had seen. Again our
18267 charge was the least anxious of the party. It was very likely that the
18268 men belonged to the Custom House, he said quietly, and that they had no
18269 thought of us. I tried to persuade myself that it was so,--as, indeed,
18270 it might easily be. However, I proposed that he and I should walk away
18271 together to a distant point we could see, and that the boat should take
18272 us aboard there, or as near there as might prove feasible, at about
18273 noon. This being considered a good precaution, soon after breakfast he
18274 and I set forth, without saying anything at the tavern.
18275
18276 He smoked his pipe as we went along, and sometimes stopped to clap me on
18277 the shoulder. One would have supposed that it was I who was in danger,
18278 not he, and that he was reassuring me. We spoke very little. As we
18279 approached the point, I begged him to remain in a sheltered place, while
18280 I went on to reconnoitre; for it was towards it that the men had passed
18281 in the night. He complied, and I went on alone. There was no boat off
18282 the point, nor any boat drawn up anywhere near it, nor were there any
18283 signs of the men having embarked there. But, to be sure, the tide was
18284 high, and there might have been some footpints under water.
18285
18286 When he looked out from his shelter in the distance, and saw that I
18287 waved my hat to him to come up, he rejoined me, and there we waited;
18288 sometimes lying on the bank, wrapped in our coats, and sometimes moving
18289 about to warm ourselves, until we saw our boat coming round. We got
18290 aboard easily, and rowed out into the track of the steamer. By that time
18291 it wanted but ten minutes of one o’clock, and we began to look out for
18292 her smoke.
18293
18294 But, it was half-past one before we saw her smoke, and soon afterwards
18295 we saw behind it the smoke of another steamer. As they were coming on
18296 at full speed, we got the two bags ready, and took that opportunity
18297 of saying good-bye to Herbert and Startop. We had all shaken hands
18298 cordially, and neither Herbert’s eyes nor mine were quite dry, when I
18299 saw a four-oared galley shoot out from under the bank but a little way
18300 ahead of us, and row out into the same track.
18301
18302 A stretch of shore had been as yet between us and the steamer’s smoke,
18303 by reason of the bend and wind of the river; but now she was visible,
18304 coming head on. I called to Herbert and Startop to keep before the tide,
18305 that she might see us lying by for her, and I adjured Provis to sit
18306 quite still, wrapped in his cloak. He answered cheerily, “Trust to me,
18307 dear boy,” and sat like a statue. Meantime the galley, which was very
18308 skilfully handled, had crossed us, let us come up with her, and fallen
18309 alongside. Leaving just room enough for the play of the oars, she kept
18310 alongside, drifting when we drifted, and pulling a stroke or two when we
18311 pulled. Of the two sitters one held the rudder-lines, and looked at us
18312 attentively,--as did all the rowers; the other sitter was wrapped up,
18313 much as Provis was, and seemed to shrink, and whisper some instruction
18314 to the steerer as he looked at us. Not a word was spoken in either boat.
18315
18316 Startop could make out, after a few minutes, which steamer was first,
18317 and gave me the word “Hamburg,” in a low voice, as we sat face to face.
18318 She was nearing us very fast, and the beating of her peddles grew louder
18319 and louder. I felt as if her shadow were absolutely upon us, when the
18320 galley hailed us. I answered.
18321
18322 “You have a returned Transport there,” said the man who held the lines.
18323 “That’s the man, wrapped in the cloak. His name is Abel Magwitch,
18324 otherwise Provis. I apprehend that man, and call upon him to surrender,
18325 and you to assist.”
18326
18327 At the same moment, without giving any audible direction to his crew,
18328 he ran the galley abroad of us. They had pulled one sudden stroke ahead,
18329 had got their oars in, had run athwart us, and were holding on to
18330 our gunwale, before we knew what they were doing. This caused great
18331 confusion on board the steamer, and I heard them calling to us, and
18332 heard the order given to stop the paddles, and heard them stop, but felt
18333 her driving down upon us irresistibly. In the same moment, I saw the
18334 steersman of the galley lay his hand on his prisoner’s shoulder, and saw
18335 that both boats were swinging round with the force of the tide, and
18336 saw that all hands on board the steamer were running forward quite
18337 frantically. Still, in the same moment, I saw the prisoner start
18338 up, lean across his captor, and pull the cloak from the neck of the
18339 shrinking sitter in the galley. Still in the same moment, I saw that the
18340 face disclosed, was the face of the other convict of long ago. Still, in
18341 the same moment, I saw the face tilt backward with a white terror on it
18342 that I shall never forget, and heard a great cry on board the steamer,
18343 and a loud splash in the water, and felt the boat sink from under me.
18344
18345 It was but for an instant that I seemed to struggle with a thousand
18346 mill-weirs and a thousand flashes of light; that instant past, I was
18347 taken on board the galley. Herbert was there, and Startop was there; but
18348 our boat was gone, and the two convicts were gone.
18349
18350 What with the cries aboard the steamer, and the furious blowing off of
18351 her steam, and her driving on, and our driving on, I could not at first
18352 distinguish sky from water or shore from shore; but the crew of the
18353 galley righted her with great speed, and, pulling certain swift strong
18354 strokes ahead, lay upon their oars, every man looking silently and
18355 eagerly at the water astern. Presently a dark object was seen in it,
18356 bearing towards us on the tide. No man spoke, but the steersman held up
18357 his hand, and all softly backed water, and kept the boat straight and
18358 true before it. As it came nearer, I saw it to be Magwitch, swimming,
18359 but not swimming freely. He was taken on board, and instantly manacled
18360 at the wrists and ankles.
18361
18362 The galley was kept steady, and the silent, eager look-out at the water
18363 was resumed. But, the Rotterdam steamer now came up, and apparently not
18364 understanding what had happened, came on at speed. By the time she had
18365 been hailed and stopped, both steamers were drifting away from us, and
18366 we were rising and falling in a troubled wake of water. The look-out was
18367 kept, long after all was still again and the two steamers were gone; but
18368 everybody knew that it was hopeless now.
18369
18370 At length we gave it up, and pulled under the shore towards the tavern
18371 we had lately left, where we were received with no little surprise. Here
18372 I was able to get some comforts for Magwitch,--Provis no longer,--who
18373 had received some very severe injury in the Chest, and a deep cut in the
18374 head.
18375
18376 He told me that he believed himself to have gone under the keel of the
18377 steamer, and to have been struck on the head in rising. The injury to
18378 his chest (which rendered his breathing extremely painful) he thought
18379 he had received against the side of the galley. He added that he did not
18380 pretend to say what he might or might not have done to Compeyson, but
18381 that, in the moment of his laying his hand on his cloak to identify him,
18382 that villain had staggered up and staggered back, and they had both gone
18383 overboard together, when the sudden wrenching of him (Magwitch) out of
18384 our boat, and the endeavor of his captor to keep him in it, had capsized
18385 us. He told me in a whisper that they had gone down fiercely locked in
18386 each other’s arms, and that there had been a struggle under water, and
18387 that he had disengaged himself, struck out, and swum away.
18388
18389 I never had any reason to doubt the exact truth of what he thus told me.
18390 The officer who steered the galley gave the same account of their going
18391 overboard.
18392
18393 When I asked this officer’s permission to change the prisoner’s
18394 wet clothes by purchasing any spare garments I could get at the
18395 public-house, he gave it readily: merely observing that he must take
18396 charge of everything his prisoner had about him. So the pocket-book
18397 which had once been in my hands passed into the officer’s. He further
18398 gave me leave to accompany the prisoner to London; but declined to
18399 accord that grace to my two friends.
18400
18401 The Jack at the Ship was instructed where the drowned man had gone
18402 down, and undertook to search for the body in the places where it was
18403 likeliest to come ashore. His interest in its recovery seemed to me to
18404 be much heightened when he heard that it had stockings on. Probably, it
18405 took about a dozen drowned men to fit him out completely; and that may
18406 have been the reason why the different articles of his dress were in
18407 various stages of decay.
18408
18409 We remained at the public-house until the tide turned, and then Magwitch
18410 was carried down to the galley and put on board. Herbert and Startop
18411 were to get to London by land, as soon as they could. We had a doleful
18412 parting, and when I took my place by Magwitch’s side, I felt that that
18413 was my place henceforth while he lived.
18414
18415 For now, my repugnance to him had all melted away; and in the hunted,
18416 wounded, shackled creature who held my hand in his, I only saw a man
18417 who had meant to be my benefactor, and who had felt affectionately,
18418 gratefully, and generously, towards me with great constancy through a
18419 series of years. I only saw in him a much better man than I had been to
18420 Joe.
18421
18422 His breathing became more difficult and painful as the night drew on,
18423 and often he could not repress a groan. I tried to rest him on the arm
18424 I could use, in any easy position; but it was dreadful to think that
18425 I could not be sorry at heart for his being badly hurt, since it was
18426 unquestionably best that he should die. That there were, still living,
18427 people enough who were able and willing to identify him, I could not
18428 doubt. That he would be leniently treated, I could not hope. He who had
18429 been presented in the worst light at his trial, who had since broken
18430 prison and had been tried again, who had returned from transportation
18431 under a life sentence, and who had occasioned the death of the man who
18432 was the cause of his arrest.
18433
18434 As we returned towards the setting sun we had yesterday left behind us,
18435 and as the stream of our hopes seemed all running back, I told him how
18436 grieved I was to think that he had come home for my sake.
18437
18438 “Dear boy,” he answered, “I’m quite content to take my chance. I’ve seen
18439 my boy, and he can be a gentleman without me.”
18440
18441 No. I had thought about that, while we had been there side by side. No.
18442 Apart from any inclinations of my own, I understood Wemmick’s hint now.
18443 I foresaw that, being convicted, his possessions would be forfeited to
18444 the Crown.
18445
18446 “Lookee here, dear boy,” said he “It’s best as a gentleman should not be
18447 knowed to belong to me now. Only come to see me as if you come by chance
18448 alonger Wemmick. Sit where I can see you when I am swore to, for the
18449 last o’ many times, and I don’t ask no more.”
18450
18451 “I will never stir from your side,” said I, “when I am suffered to be
18452 near you. Please God, I will be as true to you as you have been to me!”
18453
18454 I felt his hand tremble as it held mine, and he turned his face away
18455 as he lay in the bottom of the boat, and I heard that old sound in his
18456 throat,--softened now, like all the rest of him. It was a good thing
18457 that he had touched this point, for it put into my mind what I might not
18458 otherwise have thought of until too late,--that he need never know how
18459 his hopes of enriching me had perished.
18460
18461
18462
18463
18464 Chapter LV
18465
18466 He was taken to the Police Court next day, and would have been
18467 immediately committed for trial, but that it was necessary to send down
18468 for an old officer of the prison-ship from which he had once escaped, to
18469 speak to his identity. Nobody doubted it; but Compeyson, who had meant
18470 to depose to it, was tumbling on the tides, dead, and it happened that
18471 there was not at that time any prison officer in London who could give
18472 the required evidence. I had gone direct to Mr. Jaggers at his private
18473 house, on my arrival over night, to retain his assistance, and Mr.
18474 Jaggers on the prisoner’s behalf would admit nothing. It was the sole
18475 resource; for he told me that the case must be over in five minutes
18476 when the witness was there, and that no power on earth could prevent its
18477 going against us.
18478
18479 I imparted to Mr. Jaggers my design of keeping him in ignorance of the
18480 fate of his wealth. Mr. Jaggers was querulous and angry with me for
18481 having “let it slip through my fingers,” and said we must memorialize
18482 by and by, and try at all events for some of it. But he did not conceal
18483 from me that, although there might be many cases in which the forfeiture
18484 would not be exacted, there were no circumstances in this case to make
18485 it one of them. I understood that very well. I was not related to the
18486 outlaw, or connected with him by any recognizable tie; he had put his
18487 hand to no writing or settlement in my favor before his apprehension,
18488 and to do so now would be idle. I had no claim, and I finally resolved,
18489 and ever afterwards abided by the resolution, that my heart should never
18490 be sickened with the hopeless task of attempting to establish one.
18491
18492 There appeared to be reason for supposing that the drowned informer
18493 had hoped for a reward out of this forfeiture, and had obtained some
18494 accurate knowledge of Magwitch’s affairs. When his body was found, many
18495 miles from the scene of his death, and so horribly disfigured that he
18496 was only recognizable by the contents of his pockets, notes were still
18497 legible, folded in a case he carried. Among these were the name of a
18498 banking-house in New South Wales, where a sum of money was, and the
18499 designation of certain lands of considerable value. Both these heads of
18500 information were in a list that Magwitch, while in prison, gave to Mr.
18501 Jaggers, of the possessions he supposed I should inherit. His ignorance,
18502 poor fellow, at last served him; he never mistrusted but that my
18503 inheritance was quite safe, with Mr. Jaggers’s aid.
18504
18505 After three days’ delay, during which the crown prosecution stood over
18506 for the production of the witness from the prison-ship, the witness
18507 came, and completed the easy case. He was committed to take his trial at
18508 the next Sessions, which would come on in a month.
18509
18510 It was at this dark time of my life that Herbert returned home one
18511 evening, a good deal cast down, and said,--
18512
18513 “My dear Handel, I fear I shall soon have to leave you.”
18514
18515 His partner having prepared me for that, I was less surprised than he
18516 thought.
18517
18518 “We shall lose a fine opportunity if I put off going to Cairo, and I am
18519 very much afraid I must go, Handel, when you most need me.”
18520
18521 “Herbert, I shall always need you, because I shall always love you; but
18522 my need is no greater now than at another time.”
18523
18524 “You will be so lonely.”
18525
18526 “I have not leisure to think of that,” said I. “You know that I am
18527 always with him to the full extent of the time allowed, and that I
18528 should be with him all day long, if I could. And when I come away from
18529 him, you know that my thoughts are with him.”
18530
18531 The dreadful condition to which he was brought, was so appalling to both
18532 of us, that we could not refer to it in plainer words.
18533
18534 “My dear fellow,” said Herbert, “let the near prospect of our
18535 separation--for, it is very near--be my justification for troubling you
18536 about yourself. Have you thought of your future?”
18537
18538 “No, for I have been afraid to think of any future.”
18539
18540 “But yours cannot be dismissed; indeed, my dear dear Handel, it must not
18541 be dismissed. I wish you would enter on it now, as far as a few friendly
18542 words go, with me.”
18543
18544 “I will,” said I.
18545
18546 “In this branch house of ours, Handel, we must have a--”
18547
18548 I saw that his delicacy was avoiding the right word, so I said, “A
18549 clerk.”
18550
18551 “A clerk. And I hope it is not at all unlikely that he may expand (as
18552 a clerk of your acquaintance has expanded) into a partner. Now,
18553 Handel,--in short, my dear boy, will you come to me?”
18554
18555 There was something charmingly cordial and engaging in the manner in
18556 which after saying “Now, Handel,” as if it were the grave beginning of
18557 a portentous business exordium, he had suddenly given up that tone,
18558 stretched out his honest hand, and spoken like a schoolboy.
18559
18560 “Clara and I have talked about it again and again,” Herbert pursued,
18561 “and the dear little thing begged me only this evening, with tears in
18562 her eyes, to say to you that, if you will live with us when we come
18563 together, she will do her best to make you happy, and to convince her
18564 husband’s friend that he is her friend too. We should get on so well,
18565 Handel!”
18566
18567 I thanked her heartily, and I thanked him heartily, but said I could not
18568 yet make sure of joining him as he so kindly offered. Firstly, my
18569 mind was too preoccupied to be able to take in the subject clearly.
18570 Secondly,--Yes! Secondly, there was a vague something lingering in my
18571 thoughts that will come out very near the end of this slight narrative.
18572
18573 “But if you thought, Herbert, that you could, without doing any injury
18574 to your business, leave the question open for a little while--”
18575
18576 “For any while,” cried Herbert. “Six months, a year!”
18577
18578 “Not so long as that,” said I. “Two or three months at most.”
18579
18580 Herbert was highly delighted when we shook hands on this arrangement,
18581 and said he could now take courage to tell me that he believed he must
18582 go away at the end of the week.
18583
18584 “And Clara?” said I.
18585
18586 “The dear little thing,” returned Herbert, “holds dutifully to her
18587 father as long as he lasts; but he won’t last long. Mrs. Whimple
18588 confides to me that he is certainly going.”
18589
18590 “Not to say an unfeeling thing,” said I, “he cannot do better than go.”
18591
18592 “I am afraid that must be admitted,” said Herbert; “and then I shall
18593 come back for the dear little thing, and the dear little thing and I
18594 will walk quietly into the nearest church. Remember! The blessed darling
18595 comes of no family, my dear Handel, and never looked into the red book,
18596 and hasn’t a notion about her grandpapa. What a fortune for the son of
18597 my mother!”
18598
18599 On the Saturday in that same week, I took my leave of Herbert,--full
18600 of bright hope, but sad and sorry to leave me,--as he sat on one of the
18601 seaport mail coaches. I went into a coffee-house to write a little note
18602 to Clara, telling her he had gone off, sending his love to her over and
18603 over again, and then went to my lonely home,--if it deserved the name;
18604 for it was now no home to me, and I had no home anywhere.
18605
18606 On the stairs I encountered Wemmick, who was coming down, after an
18607 unsuccessful application of his knuckles to my door. I had not seen him
18608 alone since the disastrous issue of the attempted flight; and he had
18609 come, in his private and personal capacity, to say a few words of
18610 explanation in reference to that failure.
18611
18612 “The late Compeyson,” said Wemmick, “had by little and little got at the
18613 bottom of half of the regular business now transacted; and it was from
18614 the talk of some of his people in trouble (some of his people being
18615 always in trouble) that I heard what I did. I kept my ears open, seeming
18616 to have them shut, until I heard that he was absent, and I thought that
18617 would be the best time for making the attempt. I can only suppose now,
18618 that it was a part of his policy, as a very clever man, habitually to
18619 deceive his own instruments. You don’t blame me, I hope, Mr. Pip? I am
18620 sure I tried to serve you, with all my heart.”
18621
18622 “I am as sure of that, Wemmick, as you can be, and I thank you most
18623 earnestly for all your interest and friendship.”
18624
18625 “Thank you, thank you very much. It’s a bad job,” said Wemmick,
18626 scratching his head, “and I assure you I haven’t been so cut up for a
18627 long time. What I look at is the sacrifice of so much portable property.
18628 Dear me!”
18629
18630 “What I think of, Wemmick, is the poor owner of the property.”
18631
18632 “Yes, to be sure,” said Wemmick. “Of course, there can be no objection
18633 to your being sorry for him, and I’d put down a five-pound note myself
18634 to get him out of it. But what I look at is this. The late Compeyson
18635 having been beforehand with him in intelligence of his return, and being
18636 so determined to bring him to book, I do not think he could have been
18637 saved. Whereas, the portable property certainly could have been saved.
18638 That’s the difference between the property and the owner, don’t you
18639 see?”
18640
18641 I invited Wemmick to come upstairs, and refresh himself with a glass
18642 of grog before walking to Walworth. He accepted the invitation. While he
18643 was drinking his moderate allowance, he said, with nothing to lead up to
18644 it, and after having appeared rather fidgety,--
18645
18646 “What do you think of my meaning to take a holiday on Monday, Mr. Pip?”
18647
18648 “Why, I suppose you have not done such a thing these twelve months.”
18649
18650 “These twelve years, more likely,” said Wemmick. “Yes. I’m going to take
18651 a holiday. More than that; I’m going to take a walk. More than that; I’m
18652 going to ask you to take a walk with me.”
18653
18654 I was about to excuse myself, as being but a bad companion just then,
18655 when Wemmick anticipated me.
18656
18657 “I know your engagements,” said he, “and I know you are out of sorts,
18658 Mr. Pip. But if you could oblige me, I should take it as a kindness.
18659 It ain’t a long walk, and it’s an early one. Say it might occupy you
18660 (including breakfast on the walk) from eight to twelve. Couldn’t you
18661 stretch a point and manage it?”
18662
18663 He had done so much for me at various times, that this was very little
18664 to do for him. I said I could manage it,--would manage it,--and he was
18665 so very much pleased by my acquiescence, that I was pleased too. At his
18666 particular request, I appointed to call for him at the Castle at half
18667 past eight on Monday morning, and so we parted for the time.
18668
18669 Punctual to my appointment, I rang at the Castle gate on the Monday
18670 morning, and was received by Wemmick himself, who struck me as looking
18671 tighter than usual, and having a sleeker hat on. Within, there were two
18672 glasses of rum and milk prepared, and two biscuits. The Aged must have
18673 been stirring with the lark, for, glancing into the perspective of his
18674 bedroom, I observed that his bed was empty.
18675
18676 When we had fortified ourselves with the rum and milk and biscuits, and
18677 were going out for the walk with that training preparation on us, I was
18678 considerably surprised to see Wemmick take up a fishing-rod, and put
18679 it over his shoulder. “Why, we are not going fishing!” said I. “No,”
18680 returned Wemmick, “but I like to walk with one.”
18681
18682 I thought this odd; however, I said nothing, and we set off. We went
18683 towards Camberwell Green, and when we were thereabouts, Wemmick said
18684 suddenly,--
18685
18686 “Halloa! Here’s a church!”
18687
18688 There was nothing very surprising in that; but again, I was rather
18689 surprised, when he said, as if he were animated by a brilliant idea,--
18690
18691 “Let’s go in!”
18692
18693 We went in, Wemmick leaving his fishing-rod in the porch, and looked all
18694 round. In the mean time, Wemmick was diving into his coat-pockets, and
18695 getting something out of paper there.
18696
18697 “Halloa!” said he. “Here’s a couple of pair of gloves! Let’s put ‘em
18698 on!”
18699
18700 As the gloves were white kid gloves, and as the post-office was widened
18701 to its utmost extent, I now began to have my strong suspicions. They
18702 were strengthened into certainty when I beheld the Aged enter at a side
18703 door, escorting a lady.
18704
18705 “Halloa!” said Wemmick. “Here’s Miss Skiffins! Let’s have a wedding.”
18706
18707 That discreet damsel was attired as usual, except that she was now
18708 engaged in substituting for her green kid gloves a pair of white. The
18709 Aged was likewise occupied in preparing a similar sacrifice for
18710 the altar of Hymen. The old gentleman, however, experienced so much
18711 difficulty in getting his gloves on, that Wemmick found it necessary
18712 to put him with his back against a pillar, and then to get behind the
18713 pillar himself and pull away at them, while I for my part held the old
18714 gentleman round the waist, that he might present an equal and safe
18715 resistance. By dint of this ingenious scheme, his gloves were got on to
18716 perfection.
18717
18718 The clerk and clergyman then appearing, we were ranged in order at
18719 those fatal rails. True to his notion of seeming to do it all without
18720 preparation, I heard Wemmick say to himself, as he took something out of
18721 his waistcoat-pocket before the service began, “Halloa! Here’s a ring!”
18722
18723 I acted in the capacity of backer, or best-man, to the bridegroom; while
18724 a little limp pew-opener in a soft bonnet like a baby’s, made a feint
18725 of being the bosom friend of Miss Skiffins. The responsibility of giving
18726 the lady away devolved upon the Aged, which led to the clergyman’s being
18727 unintentionally scandalized, and it happened thus. When he said, “Who
18728 giveth this woman to be married to this man?” the old gentleman, not in
18729 the least knowing what point of the ceremony we had arrived at, stood
18730 most amiably beaming at the ten commandments. Upon which, the clergyman
18731 said again, “WHO giveth this woman to be married to this man?” The old
18732 gentleman being still in a state of most estimable unconsciousness, the
18733 bridegroom cried out in his accustomed voice, “Now Aged P. you know; who
18734 giveth?” To which the Aged replied with great briskness, before saying
18735 that he gave, “All right, John, all right, my boy!” And the clergyman
18736 came to so gloomy a pause upon it, that I had doubts for the moment
18737 whether we should get completely married that day.
18738
18739 It was completely done, however, and when we were going out of church
18740 Wemmick took the cover off the font, and put his white gloves in it, and
18741 put the cover on again. Mrs. Wemmick, more heedful of the future, put
18742 her white gloves in her pocket and assumed her green. “Now, Mr. Pip,”
18743 said Wemmick, triumphantly shouldering the fishing-rod as we came
18744 out, “let me ask you whether anybody would suppose this to be a
18745 wedding-party!”
18746
18747 Breakfast had been ordered at a pleasant little tavern, a mile or so
18748 away upon the rising ground beyond the green; and there was a bagatelle
18749 board in the room, in case we should desire to unbend our minds after
18750 the solemnity. It was pleasant to observe that Mrs. Wemmick no longer
18751 unwound Wemmick’s arm when it adapted itself to her figure, but sat in a
18752 high-backed chair against the wall, like a violoncello in its case, and
18753 submitted to be embraced as that melodious instrument might have done.
18754
18755 We had an excellent breakfast, and when any one declined anything on
18756 table, Wemmick said, “Provided by contract, you know; don’t be afraid of
18757 it!” I drank to the new couple, drank to the Aged, drank to the Castle,
18758 saluted the bride at parting, and made myself as agreeable as I could.
18759
18760 Wemmick came down to the door with me, and I again shook hands with him,
18761 and wished him joy.
18762
18763 “Thankee!” said Wemmick, rubbing his hands. “She’s such a manager
18764 of fowls, you have no idea. You shall have some eggs, and judge for
18765 yourself. I say, Mr. Pip!” calling me back, and speaking low. “This is
18766 altogether a Walworth sentiment, please.”
18767
18768 “I understand. Not to be mentioned in Little Britain,” said I.
18769
18770 Wemmick nodded. “After what you let out the other day, Mr. Jaggers
18771 may as well not know of it. He might think my brain was softening, or
18772 something of the kind.”
18773
18774
18775
18776
18777 Chapter LVI
18778
18779 He lay in prison very ill, during the whole interval between his
18780 committal for trial and the coming round of the Sessions. He had broken
18781 two ribs, they had wounded one of his lungs, and he breathed with great
18782 pain and difficulty, which increased daily. It was a consequence of his
18783 hurt that he spoke so low as to be scarcely audible; therefore he spoke
18784 very little. But he was ever ready to listen to me; and it became the
18785 first duty of my life to say to him, and read to him, what I knew he
18786 ought to hear.
18787
18788 Being far too ill to remain in the common prison, he was removed, after
18789 the first day or so, into the infirmary. This gave me opportunities
18790 of being with him that I could not otherwise have had. And but for
18791 his illness he would have been put in irons, for he was regarded as a
18792 determined prison-breaker, and I know not what else.
18793
18794 Although I saw him every day, it was for only a short time; hence, the
18795 regularly recurring spaces of our separation were long enough to record
18796 on his face any slight changes that occurred in his physical state. I
18797 do not recollect that I once saw any change in it for the better; he
18798 wasted, and became slowly weaker and worse, day by day, from the day
18799 when the prison door closed upon him.
18800
18801 The kind of submission or resignation that he showed was that of a man
18802 who was tired out. I sometimes derived an impression, from his manner
18803 or from a whispered word or two which escaped him, that he pondered
18804 over the question whether he might have been a better man under better
18805 circumstances. But he never justified himself by a hint tending that
18806 way, or tried to bend the past out of its eternal shape.
18807
18808 It happened on two or three occasions in my presence, that his desperate
18809 reputation was alluded to by one or other of the people in attendance on
18810 him. A smile crossed his face then, and he turned his eyes on me with
18811 a trustful look, as if he were confident that I had seen some small
18812 redeeming touch in him, even so long ago as when I was a little child.
18813 As to all the rest, he was humble and contrite, and I never knew him
18814 complain.
18815
18816 When the Sessions came round, Mr. Jaggers caused an application to be
18817 made for the postponement of his trial until the following Sessions. It
18818 was obviously made with the assurance that he could not live so long,
18819 and was refused. The trial came on at once, and, when he was put to the
18820 bar, he was seated in a chair. No objection was made to my getting
18821 close to the dock, on the outside of it, and holding the hand that he
18822 stretched forth to me.
18823
18824 The trial was very short and very clear. Such things as could be said
18825 for him were said,--how he had taken to industrious habits, and had
18826 thriven lawfully and reputably. But nothing could unsay the fact that
18827 he had returned, and was there in presence of the Judge and Jury. It was
18828 impossible to try him for that, and do otherwise than find him guilty.
18829
18830 At that time, it was the custom (as I learnt from my terrible experience
18831 of that Sessions) to devote a concluding day to the passing of
18832 Sentences, and to make a finishing effect with the Sentence of Death.
18833 But for the indelible picture that my remembrance now holds before me,
18834 I could scarcely believe, even as I write these words, that I saw
18835 two-and-thirty men and women put before the Judge to receive that
18836 sentence together. Foremost among the two-and-thirty was he; seated,
18837 that he might get breath enough to keep life in him.
18838
18839 The whole scene starts out again in the vivid colors of the moment, down
18840 to the drops of April rain on the windows of the court, glittering in
18841 the rays of April sun. Penned in the dock, as I again stood outside it
18842 at the corner with his hand in mine, were the two-and-thirty men
18843 and women; some defiant, some stricken with terror, some sobbing and
18844 weeping, some covering their faces, some staring gloomily about. There
18845 had been shrieks from among the women convicts; but they had been
18846 stilled, and a hush had succeeded. The sheriffs with their great chains
18847 and nosegays, other civic gewgaws and monsters, criers, ushers, a great
18848 gallery full of people,--a large theatrical audience,--looked on, as the
18849 two-and-thirty and the Judge were solemnly confronted. Then the Judge
18850 addressed them. Among the wretched creatures before him whom he must
18851 single out for special address was one who almost from his infancy had
18852 been an offender against the laws; who, after repeated imprisonments and
18853 punishments, had been at length sentenced to exile for a term of years;
18854 and who, under circumstances of great violence and daring, had made his
18855 escape and been re-sentenced to exile for life. That miserable man would
18856 seem for a time to have become convinced of his errors, when far removed
18857 from the scenes of his old offences, and to have lived a peaceable and
18858 honest life. But in a fatal moment, yielding to those propensities and
18859 passions, the indulgence of which had so long rendered him a scourge to
18860 society, he had quitted his haven of rest and repentance, and had
18861 come back to the country where he was proscribed. Being here presently
18862 denounced, he had for a time succeeded in evading the officers of
18863 Justice, but being at length seized while in the act of flight, he had
18864 resisted them, and had--he best knew whether by express design, or in
18865 the blindness of his hardihood--caused the death of his denouncer, to
18866 whom his whole career was known. The appointed punishment for his return
18867 to the land that had cast him out, being Death, and his case being this
18868 aggravated case, he must prepare himself to Die.
18869
18870 The sun was striking in at the great windows of the court, through the
18871 glittering drops of rain upon the glass, and it made a broad shaft of
18872 light between the two-and-thirty and the Judge, linking both together,
18873 and perhaps reminding some among the audience how both were passing on,
18874 with absolute equality, to the greater Judgment that knoweth all things,
18875 and cannot err. Rising for a moment, a distinct speck of face in this
18876 way of light, the prisoner said, “My Lord, I have received my sentence
18877 of Death from the Almighty, but I bow to yours,” and sat down again.
18878 There was some hushing, and the Judge went on with what he had to say
18879 to the rest. Then they were all formally doomed, and some of them were
18880 supported out, and some of them sauntered out with a haggard look of
18881 bravery, and a few nodded to the gallery, and two or three shook hands,
18882 and others went out chewing the fragments of herb they had taken from
18883 the sweet herbs lying about. He went last of all, because of having to
18884 be helped from his chair, and to go very slowly; and he held my hand
18885 while all the others were removed, and while the audience got up
18886 (putting their dresses right, as they might at church or elsewhere), and
18887 pointed down at this criminal or at that, and most of all at him and me.
18888
18889 I earnestly hoped and prayed that he might die before the Recorder’s
18890 Report was made; but, in the dread of his lingering on, I began that
18891 night to write out a petition to the Home Secretary of State, setting
18892 forth my knowledge of him, and how it was that he had come back for my
18893 sake. I wrote it as fervently and pathetically as I could; and when I
18894 had finished it and sent it in, I wrote out other petitions to such men
18895 in authority as I hoped were the most merciful, and drew up one to the
18896 Crown itself. For several days and nights after he was sentenced I took
18897 no rest except when I fell asleep in my chair, but was wholly absorbed
18898 in these appeals. And after I had sent them in, I could not keep away
18899 from the places where they were, but felt as if they were more
18900 hopeful and less desperate when I was near them. In this unreasonable
18901 restlessness and pain of mind I would roam the streets of an evening,
18902 wandering by those offices and houses where I had left the petitions. To
18903 the present hour, the weary western streets of London on a cold, dusty
18904 spring night, with their ranges of stern, shut-up mansions, and their
18905 long rows of lamps, are melancholy to me from this association.
18906
18907 The daily visits I could make him were shortened now, and he was more
18908 strictly kept. Seeing, or fancying, that I was suspected of an intention
18909 of carrying poison to him, I asked to be searched before I sat down
18910 at his bedside, and told the officer who was always there, that I was
18911 willing to do anything that would assure him of the singleness of my
18912 designs. Nobody was hard with him or with me. There was duty to be
18913 done, and it was done, but not harshly. The officer always gave me the
18914 assurance that he was worse, and some other sick prisoners in the
18915 room, and some other prisoners who attended on them as sick nurses,
18916 (malefactors, but not incapable of kindness, God be thanked!) always
18917 joined in the same report.
18918
18919 As the days went on, I noticed more and more that he would lie placidly
18920 looking at the white ceiling, with an absence of light in his face
18921 until some word of mine brightened it for an instant, and then it would
18922 subside again. Sometimes he was almost or quite unable to speak, then
18923 he would answer me with slight pressures on my hand, and I grew to
18924 understand his meaning very well.
18925
18926 The number of the days had risen to ten, when I saw a greater change
18927 in him than I had seen yet. His eyes were turned towards the door, and
18928 lighted up as I entered.
18929
18930 “Dear boy,” he said, as I sat down by his bed: “I thought you was late.
18931 But I knowed you couldn’t be that.”
18932
18933 “It is just the time,” said I. “I waited for it at the gate.”
18934
18935 “You always waits at the gate; don’t you, dear boy?”
18936
18937 “Yes. Not to lose a moment of the time.”
18938
18939 “Thank’ee dear boy, thank’ee. God bless you! You’ve never deserted me,
18940 dear boy.”
18941
18942 I pressed his hand in silence, for I could not forget that I had once
18943 meant to desert him.
18944
18945 “And what’s the best of all,” he said, “you’ve been more comfortable
18946 alonger me, since I was under a dark cloud, than when the sun shone.
18947 That’s best of all.”
18948
18949 He lay on his back, breathing with great difficulty. Do what he would,
18950 and love me though he did, the light left his face ever and again, and a
18951 film came over the placid look at the white ceiling.
18952
18953 “Are you in much pain to-day?”
18954
18955 “I don’t complain of none, dear boy.”
18956
18957 “You never do complain.”
18958
18959 He had spoken his last words. He smiled, and I understood his touch to
18960 mean that he wished to lift my hand, and lay it on his breast. I laid it
18961 there, and he smiled again, and put both his hands upon it.
18962
18963 The allotted time ran out, while we were thus; but, looking round, I
18964 found the governor of the prison standing near me, and he whispered,
18965 “You needn’t go yet.” I thanked him gratefully, and asked, “Might I
18966 speak to him, if he can hear me?”
18967
18968 The governor stepped aside, and beckoned the officer away. The change,
18969 though it was made without noise, drew back the film from the placid
18970 look at the white ceiling, and he looked most affectionately at me.
18971
18972 “Dear Magwitch, I must tell you now, at last. You understand what I
18973 say?”
18974
18975 A gentle pressure on my hand.
18976
18977 “You had a child once, whom you loved and lost.”
18978
18979 A stronger pressure on my hand.
18980
18981 “She lived, and found powerful friends. She is living now. She is a lady
18982 and very beautiful. And I love her!”
18983
18984 With a last faint effort, which would have been powerless but for my
18985 yielding to it and assisting it, he raised my hand to his lips. Then,
18986 he gently let it sink upon his breast again, with his own hands lying on
18987 it. The placid look at the white ceiling came back, and passed away, and
18988 his head dropped quietly on his breast.
18989
18990 Mindful, then, of what we had read together, I thought of the two men
18991 who went up into the Temple to pray, and I knew there were no better
18992 words that I could say beside his bed, than “O Lord, be merciful to him
18993 a sinner!”
18994
18995
18996
18997
18998 Chapter LVII
18999
19000 Now that I was left wholly to myself, I gave notice of my intention
19001 to quit the chambers in the Temple as soon as my tenancy could legally
19002 determine, and in the meanwhile to underlet them. At once I put bills
19003 up in the windows; for, I was in debt, and had scarcely any money, and
19004 began to be seriously alarmed by the state of my affairs. I ought
19005 rather to write that I should have been alarmed if I had had energy and
19006 concentration enough to help me to the clear perception of any truth
19007 beyond the fact that I was falling very ill. The late stress upon me had
19008 enabled me to put off illness, but not to put it away; I knew that it
19009 was coming on me now, and I knew very little else, and was even careless
19010 as to that.
19011
19012 For a day or two, I lay on the sofa, or on the floor,--anywhere,
19013 according as I happened to sink down,--with a heavy head and aching
19014 limbs, and no purpose, and no power. Then there came, one night which
19015 appeared of great duration, and which teemed with anxiety and horror;
19016 and when in the morning I tried to sit up in my bed and think of it, I
19017 found I could not do so.
19018
19019 Whether I really had been down in Garden Court in the dead of the night,
19020 groping about for the boat that I supposed to be there; whether I had
19021 two or three times come to myself on the staircase with great terror,
19022 not knowing how I had got out of bed; whether I had found myself
19023 lighting the lamp, possessed by the idea that he was coming up
19024 the stairs, and that the lights were blown out; whether I had been
19025 inexpressibly harassed by the distracted talking, laughing, and groaning
19026 of some one, and had half suspected those sounds to be of my own making;
19027 whether there had been a closed iron furnace in a dark corner of
19028 the room, and a voice had called out, over and over again, that Miss
19029 Havisham was consuming within it,--these were things that I tried to
19030 settle with myself and get into some order, as I lay that morning on
19031 my bed. But the vapor of a limekiln would come between me and them,
19032 disordering them all, and it was through the vapor at last that I saw
19033 two men looking at me.
19034
19035 “What do you want?” I asked, starting; “I don’t know you.”
19036
19037 “Well, sir,” returned one of them, bending down and touching me on the
19038 shoulder, “this is a matter that you’ll soon arrange, I dare say, but
19039 you’re arrested.”
19040
19041 “What is the debt?”
19042
19043 “Hundred and twenty-three pound, fifteen, six. Jeweller’s account, I
19044 think.”
19045
19046 “What is to be done?”
19047
19048 “You had better come to my house,” said the man. “I keep a very nice
19049 house.”
19050
19051 I made some attempt to get up and dress myself. When I next attended
19052 to them, they were standing a little off from the bed, looking at me. I
19053 still lay there.
19054
19055 “You see my state,” said I. “I would come with you if I could; but
19056 indeed I am quite unable. If you take me from here, I think I shall die
19057 by the way.”
19058
19059 Perhaps they replied, or argued the point, or tried to encourage me to
19060 believe that I was better than I thought. Forasmuch as they hang in
19061 my memory by only this one slender thread, I don’t know what they did,
19062 except that they forbore to remove me.
19063
19064 That I had a fever and was avoided, that I suffered greatly, that
19065 I often lost my reason, that the time seemed interminable, that I
19066 confounded impossible existences with my own identity; that I was a
19067 brick in the house-wall, and yet entreating to be released from the
19068 giddy place where the builders had set me; that I was a steel beam of a
19069 vast engine, clashing and whirling over a gulf, and yet that I implored
19070 in my own person to have the engine stopped, and my part in it hammered
19071 off; that I passed through these phases of disease, I know of my own
19072 remembrance, and did in some sort know at the time. That I sometimes
19073 struggled with real people, in the belief that they were murderers, and
19074 that I would all at once comprehend that they meant to do me good, and
19075 would then sink exhausted in their arms, and suffer them to lay me
19076 down, I also knew at the time. But, above all, I knew that there was a
19077 constant tendency in all these people,--who, when I was very ill, would
19078 present all kinds of extraordinary transformations of the human face,
19079 and would be much dilated in size,--above all, I say, I knew that there
19080 was an extraordinary tendency in all these people, sooner or later, to
19081 settle down into the likeness of Joe.
19082
19083 After I had turned the worst point of my illness, I began to notice that
19084 while all its other features changed, this one consistent feature did
19085 not change. Whoever came about me, still settled down into Joe. I opened
19086 my eyes in the night, and I saw, in the great chair at the bedside, Joe.
19087 I opened my eyes in the day, and, sitting on the window-seat, smoking
19088 his pipe in the shaded open window, still I saw Joe. I asked for cooling
19089 drink, and the dear hand that gave it me was Joe’s. I sank back on
19090 my pillow after drinking, and the face that looked so hopefully and
19091 tenderly upon me was the face of Joe.
19092
19093 At last, one day, I took courage, and said, “Is it Joe?”
19094
19095 And the dear old home-voice answered, “Which it air, old chap.”
19096
19097 “O Joe, you break my heart! Look angry at me, Joe. Strike me, Joe. Tell
19098 me of my ingratitude. Don’t be so good to me!”
19099
19100 For Joe had actually laid his head down on the pillow at my side, and
19101 put his arm round my neck, in his joy that I knew him.
19102
19103 “Which dear old Pip, old chap,” said Joe, “you and me was ever friends.
19104 And when you’re well enough to go out for a ride--what larks!”
19105
19106 After which, Joe withdrew to the window, and stood with his back towards
19107 me, wiping his eyes. And as my extreme weakness prevented me from
19108 getting up and going to him, I lay there, penitently whispering, “O God
19109 bless him! O God bless this gentle Christian man!”
19110
19111 Joe’s eyes were red when I next found him beside me; but I was holding
19112 his hand, and we both felt happy.
19113
19114 “How long, dear Joe?”
19115
19116 “Which you meantersay, Pip, how long have your illness lasted, dear old
19117 chap?”
19118
19119 “Yes, Joe.”
19120
19121 “It’s the end of May, Pip. To-morrow is the first of June.”
19122
19123 “And have you been here all that time, dear Joe?”
19124
19125 “Pretty nigh, old chap. For, as I says to Biddy when the news of your
19126 being ill were brought by letter, which it were brought by the post, and
19127 being formerly single he is now married though underpaid for a deal of
19128 walking and shoe-leather, but wealth were not a object on his part, and
19129 marriage were the great wish of his hart--”
19130
19131 “It is so delightful to hear you, Joe! But I interrupt you in what you
19132 said to Biddy.”
19133
19134 “Which it were,” said Joe, “that how you might be amongst strangers, and
19135 that how you and me having been ever friends, a wisit at such a moment
19136 might not prove unacceptabobble. And Biddy, her word were, ‘Go to him,
19137 without loss of time.’ That,” said Joe, summing up with his judicial
19138 air, “were the word of Biddy. ‘Go to him,’ Biddy say, ‘without loss of
19139 time.’ In short, I shouldn’t greatly deceive you,” Joe added, after a
19140 little grave reflection, “if I represented to you that the word of that
19141 young woman were, ‘without a minute’s loss of time.’”
19142
19143 There Joe cut himself short, and informed me that I was to be talked
19144 to in great moderation, and that I was to take a little nourishment at
19145 stated frequent times, whether I felt inclined for it or not, and that
19146 I was to submit myself to all his orders. So I kissed his hand, and lay
19147 quiet, while he proceeded to indite a note to Biddy, with my love in it.
19148
19149 Evidently Biddy had taught Joe to write. As I lay in bed looking at him,
19150 it made me, in my weak state, cry again with pleasure to see the
19151 pride with which he set about his letter. My bedstead, divested of its
19152 curtains, had been removed, with me upon it, into the sitting-room, as
19153 the airiest and largest, and the carpet had been taken away, and
19154 the room kept always fresh and wholesome night and day. At my own
19155 writing-table, pushed into a corner and cumbered with little bottles,
19156 Joe now sat down to his great work, first choosing a pen from the
19157 pen-tray as if it were a chest of large tools, and tucking up his
19158 sleeves as if he were going to wield a crow-bar or sledgehammer. It was
19159 necessary for Joe to hold on heavily to the table with his left elbow,
19160 and to get his right leg well out behind him, before he could begin; and
19161 when he did begin he made every downstroke so slowly that it might
19162 have been six feet long, while at every upstroke I could hear his pen
19163 spluttering extensively. He had a curious idea that the inkstand was
19164 on the side of him where it was not, and constantly dipped his pen into
19165 space, and seemed quite satisfied with the result. Occasionally, he was
19166 tripped up by some orthographical stumbling-block; but on the whole
19167 he got on very well indeed; and when he had signed his name, and had
19168 removed a finishing blot from the paper to the crown of his head with
19169 his two forefingers, he got up and hovered about the table, trying the
19170 effect of his performance from various points of view, as it lay there,
19171 with unbounded satisfaction.
19172
19173 Not to make Joe uneasy by talking too much, even if I had been able to
19174 talk much, I deferred asking him about Miss Havisham until next day. He
19175 shook his head when I then asked him if she had recovered.
19176
19177 “Is she dead, Joe?”
19178
19179 “Why you see, old chap,” said Joe, in a tone of remonstrance, and by way
19180 of getting at it by degrees, “I wouldn’t go so far as to say that, for
19181 that’s a deal to say; but she ain’t--”
19182
19183 “Living, Joe?”
19184
19185 “That’s nigher where it is,” said Joe; “she ain’t living.”
19186
19187 “Did she linger long, Joe?”
19188
19189 “Arter you was took ill, pretty much about what you might call (if you
19190 was put to it) a week,” said Joe; still determined, on my account, to
19191 come at everything by degrees.
19192
19193 “Dear Joe, have you heard what becomes of her property?”
19194
19195 “Well, old chap,” said Joe, “it do appear that she had settled the most
19196 of it, which I meantersay tied it up, on Miss Estella. But she had
19197 wrote out a little coddleshell in her own hand a day or two afore the
19198 accident, leaving a cool four thousand to Mr. Matthew Pocket. And why,
19199 do you suppose, above all things, Pip, she left that cool four thousand
19200 unto him? ‘Because of Pip’s account of him, the said Matthew.’ I am told
19201 by Biddy, that air the writing,” said Joe, repeating the legal turn as
19202 if it did him infinite good, “‘account of him the said Matthew.’ And a
19203 cool four thousand, Pip!”
19204
19205 I never discovered from whom Joe derived the conventional temperature of
19206 the four thousand pounds; but it appeared to make the sum of money more
19207 to him, and he had a manifest relish in insisting on its being cool.
19208
19209 This account gave me great joy, as it perfected the only good thing I
19210 had done. I asked Joe whether he had heard if any of the other relations
19211 had any legacies?
19212
19213 “Miss Sarah,” said Joe, “she have twenty-five pound perannium fur to
19214 buy pills, on account of being bilious. Miss Georgiana, she have twenty
19215 pound down. Mrs.--what’s the name of them wild beasts with humps, old
19216 chap?”
19217
19218 “Camels?” said I, wondering why he could possibly want to know.
19219
19220 Joe nodded. “Mrs. Camels,” by which I presently understood he meant
19221 Camilla, “she have five pound fur to buy rushlights to put her in
19222 spirits when she wake up in the night.”
19223
19224 The accuracy of these recitals was sufficiently obvious to me, to give
19225 me great confidence in Joe’s information. “And now,” said Joe, “you
19226 ain’t that strong yet, old chap, that you can take in more nor one
19227 additional shovelful to-day. Old Orlick he’s been a bustin’ open a
19228 dwelling-ouse.”
19229
19230 “Whose?” said I.
19231
19232 “Not, I grant you, but what his manners is given to blusterous,” said
19233 Joe, apologetically; “still, a Englishman’s ouse is his Castle, and
19234 castles must not be busted ‘cept when done in war time. And wotsume’er
19235 the failings on his part, he were a corn and seedsman in his hart.”
19236
19237 “Is it Pumblechook’s house that has been broken into, then?”
19238
19239 “That’s it, Pip,” said Joe; “and they took his till, and they took his
19240 cash-box, and they drinked his wine, and they partook of his wittles,
19241 and they slapped his face, and they pulled his nose, and they tied him
19242 up to his bedpust, and they giv’ him a dozen, and they stuffed his
19243 mouth full of flowering annuals to prewent his crying out. But he knowed
19244 Orlick, and Orlick’s in the county jail.”
19245
19246 By these approaches we arrived at unrestricted conversation. I was slow
19247 to gain strength, but I did slowly and surely become less weak, and Joe
19248 stayed with me, and I fancied I was little Pip again.
19249
19250 For the tenderness of Joe was so beautifully proportioned to my need,
19251 that I was like a child in his hands. He would sit and talk to me in the
19252 old confidence, and with the old simplicity, and in the old unassertive
19253 protecting way, so that I would half believe that all my life since the
19254 days of the old kitchen was one of the mental troubles of the fever that
19255 was gone. He did everything for me except the household work, for which
19256 he had engaged a very decent woman, after paying off the laundress on
19257 his first arrival. “Which I do assure you, Pip,” he would often say, in
19258 explanation of that liberty; “I found her a tapping the spare bed, like
19259 a cask of beer, and drawing off the feathers in a bucket, for sale.
19260 Which she would have tapped yourn next, and draw’d it off with you a
19261 laying on it, and was then a carrying away the coals gradiwally in
19262 the soup-tureen and wegetable-dishes, and the wine and spirits in your
19263 Wellington boots.”
19264
19265 We looked forward to the day when I should go out for a ride, as we had
19266 once looked forward to the day of my apprenticeship. And when the day
19267 came, and an open carriage was got into the Lane, Joe wrapped me up,
19268 took me in his arms, carried me down to it, and put me in, as if I were
19269 still the small helpless creature to whom he had so abundantly given of
19270 the wealth of his great nature.
19271
19272 And Joe got in beside me, and we drove away together into the country,
19273 where the rich summer growth was already on the trees and on the grass,
19274 and sweet summer scents filled all the air. The day happened to be
19275 Sunday, and when I looked on the loveliness around me, and thought
19276 how it had grown and changed, and how the little wild-flowers had been
19277 forming, and the voices of the birds had been strengthening, by day and
19278 by night, under the sun and under the stars, while poor I lay burning
19279 and tossing on my bed, the mere remembrance of having burned and tossed
19280 there came like a check upon my peace. But when I heard the Sunday
19281 bells, and looked around a little more upon the outspread beauty, I felt
19282 that I was not nearly thankful enough,--that I was too weak yet to be
19283 even that,--and I laid my head on Joe’s shoulder, as I had laid it long
19284 ago when he had taken me to the Fair or where not, and it was too much
19285 for my young senses.
19286
19287 More composure came to me after a while, and we talked as we used
19288 to talk, lying on the grass at the old Battery. There was no change
19289 whatever in Joe. Exactly what he had been in my eyes then, he was in my
19290 eyes still; just as simply faithful, and as simply right.
19291
19292 When we got back again, and he lifted me out, and carried me--so
19293 easily!--across the court and up the stairs, I thought of that eventful
19294 Christmas Day when he had carried me over the marshes. We had not yet
19295 made any allusion to my change of fortune, nor did I know how much of
19296 my late history he was acquainted with. I was so doubtful of myself now,
19297 and put so much trust in him, that I could not satisfy myself whether I
19298 ought to refer to it when he did not.
19299
19300 “Have you heard, Joe,” I asked him that evening, upon further
19301 consideration, as he smoked his pipe at the window, “who my patron was?”
19302
19303 “I heerd,” returned Joe, “as it were not Miss Havisham, old chap.”
19304
19305 “Did you hear who it was, Joe?”
19306
19307 “Well! I heerd as it were a person what sent the person what giv’ you
19308 the bank-notes at the Jolly Bargemen, Pip.”
19309
19310 “So it was.”
19311
19312 “Astonishing!” said Joe, in the placidest way.
19313
19314 “Did you hear that he was dead, Joe?” I presently asked, with increasing
19315 diffidence.
19316
19317 “Which? Him as sent the bank-notes, Pip?”
19318
19319 “Yes.”
19320
19321 “I think,” said Joe, after meditating a long time, and looking rather
19322 evasively at the window-seat, “as I did hear tell that how he were
19323 something or another in a general way in that direction.”
19324
19325 “Did you hear anything of his circumstances, Joe?”
19326
19327 “Not partickler, Pip.”
19328
19329 “If you would like to hear, Joe--” I was beginning, when Joe got up and
19330 came to my sofa.
19331
19332 “Lookee here, old chap,” said Joe, bending over me. “Ever the best of
19333 friends; ain’t us, Pip?”
19334
19335 I was ashamed to answer him.
19336
19337 “Wery good, then,” said Joe, as if I had answered; “that’s all right;
19338 that’s agreed upon. Then why go into subjects, old chap, which as
19339 betwixt two sech must be for ever onnecessary? There’s subjects enough
19340 as betwixt two sech, without onnecessary ones. Lord! To think of your
19341 poor sister and her Rampages! And don’t you remember Tickler?”
19342
19343 “I do indeed, Joe.”
19344
19345 “Lookee here, old chap,” said Joe. “I done what I could to keep you
19346 and Tickler in sunders, but my power were not always fully equal to my
19347 inclinations. For when your poor sister had a mind to drop into you, it
19348 were not so much,” said Joe, in his favorite argumentative way, “that
19349 she dropped into me too, if I put myself in opposition to her, but that
19350 she dropped into you always heavier for it. I noticed that. It ain’t a
19351 grab at a man’s whisker, not yet a shake or two of a man (to which your
19352 sister was quite welcome), that ‘ud put a man off from getting a little
19353 child out of punishment. But when that little child is dropped into
19354 heavier for that grab of whisker or shaking, then that man naterally up
19355 and says to himself, ‘Where is the good as you are a doing? I grant you
19356 I see the ‘arm,’ says the man, ‘but I don’t see the good. I call upon
19357 you, sir, therefore, to pint out the good.’”
19358
19359 “The man says?” I observed, as Joe waited for me to speak.
19360
19361 “The man says,” Joe assented. “Is he right, that man?”
19362
19363 “Dear Joe, he is always right.”
19364
19365 “Well, old chap,” said Joe, “then abide by your words. If he’s always
19366 right (which in general he’s more likely wrong), he’s right when he says
19367 this: Supposing ever you kep any little matter to yourself, when you
19368 was a little child, you kep it mostly because you know’d as J. Gargery’s
19369 power to part you and Tickler in sunders were not fully equal to his
19370 inclinations. Theerfore, think no more of it as betwixt two sech, and do
19371 not let us pass remarks upon onnecessary subjects. Biddy giv’ herself a
19372 deal o’ trouble with me afore I left (for I am almost awful dull), as I
19373 should view it in this light, and, viewing it in this light, as I should
19374 so put it. Both of which,” said Joe, quite charmed with his logical
19375 arrangement, “being done, now this to you a true friend, say. Namely.
19376 You mustn’t go a overdoing on it, but you must have your supper and your
19377 wine and water, and you must be put betwixt the sheets.”
19378
19379 The delicacy with which Joe dismissed this theme, and the sweet tact and
19380 kindness with which Biddy--who with her woman’s wit had found me out so
19381 soon--had prepared him for it, made a deep impression on my mind. But
19382 whether Joe knew how poor I was, and how my great expectations had
19383 all dissolved, like our own marsh mists before the sun, I could not
19384 understand.
19385
19386 Another thing in Joe that I could not understand when it first began to
19387 develop itself, but which I soon arrived at a sorrowful comprehension
19388 of, was this: As I became stronger and better, Joe became a little less
19389 easy with me. In my weakness and entire dependence on him, the dear
19390 fellow had fallen into the old tone, and called me by the old names,
19391 the dear “old Pip, old chap,” that now were music in my ears. I too had
19392 fallen into the old ways, only happy and thankful that he let me. But,
19393 imperceptibly, though I held by them fast, Joe’s hold upon them began
19394 to slacken; and whereas I wondered at this, at first, I soon began to
19395 understand that the cause of it was in me, and that the fault of it was
19396 all mine.
19397
19398 Ah! Had I given Joe no reason to doubt my constancy, and to think that
19399 in prosperity I should grow cold to him and cast him off? Had I given
19400 Joe’s innocent heart no cause to feel instinctively that as I got
19401 stronger, his hold upon me would be weaker, and that he had better
19402 loosen it in time and let me go, before I plucked myself away?
19403
19404 It was on the third or fourth occasion of my going out walking in the
19405 Temple Gardens leaning on Joe’s arm, that I saw this change in him very
19406 plainly. We had been sitting in the bright warm sunlight, looking at the
19407 river, and I chanced to say as we got up,--
19408
19409 “See, Joe! I can walk quite strongly. Now, you shall see me walk back by
19410 myself.”
19411
19412 “Which do not overdo it, Pip,” said Joe; “but I shall be happy fur to
19413 see you able, sir.”
19414
19415 The last word grated on me; but how could I remonstrate! I walked no
19416 further than the gate of the gardens, and then pretended to be
19417 weaker than I was, and asked Joe for his arm. Joe gave it me, but was
19418 thoughtful.
19419
19420 I, for my part, was thoughtful too; for, how best to check this growing
19421 change in Joe was a great perplexity to my remorseful thoughts. That I
19422 was ashamed to tell him exactly how I was placed, and what I had come
19423 down to, I do not seek to conceal; but I hope my reluctance was not
19424 quite an unworthy one. He would want to help me out of his little
19425 savings, I knew, and I knew that he ought not to help me, and that I
19426 must not suffer him to do it.
19427
19428 It was a thoughtful evening with both of us. But, before we went to
19429 bed, I had resolved that I would wait over to-morrow,--to-morrow being
19430 Sunday,--and would begin my new course with the new week. On Monday
19431 morning I would speak to Joe about this change, I would lay aside this
19432 last vestige of reserve, I would tell him what I had in my thoughts
19433 (that Secondly, not yet arrived at), and why I had not decided to go
19434 out to Herbert, and then the change would be conquered for ever. As I
19435 cleared, Joe cleared, and it seemed as though he had sympathetically
19436 arrived at a resolution too.
19437
19438 We had a quiet day on the Sunday, and we rode out into the country, and
19439 then walked in the fields.
19440
19441 “I feel thankful that I have been ill, Joe,” I said.
19442
19443 “Dear old Pip, old chap, you’re a’most come round, sir.”
19444
19445 “It has been a memorable time for me, Joe.”
19446
19447 “Likeways for myself, sir,” Joe returned.
19448
19449 “We have had a time together, Joe, that I can never forget. There were
19450 days once, I know, that I did for a while forget; but I never shall
19451 forget these.”
19452
19453 “Pip,” said Joe, appearing a little hurried and troubled, “there has
19454 been larks. And, dear sir, what have been betwixt us--have been.”
19455
19456 At night, when I had gone to bed, Joe came into my room, as he had done
19457 all through my recovery. He asked me if I felt sure that I was as well
19458 as in the morning?
19459
19460 “Yes, dear Joe, quite.”
19461
19462 “And are always a getting stronger, old chap?”
19463
19464 “Yes, dear Joe, steadily.”
19465
19466 Joe patted the coverlet on my shoulder with his great good hand, and
19467 said, in what I thought a husky voice, “Good night!”
19468
19469 When I got up in the morning, refreshed and stronger yet, I was full of
19470 my resolution to tell Joe all, without delay. I would tell him before
19471 breakfast. I would dress at once and go to his room and surprise him;
19472 for, it was the first day I had been up early. I went to his room, and
19473 he was not there. Not only was he not there, but his box was gone.
19474
19475 I hurried then to the breakfast-table, and on it found a letter. These
19476 were its brief contents:--
19477
19478 “Not wishful to intrude I have departured fur you are well again dear
19479 Pip and will do better without JO.
19480
19481 “P.S. Ever the best of friends.”
19482
19483 Enclosed in the letter was a receipt for the debt and costs on which I
19484 had been arrested. Down to that moment, I had vainly supposed that my
19485 creditor had withdrawn, or suspended proceedings until I should be quite
19486 recovered. I had never dreamed of Joe’s having paid the money; but Joe
19487 had paid it, and the receipt was in his name.
19488
19489 What remained for me now, but to follow him to the dear old forge, and
19490 there to have out my disclosure to him, and my penitent remonstrance
19491 with him, and there to relieve my mind and heart of that reserved
19492 Secondly, which had begun as a vague something lingering in my thoughts,
19493 and had formed into a settled purpose?
19494
19495 The purpose was, that I would go to Biddy, that I would show her how
19496 humbled and repentant I came back, that I would tell her how I had lost
19497 all I once hoped for, that I would remind her of our old confidences in
19498 my first unhappy time. Then I would say to her, “Biddy, I think you once
19499 liked me very well, when my errant heart, even while it strayed away
19500 from you, was quieter and better with you than it ever has been since.
19501 If you can like me only half as well once more, if you can take me with
19502 all my faults and disappointments on my head, if you can receive me like
19503 a forgiven child (and indeed I am as sorry, Biddy, and have as much need
19504 of a hushing voice and a soothing hand), I hope I am a little worthier
19505 of you that I was,--not much, but a little. And, Biddy, it shall rest
19506 with you to say whether I shall work at the forge with Joe, or whether I
19507 shall try for any different occupation down in this country, or whether
19508 we shall go away to a distant place where an opportunity awaits me which
19509 I set aside, when it was offered, until I knew your answer. And now,
19510 dear Biddy, if you can tell me that you will go through the world with
19511 me, you will surely make it a better world for me, and me a better man
19512 for it, and I will try hard to make it a better world for you.”
19513
19514 Such was my purpose. After three days more of recovery, I went down to
19515 the old place to put it in execution. And how I sped in it is all I have
19516 left to tell.
19517
19518
19519
19520
19521 Chapter LVIII
19522
19523 The tidings of my high fortunes having had a heavy fall had got down
19524 to my native place and its neighborhood before I got there. I found the
19525 Blue Boar in possession of the intelligence, and I found that it made a
19526 great change in the Boar’s demeanour. Whereas the Boar had cultivated
19527 my good opinion with warm assiduity when I was coming into property,
19528 the Boar was exceedingly cool on the subject now that I was going out of
19529 property.
19530
19531 It was evening when I arrived, much fatigued by the journey I had so
19532 often made so easily. The Boar could not put me into my usual bedroom,
19533 which was engaged (probably by some one who had expectations), and
19534 could only assign me a very indifferent chamber among the pigeons and
19535 post-chaises up the yard. But I had as sound a sleep in that lodging as
19536 in the most superior accommodation the Boar could have given me, and the
19537 quality of my dreams was about the same as in the best bedroom.
19538
19539 Early in the morning, while my breakfast was getting ready, I strolled
19540 round by Satis House. There were printed bills on the gate and on bits
19541 of carpet hanging out of the windows, announcing a sale by auction of
19542 the Household Furniture and Effects, next week. The House itself was to
19543 be sold as old building materials, and pulled down. LOT 1 was marked in
19544 whitewashed knock-knee letters on the brew house; LOT 2 on that part of
19545 the main building which had been so long shut up. Other lots were marked
19546 off on other parts of the structure, and the ivy had been torn down to
19547 make room for the inscriptions, and much of it trailed low in the dust
19548 and was withered already. Stepping in for a moment at the open gate, and
19549 looking around me with the uncomfortable air of a stranger who had no
19550 business there, I saw the auctioneer’s clerk walking on the casks and
19551 telling them off for the information of a catalogue-compiler, pen in
19552 hand, who made a temporary desk of the wheeled chair I had so often
19553 pushed along to the tune of Old Clem.
19554
19555 When I got back to my breakfast in the Boar’s coffee-room, I found Mr.
19556 Pumblechook conversing with the landlord. Mr. Pumblechook (not improved
19557 in appearance by his late nocturnal adventure) was waiting for me, and
19558 addressed me in the following terms:--
19559
19560 “Young man, I am sorry to see you brought low. But what else could be
19561 expected! what else could be expected!”
19562
19563 As he extended his hand with a magnificently forgiving air, and as I was
19564 broken by illness and unfit to quarrel, I took it.
19565
19566 “William,” said Mr. Pumblechook to the waiter, “put a muffin on table.
19567 And has it come to this! Has it come to this!”
19568
19569 I frowningly sat down to my breakfast. Mr. Pumblechook stood over me and
19570 poured out my tea--before I could touch the teapot--with the air of a
19571 benefactor who was resolved to be true to the last.
19572
19573 “William,” said Mr. Pumblechook, mournfully, “put the salt on. In
19574 happier times,” addressing me, “I think you took sugar? And did you take
19575 milk? You did. Sugar and milk. William, bring a watercress.”
19576
19577 “Thank you,” said I, shortly, “but I don’t eat watercresses.”
19578
19579 “You don’t eat ‘em,” returned Mr. Pumblechook, sighing and nodding
19580 his head several times, as if he might have expected that, and as if
19581 abstinence from watercresses were consistent with my downfall. “True.
19582 The simple fruits of the earth. No. You needn’t bring any, William.”
19583
19584 I went on with my breakfast, and Mr. Pumblechook continued to stand over
19585 me, staring fishily and breathing noisily, as he always did.
19586
19587 “Little more than skin and bone!” mused Mr. Pumblechook, aloud. “And yet
19588 when he went from here (I may say with my blessing), and I spread afore
19589 him my humble store, like the Bee, he was as plump as a Peach!”
19590
19591 This reminded me of the wonderful difference between the servile manner
19592 in which he had offered his hand in my new prosperity, saying, “May I?”
19593 and the ostentatious clemency with which he had just now exhibited the
19594 same fat five fingers.
19595
19596 “Hah!” he went on, handing me the bread and butter. “And air you a going
19597 to Joseph?”
19598
19599 “In heaven’s name,” said I, firing in spite of myself, “what does it
19600 matter to you where I am going? Leave that teapot alone.”
19601
19602 It was the worst course I could have taken, because it gave Pumblechook
19603 the opportunity he wanted.
19604
19605 “Yes, young man,” said he, releasing the handle of the article in
19606 question, retiring a step or two from my table, and speaking for the
19607 behoof of the landlord and waiter at the door, “I will leave that teapot
19608 alone. You are right, young man. For once you are right. I forgit myself
19609 when I take such an interest in your breakfast, as to wish your frame,
19610 exhausted by the debilitating effects of prodigygality, to be stimilated
19611 by the ‘olesome nourishment of your forefathers. And yet,” said
19612 Pumblechook, turning to the landlord and waiter, and pointing me out at
19613 arm’s length, “this is him as I ever sported with in his days of happy
19614 infancy! Tell me not it cannot be; I tell you this is him!”
19615
19616 A low murmur from the two replied. The waiter appeared to be
19617 particularly affected.
19618
19619 “This is him,” said Pumblechook, “as I have rode in my shay-cart. This
19620 is him as I have seen brought up by hand. This is him untoe the sister
19621 of which I was uncle by marriage, as her name was Georgiana M’ria from
19622 her own mother, let him deny it if he can!”
19623
19624 The waiter seemed convinced that I could not deny it, and that it gave
19625 the case a black look.
19626
19627 “Young man,” said Pumblechook, screwing his head at me in the old
19628 fashion, “you air a going to Joseph. What does it matter to me, you
19629 ask me, where you air a going? I say to you, Sir, you air a going to
19630 Joseph.”
19631
19632 The waiter coughed, as if he modestly invited me to get over that.
19633
19634 “Now,” said Pumblechook, and all this with a most exasperating air
19635 of saying in the cause of virtue what was perfectly convincing and
19636 conclusive, “I will tell you what to say to Joseph. Here is Squires of
19637 the Boar present, known and respected in this town, and here is William,
19638 which his father’s name was Potkins if I do not deceive myself.”
19639
19640 “You do not, sir,” said William.
19641
19642 “In their presence,” pursued Pumblechook, “I will tell you, young
19643 man, what to say to Joseph. Says you, “Joseph, I have this day seen
19644 my earliest benefactor and the founder of my fortun’s. I will name no
19645 names, Joseph, but so they are pleased to call him up town, and I have
19646 seen that man.”
19647
19648 “I swear I don’t see him here,” said I.
19649
19650 “Say that likewise,” retorted Pumblechook. “Say you said that, and even
19651 Joseph will probably betray surprise.”
19652
19653 “There you quite mistake him,” said I. “I know better.”
19654
19655 “Says you,” Pumblechook went on, “‘Joseph, I have seen that man, and
19656 that man bears you no malice and bears me no malice. He knows your
19657 character, Joseph, and is well acquainted with your pig-headedness and
19658 ignorance; and he knows my character, Joseph, and he knows my want of
19659 gratitoode. Yes, Joseph,’ says you,” here Pumblechook shook his head and
19660 hand at me, “‘he knows my total deficiency of common human gratitoode.
19661 He knows it, Joseph, as none can. You do not know it, Joseph, having no
19662 call to know it, but that man do.’”
19663
19664 Windy donkey as he was, it really amazed me that he could have the face
19665 to talk thus to mine.
19666
19667 “Says you, ‘Joseph, he gave me a little message, which I will now
19668 repeat. It was that, in my being brought low, he saw the finger of
19669 Providence. He knowed that finger when he saw Joseph, and he saw it
19670 plain. It pinted out this writing, Joseph. Reward of ingratitoode to his
19671 earliest benefactor, and founder of fortun’s. But that man said he did
19672 not repent of what he had done, Joseph. Not at all. It was right to do
19673 it, it was kind to do it, it was benevolent to do it, and he would do it
19674 again.’”
19675
19676 “It’s pity,” said I, scornfully, as I finished my interrupted breakfast,
19677 “that the man did not say what he had done and would do again.”
19678
19679 “Squires of the Boar!” Pumblechook was now addressing the landlord, “and
19680 William! I have no objections to your mentioning, either up town or down
19681 town, if such should be your wishes, that it was right to do it, kind to
19682 do it, benevolent to do it, and that I would do it again.”
19683
19684 With those words the Impostor shook them both by the hand, with an air,
19685 and left the house; leaving me much more astonished than delighted by
19686 the virtues of that same indefinite “it.” I was not long after him in
19687 leaving the house too, and when I went down the High Street I saw him
19688 holding forth (no doubt to the same effect) at his shop door to a select
19689 group, who honored me with very unfavorable glances as I passed on the
19690 opposite side of the way.
19691
19692 But, it was only the pleasanter to turn to Biddy and to Joe, whose
19693 great forbearance shone more brightly than before, if that could be,
19694 contrasted with this brazen pretender. I went towards them slowly, for
19695 my limbs were weak, but with a sense of increasing relief as I drew
19696 nearer to them, and a sense of leaving arrogance and untruthfulness
19697 further and further behind.
19698
19699 The June weather was delicious. The sky was blue, the larks were soaring
19700 high over the green corn, I thought all that countryside more beautiful
19701 and peaceful by far than I had ever known it to be yet. Many pleasant
19702 pictures of the life that I would lead there, and of the change for the
19703 better that would come over my character when I had a guiding spirit at
19704 my side whose simple faith and clear home wisdom I had proved, beguiled
19705 my way. They awakened a tender emotion in me; for my heart was softened
19706 by my return, and such a change had come to pass, that I felt like one
19707 who was toiling home barefoot from distant travel, and whose wanderings
19708 had lasted many years.
19709
19710 The schoolhouse where Biddy was mistress I had never seen; but, the
19711 little roundabout lane by which I entered the village, for quietness’
19712 sake, took me past it. I was disappointed to find that the day was a
19713 holiday; no children were there, and Biddy’s house was closed. Some
19714 hopeful notion of seeing her, busily engaged in her daily duties, before
19715 she saw me, had been in my mind and was defeated.
19716
19717 But the forge was a very short distance off, and I went towards it under
19718 the sweet green limes, listening for the clink of Joe’s hammer. Long
19719 after I ought to have heard it, and long after I had fancied I heard it
19720 and found it but a fancy, all was still. The limes were there, and the
19721 white thorns were there, and the chestnut-trees were there, and their
19722 leaves rustled harmoniously when I stopped to listen; but, the clink of
19723 Joe’s hammer was not in the midsummer wind.
19724
19725 Almost fearing, without knowing why, to come in view of the forge, I saw
19726 it at last, and saw that it was closed. No gleam of fire, no glittering
19727 shower of sparks, no roar of bellows; all shut up, and still.
19728
19729 But the house was not deserted, and the best parlor seemed to be in use,
19730 for there were white curtains fluttering in its window, and the window
19731 was open and gay with flowers. I went softly towards it, meaning to peep
19732 over the flowers, when Joe and Biddy stood before me, arm in arm.
19733
19734 At first Biddy gave a cry, as if she thought it was my apparition, but
19735 in another moment she was in my embrace. I wept to see her, and she wept
19736 to see me; I, because she looked so fresh and pleasant; she, because I
19737 looked so worn and white.
19738
19739 “But dear Biddy, how smart you are!”
19740
19741 “Yes, dear Pip.”
19742
19743 “And Joe, how smart you are!”
19744
19745 “Yes, dear old Pip, old chap.”
19746
19747 I looked at both of them, from one to the other, and then--
19748
19749 “It’s my wedding-day!” cried Biddy, in a burst of happiness, “and I am
19750 married to Joe!”
19751
19752 They had taken me into the kitchen, and I had laid my head down on
19753 the old deal table. Biddy held one of my hands to her lips, and Joe’s
19754 restoring touch was on my shoulder. “Which he warn’t strong enough, my
19755 dear, fur to be surprised,” said Joe. And Biddy said, “I ought to
19756 have thought of it, dear Joe, but I was too happy.” They were both so
19757 overjoyed to see me, so proud to see me, so touched by my coming to
19758 them, so delighted that I should have come by accident to make their day
19759 complete!
19760
19761 My first thought was one of great thankfulness that I had never breathed
19762 this last baffled hope to Joe. How often, while he was with me in my
19763 illness, had it risen to my lips! How irrevocable would have been his
19764 knowledge of it, if he had remained with me but another hour!
19765
19766 “Dear Biddy,” said I, “you have the best husband in the whole world,
19767 and if you could have seen him by my bed you would have--But no, you
19768 couldn’t love him better than you do.”
19769
19770 “No, I couldn’t indeed,” said Biddy.
19771
19772 “And, dear Joe, you have the best wife in the whole world, and she will
19773 make you as happy as even you deserve to be, you dear, good, noble Joe!”
19774
19775 Joe looked at me with a quivering lip, and fairly put his sleeve before
19776 his eyes.
19777
19778 “And Joe and Biddy both, as you have been to church to-day, and are in
19779 charity and love with all mankind, receive my humble thanks for all you
19780 have done for me, and all I have so ill repaid! And when I say that I am
19781 going away within the hour, for I am soon going abroad, and that I shall
19782 never rest until I have worked for the money with which you have kept me
19783 out of prison, and have sent it to you, don’t think, dear Joe and Biddy,
19784 that if I could repay it a thousand times over, I suppose I could cancel
19785 a farthing of the debt I owe you, or that I would do so if I could!”
19786
19787 They were both melted by these words, and both entreated me to say no
19788 more.
19789
19790 “But I must say more. Dear Joe, I hope you will have children to love,
19791 and that some little fellow will sit in this chimney-corner of a winter
19792 night, who may remind you of another little fellow gone out of it for
19793 ever. Don’t tell him, Joe, that I was thankless; don’t tell him, Biddy,
19794 that I was ungenerous and unjust; only tell him that I honored you both,
19795 because you were both so good and true, and that, as your child, I said
19796 it would be natural to him to grow up a much better man than I did.”
19797
19798 “I ain’t a going,” said Joe, from behind his sleeve, “to tell him
19799 nothink o’ that natur, Pip. Nor Biddy ain’t. Nor yet no one ain’t.”
19800
19801 “And now, though I know you have already done it in your own kind
19802 hearts, pray tell me, both, that you forgive me! Pray let me hear you
19803 say the words, that I may carry the sound of them away with me, and then
19804 I shall be able to believe that you can trust me, and think better of
19805 me, in the time to come!”
19806
19807 “O dear old Pip, old chap,” said Joe. “God knows as I forgive you, if I
19808 have anythink to forgive!”
19809
19810 “Amen! And God knows I do!” echoed Biddy.
19811
19812 “Now let me go up and look at my old little room, and rest there a few
19813 minutes by myself. And then, when I have eaten and drunk with you, go
19814 with me as far as the finger-post, dear Joe and Biddy, before we say
19815 good-bye!”
19816
19817 ***
19818
19819 I sold all I had, and put aside as much as I could, for a composition
19820 with my creditors,--who gave me ample time to pay them in full,--and I
19821 went out and joined Herbert. Within a month, I had quitted England,
19822 and within two months I was clerk to Clarriker and Co., and within four
19823 months I assumed my first undivided responsibility. For the beam across
19824 the parlor ceiling at Mill Pond Bank had then ceased to tremble under
19825 old Bill Barley’s growls and was at peace, and Herbert had gone away to
19826 marry Clara, and I was left in sole charge of the Eastern Branch until
19827 he brought her back.
19828
19829 Many a year went round before I was a partner in the House; but I lived
19830 happily with Herbert and his wife, and lived frugally, and paid my
19831 debts, and maintained a constant correspondence with Biddy and Joe. It
19832 was not until I became third in the Firm, that Clarriker betrayed me to
19833 Herbert; but he then declared that the secret of Herbert’s partnership
19834 had been long enough upon his conscience, and he must tell it. So he
19835 told it, and Herbert was as much moved as amazed, and the dear fellow
19836 and I were not the worse friends for the long concealment. I must not
19837 leave it to be supposed that we were ever a great House, or that we made
19838 mints of money. We were not in a grand way of business, but we had a
19839 good name, and worked for our profits, and did very well. We owed so
19840 much to Herbert’s ever cheerful industry and readiness, that I often
19841 wondered how I had conceived that old idea of his inaptitude, until I
19842 was one day enlightened by the reflection, that perhaps the inaptitude
19843 had never been in him at all, but had been in me.
19844
19845
19846
19847
19848 Chapter LIX
19849
19850 For eleven years, I had not seen Joe nor Biddy with my bodily
19851 eyes,--though they had both been often before my fancy in the
19852 East,--when, upon an evening in December, an hour or two after dark, I
19853 laid my hand softly on the latch of the old kitchen door. I touched it
19854 so softly that I was not heard, and looked in unseen. There, smoking his
19855 pipe in the old place by the kitchen firelight, as hale and as strong as
19856 ever, though a little gray, sat Joe; and there, fenced into the corner
19857 with Joe’s leg, and sitting on my own little stool looking at the fire,
19858 was--I again!
19859
19860 “We giv’ him the name of Pip for your sake, dear old chap,” said Joe,
19861 delighted, when I took another stool by the child’s side (but I did not
19862 rumple his hair), “and we hoped he might grow a little bit like you, and
19863 we think he do.”
19864
19865 I thought so too, and I took him out for a walk next morning, and we
19866 talked immensely, understanding one another to perfection. And I took
19867 him down to the churchyard, and set him on a certain tombstone there,
19868 and he showed me from that elevation which stone was sacred to the
19869 memory of Philip Pirrip, late of this Parish, and Also Georgiana, Wife
19870 of the Above.
19871
19872 “Biddy,” said I, when I talked with her after dinner, as her little girl
19873 lay sleeping in her lap, “you must give Pip to me one of these days; or
19874 lend him, at all events.”
19875
19876 “No, no,” said Biddy, gently. “You must marry.”
19877
19878 “So Herbert and Clara say, but I don’t think I shall, Biddy. I have so
19879 settled down in their home, that it’s not at all likely. I am already
19880 quite an old bachelor.”
19881
19882 Biddy looked down at her child, and put its little hand to her lips, and
19883 then put the good matronly hand with which she had touched it into mine.
19884 There was something in the action, and in the light pressure of Biddy’s
19885 wedding-ring, that had a very pretty eloquence in it.
19886
19887 “Dear Pip,” said Biddy, “you are sure you don’t fret for her?”
19888
19889 “O no,--I think not, Biddy.”
19890
19891 “Tell me as an old, old friend. Have you quite forgotten her?
19892
19893 “My dear Biddy, I have forgotten nothing in my life that ever had a
19894 foremost place there, and little that ever had any place there. But that
19895 poor dream, as I once used to call it, has all gone by, Biddy,--all gone
19896 by!”
19897
19898 Nevertheless, I knew, while I said those words, that I secretly intended
19899 to revisit the site of the old house that evening, alone, for her sake.
19900 Yes, even so. For Estella’s sake.
19901
19902 I had heard of her as leading a most unhappy life, and as being
19903 separated from her husband, who had used her with great cruelty, and who
19904 had become quite renowned as a compound of pride, avarice, brutality,
19905 and meanness. And I had heard of the death of her husband, from an
19906 accident consequent on his ill-treatment of a horse. This release had
19907 befallen her some two years before; for anything I knew, she was married
19908 again.
19909
19910 The early dinner hour at Joe’s, left me abundance of time, without
19911 hurrying my talk with Biddy, to walk over to the old spot before dark.
19912 But, what with loitering on the way to look at old objects and to think
19913 of old times, the day had quite declined when I came to the place.
19914
19915 There was no house now, no brewery, no building whatever left, but the
19916 wall of the old garden. The cleared space had been enclosed with a rough
19917 fence, and looking over it, I saw that some of the old ivy had struck
19918 root anew, and was growing green on low quiet mounds of ruin. A gate in
19919 the fence standing ajar, I pushed it open, and went in.
19920
19921 A cold silvery mist had veiled the afternoon, and the moon was not yet
19922 up to scatter it. But, the stars were shining beyond the mist, and the
19923 moon was coming, and the evening was not dark. I could trace out where
19924 every part of the old house had been, and where the brewery had been,
19925 and where the gates, and where the casks. I had done so, and was looking
19926 along the desolate garden walk, when I beheld a solitary figure in it.
19927
19928 The figure showed itself aware of me, as I advanced. It had been moving
19929 towards me, but it stood still. As I drew nearer, I saw it to be the
19930 figure of a woman. As I drew nearer yet, it was about to turn away, when
19931 it stopped, and let me come up with it. Then, it faltered, as if much
19932 surprised, and uttered my name, and I cried out,--
19933
19934 “Estella!”
19935
19936 “I am greatly changed. I wonder you know me.”
19937
19938 The freshness of her beauty was indeed gone, but its indescribable
19939 majesty and its indescribable charm remained. Those attractions in it,
19940 I had seen before; what I had never seen before, was the saddened,
19941 softened light of the once proud eyes; what I had never felt before was
19942 the friendly touch of the once insensible hand.
19943
19944 We sat down on a bench that was near, and I said, “After so many years,
19945 it is strange that we should thus meet again, Estella, here where our
19946 first meeting was! Do you often come back?”
19947
19948 “I have never been here since.”
19949
19950 “Nor I.”
19951
19952 The moon began to rise, and I thought of the placid look at the white
19953 ceiling, which had passed away. The moon began to rise, and I thought of
19954 the pressure on my hand when I had spoken the last words he had heard on
19955 earth.
19956
19957 Estella was the next to break the silence that ensued between us.
19958
19959 “I have very often hoped and intended to come back, but have been
19960 prevented by many circumstances. Poor, poor old place!”
19961
19962 The silvery mist was touched with the first rays of the moonlight, and
19963 the same rays touched the tears that dropped from her eyes. Not knowing
19964 that I saw them, and setting herself to get the better of them, she said
19965 quietly,--
19966
19967 “Were you wondering, as you walked along, how it came to be left in this
19968 condition?”
19969
19970 “Yes, Estella.”
19971
19972 “The ground belongs to me. It is the only possession I have not
19973 relinquished. Everything else has gone from me, little by little, but I
19974 have kept this. It was the subject of the only determined resistance I
19975 made in all the wretched years.”
19976
19977 “Is it to be built on?”
19978
19979 “At last, it is. I came here to take leave of it before its change. And
19980 you,” she said, in a voice of touching interest to a wanderer,--“you
19981 live abroad still?”
19982
19983 “Still.”
19984
19985 “And do well, I am sure?”
19986
19987 “I work pretty hard for a sufficient living, and therefore--yes, I do
19988 well.”
19989
19990 “I have often thought of you,” said Estella.
19991
19992 “Have you?”
19993
19994 “Of late, very often. There was a long hard time when I kept far from me
19995 the remembrance of what I had thrown away when I was quite ignorant
19996 of its worth. But since my duty has not been incompatible with the
19997 admission of that remembrance, I have given it a place in my heart.”
19998
19999 “You have always held your place in my heart,” I answered.
20000
20001 And we were silent again until she spoke.
20002
20003 “I little thought,” said Estella, “that I should take leave of you in
20004 taking leave of this spot. I am very glad to do so.”
20005
20006 “Glad to part again, Estella? To me, parting is a painful thing. To me,
20007 the remembrance of our last parting has been ever mournful and painful.”
20008
20009 “But you said to me,” returned Estella, very earnestly, “‘God bless you,
20010 God forgive you!’ And if you could say that to me then, you will not
20011 hesitate to say that to me now,--now, when suffering has been stronger
20012 than all other teaching, and has taught me to understand what your heart
20013 used to be. I have been bent and broken, but--I hope--into a better
20014 shape. Be as considerate and good to me as you were, and tell me we are
20015 friends.”
20016
20017 “We are friends,” said I, rising and bending over her, as she rose from
20018 the bench.
20019
20020 “And will continue friends apart,” said Estella.
20021
20022 I took her hand in mine, and we went out of the ruined place; and, as
20023 the morning mists had risen long ago when I first left the forge, so the
20024 evening mists were rising now, and in all the broad expanse of tranquil
20025 light they showed to me, I saw no shadow of another parting from her.
20026